This is a modern-English version of The Romance of the Forest, interspersed with some pieces of poetry., originally written by Radcliffe, Ann Ward. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

THE

ROMANCE OF THE FOREST:

INTERSPERSED

WITH SOME PIECES OF POETRY.

BY THE

AUTHORESS OF "THE MYSTERIES OF UDOLPHO."

&c. &c.
EMBELLISHED

WITH ENGRAVINGS ON WOOD.

London:

PRINTED AND PUBLISHED BY J. LIMBIRD, 143, STRAND,
(Near Somerset House.)
1824.

CONTENTS


THE
ROMANCE OF THE FOREST



CHAPTER I

I’m a man,
So tired from disasters, pulled by fate,
That I would stake my life on any opportunity,
To fix it or get rid of it.

When once sordid interest seizes on the heart, it freezes up the source of every warm and liberal feeling; it is an enemy alike to virtue and to taste—this it perverts, and that it annihilates. The time may come, my friend, when death shall dissolve the sinews of avarice, and justice be permitted to resume her rights.

When selfish interest takes hold of the heart, it stifles all warm and generous feelings; it goes against both goodness and appreciation—this it distorts, and that it destroys. There may come a time, my friend, when death will break the chains of greed, and justice will be allowed to reclaim her rightful place.

Such were the words of the Advocate Nemours to Pierre de la Motte, as the latter stept at midnight into the carriage which was to bear him far from Paris, from his creditors and the persecution of the laws. De la Motte thanked him for this last instance of his kindness; the assistance he had given him in escape; and, when the carriage drove away, uttered a sad adieu! The gloom of the hour, and the peculiar emergency of his circumstances, sunk him in silent reverie.

Such were the words of Advocate Nemours to Pierre de la Motte, as he stepped into the carriage at midnight that would take him far away from Paris, away from his creditors and the pressure of the law. De la Motte thanked him for this final act of kindness, the help he had provided for his escape; and as the carriage drove off, he said a sorrowful goodbye. The darkness of the hour and the unique situation he found himself in plunged him into deep thought.

Whoever has read Gayot de Pitaval, the most faithful of those writers who record the proceedings in the Parliamentary Courts of Paris during the seventeenth century, must surely remember the striking story of Pierre de la Motte and the Marquess Philippe de Montalt: let all such, therefore, be informed, that the person here introduced to their notice was that individual Pierre de la Motte.

Whoever has read Gayot de Pitaval, the most reliable of those writers who documented the proceedings in the Parliamentary Courts of Paris during the seventeenth century, must surely remember the compelling story of Pierre de la Motte and the Marquess Philippe de Montalt: let all such readers be informed that the person introduced here is indeed Pierre de la Motte.

As Madame de la Motte leaned from the coach window, and gave a last look to the walls of Paris—Paris, the scene of her former happiness, and the residence of many dear friends—the fortitude, which had till now supported her, yielding to the force of grief—Farewell all! sighed she, this last look and we are separated for ever! Tears followed her words, and, sinking back, she resigned herself to the stillness of sorrow. The recollection of former times pressed heavily upon her heart; a few months before and she was surrounded by friends, fortune, and consequence; now she was deprived of all, a miserable exile from her native place, without home, without comfort—almost without hope. It was not the least of her afflictions that she had been obliged to quit Paris without bidding adieu to her only son, who was now on duty with his regiment in Germany; and such had been the precipitancy of this removal, that had she even known where he was stationed, she had no time to inform him of it, or of the alteration in his father's circumstances.

As Madame de la Motte leaned out of the coach window and took a last look at the walls of Paris—Paris, the place of her former happiness and home to many dear friends—her strength, which had supported her until now, gave way to overwhelming grief. "Farewell to all!" she sighed. "This last look and we are separated forever!" Tears followed her words, and as she sank back, she surrendered to the stillness of sorrow. Memories of better times weighed heavily on her heart; just a few months ago, she was surrounded by friends, fortune, and status; now she was stripped of everything, a miserable exile from her homeland, without a home, without comfort—almost without hope. One of her biggest sorrows was that she had to leave Paris without saying goodbye to her only son, who was currently serving with his regiment in Germany. The rush of this departure was such that even if she had known where he was stationed, she wouldn’t have had time to inform him of it or tell him about the change in his father's situation.

Pierre de la Motte was a gentleman, descended from an ancient house of France. He was a man whose passions often overcame his reason, and, for a time, silenced his conscience; but though the image of virtue, which nature had impressed upon his heart, was sometimes obscured by the passing influence of vice, it was never wholly obliterated. With strength of mind sufficient to have withstood temptation, he would have been a good man; as it was, he was always a weak, and sometimes a vicious member of society; yet his mind was active, and his imagination vivid, which co-operating with the force of passion, often dazzled his judgment and subdued principle. Thus he was a man, infirm in purpose and visionary in virtue:—in a word, his conduct was suggested by feeling, rather than principle; and his virtue, such as it was, could not stand the pressure of occasion.

Pierre de la Motte was a gentleman from an old family in France. He was a man whose passions often overshadowed his reason and, at times, silenced his conscience. However, the image of virtue that nature had embedded in his heart was never completely erased, even when it was sometimes dimmed by the fleeting influence of vice. With enough strength of mind to resist temptation, he could have been a good man; instead, he remained a weak, and at times, immoral member of society. Still, his mind was active, and his imagination was vivid, which, combined with the force of passion, often blinded his judgment and overpowered his principles. In this way, he was a man with shaky convictions and a dreamy sense of virtue: in short, his actions were guided more by emotions than by principles, and his virtue, limited as it was, could not withstand the pressures of the moment.

Early in life he had married Constance Valentia, a beautiful and elegant woman, attached to her family and beloved by them. Her birth was equal, her fortune superior to his; and their nuptials had been celebrated under the auspices of an approving and flattering world. Her heart was devoted to La Motte, and, for some time, she found in him an affectionate husband; but, allured by the gaieties of Paris, he was soon devoted to its luxuries, and in a few years his fortune and affection were equally lost in dissipation. A false pride had still operated against his interest, and withheld him from honourable retreat while it was yet in his power: the habits which he had acquired, enchained him to the scene of his former pleasure; and thus he had continued an expensive style of life till the means of prolonging it were exhausted. He at length awoke from this lethargy of security; but it was only to plunge into new error, and to attempt schemes for the reparation of his fortune, which served to sink him deeper in destruction. The consequence of a transaction, in which he thus engaged, now drove him, with the small wreck of his property, into dangerous and ignominious exile.

Early in his life, he married Constance Valentia, a beautiful and elegant woman who was devoted to her family and loved by them. Her background was equal to his, and her wealth was greater; their marriage was celebrated amidst the admiration and praise of society. Constance’s heart was dedicated to La Motte, and for a while, she found in him a caring husband. However, he was soon distracted by the pleasures of Paris and became consumed by its luxuries. Within a few years, he lost both his fortune and his affection amid his reckless lifestyle. His false pride kept him from making a dignified exit while he still had the chance; the habits he had developed trapped him in the scene of his former joys. Consequently, he maintained an extravagant lifestyle until he had exhausted all resources to sustain it. Eventually, he snapped out of this delusion of security, but only to plunge into new mistakes and attempt schemes to restore his fortune, which only led to further ruin. The outcome of one such venture forced him, with the little he had left, into a dangerous and shameful exile.

It was his design to pass into one of the southern provinces, and there seek, near the borders of the kingdom, an asylum in some obscure village. His family consisted of a wife and two faithful domestics, a man and woman, who had followed the fortune of their master.

It was his plan to move to one of the southern provinces and find refuge in some little-known village near the edge of the kingdom. His family included a wife and two loyal servants, a man and a woman, who had stayed by their master's side through thick and thin.

The night was dark and tempestuous, and at about the distance of three leagues from Paris, Peter, who now acted as postillion, having driven for some time over a wild heath where many ways crossed, stopped, and acquainted De la Motte with his perplexity. The sudden stopping of the carriage roused the latter from his reverie, and filled the whole party with the terror of pursuit; he was unable to supply the necessary direction, and the extreme darkness made it dangerous to proceed without one. During this period of distress, a light was perceived at some distance, and after much doubt and hesitation, La Motte, in the hope of obtaining assistance, alighted and advanced towards it; he proceeded slowly, from the fear of unknown pits. The light issued from the window of a small and ancient house, which stood alone on the heath, at the distance of half a mile.

The night was dark and stormy, and about three leagues from Paris, Peter, who was now acting as the driver, had been driving for a while over a wild area where many paths crossed. He stopped and confessed to De la Motte his confusion. The sudden halt of the carriage snapped De la Motte out of his thoughts and filled everyone with fear of being chased; he couldn't provide the guidance they needed, and the pitch-black darkness made it risky to move forward without it. During this stressful time, a light was spotted in the distance, and after much hesitation and doubt, De la Motte, hoping to get help, stepped down and moved towards it cautiously, wary of unknown holes. The light was coming from the window of a small, old house that stood alone on the heath, about half a mile away.

Having reached the door, he stopped for some moments, listening in apprehensive anxiety—no sound was heard but that of the wind, which swept in hollow gusts over the waste. At length he ventured to knock, and having waited for some time, during which he indistinctly heard several voices in conversation, some one within inquired what he wanted? La Motte answered, that he was a traveller who had lost his way, and desired to be directed to the nearest town. That, said the person, is seven miles off, and the road bad enough, even if you could see it; if you only want a bed, you may have it here, and had better stay.

Reaching the door, he paused for a moment, listening anxiously—there was only the sound of the wind sweeping in hollow gusts across the barren land. Finally, he decided to knock, and after waiting a while, during which he faintly heard several voices talking, someone inside asked what he wanted. La Motte replied that he was a traveler who had lost his way and needed directions to the nearest town. The person responded that it was seven miles away and the road was pretty rough, even if you could see it; if all you need is a place to sleep, you can stay here.

The "pitiless pelting" of the storm, which at this time beat with increasing fury upon La Motte, inclined him to give up the attempt of proceeding further till daylight; but, desirous of seeing the person with whom he conversed, before he ventured to expose his family by calling up the carriage, he asked to be admitted. The door was now opened by a tall figure with a light, who invited La Motte to enter. He followed the man through a passage into a room almost unfurnished, in one corner of which a bed was spread upon the floor. The forlorn and desolate aspect of this apartment made La Motte shrink involuntarily, and he was turning to go out when the man suddenly pushed him back, and he heard the door locked upon him; his heart failed, yet he made a desperate, though vain, effort to force the door, and called loudly for release. No answer was returned; but he distinguished the voices of men in the room above, and, not doubting but their intention was to rob and murder him, his agitation, at first, overcame his reason. By the light of some almost-expiring embers, he perceived a window, but the hope which this discovery revived was quickly lost, when he found the aperture guarded by strong iron bars. Such preparation for security surprised him, and confirmed his worst apprehensions. Alone, unarmed—beyond the chance of assistance, he saw himself in the power of people whose trade was apparently rapine!—murder their means!—After revolving every possibility of escape, he endeavoured to await the event with fortitude; but La Motte could boast of no such virtue.

The relentless storm, which was now raging harder than ever against La Motte, made him consider waiting until daylight to continue his journey. However, wanting to see the person he had been talking to before he put his family at risk by calling for the carriage, he asked to be let in. The door was opened by a tall figure carrying a light, who invited La Motte to enter. He followed the man through a hallway into a sparsely furnished room, where a bed was spread out on the floor in one corner. The bleak and empty look of the room made La Motte hesitate, and just as he was about to leave, the man suddenly pushed him back and locked the door behind him. His heart sank, but he made a desperate attempt to force the door and called out loudly for help. There was no response, but he could hear men talking in the room above, and he feared they intended to rob and kill him, which made him panic. In the dim light of some dying embers, he noticed a window, but his hope faded quickly when he saw it was barred with strong iron. This preparation for security shocked him and confirmed his worst fears. Alone and unarmed, with no chance of help, he realized he was at the mercy of what seemed like dangerous criminals—murderers, perhaps! After considering every possible escape, he tried to wait for the outcome with courage, but La Motte had no such strength.

The voices had ceased, and all remained still for a quarter of an hour, when, between the pauses of the wind, he thought he distinguished the sobs and moaning of a female; he listened attentively, and became confirmed in his conjecture; it was too evidently the accent of distress. At this conviction the remains of his courage forsook him, and a terrible surmise darted, with the rapidity of lightning, across his brain. It was probable that his carriage had been discovered by the people of the house, who, with a design of plunder, had secured his servant, and brought hither Madame de la Motte. He was the more inclined to believe this, by the stillness which had for some time reigned in the house, previous to the sounds he now heard. Or it was possible that the inhabitants were not robbers, but persons to whom he had been betrayed by his friend or servant, and who were appointed to deliver him into the hands of justice. Yet he hardly dared to doubt the integrity of his friend, who had been intrusted with the secret of his flight and the plan of his route, and had procured him the carriage in which he had escaped. Such depravity, exclaimed La Motte, cannot surely exist in human nature; much less in the heart of Nemours!

The voices had died down, and everything was quiet for about fifteen minutes when, between the gusts of wind, he thought he heard the sobs and moans of a woman. He listened closely and became certain of his assumption; the tone clearly indicated distress. With this realization, the last bit of his courage slipped away, and a terrifying thought shot through his mind like a bolt of lightning. It was likely that his carriage had been found by the people in the house, who, intending to rob him, had captured his servant and brought Madame de la Motte here. He was more convinced of this due to the silence that had settled over the house before the sounds he now heard. Alternatively, it was possible that the residents weren’t thieves but rather people to whom his friend or servant had betrayed him, tasked with turning him over to the authorities. Yet he could barely question the loyalty of his friend, who had been trusted with the details of his escape and had arranged the carriage that got him away. Such wickedness, La Motte exclaimed, surely cannot exist in human nature; much less in the heart of Nemours!

This ejaculation was interrupted by a noise in the passage leading to the room: it approached—the door was unlocked—and the man who had admitted La Motte into the house entered, leading, or rather forcibly dragging along, a beautiful girl, who appeared to be about eighteen. Her features were bathed in tears, and she seemed to suffer the utmost distress. The man fastened the lock and put the key in his pocket. He then advanced to La Motte, who had before observed other persons in the passage, and pointing a pistol to his breast, You are wholly in our power, said he, no assistance can reach you: if you wish to save your life, swear that you will convey this girl where I may never see her more; or rather consent to take her with you, for your oath I would not believe, and I can take care you shall not find me again.—Answer quickly, you have no time to lose.

This outburst was interrupted by a noise in the hallway leading to the room: it grew louder—the door was unlocked—and the man who had let La Motte into the house came in, leading, or rather forcefully dragging along, a beautiful girl who looked to be about eighteen. Her face was tear-streaked, and she appeared to be in extreme distress. The man locked the door and pocketed the key. He then approached La Motte, who had noticed other people in the passage earlier, and pointed a pistol at his chest. "You are completely at our mercy," he said, "no help can reach you: if you want to save your life, swear that you will take this girl somewhere I can never see her again; or better yet, agree to take her with you, because I wouldn’t trust your oath, and I can ensure you won’t find me again. Answer quickly; you don’t have time to waste."

He now seized the trembling hand of the girl, who shrunk aghast with terror, and hurried her towards La Motte, whom surprise still kept silent. She sunk at his feet, and with supplicating eyes, that streamed with tears, implored him to have pity on her. Notwithstanding his present agitation, he found it impossible to contemplate the beauty and distress of the object before him with indifference. Her youth, her apparent innocence—the artless energy of her manner forcibly assailed his heart, and he was going to speak, when the ruffian, who mistook the silence of astonishment for that of hesitation, prevented him, I have a horse ready to take you from hence, said he, and I will direct you over the heath. If you return within an hour, you die: after then, you are at liberty to come here when you please.

He quickly grabbed the trembling hand of the girl, who shrank back in fear, and rushed her toward La Motte, who was still silent from surprise. She fell at his feet, her eyes full of tears, begging him to have mercy on her. Despite his own agitation, he found it impossible to look at her beauty and distress without feeling something. Her youth, her apparent innocence—the genuine energy of her demeanor strongly affected his heart, and he was about to speak when the thug, mistaking the shocked silence for hesitation, interrupted him. “I have a horse ready to take you away,” he said, “and I’ll show you the way across the heath. If you come back in an hour, you die; after that, you’re free to return whenever you want.”

La Motte, without answering, raised the lovely girl from the floor, and was so much relieved from his own apprehensions, that he had leisure to attempt dissipating hers. Let us be gone, said the ruffian, and have no more of this nonsense; you may think yourself well off it's no worse. I'll go and get the horse ready.

La Motte, without saying a word, lifted the beautiful girl off the floor, and he felt so relieved from his own worries that he had time to try to ease hers. "Let's get out of here," said the thug, "and stop with all this nonsense; you should be grateful it's not worse. I'll go get the horse ready."

The last words roused La Motte, and perplexed him with new fears; he dreaded to discover his carriage, lest its appearance might tempt the banditti to plunder; and to depart on horseback with this man might reduce a consequence yet more to be dreaded, Madame la Motte, wearied with apprehension, would, probably, send for her husband to the house, when all the former danger would be incurred, with the additional evil of being separated from his family, and the chance of being detected by the emissaries of justice in endeavouring to recover them. As these reflections passed over his mind in tumultuous rapidity, a noise was again heard in the passage, an uproar and scuffle ensued, and in the same moment he could distinguish the voice of his servant, who had been sent by Madame La Motte in search of him. Being now determined to disclose what could not long be concealed, he exclaimed aloud, that a horse was unnecessary, that he had a carriage at some distance, which would convey them from the heath, the man who was seized being his servant.

The last words woke La Motte and filled him with new fears. He was afraid to find his carriage, worrying that its sight might tempt the bandits to rob them. Leaving on horseback with this man could lead to an even worse outcome; Madame La Motte, who was already anxious, would likely call for her husband to come home, putting them at risk again, along with the added problem of being separated from his family and the chance of being caught by the authorities while trying to get them back. As these chaotic thoughts raced through his mind, he heard a commotion in the hallway, followed by a scuffle, and at the same time, he recognized his servant's voice, who had been sent by Madame La Motte to look for him. Determined to reveal what he couldn't keep hidden any longer, he called out that a horse wasn’t needed, that he had a carriage nearby that could take them away from the heath, and that the man who was taken was his servant.

The ruffian, speaking through the door, bade him be patient a while and he should hear more from him. La Motte now turned his eyes upon his unfortunate companion, who, pale and exhausted, leaned for support against the wall. Her features, which were delicately beautiful, had gained from distress an expression of captivating sweetness: she had

The thug, speaking through the door, told him to be patient for a bit and that he'd hear more from him soon. La Motte then looked at his unfortunate companion, who, pale and worn out, leaned against the wall for support. Her features, which were beautifully delicate, had taken on an expression of captivating sweetness due to her distress: she had

An eye
Just like when the blue sky shivers behind a cloud
As white as snow.

A habit of gray camlet, with short slashed sleeves, showed, but did not adorn, her figure: it was thrown open at the bosom, upon which part of her hair had fallen in disorder, while the light veil hastily thrown on, had, in her confusion, been suffered to fall back. Every moment of further observation heightened the surprise of La Motte, and interested him more warmly in her favour. Such elegance and apparent refinement, contrasted with the desolation of the house, and the savage manners of its inhabitants, seemed to him like a romance of imagination, rather than an occurrence of real life. He endeavoured to comfort her, and his sense of compassion was too sincere to be misunderstood. Her terror gradually subsided into gratitude and grief. Ah, Sir, said she, Heaven has sent you to my relief, and will surely reward you for your protection: I have no friend in the world, if do not find one in you.

A gray camlet gown with short slashed sleeves showed, but didn’t enhance, her figure: it was opened at the chest, where some of her hair had fallen messily, and a light veil hastily put on had, in her confusion, slipped back. Each moment of further observation deepened La Motte’s surprise and made him feel more warmly towards her. Such elegance and obvious refinement, contrasted with the desolation of the house and the savage behavior of its inhabitants, felt to him like a scene from a story rather than something that happened in real life. He tried to comfort her, and his genuine compassion was clear. Her fear gradually turned into gratitude and sadness. “Ah, Sir,” she said, “Heaven has sent you to help me and will surely reward you for your protection: I have no friend in the world if I do not find one in you.”

La Motte assured her of his kindness, when he was interrupted by the entrance of the ruffian. He desired to be conducted to his family. All in good time, replied the latter; I have taken care of one of them, and will of you, please St. Peter; so be comforted. These comfortable words renewed the terror of La Motte, who now earnestly begged to know if his family were safe. O! as for that matter they are safe enough, and you will be with them presently; but don't stand parlying here all night. Do you choose to go or stay? you know the conditions. They now bound the eyes of La Motte and of the young lady, whom terror had hitherto kept silent, and then placing them on two horses, a man mounted behind each, and they immediately galloped off. They had proceeded in this way near half an hour, when La Motte entreated to know whither he was going? You will know that by and by, said the ruffian, so be at peace. Finding interrogatories useless, La Motte resumed silence till the horses stopped. His conductor then hallooed, and being answered by voices at some distance, in a few moments the sound of carriage wheels was heard, and, presently after, the words of a man directing Peter which way to drive. As the carriage approached, La Motte called, and, to his inexpressible joy, was answered by his wife.

La Motte assured her of his kindness when he was interrupted by the entrance of the thug. He asked to be taken to his family. "All in good time," the thug replied. "I've taken care of one of them, and with St. Peter's guidance, I will take care of the rest, so don't worry." These reassuring words only increased La Motte's fear, and he urgently begged to know if his family was safe. "Oh, they're safe enough, and you'll be with them soon; but don't stand around talking here all night. Do you want to go or stay? You know the deal." They then blindfolded La Motte and the young lady, who had been too frightened to speak, and placed them on two horses, with a man riding behind each of them, and they immediately galloped away. They had been riding like this for nearly half an hour when La Motte pleaded to know where he was being taken. "You'll find out soon enough," said the thug, "so just relax." Realizing questions were useless, La Motte fell silent until the horses stopped. His captor then shouted, and was answered by voices in the distance. Moments later, the sound of carriage wheels was heard, followed shortly by a man directing Peter on which way to drive. As the carriage got closer, La Motte called out and, to his immense joy, was answered by his wife.

You are now beyond the borders of the heath, and may go which way you will, said the ruffian; if you return within an hour, you will be welcomed by a brace of bullets. This was a very unnecessary caution to La Motte, whom they now released. The young stranger sighed deeply, as she entered the carriage; and the ruffian, having bestowed upon Peter some directions and more threats, waited to see him drive off. They did not wait long.

You are now outside the heath, and you can go whichever way you want, said the thug; if you come back within an hour, you’ll be met with a couple of bullets. This was a completely unnecessary warning for La Motte, who they now let go. The young stranger sighed deeply as she got into the carriage, and the thug, after giving Peter some instructions and more threats, waited to see him leave. They didn’t have to wait long.





La Motte immediately gave a short relation of what passed at the house, including an account of the manner in which the young stranger had been introduced to him. During this narrative, her deep convulsive sighs frequently drew the attention of Madame La Motte, whose compassion became gradually interested in her behalf, and who now endeavoured to tranquillize her spirits. The unhappy girl answered her kindness in artless and simple expressions, and then relapsed into tears and silence. Madame forbore for the present to ask any questions that might lead to a discovery of her connexions, or seem to require an explanation of the late adventure, which now furnishing her with a new subject of reflection, the sense of her own misfortunes pressed less heavily upon her mind. The distress of La Motte was even for a while suspended; he ruminated on the late scene, and it appeared like a vision, or one of those improbable fictions that sometimes are exhibited in a romance: he could reduce it to no principles of probability, nor render it comprehensible by any endeavour to analyze it. The present charge, and the chance of future trouble brought upon him by this adventure, occasioned some dissatisfaction; but the beauty and seeming innocence of Adeline united with the pleadings of humanity in her favor, and he determined to protect her.

La Motte quickly shared a brief account of what happened at the house, including how the young stranger was introduced to him. During his story, her deep, convulsive sighs often caught Madame La Motte's attention, and her compassion gradually grew for the girl. Madame La Motte then tried to calm her down. The troubled girl responded to her kindness with straightforward and simple words, but then fell back into tears and silence. Madame La Motte held back from asking any questions that might reveal the girl's connections or require an explanation of the recent incident, which provided her with a new topic to consider, making her own misfortunes weigh a little less on her mind. La Motte's distress was temporarily set aside; he reflected on the recent scene, which felt like a dream or one of those unlikely stories you sometimes see in a novel: he couldn't make sense of it or break it down into anything logical. The current situation and the possibility of future trouble arising from this incident caused him some dissatisfaction, but Adeline's beauty and innocent demeanor, combined with a sense of humanity, led him to resolve to protect her.

The tumult of emotions which had passed in the bosom of Adeline began now to subside; terror was softened into anxiety, and despair into grief. The sympathy so evident in the manners of her companions, particularly in those of Madame La Motte, soothed her heart, and encouraged her to hope for better days.

The overwhelming emotions that had surged within Adeline started to calm down; fear turned into anxiety, and despair shifted to sorrow. The compassion clearly shown by her companions, especially Madame La Motte, comforted her heart and gave her hope for brighter days ahead.

Dismally and silently the night passed on, for the minds of the travellers were too much occupied by their several sufferings to admit of conversation.

Dismally and silently the night passed on, for the minds of the travelers were too preoccupied with their various sufferings to allow for conversation.

The dawn, so anxiously watched for, at length appeared, and introduced the strangers more fully to each other. Adeline derived comfort from the looks of Madame La Motte, who gazed frequently and attentively at her, and thought she had seldom seen a countenance so interesting, or a form so striking. The languor of sorrow threw a melancholy grace upon her features, that appealed immediately to the heart; and there was a penetrating sweetness in her blue eyes, which indicated an intelligent and amiable mind.

The dawn, that everyone had been eagerly waiting for, finally arrived, allowing the strangers to get to know each other better. Adeline felt reassured by Madame La Motte's frequent, attentive glances, thinking she had rarely seen such an intriguing face or such a striking figure. The sadness she carried gave her a melancholy beauty that instantly touched the heart; and the deep warmth in her blue eyes suggested a thoughtful and kind spirit.

La Motte now looked anxiously from the coach window, that he might judge of their situation, and observe whether he was followed. The obscurity of the dawn confined his views, but no person appeared. The sun at length tinted the eastern clouds and the tops of the highest hills, and soon after burst in full splendour on the scene. The terrors of La Motte began to subside, and the griefs of Adeline to soften. They entered upon a lane confined by high banks and overarched by trees, on whose branches appeared the first green buds of spring glittering with dews. The fresh breeze of the morning animated the spirits of Adeline, whose mind was delicately sensible to the beauties of nature. As she viewed the flowery luxuriance of the turf, and the tender green of the trees, or caught, between the opening banks, a glimpse of the varied landscape, rich with wood, and fading into blue and distant mountains, her heart expanded in momentary joy. With Adeline the charms of external nature were heightened by those of novelty: she had seldom seen the grandeur of an extensive prospect, or the magnificence of a wide horizon—and not often the picturesque beauties of more confined scenery. Her mind had not lost by long oppression that elastic energy, which resists calamity; else, however, susceptible might have been her original taste, the beauties of nature would no longer have charmed her thus easily even to temporary repose.

La Motte anxiously peered out of the coach window, trying to assess their situation and see if anyone was following them. The dim light of dawn limited his view, but there was no one in sight. Eventually, the sun painted the eastern clouds and the peaks of the highest hills, and soon after, it burst forth in all its brilliance. La Motte's fears began to fade, and Adeline's sorrows softened. They entered a narrow lane bordered by high banks and shaded by trees, their branches adorned with the first green buds of spring, sparkling with dew. The fresh morning breeze lifted Adeline's spirits, as she was particularly sensitive to nature's beauty. As she admired the lush flowers on the ground, the tender green of the trees, and glimpsed the varied landscape framed by the opening banks, rich with woods that faded into distant blue mountains, her heart swelled with brief joy. For Adeline, the allure of nature was magnified by its novelty; she had rarely experienced the grandeur of an expansive view or the majesty of a wide horizon—and not often the picturesque beauty of more intimate scenery. Despite having endured a long period of hardship, her natural resilience had not been lost; otherwise, no matter how attuned she was to beauty, nature would not have been able to charm her so easily, even for a moment of peace.

The road, at length, wound down the side of a hill, and La Motte, again looking anxiously from the window, saw before him an open champaign country, through which the road, wholly unsheltered from observation, extended almost in a direct line. The danger of these circumstances alarmed him, for his flight might, without difficulty, be traced for many leagues from the hills he was now descending. Of the first peasant that passed, he inquired for a road among the hills, but heard of none. La Motte now sunk into his former terrors. Madame, notwithstanding her own apprehensions, endeavoured to reassure him; but finding her efforts ineffectual, she also retired to the contemplation of her misfortunes. Often, as they went on, did La Motte look back upon the country they had passed, and often did imagination suggest to him the sounds of distant pursuit.

The road finally wound down the side of a hill, and La Motte, anxiously looking out the window, saw before him an open countryside, where the road stretched almost in a straight line, completely exposed to anyone watching. The danger of this situation alarmed him, as his escape could easily be tracked for many miles from the hills he was now descending. He asked the first peasant that passed about a road through the hills but learned there was none. La Motte then sank back into his previous fears. Madame, despite her own worries, tried to reassure him, but when her efforts proved useless, she retreated to contemplate her own misfortunes. As they continued, La Motte often looked back at the land they had left behind, and his imagination frequently filled his mind with the sounds of distant pursuit.

The travellers stopped to breakfast in a village, where the road was at length obscured by woods, and La Motte's spirits again revived. Adeline appeared more tranquil than she had yet been, and La Motte now asked for an explanation of the scene he had witnessed on the preceding night. The inquiry renewed all her distress, and with tears she entreated for the present to be spared on the subject. La Motte pressed it no farther, but he observed that for the greater part of the day she seemed to remember it in melancholy and dejection. They now travelled among the hills, and were, therefore, in less danger of observation; but La Motte avoided the great towns, and stopped in obscure ones no longer than to refresh the horses. About two hours after noon, the road wound into a deep valley, watered by a rivulet and overhung with wood. La Motte called to Peter, and ordered him to drive to a thickly embowered spot, that appeared on the left. Here he alighted with his family; and Peter having spread the provisions on the turf, they seated themselves and partook of a repast, which, in other circumstances, would have been thought delicious. Adeline endeavoured to smile, but the languor of grief was now heightened by indisposition. The violent agitation of mind and fatigue of body which she had suffered for the last twenty-four hours, had overpowed her strength, and when La Motte led her back to the carriage, her whole frame trembled with illness. But she uttered no complaint, and, having long observed the dejection of her companions, she made a feeble effort to enliven them.

The travelers stopped for breakfast in a village where the road eventually disappeared into the woods, and La Motte's spirits lifted again. Adeline seemed calmer than she had been before, so La Motte asked her to explain the scene he had witnessed the previous night. The question brought back all her distress, and with tears, she begged to be spared from discussing it for now. La Motte didn’t press further, but he noticed that for much of the day, she seemed to dwell on it with sadness and gloom. They were now traveling among the hills, so they were less likely to be observed, but La Motte avoided large towns and only stopped in smaller ones long enough to rest the horses. About two hours after noon, the road led into a deep valley, shaded by trees and crossed by a stream. La Motte called to Peter and told him to head toward a spot that was thick with foliage on the left. Here, he got out of the carriage with his family, and Peter laid out the food on the grass. They sat down and had a meal that, under different circumstances, would have been considered delicious. Adeline tried to smile, but her lingering grief was made worse by her feeling unwell. The intense emotional turmoil and fatigue she had experienced over the last twenty-four hours had drained her strength, and when La Motte helped her back to the carriage, her entire body shook with weakness. But she didn’t complain and, having long noticed her companions' sadness, she made a weak attempt to lift their spirits.

They continued to travel throughout the day without any accident or interruption, and about three hours after sunset arrived at Monville, a small town where La Motte determined to pass the night. Repose was, indeed, necessary to the whole party, whose pale and haggard looks, as they alighted from the carriage, were but too obvious to pass unobserved by the people of the inn. As soon as beds could be prepared, Adeline withdrew to her chamber, accompanied by Madame La Motte, whose concern for the fair stranger made her exert every effort to soothe and console her. Adeline wept in silence, and taking the hand of Madame, pressed it to her bosom. These were not merely tears of grief—they were mingled with those which flow from the grateful heart, when, unexpectedly, it meets with sympathy. Madame La Motte understood them. After some momentary silence, she renewed her assurances of kindness, and entreated Adeline to confide in her friendship; but she carefully avoided any mention of the subject which had before so much affected her. Adeline at length found words to express her sense of this goodness, which she did in a manner so natural and sincere, that Madame, finding herself much affected, took leave of her for the night.

They kept traveling throughout the day without any accidents or interruptions, and about three hours after sunset, they arrived in Monville, a small town where La Motte decided to spend the night. Rest was definitely needed for the whole group, whose pale and worn expressions, as they got out of the carriage, were too noticeable to go unseen by the inn's staff. As soon as the beds were ready, Adeline went to her room, accompanied by Madame La Motte, who, concerned for the young woman, did everything she could to comfort her. Adeline cried quietly and took Madame’s hand, pressing it to her chest. These weren’t just tears of sadness—they were mixed with those that come from a grateful heart when, unexpectedly, it encounters sympathy. Madame La Motte understood. After a brief silence, she repeated her kind assurances and urged Adeline to trust in her friendship; however, she carefully avoided discussing the topic that had previously upset her so much. Eventually, Adeline found the words to express her gratitude, doing so in such a genuine and heartfelt way that Madame, feeling truly touched, said goodnight to her.

In the morning, La Motte rose at an early hour, impatient to be gone. Every thing was prepared for his departure, and the breakfast had been waiting some time, but Adeline did not appear. Madame La Motte went to her chamber, and found her sunk in a disturbed slumber. Her breathing was short and irregular—she frequently started, or sighed, and sometimes she muttered an incoherent sentence. While Madame gazed with concern upon her languid countenance, she awoke, and, looking up, gave her hand to Madame La Motte, who found it burning with fever. She had passed a restless night, and, as she now attempted to rise, her head, which beat with intense pain, grew giddy, her strength failed, and she sunk back.

In the morning, La Motte got up early, eager to leave. Everything was ready for his departure, and breakfast had been waiting for a while, but Adeline didn't show up. Madame La Motte went to her room and found her deep in a troubled sleep. Her breathing was short and irregular—she frequently jolted awake, sighed, and sometimes mumbled an incoherent sentence. As Madame looked at her pale face with concern, she woke up and, looking up, reached out her hand to Madame La Motte, who felt that it was burning with fever. She had a restless night, and as she tried to get up, her head pounded with intense pain, she felt dizzy, her strength gave out, and she sank back down.

Madame was much alarmed, being at once convinced that it was impossible she could travel, and that a delay might prove fatal to her husband. She went to inform him of the truth, and his distress may be more easily imagined than described. He saw all the inconvenience and danger of delay, yet he could not so far divest himself of humanity as to abandon Adeline to the care, or rather to the neglect, of strangers. He sent immediately for a physician, who pronounced her to be in a high fever, and said a removal in her present state must be fatal. La Motte now determined to wait the event, and endeavour to calm the transports of terror which at times assailed him. In the mean while he took such precautions as his situation admitted of, passing the greater part of the day out of the village, in a spot from whence he had a view of the road for some distance; yet to be exposed to destruction by the illness of a girl whom he did not know, and who had actually been forced upon him, was a misfortune to which La Motte had not philosophy enough to submit with composure.

Madame was very worried, convinced it was impossible for her to travel and that any delay could be deadly for her husband. She went to tell him the truth, and his distress was more easily imagined than described. He recognized all the inconveniences and dangers of waiting, yet he couldn't bring himself to leave Adeline in the care, or rather the neglect, of strangers. He immediately called for a doctor, who declared she was running a high fever and that moving her in her current state would likely be fatal. La Motte now decided to wait it out and try to control the waves of panic that sometimes overwhelmed him. In the meantime, he took whatever precautions he could, spending most of the day away from the village in a place where he could see the road for a good distance; however, being subjected to the risk of destruction due to the illness of a girl he didn’t know, who had been forced upon him, was a misfortune La Motte couldn’t accept with any calmness.

Adeline's fever continued to increase during the whole day, and at night, when the physician took his leave, he told La Motte the event would very soon be decided. La Motte received this intelligence with real concern. The beauty and innocence of Adeline had overcome the disadvantageous circumstances under which she had been introduced to him, and he now gave less consideration to the inconvenience she might hereafter occasion him, than to the hope of her recovery.

Adeline's fever kept rising throughout the day, and at night, when the doctor took his leave, he told La Motte that a resolution would come very soon. La Motte took this news to heart. Adeline's beauty and innocence had overshadowed the difficult circumstances of their initial meeting, and he was now more focused on hoping for her recovery than on any trouble she might cause him in the future.

Madame La Motte watched over her with tender anxiety, and observed with admiration her patient sweetness and mild resignation. Adeline amply repaid her, though she thought she could not.—Young as I am, she would say, and deserted by those upon whom I have a claim for protection, I can remember no connexion to make me regret life so much, as that I hoped to form with you. If I live, my conduct will best express my sense of your goodness;—words are but feeble testimonies.

Madame La Motte looked after her with caring concern and admired her patient sweetness and calm acceptance. Adeline truly appreciated it, even though she thought she couldn’t. —"As young as I am," she would say, "and abandoned by those I should be able to rely on for protection, I can’t think of any connection that makes me regret life as much as the one I hoped to have with you. If I survive, my actions will show how much I value your kindness; words are just weak expressions."

The sweetness of her manners so much attracted Madame La Motte, that she watched the crisis of her disorder with a solicitude which precluded every other interest. Adeline passed a very disturbed night, and, when the physician appeared in the morning, he gave orders that she should be indulged with whatever she liked, and answered the inquiries of La Motte with a frankness that left him nothing to hope.

The charm of her behavior fascinated Madame La Motte so much that she focused solely on the critical point of her illness, ignoring everything else. Adeline had a very restless night, and when the doctor arrived in the morning, he instructed that she should be given whatever she wanted and answered La Motte's questions honestly, leaving him with no hope.

In the mean time, his patient, after drinking profusely of some mild liquids, fell asleep, in which she continued for several hours, and so profound was her repose, that her breath alone gave sign of existence. She awoke free from fever, and with no other disorder than weakness, which in a few days she overcame so well as to be able to set out with La Motte for B——, a village out of the great road, which he thought it prudent to quit. There they passed the following night, and early the next morning commenced their journey upon a wild and woody tract of country. They stopped about noon at a solitary village, where they took refreshments, and obtained directions for passing the vast forest of Fontanville, upon the borders of which they now were. La Motte wished at first to take a guide, but he apprehended more evil from the discovery he might make of his route, than he hoped for benefit from assistance in the wilds of this uncultivated tract.

In the meantime, his patient, after drinking plenty of some light liquids, fell asleep, and she stayed that way for several hours. Her sleep was so deep that her breathing was the only sign she was alive. She woke up without a fever and with nothing wrong except weakness, which she quickly overcame in a few days, allowing her to set out with La Motte for B——, a village off the main road that he thought it wise to leave behind. They spent the next night there, and early the next morning, they began their journey through a wild and wooded area. They stopped around noon at a quiet village, where they had some refreshments and got directions for navigating the vast Fontanville forest, which they were now on the edge of. At first, La Motte wanted to hire a guide, but he feared that finding out more about his route might cause him more problems than he could gain from support in the wilderness of this untamed land.

La Motte now designed to pass on to Lyons, where he could either seek concealment in its neighbourhood, or embark on the Rhone for Geneva, should the emergency of his circumstances hereafter require him to leave France. It was about twelve o'clock at noon, and he was desirous to hasten forward, that he might pass the forest of Fontanville, and reach the town on its opposite borders, before night-fall. Having deposited a fresh stock of provisions in the carriage, and received such directions as were necessary concerning the roads, they again set forward, and in a short time entered upon the forest. It was now the latter end of April, and the weather was remarkably temperate and fine. The balmy freshness of the air, which breathed the first pure essence of vegetation; and the gentle warmth of the sun, whose beams vivified every hue of nature, and opened every floweret of spring, revived Adeline and inspired her with life and health. As she inhaled the breeze, her strength seemed to return, and as her eyes wandered through the romantic glades that opened into the forest, her heart was gladdened with complacent delight: but when from these objects she turned her regard upon Monsieur and Madame La Motte, to whose tender attentions she owed her life, and in whose looks she now read esteem and kindness, her bosom glowed with sweet affections, and she experienced a force of gratitude which might be called sublime.

La Motte planned to head to Lyons, where he could either hide nearby or take a boat on the Rhone to Geneva if he needed to leave France due to his situation. It was around noon, and he was eager to move quickly so he could get through the Fontanville forest and reach the town on the other side before dark. After loading the carriage with fresh supplies and getting the necessary directions for the roads, they set off again and soon entered the forest. It was late April, and the weather was pleasantly mild and beautiful. The refreshing air, full of the essence of new growth, and the gentle warmth of the sun brought life to every color in nature and opened up the spring flowers, revitalizing Adeline and making her feel healthy and lively. As she breathed in the fresh air, her strength seemed to return, and as her eyes roamed through the picturesque paths of the forest, her heart filled with joy. But when she turned her gaze to Monsieur and Madame La Motte, whose caring support had saved her life and whose eyes reflected esteem and kindness, she felt a warmth of affection and a deep sense of gratitude that could only be described as sublime.

For the remainder of the day they continued to travel, without seeing a hut or meeting a human being. It was now near sunset, and the prospect being closed on all sides by the forest, La Motte began to have apprehensions that his servant had mistaken the way. The road, if a road it could be called, which afforded only a slight track upon the grass, was sometimes over-run by luxuriant vegetation, and sometimes obscured by the deep shades, and Peter at length stopped uncertain of the way. La Motte, who dreaded being benighted in a scene so wild and solitary as this forest, and whose apprehensions of banditti were very sanguine, ordered him to proceed at any rate, and, if he found no track, to endeavour to gain a more open part of the forest. With these orders Peter again set forwards; but having proceeded some way, and his views being still confined by woody glades and forest walks, he began to despair of extricating himself, and stopped for further orders. The sun was now set; but as La Motte looked anxiously from the window, he observed upon the vivid glow of the western horizon some dark towers rising from among the trees at a little distance, and ordered Peter to drive towards them.—If they belong to a monastery, said he, we may probably gain admittance for the night.

For the rest of the day, they kept traveling without seeing a cabin or meeting anyone. It was getting close to sunset, and with the view blocked on all sides by the forest, La Motte started to worry that his servant had taken the wrong path. The road—if you could call it that—was just a faint track on the grass, sometimes overrun with thick vegetation and other times hidden in deep shadows, and eventually, Peter halted, unsure of which way to go. La Motte, fearing they would be stuck in such a wild and isolated place after dark, and who was also quite anxious about bandits, instructed him to keep going, and if he couldn't find a path, to try to reach a more open area in the forest. With this direction, Peter moved on again; however, after some time, still surrounded by dense woods and trails, he began to lose hope of finding a way out and stopped for more instructions. The sun had just set; as La Motte looked out anxiously from the window, he noticed dark towers rising above the trees in the vivid glow of the western horizon not too far away and told Peter to head toward them. "If they belong to a monastery," he said, "we might be able to stay there for the night."

The carriage drove along under the shade of "melancholy boughs," through which the evening twilight, which yet coloured the air, diffused a solemnity that vibrated in thrilling sensations upon the hearts of the travellers. Expectation kept them silent. The present scene recalled to Adeline a remembrance of the late terrific circumstances, and her mind responded but too easily to the apprehension of new misfortunes. La Motte alighted at the foot of a green knoll, where the trees again opening to light, permitted a nearer though imperfect view of the edifice.

The carriage moved slowly under the shade of "melancholy branches," where the evening twilight still colored the air, creating a solemn atmosphere that stirred thrilling feelings in the hearts of the travelers. They remained quiet with anticipation. The current scene reminded Adeline of the recent terrifying events, and her mind readily gave in to the fear of new troubles. La Motte got out at the base of a green hill, where the trees parted again to let in light, allowing a closer but still incomplete view of the building.







CHAPTER II

..........how these old towers
And empty courts cool the restless spirit!
Until hope takes on the appearance of fear:
And fear, on the verge of turning into devotion,
Whispers a sort of mental prayer
It doesn't know why! What kind of being
It's a situation!
Horace Walpole.



He approached, and perceived the Gothic remains of an abbey: it stood on a kind of rude lawn, overshadowed by high and spreading trees which seemed coeval with the building, and diffused a romantic gloom around. The greater part of the pile appeared to be sinking into ruins, and that which had withstood the ravages of time, showed the remaining features of the fabric more awful in decay. The lofty battlements, thickly enwreathed with ivy, were half demolished, and become the residence of birds of prey. Huge fragments of the eastern tower, which was almost demolished, lay scattered amid the high grass, that waved slowly to the breeze. "The thistle shook its lonely head; the moss whistled to the wind." A Gothic gate, richly ornamented with fret-work, which opened into the main body of the edifice, but which was now obstructed with brush-wood, remained entire. Above the vast and magnificent portal of this gate arose a window of the same order, whose pointed arches still exhibited fragments of stained glass, once the pride of monkish devotion. La Motte, thinking it possible it might yet shelter some human being, advanced to the gate and lifted a massy knocker. The hollow sounds rung through the emptiness of the place. After waiting a few minutes, he forced back the gate, which was heavy with iron work and creaked harshly on its hinges.

He approached and saw the Gothic ruins of an abbey: it stood on a rough lawn, overshadowed by tall, sprawling trees that seemed as old as the building itself, casting a romantic gloom around. Most of the structure looked like it was falling apart, and what remained showed even more dreadful features in decay. The tall battlements, thickly covered with ivy, were half-collapsed and had become a home for birds of prey. Huge pieces of the eastern tower, almost entirely destroyed, lay scattered among the tall grass that swayed gently in the breeze. "The thistle shook its lonely head; the moss whistled to the wind." A Gothic gate, beautifully decorated with intricate designs, opened into the main part of the building but was now blocked by underbrush, remaining intact. Above the grand portal of this gate was a window of the same style, with pointed arches that still displayed fragments of stained glass, once cherished by the monks. La Motte, thinking it might still house some human presence, approached the gate and lifted a heavy knocker. The deep sounds echoed through the emptiness around. After waiting a few minutes, he pushed the gate open, which was heavy with ironwork and creaked loudly on its hinges.

He entered what appeared to have been the chapel of the abbey, where the hymn of devotion had once been raised, and the tear of penitence had once been shed; sounds, which could now only be recalled by imagination—tears of penitence, which had been long since fixed in fate. La Motte paused a moment, for he felt a sensation of sublimity rising into terror—a suspension of mingled astonishment and awe! He surveyed the vastness of the place, and as he contemplated its ruins, fancy bore him back to past ages.—And these walls, said he, where once superstition lurked, and austerity anticipated an earthly purgatory, now tremble over the mortal remains of the beings who reared them!

He entered what seemed to be the chapel of the abbey, where hymns of devotion were once sung and tears of repentance were once shed; sounds that could now only be recalled by imagination—tears of repentance that were long ago set in fate. La Motte paused for a moment, feeling a mix of sublimity and terror—a blend of astonishment and awe! He looked around at the vastness of the place, and as he thought about its ruins, his imagination took him back to past ages. "And these walls," he said, "where superstition once thrived and austerity awaited an earthly purgatory, now tremble over the remains of the beings who built them!"

The deepening gloom now reminded La Motte that he had no time to lose; but curiosity prompted him to explore further, and he obeyed the impulse. As he walked over the broken pavement, the sound of his steps ran in echoes through the place, and seemed like the mysterious accents of the dead reproving the sacrilegious mortal who thus dared to disturb their precincts.

The growing darkness reminded La Motte that he couldn't waste any time; however, his curiosity pushed him to explore more, and he followed that instinct. As he walked over the uneven pavement, the sound of his footsteps echoed through the area, almost like the ghostly voices of the dead scolding the disrespectful living person who dared to intrude on their space.

From this chapel he passed into the nave of the great church, of which one window, more perfect than the rest, opened upon a long vista of the forest, through which was seen the rich colouring of evening, melting by imperceptible gradations into the solemn gray of upper air. Dark hills, whose outline appeared distinct upon the vivid glow of the horizon, closed the perspective. Several of the pillars, which had once supported the roof, remained the proud effigies of sinking greatness, and seemed to nod at every murmur of the blast over the fragments of those that had fallen a little before them. La Motte sighed. The comparison between himself and the gradation of decay which these columns exhibited, was but too obvious and affecting. A few years, said he, and I shall become like the mortals on whose relicks I now gaze, and, like them too, I may be the subject of meditation to a succeeding generation, which shall totter but a little while over the object they contemplate ere they also sink into the dust.

From this chapel, he moved into the main part of the grand church, where one window, more perfect than the others, opened up to a long view of the forest. The rich colors of the evening slowly blended into the solemn gray of the sky. Dark hills, their outlines sharp against the glowing horizon, framed the scene. Several pillars, once strong enough to support the roof, stood as proud symbols of a fading greatness, seeming to nod with every whisper of the wind over the remnants of those that had fallen before them. La Motte sighed. The comparison between himself and the gradual decay visible in these columns was too clear and touching. In just a few years, he thought, I will be like the mortals whose remains I now look upon, and like them, I might also become a subject of reflection for the next generation, which will waver for a moment over what they see before they too fade into dust.

Retiring from the scene, he walked through the cloisters, till a door, which communicated with the lofty part of the building, attracted his curiosity. He opened this, and perceived across the foot of the staircase another door;—but now, partly checked by fear, and partly by the recollection of the surprise his family might feel in his absence, he returned with hasty steps to his carriage, having wasted some of the precious moments of twilight and gained no information.

Retiring from the scene, he walked through the cloisters until a door leading to the upper part of the building caught his attention. He opened it and saw another door across the bottom of the staircase; however, feeling a mix of fear and remembering how surprised his family might be if he was gone too long, he quickly returned to his carriage, having wasted some valuable twilight moments without finding any information.

Some slight answer to Madame La Motte's inquiries, and a general direction to Peter to drive carefully on and look for a road, was all that his anxiety would permit him to utter. The night shade fell thick around, which, deepened by the gloom of the forest, soon rendered it dangerous to proceed. Peter stopped; but La Motte, persisting in his first determination, ordered him to go on. Peter ventured to remonstrate, Madame La Motte entreated, but La Motte reproved—commanded, and at length repented; for the hind wheel rising upon the stump of an old tree, which the darkness had prevented Peter from observing, the carriage was in an instant overturned.

Some brief response to Madame La Motte's questions, along with a general instruction for Peter to drive carefully and look for a road, was all his anxiety allowed him to say. The night enveloped them, and the darkness of the forest quickly made it unsafe to continue. Peter stopped, but La Motte, sticking to his decision, ordered him to move ahead. Peter tried to argue against it, and Madame La Motte pleaded, but La Motte scolded—commanded, and eventually regretted it; for when the back wheel hit the stump of an old tree that Peter couldn’t see in the dark, the carriage was instantly overturned.

The party, as may be supposed, were much terrified, but no one was materially hurt; and having disengaged themselves from their perilous situation, La Motte and Peter endeavoured to raise the carriage. The extent of this misfortune was now discovered, for they perceived that the wheel was broke. Their distress was reasonably great, for not only was the coach disabled from proceeding, but it could not even afford a shelter from the cold dews of the night, it being impossible to preserve it in an upright situation. After a few moments' silence, La Motte proposed that they should return to the ruins which they had just quitted, which lay at a very short distance, and pass the night in the most habitable part of them: that, when morning dawned, Peter should take one of the coach horses, and endeavour to find a road and a town, from whence assistance could be procured for repairing the carriage. This proposal was opposed by Madame La Motte, who shuddered at the idea of passing so many hours of darkness in a place so forlorn as the monastery. Terrors, which she neither endeavoured to examine or combat, overcame her, and she told La Motte she had rather remain exposed to the unwholesome dews of night, than encounter the desolation of the ruins. La Motte had at first felt an equal reluctance to return to this spot; but having subdued his own feelings, he resolved not to yield to those of his wife.

The group, as you can imagine, was pretty scared, but no one was seriously hurt; after managing to free themselves from their dangerous situation, La Motte and Peter tried to lift the carriage. They soon realized how bad things were when they noticed that the wheel was broken. They were understandably upset, because not only was the coach unable to move, but it also couldn’t even provide shelter from the cold night dew, since it couldn't stay upright. After a moment of silence, La Motte suggested they go back to the ruins they had just left, which were nearby, and spend the night in the least uncomfortable part of them. He planned for Peter to take one of the coach horses at dawn to find a road and a town where they could get help to fix the carriage. Madame La Motte opposed this idea, shuddering at the thought of spending hours in such a lonely place as the monastery. Fears that she didn’t want to confront overwhelmed her, and she told La Motte she would rather stay out in the cold than face the emptiness of the ruins. At first, La Motte felt the same reluctance about returning to that place; however, after gathering his thoughts, he decided not to give in to his wife's fears.

The horses being now disengaged from the carriage, the party moved towards the edifice. As they proceeded, Peter, who followed them, struck a light, and they entered the ruins by the flame of sticks which he had collected. The partial gleams thrown across the fabric seemed to make its desolation more solemn, while the obscurity of the greater part of the pile heightened its sublimity, and led fancy on to scenes of horror. Adeline, who had hitherto remained in silence, now uttered an exclamation of mingled admiration and fear. A kind of pleasing dread thrilled her bosom, and filled all her soul. Tears started into her eyes:—she wished yet feared to go on;—she hung upon the arm of La Motte, and looked at him with a sort of hesitating interrogation.

The horses were now unharnessed from the carriage, and the group moved toward the building. As they walked, Peter, who was following them, struck a match, and they entered the ruins using the light from the sticks he had gathered. The flickering light cast across the structure made its desolation seem even more profound, while the darkness surrounding most of the building enhanced its grandeur and sparked thoughts of horror. Adeline, who had been silent until now, suddenly gasped in a mix of admiration and fear. A kind of thrilling dread surged through her, filling her completely. Tears welled up in her eyes—she both wanted to continue and feared it; she clung to La Motte's arm and looked at him with a questioning gaze.

He opened the door of the great hall, and they entered: its extent was lost in gloom.—Let us stay here, said Madame de La Motte, I will go no further. La Motte pointed to the broken roof, and was proceeding, when he was interrupted by an uncommon noise, which passed along the hall. They were all silent—it was the silence of terror. Madame La Motte spoke first. Let us quit this spot, said she, any evil is preferable to the feeling which now oppresses me. Let us retire instantly. The stillness had for some time remained undisturbed, and La Motte, ashamed of the fear he had involuntarily betrayed, now thought it necessary to affect a boldness which he did not feel. He therefore opposed ridicule to the terror of Madame, and insisted upon proceeding. Thus compelled to acquiesce, she traversed the hall with trembling steps. They came to a narrow passage, and Peter's sticks being nearly exhausted, they awaited here, while he went in search of more.

He opened the door to the great hall, and they stepped inside: its vastness was swallowed by darkness. "Let's stay here," Madame de La Motte said, "I won't go any further." La Motte pointed to the damaged roof and was about to continue when an unusual noise echoed through the hall. They all fell silent—it was the kind of silence that comes with fear. Madame La Motte spoke first. "Let's leave this place," she said, "anything is better than the feeling that’s weighing me down right now. We need to get out of here immediately." The stillness had been unbroken for some time, and La Motte, embarrassed by the fear he had unintentionally shown, felt he needed to pretend to be braver than he actually was. So, he responded to Madame’s terror with mockery and insisted they move forward. Reluctantly forced to go along, she crossed the hall with unsteady steps. They reached a narrow passage, and with Peter's sticks almost gone, they stopped here while he went to find more.

The almost expiring light flashed faintly upon the walls of the passage, showing the recess more horrible. Across the hall, the greater part of which was concealed in shadow, the feeble ray spread a tremulous gleam, exhibiting the chasm in the roof, while many nameless objects were seen imperfectly through the dusk. Adeline with a smile inquired of La Motte if he believed in spirits. The question was ill-timed; for the present scene impressed its terrors upon La Motte, and, in spite of endeavour, he felt a superstitious dread stealing upon him. He was now, perhaps, standing over the ashes of the dead. If spirits were ever permitted to revisit the earth, this seemed the hour and the place most suitable for their appearance. La Motte remaining silent, Adeline said, Were I inclined to superstition—she was interrupted by a return of the noise which had been lately heard. It sounded down the passage, at whose entrance they stood, and sunk gradually away. Every heart palpitated, and they remained listening in silence. A new subject of apprehension seized La Motte:—the noise might proceed from banditti, and he hesitated whether it would be safe to proceed. Peter now came with the light: Madame refused to enter the passage—La Motte was not much inclined to it; but Peter, in whom curiosity was more prevalent than fear, readily offered his services. La Motte, after some hesitation, suffered him to go, while he awaited at the entrance the result of the inquiry. The extent of the passage soon concealed Peter from view, and the echoes of his footsteps were lost in a sound which rushed along the avenue, and became fainter and fainter till it sunk into silence. La Motte now called aloud to Peter, but no answer was returned; at length, they heard the sound of a distant footstep, and Peter soon after appeared, breathless, and pale with fear.

The nearly fading light flickered dimly on the walls of the corridor, making the recess look even scarier. Across the hall, mostly hidden in shadow, the weak beam cast a shaky glow, revealing the gap in the ceiling, while many unknown objects were only partially visible in the dimness. Adeline smiled and asked La Motte if he believed in ghosts. It was an inappropriate question; the current situation filled La Motte with dread, and despite trying to ignore it, he felt a superstitious fear creeping in. He might be standing over the ashes of the dead. If ghosts ever had the chance to return to Earth, this seemed like the perfect time and place for them to appear. La Motte stayed quiet, prompting Adeline to say, "If I were superstitious—" but she was interrupted by a return of the noise they'd recently heard. It echoed down the corridor where they stood and gradually faded away. Every heart raced, and they remained silent, listening. A new wave of worry gripped La Motte: the noise could be from bandits, and he hesitated about whether it would be safe to move forward. Peter then arrived with the light: Madame refused to enter the corridor—La Motte wasn't very eager to go in either; however, Peter, whose curiosity outweighed his fear, offered to investigate. After some hesitation, La Motte allowed him to go while he waited at the entrance for the outcome of the inquiry. The length of the corridor soon hid Peter from view, and the echoes of his footsteps faded into a noise that rushed through the passage, becoming quieter and quieter until it fell silent. La Motte called out to Peter, but there was no reply; eventually, they heard the sound of a distant footstep, and Peter soon appeared, out of breath and pale with fear.

When he came within hearing of La Motte, he called out, An please your honour, I've done for them, I believe, but I've had a hard bout. I thought I was fighting with the devil.—What are you speaking of? said La Motte.

When he got close enough to La Motte to be heard, he shouted, "If it pleases you, I think I've taken care of them, but it was a tough fight. I felt like I was battling with the devil." —"What are you talking about?" La Motte replied.

They were nothing but owls and rooks after all, continued Peter; but the light brought them all about my ears, and they made such a confounded clapping with their wings, that I thought at first I had been beset with a legion of devils. But I have driven them all out, master, and you have nothing to fear now.

They were just owls and crows after all, Peter went on; but the light brought them all around me, and they made such a loud flapping with their wings that I initially thought I was surrounded by a bunch of devils. But I’ve scared them all away, master, and you don’t have anything to worry about now.

The latter part of the sentence, intimating a suspicion of his courage, La Motte, could have dispensed with, and to retrieve in some degree his reputation, he made a point of proceeding through the passage. They now moved on with alacrity, for, as Peter said, they had nothing to fear.

The last part of the sentence, hinting at a doubt about his bravery, La Motte could have done without, and to somewhat restore his reputation, he insisted on going through the passage. They now moved on energetically, because, as Peter said, they had nothing to be afraid of.

The passage led into a large area, on one side of which, over a range of cloisters, appeared the west tower, and a lofty part of the edifice; the other side was open to the woods. La Motte led the way to a door of the tower, which he now perceived was the same he had formerly entered; but he found some difficulty in advancing, for the area was overgrown with brambles and nettles, and the light which Peter carried afforded only an uncertain gleam. When he unclosed the door, the dismal aspect of the place revived the apprehensions of Madame La Motte, and extorted from Adeline an inquiry whither they were going. Peter held up the light to show the narrow staircase that wound round the tower; but La Motte, observing the second door, drew back the rusty bolts, and entered a spacious apartment, which, from its style and condition, was evidently of a much later date than the other part of the structure: though desolate and forlorn, it was very little impaired by time; the walls were damp, but not decayed; and the glass was yet firm in the windows.

The pathway led into a large area, on one side of which stood the west tower over a series of cloisters, and a tall section of the building; the other side opened up to the woods. La Motte took the lead toward a door of the tower, which he now realized was the same one he had entered before; however, he had some trouble advancing because the area was overrun with brambles and nettles, and the light that Peter carried only provided a faint glow. When he opened the door, the gloomy appearance of the place brought back Madame La Motte's fears and prompted Adeline to ask where they were headed. Peter raised the light to reveal the narrow staircase that twisted around the tower; but La Motte, noticing the second door, pulled back the rusty bolts and entered a large room that, based on its style and condition, was clearly from a much later time than the rest of the building: though it seemed desolate and abandoned, it was very little affected by time; the walls were damp but not rotting; and the glass in the windows was still intact.

They passed on to a suit of apartments resembling the first they had seen, and expressed their surprise at the incongruous appearance of this part of the edifice with the mouldering walls they had left behind. These apartments conducted them to a winding passage, that received light and air through narrow cavities placed high in the wall; and was at length closed by a door barred with iron, which being with some difficulty opened, they entered a vaulted room. La Motte surveyed it with a scrutinizing eye, and endeavoured to conjecture for what purpose it had been guarded by a door of such strength; but he saw little within to assist his curiosity. The room appeared to have been built in modern times upon a Gothic plan. Adeline approached a large window that formed a kind of recess raised by one step over the level of the floor; she observed to La Motte that the whole floor was inlaid with Mosaic work; which drew from him a remark, that the style of this apartment was not strictly Gothic. He passed on to a door which appeared on the opposite side of the apartment, and, unlocking it, found himself in the great ball by which he had entered the fabric.

They moved on to a suite of rooms that looked like the first ones they had seen and were surprised by the mismatched appearance of this part of the building compared to the crumbling walls they had just left. These rooms led them to a winding hallway that let in light and air through narrow openings high up on the wall; it finally ended at an iron-barred door, which they managed to open with some effort. They stepped into a vaulted room. La Motte examined it carefully and tried to guess why it was protected by such a strong door, but found little to satisfy his curiosity. The room seemed to have been constructed in modern times with a Gothic design. Adeline walked over to a large window that created a small alcove raised by one step above the floor level; she pointed out to La Motte that the entire floor was covered in Mosaic patterns, which prompted him to comment that the style of this room wasn't strictly Gothic. He then walked over to a door on the opposite side of the room, unlocked it, and found himself back in the grand hall through which he had entered the building.

He now perceived, what the gloom had before concealed, a spiral staircase which led to a gallery above, and which, from its present condition, seemed to have been built with the more modern part of the fabric, though this also affected the Gothic mode of architecture: La Motte had little doubt that these stairs led to apartments corresponding with those he had passed below, and hesitated whether to explore them; but the entreaties of Madame, who was much fatigued, prevailed with him to defer all further examination. After some deliberation in which of the rooms they should pass the night, they determined to return to that which opened from the tower.

He now noticed, what the darkness had previously hidden, a spiral staircase that led to an upper gallery, which, based on its current state, seemed to be part of the newer section of the building, although it still had elements of Gothic architecture. La Motte was fairly certain that these stairs led to rooms similar to those he had seen below, and he hesitated about whether to check them out; however, Madame's pleas, as she was quite tired, convinced him to postpone any further exploration. After some discussion about which room they should stay in for the night, they decided to go back to the one that opened from the tower.

A fire was kindled on a hearth, which it is probable had not for many years before afforded the warmth of hospitality; and Peter having spread the provision he had brought from the coach, La Motte and his family, encircled round the fire, partook of a repast which hunger and fatigue made delicious. Apprehension gradually gave way to confidence, for they now found themselves in something like a human habitation, and they had leisure to laugh at their late terrors; but, as the blasts shook the doors, Adeline often started, and threw a fearful glance around. They continued to laugh and talk cheerfully for a time; yet their merriment was transient, if not affected; for a sense of their peculiar and distressed circumstances pressed upon their recollection, and sunk each individual into languor and pensive silence. Adeline felt the forlornness of her condition with energy; she reflected upon the past with astonishment, and anticipated the future with fear. She found herself wholly dependent upon strangers, with no other claim than what distress demands from the common sympathy of kindred beings; sighs swelled her heart, and the frequent tear started to her eye; but she checked it, ere it betrayed on her check the sorrow which she thought it would be ungrateful to reveal.

A fire was lit in the fireplace, which probably hadn't provided warmth and hospitality for many years before. Peter laid out the food he had brought from the coach, and La Motte and his family gathered around the fire, enjoying a meal that hunger and fatigue made taste incredible. Their initial fear gradually turned into confidence as they found themselves in a place that felt human, and they had time to laugh at their earlier scares. However, as the wind rattled the doors, Adeline often jumped and looked around in fear. They continued to laugh and chat for a while; still, their joy was fleeting, if not forced, as the weight of their unique and troubled situation pressed on their minds, sinking each person into weariness and thoughtful silence. Adeline felt the isolation of her situation keenly; she reflected on the past with disbelief and faced the future with dread. She realized she was completely dependent on strangers, with no other claim on them than what distress evokes from the shared sympathy of fellow beings; sighs filled her heart, and tears frequently welled in her eyes, but she held them back, fearing that showing her sadness would be ungrateful.

La Motte at length broke this meditative silence, by directing the fire to be renewed for the night, and the door to be secured: this seemed a necessary precaution, even in this solitude, and was effected by means of large stones piled against it, for other fastening there was none. It had frequently occurred to La Motte, that this apparently forsaken edifice might be a place of refuge to banditti. Here was solitude to conceal them; and a wild and extensive forest to assist their schemes of rapine, and to perplex with its labyrinths those who might be bold enough to attempt pursuit. These apprehensions, however, he hid within his own bosom, saving his companions from a share of the uneasiness they occasioned. Peter was ordered to watch at the door; and having given the fire a rousing stir, our desolate party drew round it, and sought in sleep a short oblivion of care.

La Motte eventually broke the thoughtful silence by having the fire rekindled for the night and securing the door. This seemed like a necessary precaution, even in this solitude, and it was done by piling large stones against it since there were no other ways to lock it. La Motte often thought that this seemingly abandoned building could be a hideout for bandits. There was solitude to hide them and a vast, wild forest to aid their schemes and confuse anyone daring enough to chase after them. However, he kept these worries to himself, sparing his companions from the anxiety they caused. Peter was instructed to keep watch at the door, and after giving the fire a good poke, our lonely group gathered around it, hoping to find a brief escape from their troubles in sleep.

The night passed on without disturbance. Adeline slept, but uneasy dreams fleeted before her fancy, and she awoke at an early hour: the recollection of her sorrows arose upon her mind, and yielding to their pressure, her tears flowed silently and fast. That she might indulge them without restraint, she went to a window that looked upon an open part of the forest: all was gloom and silence; she stood for some time viewing the shadowy scene.

The night went by quietly. Adeline slept, but restless dreams flitted through her mind, and she woke up early. The memories of her sorrows came flooding back, and overwhelmed by them, her tears fell silently and rapidly. Wanting to cry freely, she went to a window that opened up to a clear part of the forest: everything was dark and quiet; she stood there for a while, gazing at the shadowy landscape.

The first tender tints of morning now appeared on the verge of the horizon, stealing upon the darkness;—so pure, so fine, so ethereal! it seemed as if heaven was opening to the view. The dark mists were seen to roll off to the west, as the tints of light grew stronger, deepening the obscurity of that part of the hemisphere, and involving the features of the country below; meanwhile, in the east, the hues became more vivid, darting a trembling lustre far around, till a ruddy glow, which fired all that part of the heavens, announced the rising sun. At first, a small line of inconceivable splendour emerged on the horizon, which quickly expanding, the sun appeared in all his glory, unveiling the whole face of nature, vivifying every colour of the landscape, and sprinkling the dewy earth with glittering light. The low and gentle responses of birds, awakened by the morning ray, now broke the silence of the hour; their soft warblings rising by degrees till they swelled the chorus of universal gladness. Adeline's heart swelled too with gratitude and adoration.

The first soft colors of morning now appeared at the edge of the horizon, gently pushing away the darkness; so pure, so delicate, so heavenly! It felt like heaven was opening up to be seen. The dark mists rolled off to the west as the light grew stronger, deepening the shadows in that part of the sky and obscuring the features of the landscape below; meanwhile, in the east, the colors became brighter, casting a shimmering glow all around, until a warm light, igniting that section of the sky, announced the rising sun. At first, a narrow line of incredible brightness appeared on the horizon, which quickly spread, and the sun emerged in all his glory, revealing the entire face of nature, bringing every color of the landscape to life, and sprinkling the dewy ground with sparkling light. The soft and gentle sounds of birds, awakened by the morning light, now broke the silence of the hour; their sweet songs gradually rising until they swelled into a chorus of universal happiness. Adeline's heart also filled with gratitude and adoration.

The scene before her soothed her mind, and exalted her thoughts to the great Author of Nature; she uttered an involuntary prayer: Father of good, who made this glorious scene! I resign myself to thy hands: thou wilt support me under my present sorrows, and to protect me from future evil.

The scene in front of her calmed her mind and lifted her thoughts to the great Creator of Nature; she spoke an involuntary prayer: Father of goodness, who created this beautiful view! I give myself over to you: you will support me through my current troubles and protect me from future harm.

Thus confiding in the benevolence of God, she wiped the tears from her eyes, while the sweet union of conscience and reflection rewarded her trust; and her mind, losing the feelings which had lately oppressed it, became tranquil and composed.

Thus trusting in God's kindness, she wiped the tears from her eyes, while the comforting blend of conscience and reflection rewarded her faith; and her mind, shedding the feelings that had recently weighed it down, became calm and settled.

La Motte awoke soon after, and Peter prepared to set out on his expedition. As he mounted his horse. An' please you, master, said he, I think we had as good look no further for a habitation till better times turn up; for nobody will think of looking for us here; and when one sees the place by daylight, it's none so bad, but what a little patching up would make it comfortable enough. La Motte made no reply, but he thought of Peter's words. During the intervals of the night, when anxiety had kept him waking, the same idea had occurred to him; concealment was his only security, and this place afforded it. The desolation of the spot was repulsive to his wishes; but he had only a choice of evils—a forest with liberty was not a bad home for one who had too much reason to expect a prison. As he walked through the apartments, and examined their condition more attentively, he perceived they might easily be made habitable; and now surveying them under the cheerfulness of morning, his design strengthened; and he mused upon the means of accomplishing it, which nothing seemed so much to obstruct as the apparent difficulty of procuring food.

La Motte woke up shortly after, and Peter got ready to head out on his expedition. As he got on his horse, he said, “If it’s alright with you, master, I think we should hold off on looking for another place to live until better times come around; no one will think to search for us here. When you see this place in daylight, it’s not so bad, and with a little fixing up, it could be quite comfortable.” La Motte didn’t respond but considered Peter’s words. During the restless hours of the night, when anxiety kept him awake, he had thought the same thing; staying hidden was his only safety, and this place offered that. The emptiness of the location was off-putting to him, but he only had a choice between bad options—having a forest with freedom wasn’t too shabby for someone who had too much reason to expect a prison. As he walked through the rooms and looked more closely at their condition, he saw that they could easily be made livable. Now, under the bright morning light, his plan grew stronger, and he began to think about how to make it happen, with the main obstacle seeming to be the apparent difficulty of finding food.

He communicated his thoughts to Madame La Motte, who felt repugnance to the scheme. La Motte, however, seldom consulted his wife till he had determined how to act; and he had already resolved to be guided in this affair by the report of Peter. If he could discover a town in the neighbourhood of the forest, where provisions and other necessaries could be procured, he would seek no further for a place of rest.

He shared his thoughts with Madame La Motte, who was disgusted by the idea. However, La Motte rarely discussed things with his wife until he had made up his mind; he had already decided to follow Peter's advice in this matter. If he could find a town near the forest where he could get food and other essentials, he wouldn't look for another place to rest.

In the mean time he spent the anxious interval of Peter's absence in examining the ruin, and walking over the environs; they were sweetly romantic, and the luxuriant woods with which they abounded, seemed to sequester this spot from the rest of the world. Frequently a natural vista would yield a view of the country, terminated by hills, which retiring in distance faded into the blue horizon. A stream, various and musical in its course, wound at the foot of the lawn on which stood the abbey; here it silently glided beneath the shades, feeding the flowers that bloomed on its banks, and diffusing dewy freshness around; there it spread in broad expanse to day, reflecting the sylvan scene, and the wild deer that tasted its waves. La Motte observed every where a profusion of game; the pheasants scarcely flew from his approach, and the deer gazed mildly at him as he passed. They were strangers to man!

In the meantime, he spent the anxious time during Peter's absence exploring the ruins and walking around the area; it was beautifully romantic, and the lush woods surrounding it seemed to isolate this spot from the rest of the world. Often, a natural viewpoint would offer a glimpse of the countryside, ending with hills that faded into the blue horizon in the distance. A stream, varied and melodic in its flow, wound its way at the foot of the lawn where the abbey stood; here, it silently flowed beneath the shade, nourishing the flowers blooming on its banks and spreading dewy freshness all around; there, it expanded into a wide stretch, reflecting the forest scene and the wild deer that grazed at its edge. La Motte noticed an abundance of game everywhere; the pheasants hardly took flight at his approach, and the deer looked at him calmly as he walked by. They were unaccustomed to people!

On his return to the abbey, La Motte ascended the stairs that led to the tower. About half way up, a door appeared in the wall; it yielded, without resistance, to his hand; but a sudden noise within, accompanied by a cloud of dust, made him step back and close the door. After waiting a few minutes, he again opened it, and perceived a large room of the more modern building. The remains of tapestry hung in tatters upon the walls, which were become the residence of birds of prey, whose sudden flight on the opening of the door had brought down a quantity of dust, and occasioned the noise. The windows were shattered, and almost without glass; but he was surprised to observe some remains of furniture; chairs, whose fashion and condition bore the date of their antiquity; a broken table, and an iron grate almost consumed by rust.

On his way back to the abbey, La Motte climbed the stairs that led to the tower. About halfway up, he noticed a door in the wall; it opened easily at his touch, but a loud noise from inside, along with a cloud of dust, made him step back and shut the door. After waiting a few minutes, he opened it again and saw a large room in the more modern part of the building. Tattered pieces of tapestry hung from the walls, which had become home to birds of prey. Their sudden flight when he opened the door sent dust flying and caused the noise. The windows were broken and nearly without glass, but he was surprised to see some remnants of furniture: chairs that clearly dated back a long time, a broken table, and a rusty iron grate.

On the opposite side of the room was a door which led to another apartment, proportioned like the first, but hung with arras somewhat less tattered. In one corner stood a small bedstead, and a few shattered chairs were placed round the walls. La Motte gazed with a mixture of wonder and curiosity. 'Tis strange, said he, that these rooms, and these alone, should bear the marks of inhabitation; perhaps, some wretched wanderer like myself, may have here sought refuge from a persecuting world; and here, perhaps, laid down the load of existence; perhaps, too, I have followed his footsteps, but to mingle my dust with his! He turned suddenly, and was about to quit the room, when he perceived a small door near the bed; it opened into a closet, which was lighted by one small window, and was in the same condition as the apartments he had passed, except that it was destitute even of the remains of furniture. As he walked over the floor, he thought he felt one part of it shake beneath his steps, and, examining, found a trap-door. Curiosity prompted him to explore further, and with some difficulty he opened it. It disclosed a staircase which terminated in darkness. La Motte descended a few steps, but was unwilling to trust the abyss; and, after wondering for what purpose it was so secretly constructed, he closed the trap, and quitted this suit of apartments.

On the other side of the room was a door that led to another apartment, similarly sized as the first but decorated with tapestries that were a bit less worn. In one corner stood a small bed, and a few broken chairs were scattered around the walls. La Motte looked around with a mix of wonder and curiosity. "It's strange," he said, "that these rooms, and only these, show signs of someone living here; maybe some poor wanderer like me has sought refuge from a harsh world here; and perhaps he laid down the burden of life here; maybe I've followed in his footsteps, destined to mix my dust with his." He turned suddenly, about to leave the room, when he noticed a small door near the bed; it led to a closet that had one small window and was in the same condition as the rooms he had just seen, but it was completely empty of any furniture. As he stepped onto the floor, he felt one part of it tremble beneath him, and upon further inspection, discovered a trapdoor. Curiosity got the better of him, and with some effort, he opened it. It revealed a staircase that disappeared into darkness. La Motte descended a few steps but hesitated to venture into the void; after wondering what purpose it served to be hidden away, he closed the trapdoor and left that suite of rooms.

The stairs in the tower above were so much decayed, that he did not attempt to ascend them: he returned to the hall, and by the spiral staircase which he had observed the evening before, reached the gallery, and found another suit of apartments entirely furnished, very much like those below.

The stairs in the tower above were so rotten that he didn't try to climb them. He went back to the hall and took the spiral staircase he had seen the night before, reaching the gallery where he found another set of fully furnished rooms, very similar to those below.

He renewed with Madame La Motte his former conversation respecting the abbey, and she exerted all her endeavours to dissuade him from his purpose, acknowledging the solitary security of the spot, but pleading that other places might be found equally well adapted for concealment and more for comfort. This La Motte doubted: besides, the forest abounded with game, which would, at once, afford him amusement and food, a circumstance, considering his small stock of money, by no means to be overlooked; and he had suffered his mind to dwell so much upon the scheme, that it was become a favourite one. Adeline listened in anxiety to the discourse, and waited the issue of Peter's report.

He revisited his earlier conversation with Madame La Motte about the abbey, and she did her best to talk him out of it, acknowledging the quiet safety of the location, but arguing that there were other places that could offer both seclusion and more comfort. La Motte was skeptical of this; plus, the forest was full of game, which would give him both entertainment and food—a factor he couldn't ignore given his limited funds. He had thought about the plan so much that it had become a favorite of his. Adeline listened anxiously to the discussion, awaiting Peter's report.

The morning passed but Peter did not return. Our solitary party took their dinner of the provision they had fortunately brought with them, and afterwards walked forth into the woods. Adeline, who never suffered any good to pass unnoticed because it came attended with evil, forgot for a while the desolation of the abbey in the beauty of the adjacent scenery. The pleasantness of the shades soothed her heart, and the varied features of the landscape amused her fancy; she almost thought she could be contented to live here. Already she began to feel an interest in the concerns of her companions, and for Madame La Motte she felt more; it was the warm emotion of gratitude and affection.

The morning went by, but Peter still hadn’t come back. Our small group had dinner with the supplies they’d thankfully brought along, and afterward, we ventured into the woods. Adeline, who never let a good moment go by without acknowledging the accompanying troubles, temporarily forgot the loneliness of the abbey because of the beauty of the surrounding scenery. The pleasant shade calmed her heart, and the diverse features of the landscape entertained her imagination; she almost thought she could be happy living there. She already began to take an interest in her companions’ lives, and she felt something deeper for Madame La Motte—it was a warm feeling of gratitude and affection.

The afternoon wore away, and they returned to the abbey. Peter was still absent, and his absence now began to excite surprise and apprehension. The approach of darkness also threw a gloom upon the hopes of the wanderers: another night must be passed under the same forlorn circumstances as the preceding one! and, what was still worse, with a very scanty stock of provisions. The fortitude of Madame La Motte now entirely forsook her, and she wept bitterly. Adeline's heart was as mournful as Madame's, but she rallied her drooping spirits, and gave the first instance of her kindness by endeavouring to revive those of her friend.

The afternoon passed, and they went back to the abbey. Peter was still missing, and his absence started to create worry and concern. As darkness fell, it dampened the hopes of the travelers: another night would have to be spent under the same dismal conditions as the last! And, even worse, with barely enough food. Madame La Motte completely lost her courage and cried hard. Adeline's heart was just as heavy as Madame's, but she pulled herself together and took the first step in showing kindness by trying to lift her friend's spirits.

La Motte was restless and uneasy, and, leaving the abbey, he walked alone the way which Peter had taken. He had not gone far, when he perceived him between the trees, leading his horse.—What news, Peter? hallooed La Motte. Peter came on, panting for breath, and said not a word, till La Motte repeated the question in a tone of somewhat more authority. Ah, bless you, master! said he, when he had taken breath to answer, I am glad to see you; I thought I should never have got back again: I've met with a world of misfortunes.

La Motte was restless and uneasy, so he left the abbey and walked alone along the path Peter had taken. He hadn’t gone far when he saw Peter between the trees, leading his horse. “What’s the news, Peter?” La Motte called out. Peter approached, panting for breath, and didn’t say a word until La Motte repeated the question with a bit more authority. “Ah, thank goodness, master!” he said after catching his breath, “I’m glad to see you; I thought I’d never make it back. I’ve run into a ton of trouble.”

Well, you may relate them hereafter; let me hear whether you have discovered—

Well, you might connect them later; let me know if you've found—

Discovered? interrupted Peter, yes, I am discovered with a vengeance! if your honour will look at my arms, you'll see how I am discovered.

"Discovered?" interrupted Peter. "Yes, I’ve been discovered with a vengeance! If you’ll look at my arms, you’ll see how I’ve been discovered."

Discoloured! I suppose you mean, said La Motte. But how came you in this condition!

Discolored! I guess you mean, La Motte said. But how did you end up like this?

Why I tell you how it was, Sir; your honour knows I learnt a smack of boxing of that Englishman that used to come with his master to our house.

Why I tell you how it was, Sir; your honor knows I picked up a bit of boxing from that Englishman who used to come with his master to our house.

Well, well—tell me where you have been.

Well, well—tell me where you've been.

I scarcely know myself, master; I've been where I got a sound drubbing, but then it was in your business, and so I don't mind. But if ever I meet with that rascal again!—

I barely recognize myself, master; I've been in a situation where I got a serious beating, but that was related to your business, so it doesn’t bother me. But if I ever come across that guy again!—

You seem to like your first drubbing so well, that you want another, and unless you speak more to the purpose, you shall soon have one.

You seem to enjoy your first defeat so much that you want another one, and unless you get to the point, you'll soon get it.

Peter was now frightened into method, and endeavoured to proceed: When I left the old abbey, said he, I followed the way you directed, and turning to the right of that grove of trees yonder, I looked this way and that to see if I could see a house or a cottage, or even a man, but not a soul of them was to be seen, and so I jogged on near the value of a league, I warrant, and then I came to a track; Oh! oh! says I, we have you now; this will do—paths can't be made without feet. However, I was out in my reckoning, for the devil a bit of a soul could I see, and after following the track this way and that way, for the third of a league, I lost it, and had to find out another.

Peter was now scared into being efficient and tried to move forward. “When I left the old abbey,” he said, “I followed the path you pointed out, and turning to the right of that grove of trees over there, I looked around to see if I could spot a house, a cottage, or even a person, but not a single soul was in sight. So I kept going for about a league, I swear, and then I found a path. Oh! oh! I thought, we’ve got one now; this must be it—paths can’t exist without footsteps. But I was wrong in my assumption, because not a soul could I see, and after following the path this way and that for a third of a league, I lost it and had to look for another one.”

Is it impossible for you to speak to the point? said La Motte; omit these foolish particulars, and tell whether you have succeeded.

"Can you please get to the point?" La Motte said. "Skip the silly details and just tell me if you were successful."

Well, then, master, to be short, for that's the nearest way after all, I wandered a long while at random, I did not know where, all through a forest like this, and I took special care to note how the trees stood, that I might find my way back. At last I came to another path, and was sure I should find something now, though I had found nothing before, for I could not be mistaken twice; so, peeping between the trees, I spied a cottage, and I gave my horse a lash that sounded through the forest, and I was at the door in a minute. They told me there was a town about half a league off, and bade me follow the track and it would bring me there,—so it did; and my horse, I believe, smelt the corn in the manger by the rate he went at. I inquired for a wheel-wright, and was told there was but one in the place, and he could not be found. I waited and waited, for I knew it was in vain to think of returning without doing my business. The man at last came home from the country, and I told him how long I had waited; for, says I, I knew it was in vain to return without my business.

Well, then, master, to keep it brief, since that's the quickest way after all, I wandered around aimlessly for a while, not knowing where I was, all through a forest like this. I made sure to pay attention to how the trees were positioned so I could find my way back. Eventually, I came across another path and felt certain I would find something this time, even though I hadn't found anything before; I couldn't be wrong twice. So, peeking between the trees, I spotted a cottage and gave my horse a good kick that echoed through the forest, and I reached the door in a minute. They told me there was a town about half a league away, and pointed me to the path that would take me there—and it did; my horse seemed to sense the grain in the barn by the speed he was going. I asked about a wheelwright and was told there was only one in town, but he was unavailable. I waited and waited, knowing it was pointless to think about returning without finishing my business. Eventually, the man came back from the countryside, and I told him how long I had been waiting because, I said, I knew it was pointless to return without completing my business.

Do be less tedious, said La Motte, if it is in thy nature.

"Try not to be so boring," La Motte said, "if it’s in your nature."

It is in my nature, answered Peter, and if it was more in my nature your honour should have it all. Would you think it, Sir, the fellow had the impudence to ask a louis-d'or for mending the coach-wheel! I believe in my conscience he saw I was in a hurry and could not do without him. A louis-d'or! says I, my master shall give no such price, he sha'n't be imposed upon by no such rascal as you. Whereupon, the fellow looked glum, and gave me a douse o'the chops: with this, I up with my fist and gave him another, and should have beat him presently, if another man had not come in, and then I was obliged to give up.

“It’s just who I am,” Peter replied, “and if it were more who I am, your honor would have it all. Can you believe it, Sir? The guy had the nerve to ask for a louis-d'or to fix the coach wheel! I swear he saw I was in a rush and knew I couldn’t do without him. A louis-d'or! I told him my master wouldn’t pay that much; he shouldn’t let a scoundrel like you take advantage. Then the guy got all moody and slapped me across the face. So, I swung my fist and hit him back, and I would have kept going, but then another guy stepped in, and I had to back down.”

And so you are returned as wise as you went?

And so you come back just as wise as you were before?

Why, master, I hope I have too much spirit to submit to a rascal, or let you submit, to one either: besides, I have bought some nails to try if I can't mend the wheel myself—I had always a hand at carpentry.

Why, master, I hope I have too much spirit to submit to a scoundrel, or let you submit to one either; besides, I’ve bought some nails to see if I can fix the wheel myself—I’ve always been good with carpentry.

Well, I commend your zeal in my cause, but on this occasion it was rather ill-timed. And what have you got in that basket?

Well, I appreciate your enthusiasm for my cause, but this time it was a bit poorly timed. And what do you have in that basket?

Why, master, I bethought me that we could not get away from this place till the carriage was ready to draw us, and in the mean time, says I, nobody can live without victuals, so I'll e'en lay out the little money I have and take a basket with me.

Why, master, I thought that we couldn't leave this place until the carriage was ready to take us. In the meantime, I said, nobody can live without food, so I’ll just spend the little money I have and take a basket with me.

That's the only wise thing you have done yet, and this, indeed, redeems your blunders.

That's the only smart thing you've done so far, and this really makes up for your mistakes.

Why now, master, it does my heart good to hear you speak; I knew I was doing for the best all the while: but I've had a hard job to find my way back; and here's another piece of ill luck, for the horse has got a thorn in his foot.

Why now, master, it makes me really happy to hear you talk; I knew I was doing what was best all along: but I've had a tough time finding my way back; and here's more bad luck, because the horse has a thorn in his foot.

La Motte made inquiries concerning the town, and found it was capable of supplying him with provision, and what little furniture was necessary to render the abbey habitable. This intelligence almost settled his plans, and he ordered Peter to return on the following morning and make inquiries concerning the abbey. If the answers were favourable to his wishes, he commissioned him to buy a cart and load it with some furniture, and some materials necessary for repairing the modern apartments. Peter stared: What, does your honour mean to live here?

La Motte asked about the town and discovered that it could provide him with food and the few pieces of furniture needed to make the abbey livable. This information nearly finalized his plans, and he told Peter to come back the next morning to investigate the abbey. If the answers were positive, he instructed him to buy a cart and fill it with some furniture and supplies needed to fix the modern rooms. Peter was taken aback: "What, do you really plan to live here?"

Why, suppose I do?

Why would I?

Why, then your honour has made a wise determination, according to my hint; for your honour knows I said—

Why, then your honor has made a wise choice based on my suggestion; because your honor knows I mentioned—

Well, Peter, it is not necessary to repeat what you said; perhaps I had determined on the subject before.

Well, Peter, you don’t need to say that again; I might have already made up my mind about it.

Egad, master, you're in the right, and I'm glad of it, for I believe we shall not quickly be disturbed here, except by the rooks and owls. Yes, yes—I warrant I'll make it a place fit for a king; and as for the town, one may get any thing, I'm sure of that; though they think no more about this place than they do about India or England, or any of those places.

Wow, master, you're absolutely right, and I'm happy about it because I don't think we'll be interrupted here anytime soon, except by the crows and owls. Yes, yes—I promise I'll make it a place worthy of a king; and as for the town, I'm confident you can find anything you need there, even if they care about this place just as little as they do about India or England, or any of those other places.

They now reached the abbey; where Peter was received with great joy: but the hopes of his mistress and Adeline were repressed, when they learned that he returned without having executed his commission, and heard his account of the town. La Motte's orders to Peter were heard with almost equal concern by Madame and Adeline; but the latter concealed her uneasiness, and used all her efforts to overcome that of her friend. The sweetness of her behaviour, and the air of satisfaction she assumed, sensibly affected Madame, and discovered to her a source of comfort which she had hitherto overlooked. The affectionate attentions of her young friend promised to console her for the want of other society, and her conversation to enliven the hours which might otherwise be passed in painful regret.

They finally arrived at the abbey, where Peter was greeted with great joy. However, the hopes of his mistress and Adeline were dampened when they learned that he had returned without completing his mission, and they listened to his account of the town. La Motte's instructions to Peter caused almost equal distress for Madame and Adeline; but Adeline hid her worry and did everything she could to reassure her friend. The kindness in her behavior and the sense of contentment she projected noticeably affected Madame, revealing a source of comfort she had previously overlooked. The loving attentions of her young friend seemed to promise consolation for the lack of other companionship, and their conversations were sure to brighten the hours that might have otherwise been spent in painful regret.

The observations and general behaviour of Adeline already bespoke a good understanding and an amiable heart; but she had yet more—she had genius. She was now in her nineteenth year; her figure of the middling size, and turned to the most exquisite proportion; her hair was dark auburn, her eyes blue, and whether they sparkled with intelligence, or melted with tenderness, they were equally attractive: her form had the airy lightness of a nymph, and when she smiled, her countenance might have been drawn for the younger sister of Hebe: the captivations of her beauty were heightened by the grace and simplicity of her manners, and confirmed by the intrinsic value of a heart.

The way Adeline carried herself and her overall demeanor showed that she had a good understanding and a kind heart; but there was more—she had talent. Now nineteen, she was of average height and had the most perfect proportions; her hair was a dark auburn, her eyes were blue, and whether they sparkled with intelligence or softened with kindness, they were equally captivating: her figure had the lightness of a nymph, and when she smiled, her face could have been fashioned for the younger sister of Hebe. The charm of her beauty was enhanced by the grace and simplicity of her behavior, supported by the genuine worth of her heart.

That might be encased in crystal,
And have all its movements scanned.

Annette now kindled the fire for the night: Peter's basket was opened, and supper prepared. Madame La Motte was still pensive and silent.—There is scarcely any condition so bad, said Adeline, but we may one time or the other wish we had not quitted it. Honest Peter, when he was bewildered in the forest, or had two enemies to encounter instead of one, confesses he wished himself at the abbey. And I am certain, there is no situation so destitute, but comfort may be extracted from it. The blaze of this fire shines yet more cheerfully from the contrasted dreariness of the place; and this plentiful repast is made yet more delicious from the temporary want we have suffered. Let us enjoy the good and forget the evil.

Annette set up the fire for the night: Peter's basket was opened, and dinner was prepared. Madame La Motte was still deep in thought and quiet.—"There’s hardly any situation so bad," Adeline said, "that at some point we don’t wish we hadn’t left it. Honest Peter, when he got lost in the forest, or had to face two enemies instead of one, admits he wished he were back at the abbey. And I'm sure, there’s no situation so lacking that we can’t find some comfort in it. The glow of this fire shines even brighter against the bleakness of the place; and this hearty meal is even more delicious because of the temporary hunger we've endured. Let’s enjoy the good and forget the bad."

You speak, my dear, replied Madame La Motte, like one whose spirits have not been often depressed by misfortune (Adeline sighed), and whose hopes are therefore vigorous. Long suffering, said La Motte, has subdued in our minds that elastic energy which repels the pressure of evil and dances to the bound of joy. But I speak in raphsody, though only from the remembrance of such a time. I once, like you, Adeline, could extract comfort from most situations.

"You speak, my dear," replied Madame La Motte, "like someone whose spirits haven’t often been brought down by misfortune." (Adeline sighed.) "And because of that, your hopes are strong." "Long suffering," said La Motte, "has worn down that energy in us which pushes away the weight of hardship and celebrates joy. But I’m rambling, just reminiscing about a time like that. I once, like you, Adeline, could find comfort in almost any situation."

And may now, my dear Sir, said Adeline. Still believe it possible, and you will find it is so.

And may now, my dear Sir, said Adeline. If you still believe it’s possible, you’ll see that it is.

The illusion is gone—I can no longer deceive myself.

The illusion is gone—I can't fool myself anymore.

Pardon me, Sir, if I say, it is now only you deceive yourself, by suffering the cloud of sorrow to tinge every object you look upon.

Pardon me, Sir, if I say that right now you’re only deceiving yourself by allowing the cloud of sorrow to color everything you see.

It may be so, said La Motte, but let us leave the subject.

It might be, said La Motte, but let's change the topic.

After supper, the doors were secured, as before, for the night, and the wanderers resigned themselves to repose.

After dinner, the doors were locked up for the night like before, and the travelers settled in for some rest.

On the following morning, Peter again set out for the little town of Auboine, and the hours of his absence were again spent by Madame La Motte and Adeline in much anxiety and some hope, for the intelligence he might bring concerning the abbey might yet release them from the plans of La Motte. Towards the close of the day he was descried coming slowly on; and the cart, which accompanied him, too certainly confirmed their fears. He brought materials for repairing the place, and some furniture.

On the next morning, Peter set out once more for the small town of Auboine, and the hours he was gone were filled with anxiety and a bit of hope for Madame La Motte and Adeline. The news he might bring about the abbey could still free them from La Motte's plans. As the day came to an end, they spotted him approaching slowly, and the cart with him confirmed their worries. He returned with supplies to fix up the place and some furniture.

Of the abbey he gave an account, of which the following is the substance:—It belonged, together with a large part of the adjacent forest, to a nobleman, who now resided with his family on a remote estate. He inherited it, in right of his wife, from his father-in-law, who had caused the more modern apartments to be erected, and had resided in them some part of every year, for the purpose of shooting and hunting. It was reported, that some person was, soon after it came to the present possessor, brought secretly to the abbey and confined in these apartments; who, or what he was, had never been conjectured, and what became of him nobody knew. The report died gradually away, and many persons entirely disbelieved the whole of it. But however this affair might be, certain it was, the present owner had visited the abbey only two summers since his succeeding to it; and the furniture after some time, was removed.

Of the abbey, he gave an account, and here’s the gist: It belonged, along with a large part of the nearby forest, to a nobleman who now lived with his family on a distant estate. He inherited it through his wife from his father-in-law, who had built the more modern rooms and spent part of every year there for shooting and hunting. It was rumored that shortly after it came into the current owner's possession, someone was secretly brought to the abbey and kept in those rooms; who this person was or what happened to them was never figured out, and nobody knew their fate. The rumor eventually faded, and many people completely dismissed it. But regardless of what happened, it's clear the current owner had only visited the abbey two summers since inheriting it, and after a while, the furniture was removed.

This circumstance had at first excited surprise, and various reports rose in consequence, but it was difficult to know what ought to be believed. Among the rest, it was said that strange appearances had been observed at the abbey, and uncommon noises heard; and though this report had been ridiculed by sensible persons as the idle superstition of ignorance, it had fastened so strongly upon the minds of the common people, that for the last seventeen years none of the peasantry had ventured to approach the spot. The abbey was now, therefore, abandoned to decay.

This situation initially caused some surprise, leading to various reports, but it was hard to figure out what was true. Among other things, people said that strange sights had been seen at the abbey and unusual sounds had been heard; even though sensible folks mocked this rumor as mere superstition fueled by ignorance, it took such a strong hold on the minds of ordinary people that for the last seventeen years, none of the locals dared to go near the place. As a result, the abbey was now left to decay.

La Motte ruminated upon this account. At first it called up unpleasant ideas, but they were soon dismissed, and considerations more interesting to his welfare took place: he congratulated himself that he had now found a spot where he was not likely to be either discovered or disturbed; yet it could not escape him that there was a strange coincidence between one part of Peter's narrative, and the condition of the chambers that opened from the tower above stairs. The remains of furniture, of which the other apartments were void—the solitary bed—the number and connexion of the rooms, were circumstances that united to confirm his opinion. This, however, he concealed in his own breast, for he already perceived that Peter's account had not assisted in reconciling his family to the necessity of dwelling at the abbey.

La Motte thought about this story. At first, it brought up some uncomfortable thoughts, but he quickly set those aside and focused on more positive aspects for his well-being: he was pleased to have found a place where he was unlikely to be found or disturbed. However, he couldn't help but notice a strange coincidence between one part of Peter's story and the state of the rooms connected to the tower upstairs. The leftover furniture, the lone bed, and the layout of the rooms all supported his thoughts. Still, he kept this to himself because he already recognized that Peter's tale hadn’t helped convince his family to accept living at the abbey.

But they had only to submit in silence, and whatever disagreeable apprehension might intrude upon them, they now appeared willing to suppress the expression of it. Peter, indeed, was exempt from any evil of this kind; he knew no fear, and his mind was now wholly occupied with his approaching business. Madame La Motte, with a placid kind of despair, endeavoured to reconcile herself to that which no effort of understanding could teach her to avoid, and which an indulgence in lamentation could only make more intolerable. Indeed, though a sense of the immediate inconveniences to be endured at the abbey had made her oppose the scheme of living there, she did not really know how their situation could be improved by removal: yet her thoughts often wandered towards Paris, and reflected the retrospect of past times, with the images of weeping friends left, perhaps, for ever. The affectionate endearments of her only son, whom, from the danger of his situation, and the obscurity of hers, she might reasonably fear never to see again, arose upon her memory and overcame her fortitude. Why—why was I reserved for this hour? would she say, and what will be my years to come?

But they could only submit in silence, and whatever uncomfortable feelings they had seemed to be something they were willing to hide. Peter, however, felt none of this; he had no fear and was entirely focused on his upcoming responsibilities. Madame La Motte, with a calm kind of despair, tried to accept what no amount of understanding could help her escape, and which indulging in sorrow would only make worse. Even though the immediate difficulties of being at the abbey had led her to oppose the idea of staying there, she didn't truly believe that leaving would improve their situation. Still, her thoughts often drifted to Paris, reminiscing about better times and the faces of friends she might never see again. The loving words of her only son, whom she might justifiably fear she would never see again due to the danger he faced and the uncertainty of her own situation, flooded her mind and weakened her resolve. Why—why was I destined for this moment? she would ask herself, and what will my future hold?

Adeline had no retrospect of past delight to give emphasis to present calamity—no weeping friends—no dear regretted objects to point the edge of sorrow, and throw a sickly hue upon her future prospects: she knew not yet the pangs of disappointed hope, or the acuter sting of self-accusation; she had no misery but what patience could assuage, or fortitude overcome.

Adeline had no memories of past happiness to highlight her current disaster—no crying friends—no beloved things to sharpen her sadness and cast a gloomy shadow over her future: she didn’t yet know the pain of lost hopes or the sharper sting of self-blame; her only suffering was one that patience could ease or strength could overcome.

At the dawn of the following day Peter arose to his labour: he proceeded with alacrity, and in a few days two of the lower apartments were so much altered for the better that La Motte began to exult, and his family to perceive that their situation would not be so miserable as they had imagined. The furniture Peter had already brought was disposed in these rooms, one of which was the vaulted apartment. Madame La Motte furnished this as a sitting-room, preferring it for its large Gothic window, that descended almost to the floor, admitting a prospect of the lawn, and the picturesque scenery of the surrounding woods.

At the break of the next day, Peter got up to start his work. He worked quickly, and in just a few days, two of the lower rooms were so much improved that La Motte started to feel proud, and his family realized that their situation wouldn’t be as miserable as they had thought. The furniture Peter had already brought was arranged in these rooms, one of which was the vaulted room. Madame La Motte set this up as a sitting room, choosing it for its large Gothic window that nearly reached the floor, offering a view of the lawn and the beautiful scenery of the surrounding woods.

Peter having returned to Auboine for a further supply, all the lower apartments were in a few weeks not only habitable, but comfortable. These, however, being insufficient for the accommodation of the family, a room above stairs was prepared for Adeline: it was the chamber that opened immediately from the tower, and she preferred it to those beyond, because it was less distant from the family, and the windows fronting an avenue of the forest afforded a more extensive prospect. The tapestry, that was decayed, and hung loosely from the walls, was now nailed up, and made to look less desolate; and though the room had still a solemn aspect, from its spaciousness and the narrowness of the windows, it was not uncomfortable.

Peter returned to Auboine to get more supplies, and within a few weeks, all the lower rooms were not just livable but cozy. However, this wasn’t enough space for the family, so a room upstairs was set up for Adeline. It was the room that opened directly from the tower, and she preferred it over the others because it was closer to the family. The windows faced an avenue of forest, giving a better view. The old, worn tapestry that had been sagging off the walls was fixed up, making the room appear less empty. Although the room still had a serious vibe due to its size and the narrow windows, it was comfortable enough.

The first night that Adeline retired hither, she slept little: the solitary air of the place affected her spirits; the more so, perhaps, because she had, with friendly consideration, endeavoured to support them in the presence of Madame La Motte. She remembered the narrative of Peter, several circumstances of which had impressed her imagination in spite of her reason, and she found it difficult wholly to subdue apprehension. At one time, terror so strongly seized her mind, that she had even opened the door with an intention of calling Madame La Motte; but, listening for a moment on the stairs of the tower, every thing seemed still: at length, she heard the voice of La Motte speaking cheerfully, and the absurdity of her fears struck her forcibly; she blushed that she had for a moment submitted to them, and returned to her chamber wondering at herself.

The first night that Adeline retired here, she hardly slept: the lonely atmosphere of the place affected her mood; perhaps even more so because she had tried hard to keep up her spirits in front of Madame La Motte. She recalled the story of Peter, several details of which had stuck in her mind despite her rationality, and she found it hard to completely shake off her anxiety. At one point, fear overwhelmed her so much that she even opened the door intending to call for Madame La Motte; but after listening for a moment on the tower stairs, everything seemed quiet. Finally, she heard La Motte's cheerful voice, and the silliness of her fears hit her hard; she felt embarrassed that she had let them get to her for a moment and returned to her room, puzzled by her own reaction.







CHAPTER III

Aren't these woods
Is there a place safer from danger than the jealous court?
Here we only feel the consequences of Adam,
The seasonal change, like the bite of frost
And rude criticism of the winter wind.
SHAKESPEARE.



La Motte arranged his little plan of living. His mornings were usually spent in shooting or fishing, and the dinner, thus provided by his industry, he relished with a keener appetite than had ever attended him at the luxurious tables of Paris. The afternoons he passed with his family: sometimes he would select a book from the few he had brought with him, and endeavoured to fix his attention to the words his lips repeated:—but his mind suffered little abstraction from its own cares, and the sentiment he pronounced left no trace behind it. Sometimes he conversed, but oftener sat in gloomy silence, musing upon the past, or anticipating the future.

La Motte set up his little routine. He usually spent his mornings shooting or fishing, and he enjoyed the dinner he prepared with a sharper appetite than he ever had at the lavish tables of Paris. He spent his afternoons with his family: sometimes he would pick a book from the few he had brought along and tried to focus on the words he was saying, but his mind quickly drifted back to his own worries, and the feelings he expressed left no impact. Sometimes he would talk, but more often he sat in silence, reflecting on the past or thinking about the future.

At these moments, Adeline, with a sweetness almost irresistible, endeavoured to enliven his spirits, and to withdraw him from himself. Seldom she succeeded; but when she did, the grateful looks of Madame La Motte, and the benevolent feelings of her own bosom, realized the cheerfulness she had at first only assumed. Adeline's mind had the happy art, or, perhaps, it were more just to say, the happy nature, of accommodating itself to her situation. Her present condition, though forlorn, was not devoid of comfort, and this comfort was confirmed by her virtues. So much she won upon the affections of her protectors, that Madame La Motte loved her as her child, and La Motte himself, though a man little susceptible of tenderness, could not be insensible to her solicitudes. Whenever he relaxed from the sullenness of misery, it was at the influence of Adeline.

In those moments, Adeline, with an almost irresistible sweetness, tried to lift his spirits and distract him from his worries. She rarely succeeded, but when she did, the grateful looks from Madame La Motte and her own warm feelings brought to life the cheerfulness she had initially feigned. Adeline had a natural ability, or perhaps it would be fairer to say a fortunate quality, to adapt to her situation. Her current state, while bleak, still had its comforts, which were reinforced by her virtues. She grew so close to her guardians that Madame La Motte loved her like her own child, and La Motte himself, though not easily affected by tenderness, couldn't ignore her caring nature. Whenever he broke free from his gloomy despair, it was due to Adeline's influence.

Peter regularly brought a weekly supply of provisions from Auboine, and, on those occasions, always quitted the town by a route contrary to that leading to the abbey. Several weeks having passed without molestation, La Motte dismissed all apprehension of pursuit, and at length became tolerably reconciled to the complexion of his circumstances.

Peter regularly brought a weekly supply of supplies from Auboine, and on those occasions, he always left the town by a different route than the one leading to the abbey. After several weeks had passed without any trouble, La Motte let go of all fear of being pursued and eventually became fairly comfortable with his situation.

As habit and effort strengthened the fortitude of Madame La Motte, the features of misfortune appeared to soften. The forest, which at first seemed to her a frightful solitude, had lost its terrific aspect; and that edifice, whose half demolished walls and gloomy desolation had struck her mind with the force of melancholy and dismay, was now beheld as a domestic asylum, and a safe refuge from the storms of power.

As time and determination built up Madame La Motte's strength, the harshness of her misfortunes seemed to fade. The forest, which once felt like a terrifying emptiness, had lost its menacing vibe; and that building, with its crumbling walls and somber decay that once overwhelmed her with sadness and fear, now felt like a home and a safe haven from the chaos of power.

She was a sensible and highly accomplished woman, and it became her chief delight to form the rising graces of Adeline, who had, as has been already shown, a sweetness of disposition, which made her quick to repay instruction with improvement, and indulgence with love. Never was Adeline so pleased as when she anticipated her wishes, and never so diligent as when she was employed in her business. The little affairs of the household she overlooked and managed with such admirable exactness, that Madame La Motte had neither anxiety nor care concerning them. And Adeline formed for herself in this barren situation, many amusements that occasionally banished the remembrance of her misfortunes. La Motte's books were her chief consolation. With one of these she would frequently ramble into the forest, where the river, winding through a glade, diffused coolness, and with its murmuring accents invited repose: there she would seat herself, and, resigned to the illusions of the page, pass many hours in oblivion of sorrow.

She was a sensible and highly accomplished woman, and it became her main joy to nurture the blossoming qualities of Adeline, who had, as previously mentioned, a sweet nature that made her quick to respond to guidance with growth and kindness with affection. Adeline was never as happy as when she anticipated her needs, and never as dedicated as when she was focused on her tasks. She managed the household affairs with such outstanding precision that Madame La Motte had no worries or concerns about them. In this challenging situation, Adeline created many little pleasures that sometimes helped her forget her troubles. La Motte's books were her greatest comfort. With one of these, she would often wander into the forest, where the river, meandering through a glade, brought a coolness and, with its soothing sounds, invited relaxation: there she would sit, lost in the world of the book, spending hours in forgetfulness of her sadness.

Here too, when her mind was tranquillized by the surrounding scenery, she wooed the gentle muse, and indulged in ideal happiness. The delight of these moments she commemorated in the following address:

Here too, when her mind was calmed by the beautiful scenery, she invited the gentle muse and immersed herself in ideal happiness. She captured the joy of these moments in the following address:

TO THE DREAMS OF IMAGINATION.
Dear, wild dreams of a creative mind!
Whose changing colors come from the imagination's art,
And by her magical power, they quickly unite.
In pleasing forms and moving scenes that connect with the
heart:
Oh! whether at her voice you gently respond
The thoughtful elegance of sorrow hangs heavy.
Or ascend majestically on the high crest of fear,
And stir the soul with intensely exciting sorrow;
Or, sweetly bright, you spread your cheerful colors,
Scenes of pleasure come into my sight,
Love spreads its purple wings over my head,
And stir the gentle idea into genuine passion.
Oh! still—shadowy figures! be present during my solitary moments,
Keep pursuing my true concerns with your deceptive abilities!

Madame La Motte had frequently expressed curiosity concerning the events of Adeline's life, and by what circumstances she had been thrown into a situation so perilous and mysterious as that in which La Motte had found her. Adeline had given a brief account of the manner in which she had been brought thither, but had always with tears entreated to be spared for that time from a particular relation of her history. Her spirits were not then equal to retrospection; but now that they were soothed by quiet, and strengthened by confidence, she one day gave Madame La Motte the following narration.

Madame La Motte had often been curious about the events of Adeline's life and how she ended up in such a dangerous and mysterious situation that La Motte had discovered her in. Adeline had provided a short summary of how she arrived there, but she always pleaded with tears to be excused from sharing the details of her story at that moment. Her emotional state hadn’t allowed her to look back; however, now that she felt calm and more confident, she decided to share her story with Madame La Motte one day.

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

I am the only child, said Adeline, Of Louis de St. Pierre, a chevalier of reputable family, but of small fortune, who for many years resided at Paris. Of my mother I have a faint remembrance: I lost her when I was only seven years old, and this was my first misfortune. At her death, my father gave up housekeeping, boarded me in a convent, and quitted Paris. Thus was I, at this early period of my life, abandoned to strangers. My father came sometimes to Paris; he then visited me, and I well remember the grief I used to feel when he bade me farewell. On these occasions, which wrung my heart with grief, he appeared unmoved; so that I often thought he had little tenderness for me. But he was my father, and the only person to whom I could look up for protection and love.

I’m the only child, said Adeline, of Louis de St. Pierre, a knight from a respectable family, but with little money, who lived in Paris for many years. I have a vague memory of my mother: I lost her when I was just seven years old, and that was my first misfortune. After her death, my father stopped running our home, sent me to a convent, and left Paris. So, at such a young age, I was left in the care of strangers. My father would occasionally come to Paris; he would visit me, and I remember the sadness I felt when he said goodbye. During those times, which broke my heart, he seemed unaffected, leading me to think he didn’t care much for me. But he was my father, the only person I could rely on for protection and love.

In this convent I continued till I was twelve years old. A thousand times I had entreated my father to take me home; but at first, motives of prudence, and afterwards of avarice, prevented him. I was now removed from this convent, and placed in another, where I learned my father intended I should take the veil. I will not attempt to express my surprise and grief on this occasion. Too long I had been immured in the walls of a cloister, and too much had I seen of the sullen misery of its votaries, not to feel horror and disgust at the prospect of being added to their number.

In this convent, I stayed until I was twelve years old. I had begged my father countless times to bring me home, but at first, he held back out of caution, and later, out of greed. I was then taken out of this convent and placed in another one, where I realized my father intended for me to become a nun. I can’t even begin to describe my shock and sadness at this news. I had been trapped behind the walls of a cloister for too long, and I had seen too much of the bleak misery of its inhabitants to not feel horror and revulsion at the thought of joining them.

The Lady Abbess was a woman of rigid decorum and severe devotion: exact in the observance of every detail of form, and never forgave an offence against ceremony. It was her method, when she wanted to make converts to her order, to denounce and terrify, rather than to persuade and allure. Hers were the arts of cunning practised upon fear, not those of sophistication upon reason. She employed numberless stratagems to gain me to her purpose, and they all wore the complexion of her character. But in the life to which she would have devoted me, I saw too many forms of real terror, to be overcome by the influence of her ideal host, and was resolute in rejecting the veil. Here I passed several years of miserable resistance against cruelty and superstition. My father I seldom saw; when I did, I entreated him to alter my destination; but he objected that his fortune was insufficient to support me in the world, and at length denounced vengeance on my head if I persisted in disobedience.

The Lady Abbess was a woman of strict decorum and intense devotion: precise in following every aspect of tradition, and she never forgave a violation of ceremony. When she wanted to recruit members for her order, she preferred to intimidate and frighten rather than to persuade and attract. Her methods were manipulative, relying on fear instead of rational arguments. She used countless tactics to sway me to her cause, all reflecting her character. However, in the life she wanted for me, I saw too many real horrors to be swayed by her idealized vision, and I was determined to reject her path. I endured several years of miserable defiance against cruelty and superstition. I rarely saw my father; when I did, I begged him to change my fate, but he insisted that his finances couldn't support me in the world and ultimately threatened me with punishment if I continued to disobey.

You, my dear Madam, can form little idea of the wretchedness of my situation, condemned to perpetual imprisonment, and imprisonment of the most dreadful kind, or to the vengeance of a father, from whom I had no appeal. My resolution relaxed—for some time I paused upon the choice of evils—but at length the horrors of the monastic life rose so fully to my view, that fortitude gave way before them. Excluded from the cheerful intercourse of society—from the pleasant view of nature—almost from the light of day—condemned to silence—rigid formality—abstinence and penance—condemned to forgo the delights of a world which imagination painted in the gayest and most alluring colours, and whose hues were, perhaps, not the less captivating because they were only ideal—such was the sate to which I was destined. Again my resolution was invigorated: my father's cruelty subdued tenderness, and roused indignation. Since he can forget, said I, the affection of a parent, and condemn his child without remorse to wretchedness and despair—the bond of filial and parental duty no longer subsists between us—he has himself dissolved it, and I will yet struggle for liberty and life.

You, my dear Madam, can hardly imagine how miserable my situation is, stuck in constant imprisonment, and the worst kind at that, or facing the wrath of a father, whom I can't even appeal to. My determination wavered—for a while I hesitated over which evil to choose—but eventually, the nightmares of monastic life became so clear to me that my courage crumbled. Cut off from the joyful interactions of society—from the beautiful sights of nature—almost from daylight itself—forced into silence—rigid formality—abstinence and penance—condemned to miss out on the pleasures of a world that my imagination painted in the brightest and most tempting colors, and whose charms were perhaps even more alluring because they were only in my mind—such was the fate I was facing. Once more, my resolve was strengthened: my father’s cruelty buried any tenderness I felt and sparked my indignation. Since he can forget a parent’s love and condemn his child to misery and despair without any guilt—the bond of duty between us is gone—he has severed it himself, and I will still fight for my freedom and my life.

Finding me unmoved by menace, the Lady Abbess had now recourse to more subtle measures: she condescended to smile, and even to flatter; but hers was the distorted smile of cunning, not the gracious emblem of kindness; it provoked disgust, instead of inspiring affection. She painted the character of a vestal in the most beautiful tints of art—its holy innocence—its mild dignity—its sublime devotion. I sighed as she spoke. This she regarded as a favourable symptom, and proceeded on her picture with more animation. She described the serenity of a monastic life—its security from the seductive charms, restless passions, and sorrowful vicissitudes of the world—the rapturous delights of religion, and the sweet reciprocal affection of the sisterhood.

Finding me unaffected by her threats, the Lady Abbess resorted to more subtle tactics: she smiled and even flattered me; but her smile was a cunning, twisted one, not a genuine expression of kindness; it made me feel disgusted instead of inspired. She painted the image of a nun in the most beautiful colors—its holy innocence, its gentle dignity, its deep devotion. I sighed as she spoke. She took this as a positive sign and continued with even more enthusiasm. She described the peace of a monastic life—its safety from the enticing charms, restless emotions, and sorrowful ups and downs of the world—the ecstatic joys of religion, and the close bond of affection among the sisters.

So highly she finished the piece, that the lurking lines of cunning would, to an inexperienced eye, have escaped detection. Mine was too sorrowfully informed. Too often had I witnessed the secret tear and bursting sigh of vain regret, the sullen pinings of discontent, and the mute anguish of despair. My silence and my manner assured her of my incredulity, and it was with difficulty that she preserved a decent composure.

So well she completed the piece that the hidden signs of deception would, to an inexperienced observer, have gone unnoticed. My understanding was too painfully aware. I had seen too many times the secret tear and the deep sigh of regret, the gloomy longings of dissatisfaction, and the silent pain of hopelessness. My silence and demeanor showed her my disbelief, and it was hard for her to maintain a proper composure.

My father, as may be imagined, was highly incensed at my perseverance, which he called obstinacy; but, what will not be so easily believed, he soon after relented, and appointed a day to take me from the convent. O! judge of my feelings when I received this intelligence. The joy it occasioned awakened all my gratitude; I forgot the former cruelty of my father, and that the present indulgence was less the effect of his kindness than of my resolution. I wept that I could not indulge his every wish.

My father, as you can imagine, was really upset by my determination, which he referred to as stubbornness; but, surprisingly, he soon changed his mind and set a date to take me from the convent. Oh! Just imagine how I felt when I got this news. The happiness it brought filled me with gratitude; I forgot my father's past harshness, and it became clear that this current kindness was more about my own determination than his goodwill. I cried because I couldn’t fulfill all of his wishes.

What days of blissful expectation were those that preceded my departure! The world, from which I had been hitherto secluded—the world, in which my fancy had been so often delighted to roam—whose paths were strewn with fadeless roses—whose every scene smiled in beauty and invited to delight—where all the people were good, and all the good happy—Ah! then that world was bursting upon my view. Let me catch the rapturous remembrance before it vanish! It is like the passing lights of autumn, that gleam for a moment on a hill, and then leave it to darkness. I counted the days and hours that withheld me from this fairy land. It was in the convent only that people were deceitful and cruel; it was there only that misery dwelt. I was quitting it all! How I pitied the poor nuns that were to be left behind! I would have given half that world I prized so much, had it been mine, to have taken them out with me.

What joyful days of anticipation those were before my departure! The world, from which I had been shut away until then—the world where my imagination had loved to wander—whose paths were filled with everlasting roses—where every scene was beautiful and inviting—where all the people were kind, and all the good were happy—Ah! then that world was opening up to me. Let me hold onto that exhilarating memory before it fades away! It's like the fleeting autumn light that briefly shines on a hill, only to leave it in darkness. I counted the days and hours that kept me from this enchanted land. It was only in the convent that people were deceitful and cruel; it was there that misery resided. I was leaving it all behind! I felt so sorry for the poor nuns who would be left behind! I would have given up half that world I cherished so much, if it had been mine, just to take them with me.

The long wished for day at last arrived. My father came, and for a moment my joy was lost in the sorrow of bidding farewell to my poor companions, for whom I had never felt such warmth of kindness as at this instant. I was soon beyond the gates of the convent. I looked around me, and viewed the vast vault of heaven no longer bounded by monastic walls, and the green earth extended in hill and dale to the round verge of the horizon! My heart danced with delight, tears swelled in my eyes, and for some moments I was unable to speak. My thoughts rose to heaven in sentiments of gratitude to the Giver of all good!

The long-awaited day finally arrived. My father came, and for a moment my happiness faded into sadness as I said goodbye to my beloved companions, who I had never felt such warmth towards as I did at that moment. I was soon beyond the convent gates. I looked around and saw the vast sky no longer confined by monastic walls, and the green earth stretched across hills and valleys to the round edge of the horizon! My heart soared with joy, tears filled my eyes, and for a few moments I couldn't find the words to speak. My thoughts lifted to the heavens in gratitude to the Giver of all good!

At length I returned to my father: Dear Sir, said I, how I thank you for my deliverance, and how I wish I could do every thing to oblige you!

At last, I went back to my father. "Dear Sir," I said, "thank you so much for saving me, and I wish I could do anything to please you!"

Return, then, to your convent, said he in a harsh accent. I shuddered: his look and manner jarred the tone of my feelings; they struck discord upon my heart! which had before responded only to harmony. The ardour of joy was in a moment repressed, and every object around me was saddened with the gloom of disappointment. It was not that I suspected my father would take me back to the convent; but that his feelings seemed so very dissonant to the joy and gratitude which I had but a moment before felt and expressed to him.—Pardon, Madam, a relation of these trivial circumstances; the strong vicissitudes of feeling which they impressed upon my heart, make me think them important, when they are, perhaps, only disgusting.

"Go back to your convent," he said harshly. I shuddered: his look and attitude clashed with my feelings; they created discord in my heart, which had only just responded to harmony. The joy I felt was suddenly stifled, and everything around me was overshadowed by disappointment. It wasn't that I thought my father would actually send me back to the convent; it was just that his feelings seemed so at odds with the joy and gratitude I had just felt and shared with him. —Forgive me, Madam, for recounting these trivial details; the intense shifts in emotion they caused in me make me see them as significant, even if they might just seem annoying.

No, my dear, said Madame La Motte, they are interesting to me; they illustrate little traits of character, which I love to observe. You are worthy of all my regards, and from this moment I give my tenderest pity to your misfortunes, and my affection to your goodness.

No, my dear, said Madame La Motte, they interest me; they show little traits of character, which I enjoy observing. You deserve all my respect, and from now on, I offer my deepest sympathy for your troubles, and my affection for your kindness.

These words melted the heart of Adeline; she kissed the hand which Madame held out, and remained a few minutes silent. At length she said, May I deserve this goodness! and may I ever be thankful to God, who, in giving me such a friend, has raised me to comfort and hope!

These words touched Adeline's heart; she kissed the hand that Madame extended and stayed silent for a few minutes. Finally, she said, "May I deserve this kindness! And may I always be thankful to God, who, by giving me such a friend, has lifted me up to comfort and hope!"

My father's house was situated a few leagues on the other side of Paris, and in our way to it we passed through that city. What a novel scene! Where were now the solemn faces, the demure manners I had been accustomed to see in the convent? Every countenance was here animated, either by business or pleasure; every step was airy, and every smile was gay. All the people appeared like friends; they looked and smiled at me; I smiled again, and wished to have told them how pleased I was. How delightful, said I, to live surrounded by friends!

My dad's house was located a few miles beyond Paris, and on our way there, we passed through the city. What a different scene! Where were the serious faces and reserved behavior I was used to seeing in the convent? Everyone here seemed lively, whether they were working or enjoying themselves; every stride felt light, and every smile was cheerful. All the people looked like friends; they glanced and smiled at me; I smiled back, wishing I could tell them how happy I was. How amazing it is, I thought, to live surrounded by friends!

What crowded streets! what magnificent hotels! what splendid equipages! I scarcely observed that the streets were narrow, or the way dangerous. What bustle, what tumult, what delight! I could never be sufficiently thankful that I was removed from the convent. Again I was going to express my gratitude to my father, but his looks forbad me, and I was silent. I am too diffuse; even the faint forms which memory reflects of passed delight are grateful to the heart. The shadow of pleasure is still gazed upon with a melancholy enjoyment, though the substance is fled beyond our reach.

What crowded streets! What amazing hotels! What beautiful carriages! I barely noticed that the streets were narrow or that the way was dangerous. What energy, what chaos, what joy! I could never be thankful enough that I was away from the convent. I was about to express my gratitude to my father again, but his expression stopped me, so I stayed quiet. I'm too wordy; even the faint memories of past joy are heartwarming. The memory of happiness is still looked at with a bittersweet pleasure, even though the real thing has slipped beyond our reach.

Having quitted Paris, which I left with many sighs, and gazed upon till the towers of every church dissolved in distance from my view, we entered upon a gloomy and unfrequented road. It was evening when we reached a wild heath; I looked round in search of a human dwelling, but could find none; and not a human being was to be seen. I experienced something of what I used to feel in the convent; my heart had not been so sad since I left it. Of my father, who still sat in silence, I inquired if we were near home; he answered in the affirmative. Night came on, however, before we reached the place of our destination; it was a lone house on the waste; but I need not describe it to you, Madam. When the carriage stopped, two men appeared at the door, and assisted us to alight: so gloomy were their countenances, and so few their words, I almost fancied myself again in the convent; certain it is, I had not seen such melancholy faces since I quitted it. Is this a part of the world I have so fondly contemplated? said I.

Having left Paris, which I departed with many sighs, and watched until the towers of every church faded from view, we took a dark and lonely road. It was evening when we arrived at a wild heath; I looked around for a human dwelling, but found none, and not a single person was in sight. I felt something akin to what I used to experience in the convent; my heart hadn’t been this heavy since I left. I asked my father, who remained silent, if we were close to home; he replied that we were. However, night fell before we reached our destination; it was a solitary house on the barren land, but I need not describe it to you, Madam. When the carriage stopped, two men appeared at the door and helped us get out: their faces were so gloomy and their words so few that I almost felt like I was back in the convent; it’s certain I hadn’t seen such sad expressions since then. Is this the part of the world I have so fondly imagined? I said.

The interior appearance of the house was desolate and mean; I was surprised that my father had chosen such a place for his habitation, and also that no woman was to be seen; but I knew that inquiry would only produce a reproof, and was therefore silent. At supper, the two men I had before seen sat down with us; they said little, but seemed to observe me much. I was confused and displeased; which my father noticing, frowned at them with a look which convinced me he meant more than I comprehended. When the cloth was drawn, my father took my hand and conducted me to the door of my chamber; having set down the candle, and wished me good night, he left me to my own solitary thoughts.

The inside of the house looked bleak and shabby. I was surprised my dad picked such a place to live, and there were no women around. But I knew asking questions would only get me in trouble, so I stayed quiet. At dinner, the two men I had seen before joined us. They didn’t say much but seemed to scrutinize me closely. I felt confused and annoyed, and my dad noticed. He shot them a look that made it clear he meant more than I understood. After dinner, my dad took my hand and led me to the door of my room. He set down the candle, wished me goodnight, and left me to my own thoughts.

How different were they from those I had indulged a few hours before! then expectation, hope, delight, danced before me; now melancholy and disappointment chilled the ardour of my mind, and discoloured my future prospect. The appearance of every thing around conduced to depress me. On the floor lay a small bed without curtains or hangings; two old chairs and a table were all the remaining furniture in the room. I went to the window, with an intention of looking out upon the surrounding scene, and found it was grated. I was shocked at this circumstance, and comparing it with the lonely situation and the strange appearance of the house, together with the countenances and behaviour of the men who had supped with us, I was lost in a labyrinth of conjecture.

How different were they from the ones I had enjoyed just a few hours earlier! Back then, anticipation, hope, and joy filled my mind; now, sadness and disappointment had dulled my thoughts and tainted my outlook on the future. Everything around me seemed to contribute to my gloom. On the floor lay a small bed with no curtains or coverings; the only other furniture in the room was two old chairs and a table. I walked over to the window, intending to look out at the surrounding scene, but found it was barred. This surprised me, and when I compared it to the isolated location and odd appearance of the house, along with the expressions and behavior of the men who had dined with us, I was overwhelmed with a whirlwind of speculation.

At length I lay down to sleep; but the anxiety of my mind prevented repose; gloomy unpleasing images flitted before my fancy, and I fell into a sort of waking dream: I thought that I was in a lonely forest with my father; his looks were severe, and his gestures menacing: he upbraided me for leaving the convent, and while he spoke, drew from his pocket a mirror, which he held before my face; I looked in it and saw, (my blood now thrills as I repeat it) I saw myself wounded, and bleeding profusely. Then I thought myself in the house again; and suddenly heard these words, in accents so distinct, that for some time after I awoke I could scarcely believe them ideal, Depart this house, destruction hovers here.

Eventually, I lay down to sleep, but my anxious mind wouldn’t let me relax. Gloomy, unsettling images flashed before me, and I slipped into a kind of waking dream: I imagined I was in a lonely forest with my father; his expression was stern, and his gestures threatening. He scolded me for leaving the convent, and as he spoke, he pulled a mirror from his pocket and held it up to my face; I looked into it and saw—my blood runs cold just thinking about it—I saw myself wounded and bleeding profusely. Then I thought I was back in the house and suddenly heard these words, so clear that for a long time after waking, I could hardly believe they were just in my mind: "Leave this house, destruction is nearby."

I was awakened by a footstep on the stairs; it was my father retiring to his chamber; the lateness of the hour surprised me, for it was past midnight.

I was woken up by a footstep on the stairs; it was my dad heading to his room. I was surprised by how late it was since it was after midnight.

On the following morning, the party of the preceding evening assembled at breakfast, and were as gloomy and silent as before. The table was spread by a boy of my father's; but the cook and the housemaid, whatever they might be, were invisible.

On the next morning, the group from the night before gathered for breakfast, and they were just as gloomy and quiet as before. A boy from my father's household set the table, but the cook and the housemaid, whatever they were up to, were nowhere to be seen.

The next morning I was surprised, on attempting to leave my chamber, to find the door locked; I waited a considerable time before I ventured to call; when I did, no answer was returned; I then went to the window, and called more loudly, but my own voice was still the only sound I heard. Near an hour I passed in a state of surprise and terror not to be described: at length I heard a person coming up stairs, and I renewed the call; I was answered, that my father had that morning set off for Paris, whence he would return in a few days; in the meanwhile he had ordered me to be confined in my chamber. On my expressing surprise and apprehension at this circumstance, I was assured I had nothing to fear, and that I should live as well as if I was at liberty.

The next morning, I was surprised to find the door locked when I tried to leave my room. I waited for a while before I dared to call out; when I did, I got no response. Then I went to the window and called out even louder, but I still only heard my own voice. I spent nearly an hour feeling a mix of shock and fear that I can't describe. Finally, I heard someone coming up the stairs, and I called out again. I was told that my father had left for Paris that morning and would be back in a few days; in the meantime, he had ordered that I be kept in my room. When I expressed my surprise and worry about this, I was reassured that I had nothing to fear and that I would be just as comfortable as if I were free.

The latter part of this speech seemed to contain an odd kind of comfort; I made little reply, but submitted to necessity. Once more I was abandoned to sorrowful reflection: what a day was the one I now passed! alone, and agitated with grief and apprehension. I endeavoured to conjecture the cause of this harsh treatment; and at length concluded it was designed by my father, as a punishment for my former disobedience. But why abandon me to the power of strangers, to men, whose countenances bore the stamp of villainy so strongly as to impress even my inexperienced mind with terror! Surmise involved me only deeper in perplexity, yet I found it impossible to forbear pursuing the subject; and the day was divided between lamentation and conjecture. Night at length came, and such a night! Darkness brought new terrors: I looked round the chamber for some means of fastening my door on the inside, but could perceive none; at last I contrived to place the back of a chair in an oblique direction, so as to render it secure.

The latter part of this speech felt strangely comforting; I said little in response and accepted what I had to. Once again, I was left to sad thoughts: what a day it had been! Alone and filled with grief and worry. I tried to guess the reason for this harsh treatment; eventually, I figured it was my father's way of punishing me for my past disobedience. But why leave me at the mercy of strangers, men whose faces looked so villainous that they terrified even my inexperienced mind? Speculation only deepened my confusion, yet I couldn’t help but keep thinking about it; my day was spent in mourning and wondering. Night finally arrived, and what a night it was! The darkness brought new fears: I searched the room for something to lock my door with from the inside but found nothing. In the end, I managed to position the back of a chair at an angle to make it secure.

I had scarcely done this, and lain down upon my bed in my clothes, not to sleep, but to watch, when I heard a rap at the door of the house, which was opened and shut so quickly, that the person who had knocked, seemed only to deliver a letter or message. Soon after, I heard voices at intervals in a room below stairs, sometimes speaking very low, and sometimes rising all together, as if in dispute. Something more excusable than curiosity made me endeavour to distinguish what was said, but in vain; now and then a word or two reached me, and once I heard my name repeated, but no more.

I had barely done this and laid down on my bed in my clothes, not to sleep, but to keep watch, when I heard a knock at the door. It was opened and closed so quickly that the person who knocked seemed just to drop off a letter or message. Soon after, I heard voices coming from a room downstairs, sometimes speaking very softly, and sometimes all rising at once, as if they were arguing. A stronger urge than curiosity prompted me to try to make out what they were saying, but I couldn’t. Occasionally, a word or two came through, and once I heard my name mentioned, but nothing more.

Thus passed the hours till midnight, when all became still. I had lain for some time in a state between fear and hope, when I heard the lock of my door gently moved backward and forward; I started up and listened; for a moment it was still, then the noise returned, and I heard a whispering without; my spirits died away, but I was yet sensible. Presently an effort was made at the door, as if to force it; I shrieked aloud, and immediately heard the voices of the men I had seen at my father's table: they called loudly for the door to be opened, and on my returning no answer, uttered dreadful execrations. I had just strength sufficient to move to the window, in the desperate hope of escaping thence; but my feeble efforts could not even shake the bars. O! how can I recollect these moments of horror, and be sufficiently thankful that I am now in safety and comfort!

Thus passed the hours until midnight, when everything became quiet. I had been lying there for a while, caught between fear and hope, when I heard the lock of my door being gently moved back and forth. I jumped up and listened; for a moment there was silence, then the noise returned, and I heard whispering outside. My spirits sank, but I was still aware. Soon, there was an attempt to force the door; I screamed, and immediately heard the voices of the men I had seen at my father's table. They shouted loudly for the door to be opened, and when I didn’t respond, they shouted terrible curses. I barely had enough strength to move to the window, desperately hoping to escape through it, but my weak attempts couldn’t even shake the bars. Oh! How can I remember those moments of horror and be thankful that I am now safe and comfortable!

They remained some time at the door, then they quitted it, and went down stairs. How my heart revived at every step of their departure! I fell upon my knees, thanked God that he had preserved me this time, and implored his further protection. I was rising from this short prayer, when suddenly I heard a noise in a different part of the room, and on looking round, I perceived the door of a small closet open, and two men enter the chamber.

They stayed at the door for a while, then left and went downstairs. My heart lifted with every step they took away! I dropped to my knees, thanked God for keeping me safe this time, and asked for His continued protection. I was getting up from this brief prayer when, suddenly, I heard a noise in another part of the room. When I looked around, I saw the door of a small closet open, and two men step into the room.

They seized me, and I sunk senseless in their arms; how long I remained in this condition I know not; but on reviving, I perceived myself again alone, and heard several voices from below stairs. I had presence of mind to run to the door of the closet, my only chance of escape; but it was locked! I then recollected it was possible that the ruffians might have forgot to turn the key of the chamber door, which was held by the chair; but here, also, I was disappointed. I clasped my hands in an agony of despair, and stood for some time immoveable.

They grabbed me, and I passed out in their arms; I don’t know how long I stayed like that, but when I came to, I found myself alone again and heard several voices downstairs. I had the presence of mind to run to the closet door, my only chance to escape, but it was locked! Then I remembered that the criminals might have forgotten to lock the bedroom door, which was held by a chair; but I was let down again. I clasped my hands in despair and stood frozen for a while.

A violent noise from below roused me, and soon after I heard people ascending the stairs: I now gave myself up for lost. The steps approached, the door of the closet was again unlocked. I stood calmly, and again saw the men enter the chamber; I neither spoke, nor resisted: the faculties of my soul were wrought up beyond the power of feeling; as a violent blow on the body stuns for awhile the sense of pain. They led me down stairs; the door of a room below was thrown open, and I beheld a stranger; it was then that my senses returned; I shrieked and resisted, but was forced along. It is unnecessary to say that this stranger was Monsieur La Motte, or to add, that I shall for ever bless him as my deliverer.

A loud noise from below woke me up, and soon after, I heard people coming up the stairs: I thought I was done for. The footsteps got closer, and the closet door was unlocked again. I stood still, watching the men enter the room; I didn’t speak or resist: my mind was so overwhelmed that I couldn't feel anything, like how a hard hit to the body can leave you dazed. They led me downstairs; the door to a room below swung open, and I saw a stranger; that’s when I finally came to my senses; I screamed and fought back, but I was dragged along. It's not necessary to mention that this stranger was Monsieur La Motte, or to add that I will always be grateful to him as my savior.

Adeline ceased to speak; Madame La Motte remained silent. There were some circumstances in Adeline's narrative, which raised all her curiosity. She asked if Adeline believed her father to be a party in this mysterious affair. Adeline, though it was impossible to doubt that he had been principally and materially concerned in some part of it, thought, or said she thought, he was innocent of any intention against her life. Yet, what motive, said Madame La Motte, could there be for a degree of cruelty so apparently unprofitable?—Here the inquiry ended; and Adeline confessed she had pursued it till her mind shrunk from all further research.

Adeline stopped talking; Madame La Motte stayed quiet. Some details in Adeline's story sparked her curiosity. She asked if Adeline thought her father was involved in this mysterious situation. Adeline, even though it was hard to deny that he had played a significant role in some way, believed—or claimed to believe—that he had no intention of harming her. But what motive, Madame La Motte questioned, could there possibly be for such seemingly pointless cruelty?—At that point, the discussion ended; and Adeline admitted she had thought about it until her mind couldn't handle any more.

The sympathy which such uncommon misfortune excited, Madame La Motte now expressed without reserve, and this expression of it strengthened the tie of mutual friendship. Adeline felt her spirits relieved by the disclosure she had made to Madame La Motte; and the latter acknowledged the value of the confidence, by an increase of affectionate attentions.

The sympathy that such an uncommon misfortune stirred up, Madame La Motte now expressed openly, and this show of support strengthened their bond of friendship. Adeline felt a sense of relief after sharing her thoughts with Madame La Motte; in return, Madame La Motte recognized the importance of this trust with even more affectionate gestures.







CHAPTER IV

My best month of life
Is fallen into the dry, yellow leaf.
MACBETH.
Often, unknowingly and unknown,
He spent his endless afternoons alone,
In the autumn woods:
He often used to act in a hurry,
Shut down the social board to leave.
WHARTON.

La Motte had now passed above a month in this seclusion; and his wife had the pleasure to see him recover tranquillity and even cheerfulness. In this pleasure Adeline warmly participated; and she might justly have congratulated herself as one cause of his restoration; her cheerfulness and delicate attention had effected what Madame La Motte's greater anxiety had failed to accomplish. La Motte did not seem regardless of her amiable disposition, and sometimes thanked her in a manner more earnest than was usual with him. She, in her turn, considered him as her only protector and now felt towards him the affection of a daughter.

La Motte had now spent over a month in this solitude, and his wife was pleased to see him regain his calmness and even his happiness. Adeline was very much a part of this joy, and she could rightly take some credit for his recovery; her positivity and gentle care had achieved what Madame La Motte's greater worry had not. La Motte didn't seem indifferent to her kind nature, and at times, he expressed his gratitude in a more sincere way than he usually did. She, for her part, saw him as her only protector and now felt a daughterly affection for him.

The time she had spent in this peaceful retirement had softened the remembrance of past events, and restored her mind to its natural tone: and when memory brought back to her view the former short and romantic expectations of happiness, though she gave a sigh to the rapturous illusion, she less lamented the disappointment, than rejoiced in her present security and comfort.

The time she had spent in this peaceful retirement had made her remember past events with more ease, bringing her mind back to its natural state. And when memories of her earlier, brief, and romantic hopes for happiness returned, she sighed for the thrilling illusion but mourned the disappointment less than she celebrated her current sense of security and comfort.

But the satisfaction which La Motte's cheerfulness diffused around him was of short continuance; he became suddenly gloomy and reserved; the society of his family was no longer grateful to him; and he would spend whole hours in the most secluded parts of the forest, devoted to melancholy and secret grief. He did not, as formerly, indulge the humour of his sadness, without restraint, in the presence of others; he now evidently endeavoured to conceal it, and affected a cheerfulness that was too artificial to escape detection.

But the happiness La Motte spread around him didn't last long; he suddenly became moody and withdrawn. Being with his family no longer brought him joy, and he would spend hours in the quietest parts of the forest, lost in sadness and hidden sorrow. Unlike before, he didn't let his sadness show freely around others; he actively tried to hide it now and pretended to be cheerful, but it was too forced to go unnoticed.

His servant Peter, either impelled by curiosity or kindness, sometimes followed him unseen, into the forest. He observed him frequently retire to one particular spot, in a remote part, which having gained, he always disappeared, before Peter, who was obliged to follow at a distance, could exactly notice where. All his endeavours, now prompted by wonder and invigorated by disappointment, were unsuccessful, and he was at length compelled to endure the tortures of unsatisfied curiosity.

His servant Peter, either driven by curiosity or kindness, sometimes followed him unnoticed into the forest. He often watched him go to one specific spot in a secluded area, where he would always vanish before Peter, who had to keep his distance, could see exactly where. All his efforts, now fueled by wonder and strengthened by frustration, were in vain, and he was ultimately forced to suffer the pain of unanswered curiosity.

This change in the manners and habits of her husband was too conspicuous to pass unobserved by Madame La Motte, who endeavoured, by all the stratagems which affection could suggest, or female invention supply, to win him to her confidence. He seemed insensible to the influence of the first, and withstood the wiles of the latter. Finding all her efforts insufficient to dissipate the glooms which overhung his mind, or to penetrate their secret cause, she desisted from further attempt, and endeavoured to submit to this mysterious distress.

This change in her husband's behavior and habits was too noticeable for Madame La Motte to ignore. She tried everything she could think of, using all her affection and cleverness, to get him to open up to her. He seemed unaffected by her love and resisted her clever tactics. After realizing that none of her efforts could lift the gloom that surrounded his mind or uncover its secret cause, she gave up trying and tried to accept this mysterious sadness.

Week after week elapsed, and the same unknown cause sealed the lips and corroded the heart of La Motte. The place of his visitation in the forest had not been traced. Peter had frequently examined round the spot where his master disappeared, but had never discovered any recess which could be supposed to conceal him. The astonishment of the servant was at length raised to an insupportable degree, and he communicated to his mistress the subject of it.

Week after week went by, and the same unknown reason kept La Motte silent and troubled. The location in the forest where he had been seen had not been found. Peter often searched around the area where his master vanished but never found any hidden place where he could be hiding. Eventually, the servant's astonishment reached an unbearable level, and he shared his concerns with his mistress.

The emotion which this information excited, she disguised from Peter, and reproved him for the means he had taken to gratify his curiosity. But she revolved this circumstance in her thoughts, and comparing it with the late alteration in his temper, her uneasiness was renewed, and her perplexity considerably increased. After much consideration, being unable to assign any other motive for his conduct, she began to attribute it to the influence of illicit passion; and her heart, which now out-ran her judgment, confirmed the supposition, and roused all the torturing pangs of jealousy.

The feelings this information stirred up, she hid from Peter and scolded him for how he had satisfied his curiosity. But she kept thinking about this situation, and comparing it to his recent change in mood, her anxiety returned, and her confusion grew. After a lot of thought, unable to find any other reason for his behavior, she started to think it was due to the influence of forbidden desire; and her heart, which was now racing ahead of her judgment, confirmed this idea and brought back all the painful stabs of jealousy.

Comparatively speaking, she had never known affliction till now: she had abandoned her dearest friends and connexions—had relinquished the gaieties, the luxuries, and almost the necessaries of life;—fled with her family into exile, an exile the most dreary and comfortless; experiencing the evils of reality, and those of apprehension, united: all these she had patiently endured, supported by the affection of him for whose sake she suffered. Though that affection, indeed, had for some time appeared to be abated, she had borne its decrease with fortitude; but the last stroke of calamity, hitherto withheld, now came with irresistible force—the love, of which she lamented the loss, she now believed was transferred to another.

Comparatively speaking, she had never experienced hardship until now: she had given up her closest friends and connections—had let go of the fun, the luxuries, and almost the essentials of life;—fled with her family into exile, an exile that was the bleakest and most comfortless; facing the harshness of reality, along with the worries about it, all at once: she had endured all these things patiently, supported by the love of the person for whom she suffered. Though that love had seemed to fade for a while, she had handled its decline with strength; but the final blow of misfortune, which had previously been held back, now struck with overwhelming force—the love, which she mourned losing, she now believed had shifted to someone else.

The operation of strong passion confuses the powers of reason, and warps them to its own particular direction. Her usual degree of judgment, unopposed by the influence of her heart, would probably have pointed out to Madame La Motte some circumstances upon the subject of her distress, equivocal, if not contradictory to her suspicions. No such circumstances appeared to her, and she did not long hesitate to decide, that Adeline was the object of her husband's attachment. Her beauty out of the question, who else, indeed, could it be in a spot thus secluded from the world?

The force of strong emotion clouds rational thought and twists it to its own ends. Under normal circumstances, without the influence of her feelings, Madame La Motte would likely have recognized some factors regarding her distress that were unclear, if not outright contradictory to her fears. However, no such factors came to mind, and she quickly concluded that Adeline was the one her husband was infatuated with. Considering her beauty aside, who else could it possibly be in such an isolated place?

The same cause destroyed, almost at the same moment, her only remaining comfort; and when she wept that she could no longer look for happiness in the affection of La Motte, she wept also, that she could no longer seek solace in the friendship of Adeline. She had too great an esteem for her, to doubt, at first, the integrity of her conduct; but, in spite of reason, her heart no longer expanded to her with its usual warmth of kindness. She shrunk from her confidence; and as the secret broodings of jealousy cherished her suspicions, she became less kind to her, even in manner.

The same reason took away, almost at the same moment, her last remaining comfort; and when she cried because she could no longer find happiness in La Motte’s affection, she also cried that she could no longer look for comfort in Adeline’s friendship. She held her in such high regard that she initially had no doubt about her integrity; but, despite what she knew to be true, her heart no longer responded to her with its usual warmth of kindness. She recoiled from her trust; and as secret thoughts of jealousy fostered her suspicions, she became less kind to her, even in how she acted.

Adeline, observing the change, at first attributed it to accident, and afterwards to a temporary displeasure arising from some little inadvertency in her conduct. She, therefore, increased her assiduities; but perceiving, contrary to all expectation, that her efforts to please failed of their usual consequence, and that the reserve of Madame's manner rather increased than abated, she became seriously uneasy, and resolved to seek an explanation. This Madame La Motte as sedulously avoided, and was for some time able to prevent. Adeline, however, too much interested in the event to yield to delicate scruples, pressed the subject so closely, that Madame, at first agitated and confused, at length invented some idle excuse, and laughed off the affair.

Adeline noticed the change and initially thought it was just a coincidence, then later believed it was due to some minor mistake she had made. So, she tried even harder to win Madame's favor; however, to her surprise, her efforts to please didn’t have the usual effect, and Madame’s coldness only seemed to grow. This made Adeline genuinely anxious, and she decided to ask for an explanation. Madame La Motte did everything she could to avoid this and managed to keep Adeline at bay for a while. However, Adeline, too invested in what was happening to worry about being polite, pressed the issue so persistently that Madame, initially flustered and uneasy, eventually came up with a silly excuse and laughed off the whole situation.

She now saw the necessity of subduing all appearance of reserve towards Adeline; and though her art could not conquer the prejudices of passion, it taught her to assume, with tolerable success, the aspect of kindness. Adeline was deceived, and was again at peace. Indeed, confidence in the sincerity and goodness of others was her weakness. But the pangs of stifled jealousy struck deeper to the heart of Madame La Motte, and she resolved, at all events, to obtain some certainty upon the subject of her suspicions.

She now realized she needed to get rid of any signs of reserve toward Adeline. Even though her skills couldn't change the feelings of passion, they helped her convincingly act kind. Adeline was fooled and felt at ease again. In fact, trusting the sincerity and goodness of others was her weakness. However, the pain of suppressed jealousy hit Madame La Motte harder, and she decided, no matter what, to find out the truth about her suspicions.

She now condescended to a meanness which she had before despised, and ordered Peter to watch the steps of his master, in order to discover, if possible, the place of his visitation! So much did passion win upon her judgment, by time and indulgence, that she sometimes ventured even to doubt the integrity of Adeline, and afterwards proceeded to believe it possible that the object of La Motte's rambles might be an assignation with her. What suggested this conjecture was, that Adeline frequently took long walks alone in the forest, and sometimes was absent from the abbey for many hours. This circumstance, which Madame La Motte had at first attributed to Adeline's fondness for the picturesque beauties of nature, now operated forcibly upon her imagination, and she could view it in no other light, than as affording an opportunity for secret conversation with her husband.

She now resorted to a level of pettiness that she had previously looked down on, and told Peter to keep an eye on her husband's movements to find out, if possible, where he was going! Her emotions were so overwhelming that they clouded her judgment, and she even started to question Adeline's honesty, eventually convincing herself that La Motte's outings might be meetings with her. What led her to this idea was that Adeline often took long walks alone in the forest and sometimes disappeared from the abbey for several hours. Initially, Madame La Motte had believed that Adeline's lengthy absences were just due to her love of nature's beauty, but now this thought consumed her mind, and she could only see it as a chance for secret meetings with her husband.

Peter obeyed the orders of his mistress with alacrity, for they were warmly seconded by his own curiosity. All his endeavours were, however, fruitless; he never dared to follow La Motte near enough to observe the place of his last retreat. Her impatience thus heightened by delay, and her passion stimulated by difficulty, Madame La Motte now resolved to apply to her husband for an explanation of his conduct.

Peter followed his mistress's orders eagerly because he was also very curious. However, all his efforts were in vain; he never dared to get close enough to La Motte to see where he had gone. Her impatience grew with the delay, and her frustration increased by the challenge, so Madame La Motte decided to ask her husband for an explanation of his behavior.

After some consideration concerning the manner most likely to succeed with him, she went to La Motte; but when she entered the room where he sat, forgetting all her concerted address, she fell at his feet, and was for some moments lost in tears. Surprised at her attitude and distress, he inquired the occasion of it, and was answered, that it was caused by his own conduct. My conduct! What part of it, pray? inquired he.

After thinking about the best way to approach him, she went to La Motte; but when she walked into the room where he was sitting, she forgot everything she had planned and fell at his feet, overwhelmed with tears. Surprised by her posture and distress, he asked what was wrong, and she replied that it was because of his actions. "My actions? Which part of them, if I may ask?" he inquired.

Your reserve, your secret sorrow, and frequent absence from the abbey.

Your reserve, your hidden sadness, and your frequent absence from the abbey.

Is it then so wonderful, that a man who has lost almost every thing should sometimes lament his misfortunes? or so criminal to attempt concealing his grief, that he must be blamed for it by those whom he would save from the pain of sharing it?

Is it really so surprising that a man who has lost almost everything sometimes feels sad about his troubles? Or is it so wrong for him to try to hide his pain that he deserves to be criticized by those he wants to protect from feeling it too?

Having uttered these words, he quitted the room, leaving Madame La Motte lost in surprise, but somewhat relieved from the pressure of her former suspicions. Still however, she pursued Adeline with an eye of scrutiny; and the mask of kindness would sometimes fall off, and discover the features of distrust. Adeline, without exactly knowing why, felt less at ease and less happy in her presence than formerly; her spirits drooped, and she would often, when alone, weep at the forlornness of her condition. Formerly, her remembrance of past sufferings was lost in the friendship of Madame La Motte; now, though her behaviour was too guarded to betray any striking instances of unkindness, there was something in her manner which chilled the hopes of Adeline, unable as she was to analyze it. But a circumstance which soon occurred, suspended for a while the jealousy of Madame La Motte, and roused her husband from his state of gloomy stupefaction.

Having said this, he left the room, leaving Madame La Motte in shock but somewhat relieved from her earlier suspicions. However, she still watched Adeline closely; the mask of kindness would sometimes slip, revealing a look of distrust. Adeline, without really understanding why, felt less comfortable and less happy around her than before; her spirits sank, and she often wept alone over the loneliness of her situation. Previously, her memories of past suffering were overshadowed by her friendship with Madame La Motte; now, even though her behavior was too careful to show any obvious signs of unkindness, there was something about her manner that dampened Adeline’s hopes, which she couldn't quite pinpoint. But an event that soon took place interrupted Madame La Motte’s jealousy and brought her husband out of his gloomy stupor.

Peter, having been one day to Auboine for the weekly supply of provisions, returned with intelligence that awakened in La Motte new apprehension and anxiety.

Peter, after going to Auboine one day for the weekly supply of provisions, came back with news that stirred up new worry and anxiety in La Motte.

Oh, Sir! I have heard something that has astonished me, as well it may, cried Peter, and so it will you when you come to know it. As I was standing in the blacksmith's shop, while the smith was driving a nail into the horse's shoe (by the by, the horse lost it in an odd way, I'll tell you, Sir, how it was)—

Oh, Sir! I've heard something that has really shocked me, as I'm sure it will you when you find out. While I was standing in the blacksmith's shop, the smith was putting a nail into the horse's shoe (by the way, the horse lost it in a strange way; I'll tell you how it happened, Sir)—

Nay, prithee leave it till another time, and go on with your story.

No, please save it for another time and continue with your story.

Why then, Sir, as I was standing in the blacksmith's shop, comes in a man with a pipe in his mouth, and a large pouch of tobacco in his hand—

Why then, Sir, as I was standing in the blacksmith's shop, a man walked in with a pipe in his mouth and a big pouch of tobacco in his hand—

Well—what has the pipe to do with the story?

Well—what does the pipe have to do with the story?

Nay, Sir, you put me out; I can't go on, unless you let me tell it my own way. As I was saying—with a pipe in his mouth—I think I was there your honour!

Nay, Sir, you’re interrupting me; I can't continue unless you let me tell it how I want. As I was saying—with a pipe in his mouth—I believe I was there, your honor!

Yes, yes.

Yep, yep.

He sets himself down on the bench, and, taking the pipe from his mouth, says to the blacksmith—Neighbour, do you know any body of the Name of La Motte hereabouts!—Bless your honour, I turned all of a cold sweat in a minute!—Is not your honour well! shall I fetch you any thing?

He sits down on the bench and, taking the pipe out of his mouth, says to the blacksmith, "Hey neighbor, do you know anyone by the name of La Motte around here?"—"Bless you, sir, I broke out in a cold sweat all of a sudden!"—"Aren't you feeling well? Should I bring you anything?"

No—but be short in your narrative.

No—but keep your story short.

La Motte! La Motte! said the blacksmith, I think I've heard the name.—Have you? said I, you're cunning then, for there's no such person hereabouts, to my knowledge.

La Motte! La Motte! said the blacksmith, I think I've heard that name. —Have you? I replied, you're clever then, because as far as I know, there's no one by that name around here.

Fool!—why did you say that?

Fool!—why would you say that?

Because I did not want them to know your honour was here; and if I had not managed very cleverly, they would have found me out. There is no such person hereabouts, to my knowledge, says I.—Indeed! says the blacksmith, you know more of the neighbourhood than I do then.—Aye, says the man with the pipe, that's very true. How came you to know so much of the neighbourhood? I came here twenty-six years ago, come next St. Michael, and you know more than I do. How came you to know so much?

Because I didn’t want them to know you were here, and if I hadn’t played it smart, they would have caught on. There’s no one like that around here, as far as I know, I said. —Really? said the blacksmith, you must know the area better than I do then. —Yeah, the guy with the pipe said, that’s definitely true. How did you get to know so much about the area? I arrived here twenty-six years ago, come this St. Michael’s Day, and you know more than I do. How did you learn all this?

With that he put his pipe in his mouth, and gave a whiff full in my face. Lord! your honour, I trembled from head to foot. Nay, as for that matter says I, I don't know more than other people, but I'm sure I never heard of such a man as that.—Pray, says the blacksmith, staring me full in the face, an't you the man that was inquiring some time since about St. Clair's abbey?—Well, what of that? says I, what does that prove?—Why they say somebody lives in the abbey now, said the man, turning to the other; and, for aught I know, it may be this same La Motte.—Aye, or for aught I know either, says the man with the pipe, getting up from the bench, and you know more of this than you'll own. I'll lay my life on't, this Monsieur La Motte lives at the abbey.—Aye, says I, you are out there, for he does not live at the abbey now.

With that, he put his pipe in his mouth and blew a puff right in my face. Wow! I felt a chill run through me. Well, I said, I don’t know any more than anyone else, but I’ve definitely never heard of a man like that. "Please," said the blacksmith, staring right at me, "aren’t you the guy who was asking about St. Clair’s abbey a while back?" "So what?" I replied, "What does that prove?" "Well, they say someone lives in the abbey now," the man said, turning to the other, "and for all I know, it could be this same La Motte." "Yeah, or for all I know, too," said the man with the pipe, getting up from the bench, "and you know more about this than you’re admitting. I’ll bet you anything that this Monsieur La Motte lives at the abbey." "Well," I said, "you’re mistaken there, because he doesn’t live at the abbey now."

Confound your folly! cried La Motte; but be quick—how did the matter end?

"Curse your stupidity!" La Motte shouted. "But hurry up—what happened in the end?"

My master does not live there now, said I.—Oh! oh! said the man with the pipe; he is your master then? And pray how long has he left the abbey—and where does he live now?—Hold, said I, not so fast—I know when to speak and when to hold my tongue—but who has been inquiring for him?

"My master doesn’t live there anymore," I said. "Oh! oh!" said the man with the pipe. "So he’s your master? How long has he been gone from the abbey, and where does he live now?" "Wait a minute," I said, "Not so fast—I know when to speak and when to keep quiet—but who’s been asking about him?"

What! he expected somebody to inquire for him? says the man.—No, says I, he did not, but if he did, what does that prove?—that argues nothing. With that he looked at the blacksmith, and they went out of the shop together, leaving my horse's shoe undone. But I never minded that, for the moment they were gone, I mounted and rode away as fast as I could. But in my fright, your honour, I forgot to take the round about way, and so came straight home.

What! He thought someone would ask for him? says the man. —No, I said, he didn’t, but if he did, what does that prove? —that means nothing. With that, he looked at the blacksmith, and they left the shop together, leaving my horse's shoe unfinished. But I didn’t care about that, because as soon as they were gone, I got on my horse and rode away as fast as I could. But in my panic, your honor, I forgot to take the long way around, so I came straight home.

La Motte, extremely shocked at Peter's intelligence, made no other reply than by cursing his folly, and immediately went in search of Madame, who was walking with Adeline on the banks of the river. La Motte was too much agitated to soften his information by preface. We are discovered! said he, the king's officers have been inquiring for me at Auboine, and Peter has blundered upon my ruin. He then informed her of what Peter had related, and bade her prepare to quit the abbey.

La Motte, completely taken aback by Peter's cleverness, responded only by cursing his foolishness and quickly went to find Madame, who was walking with Adeline along the riverbank. La Motte was too upset to soften his message with any pleasantries. "We’ve been found out!" he said. "The king's officers have been asking for me at Auboine, and Peter has stumbled into my downfall." He then told her what Peter had mentioned and instructed her to get ready to leave the abbey.

But whither can we fly? said Madame La Motte, scarcely able to support herself. Any where! said he: to stay here is certain destruction. We must take refuge in Switzerland, I think. If any part of France would have concealed me, surely it had been this!

But where can we go? said Madame La Motte, barely able to hold herself up. Anywhere! he replied: staying here means certain doom. We need to escape to Switzerland, I think. If there was any part of France that could have hidden me, it would have been this!

Alas, how are we persecuted! rejoined Madame. This spot is scarcely made comfortable, before we are obliged to leave it, and go we know not whither.

Alas, how we are being persecuted! replied Madame. This place is barely made comfortable before we have to leave it, and we don't even know where we're going.

I wish we may not yet know whither, replied La Motte, that is the least evil that threatens us. Let us escape a prison, and I care not whither we go. But return to the abbey immediately, and pack up what moveables you can.—A flood of tears came to the relief of Madame La Motte, and she hung upon Adeline's arm, silent and trembling. Adeline, though she had no comfort to bestow, endeavoured to command her feelings and appear composed. Come, said La Motte, we waste time; let us lament hereafter, but at present prepare for flight; exert a little of that fortitude which is so necessary for our preservation. Adeline does not weep, yet her state is as wretched as your own, for I know not how long I shall be able to protect her.

“I hope we don’t know where we’re headed yet,” replied La Motte. “That’s the smallest of the troubles we face. Let’s get out of this prison, and I don’t care where we go. But return to the abbey right away and grab whatever you can carry.” A flood of tears relieved Madame La Motte, and she clung to Adeline’s arm, silent and shaking. Adeline, though she had no comfort to offer, tried to control her emotions and look composed. “Come on,” said La Motte, “we’re wasting time; we can mourn later, but right now we need to prepare to escape. Show a little of that strength that’s so crucial for our survival. Adeline isn’t crying, but her situation is just as miserable as yours because I don’t know how much longer I can protect her.”

Notwithstanding her terror, this reproof touched the pride of Madame La Motte, who dried her tears, but disdained to reply, and looked at Adeline with a strong expression of displeasure. As they moved silently toward the abbey, Adeline asked La Motte if he was sure they were the king's officers who inquired for him. I cannot doubt it, he replied, who else could possibly inquire for me? Besides, the behaviour of the man, who mentioned my name, puts the matter beyond a question.

Notwithstanding her fear, this reprimand pricked the pride of Madame La Motte, who wiped her tears but refused to respond and shot Adeline a look of strong disapproval. As they walked silently toward the abbey, Adeline asked La Motte if he was sure they were the king's officers looking for him. "I can’t doubt it," he replied, "who else would be asking for me? Plus, the way the man mentioned my name makes it clear."

Perhaps not, said Madame La Motte: let us wait till morning ere we set off. We may then find it will be unnecessary to go.

"Maybe not," said Madame La Motte. "Let's wait until morning before we head out. We might find that it's not needed after all."

We may, indeed; the king's officers would probably by that time have told us as much. La Motte went to give orders to Peter. Set off in an hour! said Peter, Lord bless you, master! only consider the coach wheel; it would take me a day at least to mend it, for your honour knows I never mended one in my life.

We might, for sure; the king's officers would likely have informed us by then. La Motte went to give instructions to Peter. "Leave in an hour!" said Peter, "Oh my goodness, master! Just think about the coach wheel; it would take me at least a day to fix it, since you know I've never repaired one in my life."

This was a circumstance which La Motte had entirely overlooked. When they settled at the abbey, Peter had at first been too busy in repairing the apartments, to remember the carriage; and afterwards, believing it would not quickly be wanted, he had neglected to do it. La Motte's temper now entirely forsook him, and with many execrations he ordered Peter to go to work immediately: but on searching for the materials formerly bought, they were no where to be found; and Peter at length remembered, though he was prudent enough to conceal this circumstance, that he had used the nails in repairing the abbey.

This was something La Motte had completely missed. When they moved into the abbey, Peter had initially been too busy fixing up the rooms to think about the carriage, and later, thinking it wouldn’t be needed right away, he had let it slide. La Motte lost his temper completely and, with a lot of curses, told Peter to get to work immediately. But when they looked for the materials they had previously bought, they couldn’t find them anywhere; and Peter eventually realized, though he was smart enough to keep this to himself, that he had used the nails while fixing the abbey.

It was now, therefore, impossible to quit the forest that night, and La Motte had only to consider the most probable plan of concealment, should the officers of justice visit the ruin before the morning; a circumstance which the thoughtlessness of Peter, in returning from Auboine by the straight way, made not unlikely.

It was now, therefore, impossible to leave the forest that night, and La Motte had to think about the best way to hide if the authorities came to the ruins before morning; a situation that Peter’s carelessness in taking the direct route back from Auboine made quite possible.

At first, indeed, it occurred to him, that, though his family could not be removed, he might himself take one of the horses, and escape from the forest before night. But he thought there would still be some danger of detection in the towns through which he must pass, and he could not well bear the idea of leaving his family unprotected, without knowing when he could return to them, or whither he could direct them to follow him. La Motte was not a man of very vigorous resolution, and he was, perhaps, rather more willing to suffer in company than alone.

At first, it actually crossed his mind that, even though he couldn’t move his family, he could take one of the horses and escape the forest before nightfall. But he felt there would still be a chance of being discovered in the towns he would have to pass through, and he couldn’t stand the thought of leaving his family unprotected without knowing when he could come back or where he could guide them to meet him. La Motte wasn’t very strong-willed, and he was probably more inclined to endure hardships with others than to face them alone.

After much consideration, he recollected the trap-door of the closet belonging to the chambers above. It was invisible to the eye and whatever might be its direction, it would securely shelter him, at least, from discovery. Having deliberated further upon the subject he determined to explore the recess to which the stairs led, and thought it possible that for a short time his whole family might be concealed within it. There was little time between the suggestion of the plan and the execution of his purpose, for darkness was spreading around, and in every murmur of the wind he thought he heard the voices of his enemies.

After thinking it over, he remembered the trapdoor in the closet of the rooms above. It was invisible to the eye and no matter which way it faced, it would definitely keep him safe from being found. After thinking about it some more, he decided to check out the space the stairs led to, and he figured that for a little while, his whole family could hide there. There wasn't much time between coming up with the plan and putting it into action, because darkness was closing in, and with every whisper of the wind, he imagined he heard the voices of his enemies.

He called for a light, and ascended alone to the chamber. When he came to the closet, it was some time before he could find the trap-door, so exactly did it correspond with the boards of the floor. At length, he found and raised it. The chill damps of long confined air rushed from the aperture, and he stood for a moment to let them pass, ere he descended. As he stood looking down the abyss, he recollected the report which Peter had brought concerning the abbey, and it gave him an uneasy sensation. But this soon yielded to more pressing interests.

He called for a light and went up to the room by himself. When he got to the closet, it took him a while to find the trapdoor, as it blended perfectly with the floorboards. Finally, he located and opened it. The cold dampness of stagnant air rushed out from the opening, and he paused for a moment to let it pass before he went down. As he looked into the darkness, he remembered the news Peter had shared about the abbey, which made him feel uneasy. But that feeling quickly gave way to more immediate concerns.

The stairs were steep, and in many places trembled beneath his weight. Having continued to descend for some time, his feet touched the ground, and he found himself in a narrow passage; but as he turned to pursue it, the damp vapours curled round him and extinguished the light. He called aloud for Peter, but could make nobody hear, and after some time he endeavoured to find his way up the stairs. In this, with difficulty, he succeeded, and passing the chambers with cautious steps descended the tower.

The stairs were steep, and in many spots shook under his weight. After going down for a while, his feet finally reached the ground, and he ended up in a narrow hallway; but as he turned to follow it, the damp fog wrapped around him and snuffed out the light. He called out for Peter, but no one could hear him, and after a while, he tried to find his way back up the stairs. He managed to do so with some difficulty and carefully stepped past the rooms as he made his way down the tower.

The security which the place he had just quitted seemed to promise, was of too much importance to be slightly rejected, and he determined immediately to make another experiment with the light:—having now fixed it in a lantern, he descended a second time to the passage. The current of vapours occasioned by the opening of the trap-door was abated, and the fresh air thence admitted had begun to circulate: La Motte passed on unmolested.

The safety that the place he had just left seemed to offer was too significant to dismiss lightly, so he quickly decided to try the light again. Having now set it up in a lantern, he went back down to the passage. The flow of vapors from the trap-door had lessened, and the fresh air that came in was starting to circulate: La Motte moved on without any trouble.

The passage was of considerable length, and led him to a door which was fastened. He placed the lantern at some distance, to avoid the current of air, and applied his strength to the door. It shook under his hands, but did not yield. Upon examining it more closely, he perceived the wood round the lock was decayed, probably by the damps, and this encouraged him to proceed. After some time it gave way to his effort, and he found himself in a square stone room.

The passage was quite long and led him to a door that was locked. He set the lantern down at a distance to avoid the drafts and pushed against the door. It shook in response, but didn’t open. Looking closer, he noticed that the wood around the lock was rotting, likely from moisture, and this motivated him to keep trying. After a while, it finally gave way to his efforts, and he found himself in a square stone room.

He stood for some time to survey it. The walls, which were dripping with unwholesome dews, were entirely bare, and afforded not even a window. A small iron grate alone admitted the air. At the further end, near a low recess, was another door. La Motte went towards it, and, as he passed, looked into the recess. Upon the ground within it stood a large chest, which he went forward to examine; and, lifting the lid, he saw the remains of a human skeleton. Horror struck upon his heart, and he involuntarily stepped back. During a pause of some moments, his first emotion subsided. That thrilling curiosity, which objects of terror often excite in the human mind, impelled him to take a second view of this dismal spectacle.

He stood for a while to take it all in. The walls, which were covered in unpleasant moisture, were completely bare and had no windows at all. Only a small iron grate allowed some air in. At the far end, near a low alcove, there was another door. La Motte walked toward it and glanced into the alcove as he passed. Inside, there was a large chest on the ground that he approached to inspect; when he lifted the lid, he found the remains of a human skeleton. A wave of horror hit him, and he involuntarily stepped back. After a moment of pause, his initial shock faded. That intense curiosity that dark and frightening objects often stir in people drove him to take a second look at this grim sight.

La Motte stood motionless as he gazed; the object before him seemed to confirm the report that some person had formerly been murdered in the abbey. At length he closed the chest, and advanced to the second door, which also was fastened, but the key was in the lock. He turned it with difficulty, and then found the door was held by two strong bolts. Having undrawn these, it disclosed a flight of steps, which he descended. They terminated in a chain of low vaults, or rather cells, that, from the manner of their construction and present condition, seemed to be coeval with the most ancient parts of the abbey. La Motte, in his then depressed state of mind, thought them the burial places of the monks, who formerly inhabited the pile above; but they were more calculated for places of penance for the living, than of rest for the dead.

La Motte stood still as he looked; the scene in front of him seemed to confirm the rumor that someone had been murdered in the abbey. Finally, he closed the chest and moved to the second door, which was also locked, but the key was in the lock. He turned it with some effort, only to discover that the door was secured by two strong bolts. After pulling them back, it revealed a staircase that he went down. It led to a series of low vaults, or rather cells, which, judging by how they were built and their current state, appeared to date back to the earliest parts of the abbey. Given his depressed state of mind, La Motte thought they were the burial sites of the monks who once lived above; however, they seemed more suited for places of penance for the living than for resting places for the dead.

Having reached the extremity of these cells, the way was again closed by a door. La Motte now hesitated whether he should attempt to proceed any further. The present spot seemed to afford the security he sought. Here he might pass the night unmolested by apprehension of discovery; and it was most probable, that if the officers arrived in the night, and found the abbey vacated, they would quit it before morning, or, at least, before he could have any occasion to emerge from concealment. These considerations restored his mind to a state of greater composure. His only immediate care was to bring his family, as soon as possible, to this place of security, lest the officers should come unawares upon them; and while he stood thus musing, he blamed himself for delay.

Having reached the end of these cells, a door blocked his way again. La Motte now hesitated about whether he should try to go any further. This spot seemed to provide the security he was looking for. Here, he could spend the night without worrying about being discovered; and it was most likely that if the officers arrived at night and found the abbey empty, they would leave before morning, or at least before he needed to come out of hiding. These thoughts helped calm him down a bit. His only immediate concern was to bring his family to this safe place as soon as possible, in case the officers showed up unexpectedly; and while he stood there lost in thought, he scolded himself for not acting faster.

But an irresistible desire of knowing to what this door led, arrested his steps, and he turned to open it. The door, however, was fastened; and as he attempted to force it, he suddenly thought he heard a noice above. It now occurred to him that the officers might already have arrived, and he quitted the cells with precipitation, intending to listen at the trap-door.

But an overwhelming urge to find out where this door led stopped him in his tracks, and he turned to open it. The door, however, was locked; and as he tried to force it open, he suddenly thought he heard a noise above. It dawned on him that the officers might have already arrived, and he quickly left the cells, planning to listen at the trap door.

There, said he, I may wait in security, and perhaps hear something of what passes. My family will not be known, or at least not hurt, and their uneasiness on my account they must learn to endure.

There, he said, I can wait safely and maybe hear something about what's going on. My family won't be recognized, or at least won't be harmed, and they'll just have to learn to deal with their worry about me.

These were the arguments of La Motte, in which, it must be owned, selfish prudence was more conspicuous than tender anxiety for his wife. He had by this time reached the bottom of the stairs, when, on looking up, he perceived the trap-door was left open; and ascending in haste to close it, he heard footsteps advancing through the chambers above. Before he could descend entirely out of sight, he again looked up, and perceived through the aperture the face of a man looking down, upon him. Master, cried Peter.—La Motte was somewhat relieved at the sound of his voice, though angry that he had occasioned, him so much terror.

These were La Motte's arguments, and it must be acknowledged that his self-serving caution was more evident than genuine concern for his wife. By this point, he had reached the bottom of the stairs, and when he looked up, he noticed the trap door was left open. Rushing back to close it, he heard footsteps approaching from the rooms above. Before he could completely disappear from sight, he glanced up again and saw a man's face peering down at him through the opening. "Master!" Peter shouted. La Motte felt somewhat relieved to hear his voice, even though he was frustrated that Peter had been put through so much fear.

What brings you here, and what is the matter below?

What brings you here, and what's going on down there?

Nothing, Sir, nothing's the matter, only my mistress sent me to see after your honour.

Nothing, Sir, nothing's wrong, just my boss asked me to check on you.

There's nobody there then? said La Motte, setting his foot upon the step.

There's nobody there then? said La Motte, stepping onto the step.

Yes, Sir, there is my mistress and Mademoiselle Adeline, and—

Yes, Sir, there's my mistress and Mademoiselle Adeline, and—

Well—well—said La Motte briskly, go your ways, I am coming.

Well—well—said La Motte quickly, go on, I'm on my way.

He informed Madame La Motte where he had been, and of his intention of secreting himself, and deliberated upon the means of convincing the officers, should they arrive, that he had quitted the abbey. For this purpose he ordered all the moveable furniture to be conveyed to the cells below. La Motte himself assisted in this business, and every hand was employed for dispatch. In a very short time the habitable part of the fabric was left almost as desolate as he had found it. He then bade Peter take the horses to a distance from the abbey and turn them loose. After further consideration, he thought it might contribute to mislead them, if he placed in some conspicuous part of the fabric an inscription, signifying his condition, and mentioning the date of his departure from the abbey. Over the door of the tower which led to the habitable part of the structure, he therefore cut the following lines:

He told Madame La Motte where he had been and his plan to hide, and he thought about how to convince the officers, if they showed up, that he had left the abbey. To achieve this, he ordered all the movable furniture to be moved to the cells below. La Motte himself helped with this task, and everyone pitched in to get it done quickly. In no time, the livable part of the building was left almost as empty as he had found it. He then instructed Peter to take the horses far away from the abbey and let them loose. After thinking it over, he decided it might confuse them if he put a sign in a noticeable spot in the building, indicating his status and stating the date of his departure from the abbey. So, he inscribed the following lines above the door of the tower leading to the livable part of the structure:

O ye! whom misfortune may lead to this spot,
Learn that there are others as miserable as yourselves.

Oh you! If bad luck has brought you here,
Remember that there are others who are just as unfortunate as you.

P——L—M——a wretched exile, sought within these walls a refuge from persecution on the 27th of April, 1658, and quitted them on the 12th of July in the same year, in search of a more convenient asylum.

P——L—M——a miserable exile, sought a safe haven from persecution within these walls on April 27, 1658, and left them on July 12 of the same year, in search of a better refuge.

After engraving these words with a knife, the small stock of provisions remaining from the week's supply (for Peter, in his fright, had returned unloaded from his last journey) was put into a basket; and La Motte having assembled his family, they all ascended the stairs of the tower, and passed through the chambers to the closet. Peter went first with a light, and with some difficulty found the trap-door. Madame La Motte shuddered as she surveyed the gloomy abyss; but they were all silent.

After carving these words with a knife, the little bit of food left from the week's supply (since Peter, in his fear, had come back empty from his last trip) was put into a basket. La Motte gathered his family, and they all climbed the stairs of the tower and moved through the rooms to the closet. Peter went ahead with a light and, with some effort, found the trapdoor. Madame La Motte shivered as she looked at the dark void, but they all stayed quiet.

La Motte now took the light and led the way; Madame followed, and then Adeline. These old monks loved good wine as well as other people, said Peter, who brought up the rear; I warrant your honour, now, this was their cellar; I smell the casks already.

La Motte took the light and led the way; Madame followed, and then Adeline. These old monks enjoyed good wine just like anyone else, Peter said as he brought up the rear; I bet your honor, this was their cellar; I can already smell the barrels.

Peace, said La Motte, reserve your jokes for a proper occasion.

"Calm down," La Motte said, "save your jokes for the right time."

There is no harm in loving good wine, as your honour knows.

There’s nothing wrong with enjoying good wine, as you know.

Have done with this buffoonery, said La Motte in a tone more authoritative, and go first. Peter obeyed.

"Enough of this nonsense," La Motte said in a more commanding tone, "and you go first." Peter complied.

They came to the vaulted room. The dismal spectacle he had seen here, deterred La Motte from passing a night in this chamber; and the furniture had, by his own order, been conveyed to the cells below. He was anxious that his family should not perceive the skeleton; an object which would probably excite a degree of horror not to be overcome during their stay. La Motte now passed the chest in haste; and Madame La Motte and Adeline were too much engrossed by their own thoughts, to give minute attention to external circumstances.

They entered the vaulted room. The grim scene he had witnessed there made La Motte reluctant to spend a night in this chamber, so he had instructed that the furniture be moved to the cells below. He was worried that his family would notice the skeleton, which would likely instill a level of fear that would linger throughout their visit. La Motte quickly passed the chest, while Madame La Motte and Adeline were too absorbed in their own thoughts to pay much attention to their surroundings.

When they reached the cells, Madame La Motte wept at the necessity which condemned her to a spot so dismal. Alas, said she, are we indeed thus reduced! The apartments above formerly appeared to me a deplorable habitation; but they are a palace compared to these.

When they got to the cells, Madame La Motte cried over the necessity that confined her to such a bleak place. "Oh no," she said, "are we really brought so low! The rooms above used to seem like a terrible place to live; but they are a palace compared to this."

True, my dear, said La Motte, and let the remembrance of what you once thought them soothe your discontent now; these cells are also a palace compared to the Bicêtre, or the Bastille, and to the terrors of further punishment which would accompany them: let the apprehension of the greater evil teach you to endure the less: I am contented if we find here the refuge I seek.

“True, my dear,” said La Motte, “and let the memory of what you once thought of them ease your dissatisfaction now; these cells are like a palace compared to the Bicêtre or the Bastille, and to the horrors of worse punishment that would come with them: let the fear of the greater evil help you endure the lesser one: I’ll be satisfied if we find the refuge I’m looking for here.”

Madame La Motte was silent, and Adeline, forgetting her late unkindness, endeavoured as much as she could to console her; while her heart was sinking with the misfortunes which she could not but anticipate, she appeared composed, and even cheerful. She attended Madame La Motte with the most watchful solicitude, and felt so thankful that La Motte was now secreted within this recess, that she almost lost her perception of its glooms and inconveniences.

Madame La Motte was quiet, and Adeline, putting aside her recent unkindness, did her best to comfort her. Although her heart was heavy with the misfortunes she couldn't help but foresee, she managed to appear calm and even cheerful. She took care of Madame La Motte with great attention and felt so grateful that La Motte was now hidden away in this space that she nearly forgot about its darkness and discomforts.

This she artlessly expressed to him, who could not be insensible to the tenderness it discovered. Madame La Motte was also sensible of it, and it renewed a painful sensation. The effusions of gratitude she mistook for those of tenderness.

This she naively expressed to him, who couldn't be unaware of the tenderness it revealed. Madame La Motte also felt it, and it brought back a painful feeling. She misinterpreted the outpourings of gratitude as expressions of tenderness.

La Motte returned frequently to the trap-door to listen if any body was in the abbey; but no sound disturbed the stillness of night: at length they sat down to supper; the repast was a melancholy one. If the officers do not come hither to-night, said Madame La Motte, sighing, suppose, my dear, Peter returns to Auboine to-morrow? He may there learn something more of this affair; or, at least, he might procure a carriage to convey us hence.

La Motte frequently went back to the trapdoor to listen for any signs of life in the abbey, but no sound broke the silence of the night. Eventually, they sat down to supper, which was a rather sad meal. "If the officers don’t come here tonight," Madame La Motte sighed, "what if Peter goes back to Auboine tomorrow? He might find out more about this situation there, or at least he could get a carriage to take us away from here."

To be sure he might, said La Motte peevishly, and people to attend it also. Peter would be an excellent person to show the officers the way to the abbey, and to inform them of what they might else be in doubt about, my concealment here.

To be sure he might, said La Motte irritably, and people to attend it also. Peter would be a great person to show the officers the way to the abbey and to inform them about anything else they might be unsure about, my hiding here.

How cruel is this irony! replied Madame La Motte. I proposed only what I thought would be for our mutual good; my judgment was, perhaps, wrong, but my intention was certainly right. Tears swelled into her eyes as she spoke these words. Adeline wished to relieve her; but delicacy kept her silent. La Motte observed the effect of his speech, and something like remorse touched his heart. He approached, and taking her hand, You must allow for the perturbation of my mind, said he, I did not mean to afflict you thus. The idea of sending Peter to Auboine, where he has already done so much harm by his blunders, teased me, and I could not let it pass unnoticed. No, my dear, our only chance of safety is to remain where we are while our provisions last. If the officers do not come here to-night, they probably will to-morrow, or, perhaps, the next day. When they have searched the abbey, without finding me, they will depart; we may then emerge from this recess, and take measures for removing to a distant country.

"How cruel is this irony!" replied Madame La Motte. "I suggested only what I thought would benefit us both; my judgment might have been wrong, but my intentions were certainly good." Tears welled up in her eyes as she spoke. Adeline wanted to comfort her but felt too delicate to speak. La Motte noticed the impact of his words, and a hint of remorse touched his heart. He moved closer, taking her hand. "You have to understand the turmoil in my mind," he said. "I didn't mean to upset you like this. The thought of sending Peter to Auboine, where he has already caused so much trouble with his mistakes, was bothering me, and I couldn't ignore it. No, my dear, our only chance for safety is to stay where we are while our supplies last. If the officers don't come here tonight, they probably will tomorrow or maybe the next day. Once they search the abbey and don't find me, they will leave; then we can come out of hiding and make plans to move to a distant country."

Madame La Motte acknowledged the justice of his words; and her mind being relieved by the little apology he had made, she became tolerably cheerful. Supper being ended, La Motte stationed the faithful though simple Peter at the foot of the steps that ascended to the closet, there to keep watch during the night. Having done this, he returned to the lower cells, where he had left his little family. The beds were spread; and having mournfully bidden each other good night, they lay down, and implored rest.

Madame La Motte recognized that he was right; and feeling better after his small apology, she became fairly cheerful. After supper, La Motte placed the loyal but simple Peter at the bottom of the steps leading to the closet to keep watch during the night. Once he did this, he returned to the lower rooms where his small family was. The beds were made; and after sadly saying good night to each other, they lay down and wished for rest.

Adeline's thoughts were too busy to suffer her to repose, and when she believed her companions were sunk in slumbers, she indulged the sorrow which reflection brought. She also looked forward to the future with the most mournful apprehension. Should La Motte be seized, what was to become of her. She would then be a wanderer in the wide world; without friends to protect, or money to support her. The prospect was gloomy—was terrible! She surveyed it, and shuddered! The distresses too of Monsieur and Madame La Motte, whom she loved with the most lively affection, formed no inconsiderable part of hers.

Adeline's mind was racing, keeping her from resting, and when she thought her friends were fast asleep, she faced the sadness that her thoughts brought her. She also looked ahead to the future with deep worry. If La Motte were to be arrested, what would happen to her? She would become a wanderer in a vast world, without friends to protect her or money to support herself. The outlook was bleak—truly terrifying! She considered it and shuddered! The troubles of Monsieur and Madame La Motte, whom she loved dearly, weighed heavily on her as well.

Sometimes she looked back to her father; but in him she only saw an enemy from whom she must fly: this remembrance heightened her sorrow; yet it was not the recollection of the suffering he had occasioned her, by which she was so much afflicted, as by the sense of his unkindness: she wept bitterly. At length, with that artless piety which innocence only knows, she addressed the Supreme Being, and resigned herself to his care. Her mind then gradually became peaceful and reassured, and soon after she sunk to repose.

Sometimes she looked back at her father, but all she saw was an enemy she needed to escape: this memory deepened her sadness; however, it wasn't just the pain he caused her that troubled her so much, but his unkindness. She cried hard. Eventually, with that sincere devotion that only innocence knows, she spoke to the Supreme Being and entrusted herself to His care. Her mind then slowly became calm and comforted, and soon after, she fell asleep.







CHAPTER V

A SURPRISE—AN ADVENTURE—A
MYSTERY.

The night passed without any alarm; Peter had remained upon his post, and heard nothing that prevented his sleeping. La Motte heard him, long before he saw him, most musically snoring; though it must be owned there was more of the bass than of any other part of the gamut in his performance. He was soon roused by the bravura of La Motte, whose notes sounded discord to his ears, and destroyed the torpor of his tranquillity.

The night went by without any issues; Peter stayed at his post and didn’t hear anything that kept him from sleeping. La Motte heard him long before he saw him, snoring quite melodically, though it must be said there was more bass than anything else in his performance. He was quickly awakened by La Motte’s loud sounds, which were jarring to him and shattered his peaceful slumber.

God bless you, master! what's the matter? cried Peter, waking, are they come?

God bless you, master! What’s going on? shouted Peter, waking up. Are they here?

Yes, for aught you care, they might be come. Did I place you here to sleep, sirrah? Bless you, master, returned Peter, sleep is the only comfort to be had here; I'm sure I would not deny it to a dog in such a place as this.

Yes, for all you care, they might arrive. Did I put you here to sleep, you rascal? Bless you, master, replied Peter, sleep is the only comfort we can find here; I certainly wouldn’t deny it to a dog in a place like this.

La Motte sternly questioned him concerning any noise he might have heard in the night; and Peter full as solemnly protested he had heard none; an assertion which was strictly true, for he had enjoyed the comfort of being asleep the whole time.

La Motte sternly questioned him about any noises he might have heard during the night, and Peter just as seriously insisted he hadn’t heard a thing; a claim that was entirely accurate, as he had been comfortably asleep the entire time.

La Motte ascended to the trap-door and listened attentively. No sounds were heard, and as he ventured to lift it, the full light of the sun burst upon his sight, the morning being now far advanced: he walked softly along the chambers, and looked through a window—no person was to be seen. Encouraged by this apparent security, he ventured down the stairs of the tower, and entered the first apartment. He was proceeding towards the second, when suddenly recollecting himself, he first peeped through the crevice of the door, which stood half open. He looked, and distinctly saw a person sitting near the window, upon which his arm rested.

La Motte climbed up to the trapdoor and listened closely. He heard no sounds, and when he pushed it open, the bright sunlight flooded in, revealing that the morning was already well underway. He quietly walked through the rooms and peeked out a window—no one was in sight. Feeling a sense of safety, he carefully made his way down the tower stairs and entered the first room. He was about to head to the second when he suddenly remembered something and glanced through the crack of the door, which was half open. He looked in and clearly saw someone sitting by the window, resting their arm on it.

The discovery so much shocked him, that for a moment he lost all presence of mind, and was utterly unable to move from the spot. The person, whose back was towards him, arose, and turned his head: La Motte now recovered himself, and quitting the apartment as quickly and at the same time as silently as possible, ascended to the closet. He raised the trap-door, but, before he closed it, heard the footsteps of a person entering the outward chamber. Bolts or other fastening to the trap there was none; and his security depended solely upon the exact correspondence of the boards. The outer door of the stone room had no means of defence, and the fastenings of the inner one were on the wrong side to afford security even till some means of escape could be found.

The discovery shocked him so much that, for a moment, he lost all composure and couldn’t move from the spot. The person, whose back was to him, stood up and turned their head: La Motte quickly regained his senses and left the room as fast and as quietly as he could, heading up to the closet. He lifted the trapdoor, but before closing it, he heard footsteps of someone entering the outer chamber. There were no bolts or other fastenings on the trapdoor; his safety depended solely on how well the boards fit together. The outer door of the stone room had no way to secure it, and the fastenings of the inner one were on the wrong side to provide any security until he could find a way to escape.

When he reached this room he paused, and heard distinctly persons walking in the closet above. While he was listening, he heard a voice call him by name, and he instantly fled to the cells below, expecting every moment to hear the trap lifted and the footsteps of pursuit; but he was fled beyond the reach of hearing either. Having thrown himself on the ground at the furthest extremity of the vaults, he lay for some time breathless with agitation. Madame La Motte and Adeline, in the utmost terror, inquired what had happened. It was some time before he could speak; when he did, it was almost unnecessary, for the distant noises which sounded from above, informed his family of a part of the truth.

When he got to this room, he stopped and clearly heard people walking in the closet above. While he was listening, he heard a voice call his name, and he quickly ran to the cells below, expecting to hear the trapdoor open and footsteps following him at any moment; but he was far enough away that he couldn’t hear anything anymore. Throwing himself on the ground at the far end of the vaults, he lay there for a while, breathless with anxiety. Madame La Motte and Adeline, terrified, asked him what had happened. It took him some time to speak; when he finally did, it was almost pointless because the distant noises from above already told his family part of the story.

The sounds did not seem to approach; but Madame La Motte, unable to command her terror, shrieked aloud: this redoubled the distress of La Motte. You have already destroyed me, cried he; that shriek has informed them where I am. He traversed the cells with clasped hands and quick steps. Adeline stood pale and still as death, supporting Madame La Motte, whom with difficulty she prevented from fainting. O! Dupras! Dupras! you are already avenged! said he in a voice that seemed to burst from his heart: there was a pause of silence. But why should I deceive myself with a hope of escaping? he resumed; why do I wait here for their coming? Let me rather end those torturing pangs by throwing myself into their hands at once.

The sounds didn’t seem to get any closer; but Madame La Motte, unable to control her fear, screamed out loud: this only increased La Motte’s distress. “You’ve already ruined me,” he cried; “that scream has told them where I am.” He paced the cells with his hands clasped and quick steps. Adeline stood pale and motionless, supporting Madame La Motte, whom she struggled to keep from fainting. “Oh! Dupras! Dupras! You are already avenged!” he said in a voice that seemed to come from his heart: there was a moment of silence. “But why should I fool myself with a hope of escaping?” he continued; “why am I waiting here for them to come? I’d rather end this torment by throwing myself into their hands right now.”

As he spoke, he moved towards the door; but the distress of Madame La Motte arrested his steps. Stay, said she, for my sake, stay; do not leave me thus, nor throw yourself voluntarily into destruction!

As he spoke, he moved toward the door; but Madame La Motte's distress stopped him. "Please, for my sake, stay; don’t leave me like this, and don’t throw yourself into danger!"

Surely, Sir, said Adeline, you are too precipitate; this despair is useless, as it is ill-founded. We hear no person approaching; if the officers had discovered the trap-door, they would certainly have been here before now. The words of Adeline stilled the tumult of his mind: the agitation of terror subsided; and reason beamed a feeble ray upon his hopes. He listened attentively; and perceiving that all was silent, advanced with caution to the stone room, and thence to the foot of the stairs that led to the trap-door. It was closed: no sound was heard above.

"Surely, Sir," Adeline said, "you're being too hasty; this despair is pointless and unfounded. We don’t hear anyone coming; if the officers had found the trap door, they would have been here by now." Adeline's words calmed the chaos in his mind: his fear subsided, and reason offered a faint glimmer of hope. He listened carefully and, noticing that everything was quiet, moved cautiously to the stone room, then to the base of the stairs that led to the trap door. It was closed; no sound was heard above.

He watched a long time, and the silence continuing, his hopes strengthened; and at length he began to believe that the officers had quitted the abbey; the day, however, was spent in anxious watchfulness. He did not dare to unclose the trap-door; and he frequently thought he heard distant noises. It was evident, however, that the secret of the closet had escaped discovery; and on this circumstance he justly founded his security. The following night was passed, like the day, in trembling hope and incessant watching.

He watched for a long time, and as the silence went on, his hopes grew stronger; eventually, he started to believe that the officers had left the abbey. However, the day was filled with anxious vigilance. He didn’t dare to open the trap door, and he often thought he heard sounds in the distance. It was clear that the secret of the closet hadn’t been discovered, and he rightly based his sense of security on this fact. The following night was spent in the same way as the day, filled with nervous hope and constant watching.

But the necessities of hunger now threatened them. The provisions, which had been distributed with the nicest economy, were nearly exhausted, and the most deplorable consequences might be expected from their remaining longer in concealment. Thus circumstanced, La Motte deliberated upon the most prudent method of proceeding. There appeared no other alternative, than to send Peter to Auboine, the only town from which he could return within the time prescribed by their necessities. There was game, indeed, in the forest; but Peter could neither handle a gun nor use a fishing rod to any advantage.

But now the urgency of hunger was a serious threat to them. The supplies, which had been carefully distributed, were almost gone, and staying hidden any longer could lead to terrible consequences. Given the situation, La Motte thought about the best way to move forward. It seemed that the only option was to send Peter to Auboine, the only town he could reach and return in time to meet their urgent needs. There was indeed game in the forest, but Peter didn't know how to handle a gun or use a fishing rod effectively.

It was therefore agreed he should go to Auboine for a supply of provisions, and at the same time bring materials for mending the coach-wheel, that they might have some ready conveyance from the forest. La Motte forbade Peter to ask any questions concerning the people who had inquired for him, or take any methods for discovering whether they had quitted the country, lest his blunders should again betray him. He ordered him to be entirely silent as to these subjects, and to finish his business and leave the place with all possible dispatch.

It was agreed that he should go to Auboine to get some supplies and also bring back materials to fix the coach wheel so they would have a way to transport themselves from the forest. La Motte prohibited Peter from asking any questions about the people who had been looking for him or trying to find out if they had left the area, to avoid any mistakes that could reveal his whereabouts. He instructed him to stay completely silent on these matters and to wrap up his business and leave as quickly as possible.

A difficulty yet remained to be overcome—Who should first venture abroad into the abbey, to learn whether it was vacated by the officers of justice? La Motte considered that if he was again seen, he should be effectually betrayed; which would not be so certain if one of his family was observed, for they were all unknown to the officers. It was necessary, however, that the person he sent should have courage enough to go through with the inquiry, and wit enough to conduct it with caution. Peter, perhaps, had the first; but was certainly destitute of the last. Annette had neither. La Motte looked at his wife, and asked her if, for his sake, she dared to venture. Her heart shrunk from the proposal, yet she was unwilling to refuse, or appear indifferent upon a point so essential to the safety of her husband. Adeline observed in her countenance the agitation of her mind, and, surmounting the fears which had hitherto kept her silent, she offered herself to go.

A challenge still needed to be faced—Who would be brave enough to step into the abbey first and find out if the officers of the law had left? La Motte thought that if he was seen again, he would definitely be caught; but if one of his family members was noticed, it wouldn’t be so sure, since they were all unknown to the officers. It was crucial, however, that the person he chose had enough courage to carry out the task and enough cleverness to do it carefully. Peter might have the courage, but he definitely lacked the cleverness. Annette had neither. La Motte looked at his wife and asked if she would be willing to take the risk for his sake. Her heart trembled at the idea, but she didn’t want to refuse or seem indifferent about something so important for her husband’s safety. Adeline saw the turmoil in her expression, and overcoming the fears that had kept her quiet until now, she stepped forward and volunteered to go.

They will be less likely to offend me, said she, than a man—Shame would not suffer La Motte to accept her offer; and Madame, touched with the magnanimity of her conduct, felt a momentary renewal of all her former kindness. Adeline pressed her proposal so warmly, and seemed so much in earnest, that La Motte began to hesitate. You, Sir, said she, once preserved me from the most imminent danger, and your kindness has since protected me: do not refuse me the satisfaction of deserving your goodness by a grateful return of it. Let me go into the abbey; and if, by so doing, I should preserve you from evil, I shall be sufficiently rewarded for what little danger I may incur, for my pleasure will be at least equal to yours.

They are less likely to offend me, she said, than a man—Shame wouldn’t let La Motte accept her offer; and Madame, moved by the generosity of her actions, felt a momentary resurgence of all her previous kindness. Adeline pushed her proposal so passionately and seemed so sincere that La Motte started to hesitate. You, Sir, she said, once saved me from a great danger, and your kindness has protected me since then: please don’t deny me the chance to repay your goodness with my gratitude. Let me go into the abbey; and if, by doing so, I can save you from harm, I will feel fully rewarded for whatever small risk I may face, as my pleasure will match yours.

Madame La Motte could scarcely refrain from tears as Adeline spoke; and La Motte sighing deeply, said, Well, be it so; go, Adeline, and from this moment consider me as your debtor. Adeline staid not to reply, but taking a light, quitted the cells. La Motte following to raise the trap-door, and cautioning her to look, if possible, into every apartment before she entered it. If you should be seen, said he, you must account for your appearance so as not to discover me. Your own presence of mind may assist you, I cannot—God bless you!

Madame La Motte could barely hold back her tears as Adeline spoke, and La Motte sighed deeply, saying, "Alright, go ahead, Adeline, and from now on, consider me your debtor." Adeline didn’t respond but took a light and left the cells. La Motte followed her to lift the trap door, warning her to try to peek into every room before she entered. "If you happen to be seen," he said, "you need to explain your presence in a way that won't reveal my situation. Your own quick thinking might help you; I can’t—God bless you!"

When she was gone, Madame La Motte's admiration of her conduct began to yield to other emotions. Distrust gradually undermined kindness, and jealousy raised suspicions. It must be a sentiment more powerful than gratitude, thought she, that could teach Adeline to subdue her fears. What, but love, could influence her to a conduct so generous! Madame La Motte, when she found it impossible to account for Adeline's conduct without alleging some interested motives for it, however her suspicions might agree with the practice of the world, had surely forgotten how much she once admired the purity and disinterestedness of her young friend.

When she left, Madame La Motte's admiration for her behavior started to give way to other feelings. Distrust slowly chipped away at her kindness, and jealousy sparked her suspicions. It had to be a feeling stronger than gratitude, she thought, that could teach Adeline to overcome her fears. What, if not love, could drive her to such generous behavior? Madame La Motte, when she realized she couldn't explain Adeline's actions without suggesting some selfish motives, no matter how much her suspicions aligned with what was common in the world, had clearly forgotten how much she once admired the purity and selflessness of her young friend.

Adeline, mean while, ascended to the chambers: the cheerful beams of the sun played once more upon her sight, and reanimated her spirits; she walked lightly through the apartments, nor stopped till she came to the stairs of the tower. Here she stood for some time, but no sounds met her ear, save the sighing of the wind among the trees, and at length she descended. She passed the apartments below without seeing any person, and the little furniture that remained seemed to stand exactly as she had left it. She now ventured to look out from the tower: the only animate objects that appeared were the deer quietly grazing under the shade of the woods. Her favourite little fawn distinguished Adeline, and came bounding towards her with strong marks of joy. She was somewhat alarmed lest the animal, being observed, should betray her, and walked swiftly away through the cloisters.

Adeline, in the meantime, went up to her rooms: the bright sunlight shone on her face again and lifted her spirits; she walked lightly through the rooms, not stopping until she reached the tower stairs. She paused there for a while, but she didn’t hear anything except the wind rustling through the trees, and eventually she went back down. She passed through the lower rooms without seeing anyone, and the little furniture that was left looked just as she had arranged it. She then dared to peek out from the tower: the only living things she could see were the deer peacefully grazing in the shade of the woods. Her favorite little fawn noticed Adeline and came bounding toward her with clear excitement. She felt a bit worried that the animal, if spotted, might give her away, so she quickly walked away through the cloisters.





She opened the door that lead to the great hall of the abbey, but the passage was so gloomy and dark that she feared to enter it, and started back. It was necessary, however, that she should examine further, particularly on the opposite side of the ruin, of which she had hitherto had no view: but her fears returned when she recollected how far it would lead her from her only place of refuge, and how difficult it would be to retreat. She hesitated what to do; but when she recollected her obligations to La Motte, and considered this as perhaps her only opportunity of doing him a service, she determined to proceed.

She opened the door that led to the great hall of the abbey, but the passage was so dark and gloomy that she was afraid to enter and started to pull back. However, she needed to investigate further, especially on the other side of the ruin, which she hadn't seen yet. But her fears returned when she thought about how far it would take her from her only safe place and how hard it would be to get back. She hesitated about what to do, but when she remembered her obligations to La Motte and considered this might be her only chance to help him, she decided to move forward.

As these thoughts passed rapidly over her mind, she raised her innocent looks to heaven, and breathed a silent prayer. With trembling steps she proceeded over fragments of the ruin, looking anxiously around, and often starting as the breeze rustled among the trees, mistaking it for the whisperings of men. She came to the lawn which fronted the fabric, but no person was to be seen, and her spirits revived. The great door of the hall she now endeavoured to open; but suddenly remembering that it was fastened by La Motte's orders, she proceeded to the north end of the abbey, and, having surveyed the prospect around as far as the thick foliage of the trees would permit, without perceiving any person, she turned her steps to the tower from which she had issued.

As these thoughts raced through her mind, she looked up to the sky with innocent eyes and whispered a silent prayer. With trembling steps, she moved over the debris of the ruin, anxiously glancing around and often flinching as the breeze rustled the leaves, mistaking it for the whispers of people. She reached the lawn in front of the building, but there was no one in sight, and her spirits lifted. She tried to open the large door of the hall, but then remembered it was locked at La Motte's orders. So, she went to the north end of the abbey and looked around as far as the thick trees would allow. Not seeing anyone, she headed back to the tower she had come from.

Adeline was now light of heart, and returned with impatience to inform La Motte of his security. In the cloisters she was again met by her little favourite, and stopped for a moment to caress it. The fawn seemed sensible to the sound of her voice, and discovered new joy; but while she spoke, it suddenly started from her hand, and looking up, she perceived the door of the passage, leading to the great hall, open, and a man in the habit of a soldier issue forth.

Adeline felt joyful and hurried back to let La Motte know he was safe. In the cloisters, she was greeted once more by her little favorite and paused for a moment to pet it. The fawn seemed to respond to her voice, showing fresh delight; but as she spoke, it suddenly darted away from her hand. Looking up, she noticed the door to the passage leading to the great hall was open, and a man dressed as a soldier stepped out.

With the swiftness of an arrow she fled along the cloisters, nor once ventured to look back; but a voice called to her to stop, and she heard steps advancing quick in pursuit. Before she could reach the tower, her breath failed her, and she leaned against a pillar of the ruin, pale and exhausted. The man came up, and gazing at her with a strong expression of surprise and curiosity, he assumed a gentle manner, assured her she had nothing to fear, and inquired if she belonged to La Motte. Observing that she still looked terrified and remained silent, he repeated his assurances and his question.

With the speed of an arrow, she ran through the hallways, not daring to look back. But a voice called out for her to stop, and she heard footsteps quickly approaching behind her. Before she could reach the tower, she ran out of breath and leaned against a pillar of the ruins, pale and exhausted. The man caught up to her, gazing at her with a look of surprise and curiosity. He adopted a gentle tone, reassured her that she had nothing to fear, and asked if she was from La Motte. Noticing that she still looked terrified and remained silent, he repeated his reassurances and his question.

I know that he is concealed within the ruin, said the stranger; the occasion of his concealment I also know; but it is of the utmost importance I should see him, and he will then be convinced he has nothing to fear from me. Adeline trembled so excessively, that it was with difficulty she could support herself—she hesitated, and knew not what to reply. Her manner seemed to confirm the suspicions of the stranger, and her consciousness of this increased her embarrassment: he took advantage of it to press her further. Adeline at length, replied that La Motte had some time since resided at the abbey. And does still. Madam, said the stranger; lead me to where he may be found—I must see him, and—

I know he’s hiding in the ruins, said the stranger; I also know why he’s hiding. But it’s really important that I see him, and then he’ll realize he has nothing to fear from me. Adeline was shaking so much that she could barely stand—she hesitated and didn’t know what to say. Her behavior seemed to confirm the stranger's suspicions, and just knowing that made her even more anxious: he used that to pressure her further. Eventually, Adeline said that La Motte had been living at the abbey for some time. And still is. Madam, said the stranger; take me to where he can be found—I must see him, and—

Never, Sir, replied Adeline; and I solemnly assure you it will be in vain to search for him.

"Never, Sir," Adeline replied; "and I can guarantee it will be useless to look for him."

That I must try, resumed he, since you, Madam, will not assist me. I have already followed him to some chambers above, where I suddenly lost him; thereabouts he must be concealed, and it's plain therefore they afford some secret passage.

That I have to try, he continued, since you, Madam, won’t help me. I’ve already tracked him to some rooms upstairs, where I suddenly lost him; he must be hiding around there, and it’s clear that they have some hidden passage.

Without waiting Adeline's reply, he sprung to the door of the tower. She now thought it would betray a consciousness of the truth of his conjecture to follow him, and resolved to remain below. But upon further consideration, it occurred to her that he might steal silently into the closet, and possibly surprise La Motte at the door of the trap. She therefore hastened after him, that her voice might prevent the danger she apprehended. He was already in the second chamber when she overtook him: she immediately began to speak aloud.

Without waiting for Adeline to respond, he dashed to the tower door. She thought that following him would show she knew he was right, so she decided to stay below. But after thinking it over, she realized he might quietly sneak into the closet and potentially catch La Motte at the trap door. She quickly ran after him to use her voice to prevent the danger she feared. He was already in the second room when she caught up with him, and she immediately started to speak loudly.

This room he searched with the most scrupulous care; but finding no private door, or other outlet, he proceeded to the closet: then it was that it required all her fortitude to conceal her agitation. He continued the search. Within these chambers I know he is concealed, said he, though hitherto I have not been able to discover how. It was hither I followed a man, whom I believe to be him, and he could not escape without a passage; I shall not quit the place till I have found it.

This room he searched very carefully, but after finding no private door or other exit, he moved on to the closet. At that moment, it took all her strength to hide her nerves. He kept searching. "I know he's hiding in these rooms," he said, "even though I haven't figured out how yet. I followed a man here, who I think was him, and he couldn't get away without a way out. I won't leave until I find it."

He examined the walls and the boards, but without discovering the division of the floor, which indeed so exactly corresponded, that La Motte himself had not perceived it by the eye, but by the trembling of the floor beneath his feet. Here is some mystery, said the stranger, which I cannot comprehend, and perhaps never shall. He was turning to quit the closet, when, who can paint the distress of Adeline, upon seeing the trap-door gently raised, and La Motte himself appeared! Hah! cried the stranger, advancing eagerly to him. La Motte sprang forward, and they were locked in each other's arms.

He looked over the walls and the floorboards but didn’t notice the split in the floor, which matched up so perfectly that even La Motte hadn’t seen it visually but felt it through the trembling of the floor beneath him. "There’s some mystery here that I can’t figure out and probably never will," said the stranger. He was about to leave the closet when who can describe Adeline's distress upon seeing the trapdoor slowly lift, revealing La Motte himself! “Ah!” exclaimed the stranger, stepping toward him eagerly. La Motte rushed forward, and they embraced each other tightly.

The astonishment of Adeline, for a moment, surpassed even her former distress; but a remembrance darted across her mind, which explained the present scene, and before La Motte could exclaim My son! she knew the stranger as such. Peter, who stood at the foot of the stairs, and heard what passed above, flew to acquaint his mistress with the joyful discovery, and in a few moments she was folded in the embrace of her son. This spot, so lately the mansion of despair, seemed metamorphosed into the palace of pleasure, and the walls echoed only to the accents of joy and congratulation.

The shock Adeline felt, for a moment, was even greater than her previous distress; but then a memory flashed through her mind that clarified the situation, and before La Motte could shout "My son!" she recognized the stranger as her son. Peter, who stood at the bottom of the stairs and heard what was happening above, rushed to tell his mistress about the wonderful news, and in no time, she was in her son's arms. This place, which had recently been a house of despair, now felt transformed into a place of happiness, and the walls resonated only with joy and celebration.

The joy of Peter on this occasion was beyond expression: he acted a perfect pantomime—he capered about, clasped his hands—ran to his young master—shook him by the hand, in spite of the frowns of La Motte; ran every where, without knowing for what, and gave no rational answer to any thing that was said to him.

The joy Peter felt on this occasion was indescribable: he was like a perfect mime—dancing around, clapping his hands—running to his young master—shaking his hand, despite La Motte's frowns; he ran everywhere, not even knowing why, and couldn't give a sensible answer to anything that was said to him.

After their first emotions were subsided, La Motte, as if suddenly recollecting himself, resumed his wanted solemnity: I am to blame, said he, thus to give way to joy, when I am still, perhaps surrounded by danger. Let us secure a retreat while it is yet in our power, continued he; in a few hours the king's officers may search for me again.

After their initial emotions faded, La Motte, as if suddenly remembering himself, returned to his usual seriousness: I shouldn’t let myself celebrate when I might still be in danger. We need to ensure our escape while we still can, he continued; in a few hours, the king's officers could be looking for me again.

Louis comprehended his father's words, and immediately relieved his apprehensions by the following relation:—

Louis understood his father's words and quickly eased his worries with the following story:—

A letter from Monsieur Nemours, containing an account of your flight from Paris, reached me at Peronne, where I was then upon duty with my regiment. He mentioned that you were gone towards the south of France, but as he had not since heard from you, he was ignorant of the place of your refuge. It was about this time that I was dispatched into Flanders; and being unable to obtain further intelligence of you, I passed some weeks of very painful solicitude. At the conclusion of the campaign I obtained leave of absence, and immediately set out for Paris, hoping to learn from Nemours where you had found an asylum.

A letter from Monsieur Nemours, detailing your escape from Paris, reached me at Peronne, where I was serving with my regiment at the time. He said you had headed south to France, but since he hadn’t heard from you again, he didn’t know where you were hiding. Around that time, I was sent to Flanders; unable to find out more about you, I spent several weeks in deep worry. After the campaign ended, I got permission to take some time off and immediately left for Paris, hoping to find out from Nemours where you had taken refuge.

Of this, however, he was equally ignorant with myself. He informed me that you had once before written to him from D——, upon your second day's journey from Paris, under an assumed name, as had been agreed upon; and that you then said the fear of discovery would prevent your hazarding another letter. He therefore remained ignorant of your abode, but said he had no doubt you had continued your journey to the southward. Upon this slender information I quitted Paris in search of you, and proceeded immediately to V——, where my inquiries concerning your further progress were successful as far as M——. There they told me you had staid some time, on account of the illness of a young lady; a circumstance which perplexed me much, as I could not imagine what young lady would accompany you. I proceeded, however, to L——; but there all traces of you seemed to be lost. As I sat musing at the window of the inn, I observed some scribbling on the glass, and the curiosity of idleness prompted me to read it. I thought I knew the characters, and the lines I read confirmed my conjectures, for I remembered to have heard you often repeat them.

Of this, however, he was just as clueless as I was. He told me that you had previously written to him from D——, on your second day’s journey from Paris, using a fake name as agreed upon. You mentioned that the fear of being discovered would stop you from sending another letter. Because of this, he didn’t know where you were, but he suspected you had continued your journey south. With this little information, I left Paris to search for you and went straight to V——, where I found out about your further progress up to M——. There, they said you had stayed for a while because a young lady was ill; this puzzled me because I couldn’t figure out what young lady would be traveling with you. I continued on to L——, but there all traces of you seemed to have vanished. While I was sitting at the window of the inn lost in thought, I noticed some scribbles on the glass, and my idle curiosity made me read it. I thought I recognized the handwriting, and the lines I read confirmed my guess since I remembered you often repeating them.

Here I renewed my inquiries concerning your route, and at length I made the people of the inn recollect you, and traced you as far as Auboine. There I again lost you, till upon my return from a fruitless inquiry in the neighbourhood, the landlord of the little inn where I lodged, told me he believed he had heard news of you, and immediately recounted what had happened at a blacksmith's shop a few hours before.

Here I continued to ask about your route, and eventually, I got the inn staff to remember you and tracked you down as far as Auboine. I lost you again there, but when I returned from a hopeless search in the area, the landlord of the small inn where I was staying told me he thought he had heard news about you and immediately shared what had happened at a blacksmith's shop just a few hours earlier.

His description of Peter was so exact, that I had not a doubt it was you who inhabited the abbey; and as I knew your necessity for concealment, Peter's denial did not shake my confidence. The next morning, with the assistance of my landlord, I found my way hither, and having searched every visible part of the fabric, I began to credit Peter's assertion: your appearance, however, destroyed this fear, by proving that the place was still inhabited, for you disappeared so instantaneously that I was not certain it was you whom I had seen. I continued seeking you till near the close of day, and till then scarcely quitted the chambers whence you had disappeared. I called on you repeatedly, believing that my voice might convince you of your mistake. At length I retired to pass the night at a cottage near the border of the forest.

His description of Peter was so accurate that I had no doubt it was you living in the abbey; and since I understood your need for hiding, Peter's denial didn’t shake my confidence. The next morning, with the help of my landlord, I made my way here, and after searching every visible part of the building, I started to believe Peter’s claim: however, your appearance shattered that fear, proving that someone was still living there, because you vanished so quickly that I couldn't be sure it was you I had seen. I kept looking for you until late in the day, hardly leaving the rooms where you had disappeared. I called out for you repeatedly, thinking my voice might convince you of your mistake. Eventually, I went to spend the night at a cottage near the edge of the forest.

I came early this morning to renew my inquiries, and hoped that, believing yourself safe, you would emerge from concealment. But how was I disappointed to find the abbey as silent and solitary as I had left it the preceding evening! I was returning once more from the great hall, when the voice of this young lady caught my ear, and effected the discovery I had so anxiously sought.

I arrived early this morning to continue my inquiries, hoping that, feeling safe, you would come out of hiding. But I was so disappointed to find the abbey just as quiet and lonely as I had left it the night before! I was on my way back from the great hall when I heard this young lady's voice, which led me to the discovery I had been so eagerly searching for.

This little narrative entirely dissipated the late apprehensions of La Motte; but he now dreaded that the inquiries of his son, and his own obvious desire of concealment, might excite a curiosity amongst the people of Auboine, and lead to a discovery of his true circumstances. However, for the present he determined to dismiss all painful thoughts, and endeavour to enjoy the comfort which the presence of his son had brought him. The furniture was removed to a more habitable part of the abbey, and the cells were again abandoned to their own glooms.

This little story completely erased La Motte's recent worries; however, he now feared that his son's questions, combined with his own obvious wish to keep things secret, might spark curiosity among the people of Auboine and lead to the revelation of his true situation. Still, for now, he decided to set aside all distressing thoughts and try to enjoy the comfort that his son's presence had brought him. The furniture was moved to a more livable part of the abbey, and the cells were once again left to their own darkness.

The arrival of her son seemed to have animated Madame La Motte with new life, and all her afflictions were, for the present, absorbed in joy. She often gazed silently on him with a mother's fondness, and her partiality heightened every improvement which time had wrought in his person and manner. He was now in his twenty-third year; his person was manly and his air military; his manners were unaffected and graceful, rather than dignified; and though his features were irregular, they composed a countenance which, having seen it once, you would seek it again.

The arrival of her son seemed to bring Madame La Motte back to life, and all her troubles, for now, were overshadowed by happiness. She often looked at him silently with a mother's affection, and her favoritism enhanced every improvement that time had made in his appearance and behavior. He was now twenty-three; he had a strong build and a military demeanor. His manners were natural and charming rather than formal, and although his features were somewhat uneven, they formed a face that made you want to see it again once you had laid eyes on it.

She made eager inquiries after the friends she had left at Paris, and learned that within the few months of her absence some had died and others quitted the place. La Motte also learned that a very strenuous search for him had been prosecuted at Paris; and, though this intelligence was only what he had before expected, it shocked him so much, that he now declared it would be expedient to remove to a distant country. Louis did not scruple to say that he thought he would be as safe at the abbey as at any other place; and repeated what Nemours had said, that the king's officers had been unable to trace any part of his route from Paris.

She eagerly asked about the friends she had left in Paris and found out that during the few months she had been away, some had died and others had left the city. La Motte also learned that there had been a very intense search for him in Paris; and, although he had expected this news, it shocked him so much that he now said it would be wise to move to a faraway country. Louis had no hesitation in saying that he thought he would be just as safe at the abbey as anywhere else, and he repeated what Nemours had said, that the king's officers had been unable to trace his route from Paris.

Besides, resumed Louis, this abbey is protected by a supernatural power, and none of the country people dare approach it.

Besides, Louis continued, this abbey is protected by a supernatural force, and none of the locals dare to come near it.

Please you, my young master, said Peter, who was waiting in the room, we were frightened enough the first night we came here, and I myself, God forgive me! thought the place was inhabited by devils, but they were only owls, and such like, after all.

“Please, my young master,” said Peter, who was waiting in the room, “we were pretty scared the first night we got here, and I, God forgive me, thought the place was home to demons, but it turned out to be just owls and things like that, after all.”

Your opinion was not asked, said La Motte, learn to be silent.

"Nobody asked for your opinion," La Motte said, "so learn to keep quiet."

Peter was abashed. When he had quitted the room, La Motte asked his son with seeming carelessness, what were the reports circulated by the country people? O! Sir, replies Louis, I cannot recollect half of them: I remember, however, they said that, many years ago, a person (but nobody had ever seen him, so we may judge how far the report ought to be credited)—a person was privately brought to this abbey, and confined in some part of it, and that there was strong reasons to believe he came unfairly to his end.

Peter felt embarrassed. After he left the room, La Motte casually asked his son what rumors the locals were spreading. "Oh, sir," Louis replied, "I can’t remember half of them. But I do recall that years ago, there was talk of someone—though no one had actually seen him, so we can guess how much to trust the story—someone was secretly brought to this abbey and kept in some part of it, and there were strong reasons to believe he met an untimely end."

La Motte sighed. They further said, continued Louis, that the spectre of the deceased had ever since watched nightly among the ruins: and to make the story more wonderful, for the marvellous is the delight of the vulgar, they added, that there was a certain part of the ruin from whence no person that had dared to explore it, had ever returned. Thus people, who have few objects of real interest to engage their thoughts, conjure up for themselves imaginary ones.

La Motte sighed. They went on to say, Louis continued, that the ghost of the deceased had been watching over the ruins every night since then: and to make the story even more amazing, because the fantastic is what captivates the ordinary folks, they added that there was a specific part of the ruins from which no one who had dared to explore it had ever returned. So, people who have few real interests to occupy their minds create imaginary ones for themselves.

La Motte sat musing. And what were the reasons, said he, at length awaking from his reverie, they pretended to assign for believing the person confined here was murdered?

La Motte sat lost in thought. And what were the reasons, he said, finally coming out of his daydream, that they claimed for believing the person held here was murdered?

They did not use a term so positive as that, replied Louis.

They didn’t use a term that strong, replied Louis.

True, said La Motte, recollecting himself, they only said he came unfairly to his end.

True, La Motte said, getting control of himself, they only claimed he met his end unfairly.

That is a nice distinction, said Adeline.

"That's a nice distinction," Adeline said.

Why I could not well comprehend what these reasons were, resumed Louis; the people indeed say, that the person who was brought here, was never known to depart; but I do not find it certain that he ever arrived: that there was strange privacy and mystery observed, while he was here, and that the abbey has never since been inhabited by its owner. There seems, however, to be nothing in all this that deserves to be remembered.—La Motte raised his head, as if to reply, when the entrance of Madame turned the discourse upon a new subject, and it was not resumed that day.

Why I couldn't really understand what those reasons were, Louis continued; people say that the person who was brought here was never seen leaving. But I’m not sure he ever actually arrived: there was a lot of strange secrecy and mystery while he was here, and the abbey hasn’t been lived in by its owner since. Still, it doesn’t seem like there’s anything in that worth remembering. La Motte lifted his head, as if to respond, but when Madame came in, the conversation shifted to a different topic, and it didn’t come back up that day.

Peter was now dispatched for provisions, while La Motte and Louis retired to consider how far it was safe for them to continue at the abbey. La Motte, notwithstanding the assurances lately given him, could not but think that Peter's blunders and his son's inquiries might lead to a discovery of his residence. He revolved this in his mind for some time; but at length a thought struck him, that the latter of these circumstances might considerably contribute to his security. If you, said he to Louis, return to the inn at Auboine, from whence you were directed here, and without seeming to intend giving intelligence, do give the landlord an account of your having found the abbey uninhabited, and then add, that you had discovered the residence of the person you sought in some distant town, it would suppress any reports that may at present exist, and prevent the belief of any in future. And if, after all this, you can trust yourself for presence of mind and command of countenance, so far as to describe some dreadful apparition, I think these circumstances, together with the distance of the abbey and the intricacies of the forest, could entitle me to consider this place as my castle.

Peter was sent out for supplies, while La Motte and Louis went off to discuss how far it was safe for them to stay at the abbey. La Motte, despite the reassurances he had just received, couldn't shake the worry that Peter's mistakes and his son’s questions might expose their location. He thought about it for a while, but eventually, an idea came to him that the latter situation could actually help keep them safe. “If you,” he said to Louis, “go back to the inn at Auboine, where you were told to come, and without it looking like you’re planning to spill any information, just tell the landlord that you found the abbey empty. Then, add that you discovered the person you were searching for in some far-off town. That will help quiet any rumors that might currently be around and stop any new ones from starting. And if, after all that, you can manage to keep your cool and maintain your composure enough to describe some frightening sighting, I think with all these factors, along with the distance of the abbey and the complexities of the forest, I could consider this place my fortress.”

Louis agreed to all that his father had proposed, and on the following day executed his commission with such success, that the tranquillity of the abbey might be then said to have been entirely restored.

Louis agreed to everything his father had suggested, and the next day he carried out his task so well that the peace of the abbey could be said to have been fully restored.

Thus ended this adventure, the only one that had occurred to disturb the family during their residence in the forest. Adeline, removed from the apprehension of those evils with which the late situation of La Motte had threatened her, and from the depression which her interest in his occasioned her, now experienced a more than usual complacency of mind. She thought, too, that she observed in Madame La Motte a renewal of her former kindness; and this circumstance awakened all her gratitude, and imparted to her a pleasure as lively as it was innocent. The satisfaction with which the presence of her son inspired Madame La Motte, Adeline mistook for kindness to herself, and she exerted her whole attention in an endeavour to become worthy of it.

Thus ended this adventure, the only one that had disturbed the family during their time in the forest. Adeline, now free from the fears that La Motte's recent situation had brought her, and from the sadness caused by her concern for him, felt a greater sense of peace. She also thought she noticed a return of Madame La Motte’s former kindness, which filled her with gratitude and gave her a joy that was as vivid as it was pure. The happiness that her son brought to Madame La Motte, Adeline misinterpreted as affection for herself, and she dedicated herself to becoming worthy of it.

But the joy which his unexpected arrival had given to La Motte quickly began to evaporate, and the gloom of despondency again settled on his countenance. He returned frequently to his haunt in the forest—the same mysterious sadness tinctured his manner, and revived the anxiety of Madame La Motte, who was resolved to acquaint her son with this subject of distress, and solicit his assistance to penetrate its source.

But the joy that La Motte felt from his unexpected arrival soon started to fade, and a sense of gloom returned to his face. He often went back to his spot in the forest—his mood was still shadowed by that same mysterious sadness, which renewed Madame La Motte's worries. She was determined to talk to her son about what was troubling her and to ask for his help in getting to the bottom of it.

Her jealousy of Adeline, however, she could not communicate, though it again tormented her, and taught her to misconstrue with wonderful ingenuity every look and word of La Motte, and often to mistake the artless expressions of Adeline's gratitude and regard for those of warmer tenderness. Adeline had formerly accustomed herself to long walks in the forest, and the design Madame had formed of watching her steps, had been frustrated by the late circumstances, and was now entirely overcome by her sense of its difficulty and danger. To employ Peter in the affair, would be to acquaint him with her fears; and to follow her herself, would most probably betray her scheme, by making Adeline aware of her jealousy. Being thus restrained by pride and delicacy, she was obliged to endure the pangs of uncertainty concerning the greatest part of her suspicions.

Her jealousy of Adeline, however, she couldn’t express, even though it tormented her again and made her twist every look and word from La Motte into something negative with incredible cleverness, often interpreting Adeline’s innocent expressions of gratitude and regard as signs of deeper affection. Adeline had previously gotten used to long walks in the forest, but Madame’s plan to keep an eye on her had been thwarted by recent events and was now completely overshadowed by the difficulty and danger of the situation. Involving Peter in the matter would mean revealing her fears to him, and following Adeline herself would likely expose her jealousy. So, held back by pride and sensitivity, she had to endure the pain of uncertainty about most of her suspicions.

To Louis, however, she related the mysterious change in his father's temper. He listened to her account with very earnest attention, and the surprise and concern impressed upon his countenance spoke how much his heart was interested. He was, however, involved in equal perplexity with herself upon this subject, and readily undertook to observe the motions of La Motte, believing his interference likely to be of equal service, both to his father and his mother. He saw, in some degree, the suspicions of his mother; but as he thought she wished to disguise her feelings, he suffered her to believe that she succeeded.

To Louis, she shared the strange change in his father's mood. He listened to her story with intense focus, and the surprise and concern on his face showed just how much it affected him. However, he was just as puzzled as she was about this issue and eagerly took on the task of watching La Motte, thinking his involvement could help both his father and mother. He noticed that his mother had some suspicions, but since he believed she wanted to hide her true feelings, he let her think she was succeeding.

He now inquired concerning Adeline; and listened to her little history, of which his mother gave a brief relation, with great apparent interest. So much pity did he express for her condition, and so much indignation at the unnatural conduct of her father, that the apprehensions which Madame La Motte began to form, of his having discovered her jealousy, yielded to those of a different kind. She perceived that the beauty of Adeline had already fascinated his imagination, and she feared that her amiable manners would soon impress his heart. Had her first fondness for Adeline continued, she would still have looked with displeasure upon their attachment, as an obstacle to the promotion and the fortune she hoped to see one day enjoyed by her son. On these she rested all her future hopes of prosperity, and regarded the matrimonial alliance which he might form as the only means of extricating his family from their present difficulties. She therefore touched lightly upon Adeline's merit, joined coolly with Louis, in compassionating her misfortunes, and with her censure of the father's conduct mixed an implied suspicion of that of Adeline's. The means she employed to repress the passions of her son had a contrary effect. The indifference which she repressed towards Adeline, increased his pity for her destitute condition; and the tenderness with which she affected to judge the father, heightened his honest indignation at his character.

He now asked about Adeline and listened to her story, which his mother summarized briefly, with great apparent interest. He showed so much sympathy for her situation and so much anger at her father’s unnatural behavior that the worries Madame La Motte had about his discovering her jealousy shifted to something else. She realized that Adeline's beauty had already captivated his imagination, and she feared that her charming personality would soon win his heart. If her initial affection for Adeline had remained, she would still have viewed their attachment unfavorably, seeing it as a barrier to the success and fortune she hoped her son would one day achieve. She pinned all her hopes for prosperity on these ambitions and considered the marriage alliance he might form as the only way to lift their family out of their current struggles. Therefore, she spoke lightly about Adeline's qualities, joined Louis in pitying her misfortunes, and mixed her criticism of the father with an implied suspicion of Adeline herself. The methods she used to suppress her son’s feelings had the opposite effect. The indifference she feigned towards Adeline only increased his compassion for her desperate situation, and the way she pretended to evaluate the father heightened his genuine anger at his character.

As he quitted Madame La Motte, he saw his father cross the lawn and enter the deep shade of the forest on the left. He judged this to be a good opportunity of commencing his plan, and quitting the abbey, slowly followed at a distance. La Motte continued to walk straight forward, and seemed so deeply wrapt in thought, that he looked neither to the right nor left, and scarcely lifted his head from the ground. Louis had followed him near half a mile, when he saw him suddenly strike into an avenue of the forest, which took a different direction from the way he had hitherto gone. He quickened his steps that he might not lose sight of him, but, having reached the avenue, found the trees so thickly interwoven that La Motte was already hid from his view.

As he left Madame La Motte’s, he saw his father cross the lawn and enter the dense shade of the forest to the left. He thought this was a good chance to start his plan, so he left the abbey and slowly followed at a distance. La Motte walked straight ahead, looking so lost in thought that he didn’t glance to the right or left and barely lifted his head from the ground. Louis had followed him for almost half a mile when he saw him suddenly turn into a path in the forest that went in a different direction from where he had been going. He quickened his pace so he wouldn’t lose sight of him, but when he reached the path, he found the trees so thickly intertwined that La Motte had already disappeared from view.

He continued, however, to pursue the way before him: it conducted him through the most gloomy part of the forest he had yet seen, till at length it terminated in an obscure recess, over-arched with high trees, whose interwoven branches secluded the direct rays of the sun, and admitted only a sort of solemn twilight. Louis looked around in search of La Motte, but he was no where to be seen. While he stood surveying the place, and considering what further should be done, he observed, through the gloom, an object at some distance, but the deep shadow that fell around prevented his distinguishing what it was.

He kept going down the path ahead of him, which took him through the darkest part of the forest he had encountered so far, until it eventually led to a secluded area surrounded by tall trees. Their intertwined branches blocked the direct sunlight and let in only a sort of somber twilight. Louis looked around for La Motte, but he was nowhere to be found. While he was taking in the surroundings and thinking about what to do next, he noticed something in the distance through the dim light, but the thick shadows made it impossible to tell what it was.

In advancing, he perceived the ruins of a small building, which, from the traces that remained, appeared to have been a tomb. As he gazed upon it, Here, said he, are probably deposited the ashes of some ancient monk, once an inhabitant of the abbey; perhaps, of the founder, who, after having spent a life of abstinence and prayer, sought in heaven the reward of his forbearance upon earth. Peace be to his soul! but did he think a life of mere negative virtue deserved an eternal reward? Mistaken man! reason, had you trusted to its dictates, would have informed you, that the active virtues, the adherence to the golden rule, Do as you would be done unto, could alone deserve the favour of a Deity whose glory is benevolence.

As he moved forward, he noticed the remains of a small building that looked like it used to be a tomb from the remnants. He thought, "Here lie the ashes of some ancient monk, once a resident of the abbey; maybe even the founder, who, after living a life of discipline and prayer, sought his reward in heaven for enduring life on earth. Rest in peace! But did he really believe that just having a life of passive virtue merited eternal rewards? Poor guy! If only you had listened to reason, it would have told you that only the active virtues, living by the golden rule, 'Do unto others as you would have them do unto you,' could truly earn the favor of a God whose essence is kindness."

He remained with his eyes fixed upon the spot, and presently saw a figure arise under the arch of the sepulchre. It started, as if on perceiving him, and immediately disappeared. Louis, though unused to fear, felt at that moment an uneasy sensation, but it almost immediately struck him that this was La Motte himself. He advanced to the ruin and called him. No answer was returned; and he repeated the call, but all was yet still as the grave. He then went up to the archway and endeavoured to examine the place where he had disappeared, but the shadowy obscurity rendered the attempt fruitless. He observed, however, a little to the right, an entrance to the ruin, and advanced some steps down a kind of dark passage, when, recollecting that this place might be the haunt of banditti, his danger alarmed him, and he retreated with precipitation.

He kept his eyes fixed on the spot and soon saw a figure appear under the arch of the tomb. It jumped back, as if it noticed him, and quickly vanished. Louis, who wasn’t used to feeling fear, felt a strange unease at that moment, but then it occurred to him that it was La Motte himself. He approached the ruins and called out to him. There was no response, so he called again, but everything remained as silent as a grave. He then moved closer to the archway and tried to see the spot where the figure had disappeared, but the dim light made it impossible. However, he noticed a little entrance to the ruins off to the right and took a few steps down a dark passage. Remembering that this area might be a hideout for bandits, he felt alarmed, and hurriedly retreated.

He walked towards the abbey by the way he came; and finding no person followed him, and believing himself again in safety, his former surmise returned, and he thought it was La Motte he had seen. He mused upon this strange possibility, and endeavoured to assign a reason for so mysterious a conduct, but in vain. Notwithstanding this, his belief of it strengthened, and he entered the abbey under as full a conviction as the circumstances would admit of, that it was his father who had appeared in the sepulchre. On entering what was now used as a parlour, he was much surprised to find him quietly seated there with Madame La Motte and Adeline, and conversing as if he had been returned some time.

He walked back to the abbey the same way he came; and finding no one following him, and thinking he was safe again, his earlier suspicion returned, and he believed it was La Motte he had seen. He pondered this strange possibility and tried to come up with an explanation for such mysterious behavior, but it was futile. Despite this, his belief in it grew stronger, and he entered the abbey fully convinced, given the circumstances, that it was his father who had appeared in the tomb. When he entered what was now being used as a parlor, he was quite surprised to find his father calmly seated there with Madame La Motte and Adeline, chatting as if he had returned some time ago.

He took the first opportunity of acquainting his mother with his late adventure, and of inquiring how long La Motte had been returned before him; when, learning that it was near half an hour, his surprise increased, and he knew not what to conclude.

He quickly told his mother about his recent adventure and asked how long La Motte had been back before him. When he found out it had been nearly half an hour, his surprise grew, and he didn't know what to make of it.

Meanwhile, a perception of the growing partiality of Louis co-operated with the canker of suspicion to destroy in Madame La Motte that affection which pity and esteem had formerly excited for Adeline. Her unkindness was now too obvious to escape the notice of her to whom it was directed, and, being noticed, it occasioned an anguish which Adeline found it very difficult to endure. With the warmth and candour of youth, she sought an explanation of this change of behaviour, and an opportunity of exculpating herself from any intention of provoking it. But this Madame La Motte artfully evaded; while at the same time she threw out hints that involved Adeline in deeper perplexity, and served to make her present affliction more intolerable.

Meanwhile, the growing favoritism of Louis combined with a sense of suspicion to ruin the affection that Madame La Motte once felt for Adeline, which had been inspired by pity and respect. Her unkindness was now too obvious for Adeline to ignore, and, once noticed, it caused a pain that Adeline found very tough to bear. With the openness and enthusiasm of youth, she sought an explanation for this change in behavior and wanted a chance to clear herself of any intention to provoke it. But Madame La Motte skillfully avoided this, while also dropping hints that only added to Adeline's confusion and made her current suffering even worse.

I have lost that affection, she would say, which was my all. It was my only comfort—yet I have lost it—and this without even knowing my offence. But I am thankful that I have not merited unkindness, and, though she has abandoned me, I shall always love her.

I have lost that love, she would say, which meant everything to me. It was my only comfort—yet it’s gone—and I don’t even know what I did wrong. But I’m grateful that I haven’t deserved any cruelty, and even though she has left me, I will always love her.

Thus distressed, she would frequently leave the parlour, and, retiring to her chamber, would yield to a despondency which she had never known till now.

Thus distressed, she often left the living room and, retreating to her bedroom, would succumb to a sadness she had never felt before.

One morning, being unable to sleep, she arose at a very early hour. The faint light of day now trembled through the clouds, and gradually spreading from the horizon, announced the rising sun. Every feature of the landscape was slowly unveiled, moist with the dews of night and brightening with the dawn, till at length the sun appeared and shed the full flood of day. The beauty of the hour invited her to walk, and she went forth into the forest to taste the sweets of morning. The carols of new-waked birds saluted her as she passed, and the fresh gale came scented with the breath of flowers, whose tints glowed more vivid through the dew drops that hung on their leaves.

One morning, unable to sleep, she got up very early. The weak light of day was beginning to flicker through the clouds, and gradually spreading from the horizon, signaled the rising sun. Every detail of the landscape was slowly revealed, wet with the night’s dew and brightening with dawn, until finally the sun appeared and filled the day with light. The beauty of the hour tempted her to go for a walk, and she stepped into the forest to enjoy the freshness of the morning. The songs of newly awakened birds greeted her as she walked, and the cool breeze carried the scent of flowers, whose colors shone even brighter through the dew drops clinging to their leaves.

She wandered on without noticing the distance, and, following the windings of the river, came to a dewy glade, whose woods, sweeping down to the very edge of the water, formed a scene so sweetly romantic, that she sealed herself at the foot of a tree, to contemplate its beauty. These images insensibly soothed her sorrow, and inspired her with that soft and pleasing melancholy so dear to the feeling mind. For some time she sat lost in a reverie, while the flowers that grew on the banks beside her seemed to smile in new life, and drew from her a comparison with her own condition. She mused and sighed, and then, in a voice whose charming melody was modulated by the tenderness of her heart, she sung the following words:

She walked on without realizing how far she had gone, and, following the twists of the river, arrived at a dewy glade, where the trees sloped down to the edge of the water, creating a scene so beautifully romantic that she settled at the base of a tree to take in its beauty. These sights gently eased her sadness and filled her with that soft and pleasing melancholy so cherished by sensitive souls. For a while, she sat lost in thought, while the flowers growing along the banks next to her seemed to smile with renewed life and reminded her of her own situation. She pondered and sighed, and then, in a voice whose lovely melody was shaped by her tender heart, she sang the following words:

SONNET,
To the Lily.
Soft silken flower! that in the dewy valley
You reveal your modest beauty to the morning,
And let your scent drift on her wandering breeze,
Across the green hills and shadowy valleys.
When the day has shut its bright eye,
And the dying winds fade gently away;
When evening descends upon the western sky,
And mountains, forests, and valleys fade away.
Your gentle cups, that graceful curve,
Droop sadly under her cold dew;
Your scents find their soft space,
And twilight covers their lazy color.
But soon, lovely flower! The morning will come,
And lift your thoughtful head again;
Again reveal your snowy colors,
Once more, your soft leaves spread.
Sweet child of Spring! Like you, in the shadow of sorrow,
I often cry and feel hopeless:
And oh! like yours, may light my darkness fill,
And let sadness flee before the bright morning of joy!

A distant echo lengthened out her tones, and she sat listening to the soft response, till repeating the last stanza of the sonnet she was answered by a voice almost as tender, and less distant. She looked round in surprise, and saw a young man in a hunter's dress leaning against a tree, and gazing on her with that deep attention which marks an enraptured mind.

A distant echo extended her notes, and she sat listening to the soft reply until, after repeating the last stanza of the sonnet, she was answered by a voice that was almost as gentle and closer. She looked around in surprise and saw a young man in hunting clothes leaning against a tree, staring at her with that intense focus that shows an captivated mind.

A thousand apprehensions shot athwart her busy thought; and she now first remembered her distance from the abbey. She rose in haste to be gone, when the stranger respectfully advanced; but, observing her timid looks and retiring steps, he paused. She pursued her way towards the abbey; and though many reasons made her anxious to know whether she was followed, delicacy forbade her to look back. When she reached the abbey, finding the family was not yet assembled to breakfast, she retired to her chamber, where her whole thoughts were employed in conjectures concerning the stranger. Believing that she was interested on this point no further than as it concerned the safety of La Motte, she indulged without scruple the remembrance of that dignified air and manner which so much distinguished the youth she had seen. After revolving the circumstance more deeply, she believed it impossible that a person of his appearance should be engaged in a stratagem to betray a fellow-creature; and though she was destitute of a single circumstance that might assist her surmises of who he was, or what was his business in an unfrequented forest, she rejected, unconsciously, every suspicion injurious to his character. Upon further deliberation, therefore, she resolved not to mention this little circumstance to La Motte; well knowing, that though his danger might be imaginary, his apprehensions would be real, and would renew all the sufferings and perplexity from which he was but just released. She resolved, however, to refrain, for some time walking in the forest.

A thousand worries raced through her busy mind, and she suddenly remembered how far she was from the abbey. She quickly got up to leave, but the stranger approached her respectfully; noticing her nervous expression and hesitant steps, he stopped. She continued on her way to the abbey, and even though she was anxious to know if he was following her, she felt too polite to look back. When she arrived at the abbey and found the family wasn’t yet gathered for breakfast, she went to her room, where all her thoughts were consumed with wondering about the stranger. She told herself she only cared about him as it related to La Motte's safety, but she couldn't help but remember the dignified presence and demeanor of the young man she had seen. After thinking about it more, she found it hard to believe that someone who looked like him could be involved in a scheme to harm another person, and even though she had no information to help her figure out who he was or what he was doing in such a lonely forest, she unconsciously dismissed any doubts about his character. After further consideration, she decided not to mention this small incident to La Motte, well aware that even if his danger was imagined, his fears would be genuine, and it would bring back all the pain and confusion he had just escaped. She also decided to avoid walking in the forest for a while.

When she came down to breakfast, she observed Madame La Motte to be more than usually reserved. La Motte entered the room soon after her, and made some trifling observations on the weather; and, having endeavoured to support an effort at cheerfulness, sunk into his usual melancholy. Adeline watched the countenance of Madame with anxiety; and when there appeared in it a gleam of kindness, it was as sunshine to her soul: but she very seldom suffered Adeline thus to flatter herself. Her conversation was restrained, and often pointed at something more than could be understood. The entrance of Louis was a very seasonable relief to Adeline, who almost feared to trust her voice with a sentence, lest its trembling accents should betray her uneasiness.

When she came down for breakfast, she noticed that Madame La Motte seemed more reserved than usual. La Motte entered the room shortly after her and made a few casual comments about the weather; but after trying to seem cheerful, he fell back into his usual melancholy. Adeline anxiously watched Madame's expression, and when she caught a hint of kindness, it felt like sunshine to her soul. However, Madame rarely let Adeline indulge in such hopes. Her conversation was restrained and often hinted at something deeper that couldn’t be understood. The arrival of Louis was a welcome relief for Adeline, who was almost afraid to speak, fearing that her trembling voice would reveal her anxiety.

This charming morning drew you early from your chamber? said Louis, addressing Adeline. You had, no doubt, a pleasant companion too? said Madame La Motte, a solitary walk is seldom agreeable.

"This lovely morning got you up early from your room?" Louis asked Adeline. "You had a nice companion with you, right?" Madame La Motte added, "A solo walk is rarely enjoyable."

I was alone, Madam, replied Adeline.

I was alone, ma'am, replied Adeline.

Indeed! your own thoughts must be highly pleasing then.

Indeed! Your own thoughts must be very pleasing, then.

Alas! returned Adeline, a tear spite of her efforts starting to her eye, there are now few subjects of pleasure left for them.

Alas! Adeline replied, a tear starting to form in her eye despite her efforts, there are now only a few sources of joy left for them.

That is very surprising, pursued Madame La Motte.

That’s really surprising, continued Madame La Motte.

Is it, indeed, surprising, Madam, for those who have lost their last friend to be unhappy?

Is it really surprising, Madam, for those who have lost their last friend to feel unhappy?

Madame La Motte's conscience acknowledged the rebuke, and she blushed.

Madame La Motte felt the sting of the rebuke and turned red.

Well, resumed she, after a short pause, that is not your situation, Adeline, looking earnestly at La Motte. Adeline, whose innocence protected her from suspicion, did not regard this circumstance; but, smiling through her tears, said, she rejoiced to hear her say so. During this conversation, La Motte had remained absorbed in his own thoughts; and Louis, unable to guess at what it pointed, looked alternately at his mother and Adeline for an explanation. The latter he regarded with an expression so full of tender compassion, that it revealed at once to Madame La Motte the sentiments of his soul; and she immediately replied to the last words of Adeline with a very serious air: A friend is only estimable when our conduct deserves one; the friendship that survives the merit of its object is a disgrace, instead of an honour, to both parties.

“Well,” she continued after a brief pause, “that’s not your situation, Adeline,” looking intently at La Motte. Adeline, whose innocence shielded her from suspicion, didn’t take this into account; but smiling through her tears, she said she was glad to hear her say that. During this conversation, La Motte had been lost in his own thoughts, and Louis, unable to understand what it meant, glanced back and forth between his mother and Adeline for clarification. He looked at the latter with an expression filled with tender compassion, which instantly revealed to Madame La Motte the feelings in his heart; and she quickly responded to Adeline’s last words with a serious tone: “A friend is only valuable when our actions deserve one; the friendship that lasts despite the merit of its object is a disgrace, not an honor, for both parties.”

The manner and emphasis with which she delivered these words, again alarmed Adeline, who mildly said, she hoped she should never deserve such censure. Madame was silent; but Adeline was so much shocked by what had already passed, that tears sprung from her eyes, and she hid her face with her handkerchief.

The way she spoke those words really alarmed Adeline again, and she gently replied that she hoped she would never deserve such criticism. Madame didn’t say anything; but Adeline was so upset by what had already happened that tears filled her eyes, and she covered her face with her handkerchief.

Louis now rose with some emotion; and La Motte, roused from his reverie, inquired what was the matter: but before he could receive an answer he seemed to have forgotten that he had asked the question. Adeline may give you her own account, said Madame La Motte. I have not deserved this, said Adeline rising; but since my presence is displeasing, I will retire.

Louis stood up, feeling emotional; and La Motte, pulled from his thoughts, asked what was wrong. But before he could get an answer, he appeared to forget he had asked. "Adeline can share her own story," said Madame La Motte. "I don’t deserve this," Adeline said as she got up; "but since my presence is unwelcome, I will leave."

She moved towards the door; when Louis, who was pacing the room in apparent agitation, gently took her hand, saying, Here is some unhappy mistake—and would have led her to the seat: but her spirits were too much depressed to endure longer restraint; and, withdrawing her hand, Suffer me to go, said she; if there is any mistake, I am unable to explain it. Saying this, she quitted the room. Louis followed her with his eyes to the door; when turning to his mother, Surely, Madam, said he, you are to blame: my life on it she deserves your warmest tenderness.

She moved toward the door, when Louis, who was pacing the room in obvious distress, gently took her hand and said, "There's been some unhappy mistake," and tried to lead her to a seat. But she was too upset to handle any more confinement, and pulling her hand away, she said, "Let me go; if there's a mistake, I can't explain it." With that, she left the room. Louis watched her go to the door, then turned to his mother and said, "Surely, Madam, you are to blame: I swear she deserves your deepest kindness."

You are very eloquent in her cause, Sir, said Madame, may I presume to ask what interested you thus in her favour.

"You express yourself very well on her behalf, Sir," said Madame. "May I ask what made you so interested in her?"

Her own amiable manners, rejoined Louis, which no one can observe without esteeming them.

"Her friendly demeanor," Louis replied, "that no one can notice without appreciating it."

But you may presume too much on your own observations; it is possible these amiable manners may deceive you.

But you might be overestimating your own observations; it's possible these charming behaviors could mislead you.

Your pardon Madam; I may, without presumption, affirm they cannot deceive me.

Your pardon, ma'am; I can say confidently that they can't fool me.

You have, no doubt, good reasons for this assertion, and I perceive, by your admiration of this artless innocence, she has succeeded in her design of entrapping your heart.

You definitely have good reasons for saying that, and I can see, by your admiration for this simple innocence, that she has managed to win your heart.

Without designing it, she has won my admiration, which would not have been the case, had she been capable of the conduct you mention.

Without trying, she has earned my admiration, which wouldn’t have happened if she were capable of the behavior you mentioned.

Madame La Motte was going to reply, but was prevented by her husband, who, again roused from his reverie, inquired into the cause of dispute. Away with this ridiculous behaviour, said he in a voice of displeasure; Adeline has omitted some household duty, I suppose; and an offence so heinous deserves severe punishment, no doubt: but let me be no more disturbed with your petty quarrels; if you must be tyrannical, Madam, indulge your humour in private.

Madame La Motte was about to respond, but her husband interrupted her, having been pulled out of his thoughts. He asked about the reason for the argument. “Enough of this silly behavior,” he said, clearly annoyed. “I assume Adeline has neglected some household chore. Such a serious offense clearly deserves harsh punishment, but I don’t want to be bothered by your trivial disputes anymore. If you must be domineering, Madam, keep it to yourself.”

Saying this, he abruptly quitted the room; and Louis immediately following, Madame was left to her own unpleasant reflections. Her ill-humour proceeded from the usual cause. She had heard of Adeline's walk; and La Motte having gone forth into the forest at an early hour, her imagination, heated by the broodings of jealousy, suggested that they had appointed a meeting. This was confirmed to her by the entrance of Adeline, quickly followed by La Motte; and her perceptions thus jaundiced by passion, neither the presence of her son, nor her usual attention to good manners, had been able to restrain her emotions. The behaviour of Adeline in the late scene she considered as a refined piece of art, and the indifference of La Motte as affected. So true is it that:

Saying this, he suddenly left the room; and Louis quickly followed, leaving Madame to her own unpleasant thoughts. Her bad mood came from the usual reason. She had heard about Adeline's walk, and since La Motte had gone into the forest early, her jealousy-fueled imagination suggested that they had arranged to meet. This was confirmed when Adeline entered, soon followed by La Motte; and because her feelings were biased by passion, neither the presence of her son nor her usual focus on good manners could hold back her emotions. She viewed Adeline's behavior in the recent scene as a clever act and considered La Motte's indifference to be fake. So true is it that:

Trivial, light as air,
For the jealous, confirmations are powerful.
As evidence of Scripture;

and so ingenious was she 'to twist the true cause the wrong way.'

and she was so clever at 'twisting the true cause the wrong way.'

Adeline had retired to her chamber to weep. When her first agitations were subsided, she took an ample view of her conduct; and perceiving nothing of which she could accuse herself, she became more satisfied, deriving her best comfort from the integrity of her intentions. In the moment of accusation, innocence may sometimes be oppressed with the punishment due only to guilt; but reflection dissolves the illusion of terror, and brings to the aching bosom the consolations of virtue.

Adeline had gone back to her room to cry. Once her initial distress had calmed down, she took a good look at her actions; realizing there was nothing to blame herself for, she felt more at ease, finding her greatest comfort in the honesty of her intentions. In times of self-doubt, innocence can sometimes bear the weight of punishment meant only for the guilty; however, taking time to reflect dispels the fear, bringing the relief of virtue to the troubled heart.

When La Motte quitted the room, he had gone into the forest; which Louis observing, he followed and joined him, with an intention of touching upon the subject of his melancholy. It is a fine morning, Sir, said Louis; if you will give me leave, I will walk with you. La Motte, though dissatisfied, did not object; and after they had proceeded some way, he changed the course of his walk, striking into a path contrary to that which Louis had observed him take on the foregoing day.

When La Motte left the room, he headed into the forest; Louis noticed this and followed him, planning to bring up the topic of his sadness. "It's a beautiful morning, Sir," Louis said. "If you don’t mind, I’d like to walk with you." La Motte, although not pleased, didn’t protest; and after they walked for a bit, he altered his route, taking a path different from the one Louis had seen him take the day before.

Louis remarked that the avenue they had quitted was more shady, and therefore more pleasant. La Motte not seeming to notice this remark, It leads to a singular spot, continued he, which I discovered yesterday. La Motte raised his head: Louis proceeded to describe the tomb, and the adventure he had met with. During this relation, La Motte regarded him with attention, while his own countenance suffered various changes. When he had concluded, You were very daring, said La Motte, to examine that place, particularly when you ventured down the passage: I would advise you to be more cautious how you penetrate the depths of this forest. I myself have not ventured beyond a certain boundary and am therefore uninformed what inhabitants it may harbour. Your account has alarmed me, continued he; for if banditti are in the neighbourhood, I am not safe from their depredations:—'tis true, I have but little to lose, except my life.

Louis noted that the street they had just left was shadier and therefore more pleasant. Since La Motte didn’t seem to acknowledge this remark, he continued, “It leads to a strange place I discovered yesterday.” La Motte looked up, and Louis went on to describe the tomb and the adventure he had experienced. As he spoke, La Motte listened intently, with his expression shifting through various emotions. When Louis finished, La Motte said, “You were quite brave to explore that place, especially when you went down the passage. I would recommend you be more careful about going deep into this forest. I haven’t ventured past a certain point myself, so I don’t know what kinds of creatures might be hiding there. Your story has made me uneasy, because if there are bandits around, I’m not safe from their attacks—it's true I don’t have much to lose, except my life.”

And the lives of your family, rejoined Louis.—Of course, said La Motte.

And the lives of your family, Louis replied. —Of course, La Motte said.

It would be well to have more certainty upon that head, rejoined Louis; I am considering how we may obtain it.

It would be good to have more clarity on that, Louis replied; I'm thinking about how we can achieve it.

'Tis useless to consider that, said La Motte; the inquiry itself brings danger with it; your life would perhaps be paid for the indulgence of your curiosity; our only chance of safety is by endeavouring to remain undiscovered. Let us move towards the abbey.

"It's pointless to think about that," said La Motte; "the investigation itself brings danger. Your life might be the price for satisfying your curiosity. Our only chance of safety is to try to stay hidden. Let's head toward the abbey."

Louis knew not what to think, but said no more upon the subject. La Motte soon after relapsed into a fit of musing; and his son now took occasion to lament that depression of spirits which he had lately observed in him. Rather lament the cause of it, said La Motte with a sigh. That I do most sincerely, whatever it may be. May I venture to inquire, Sir, what is this cause?

Louis didn't know what to think, but he said nothing more about it. La Motte soon fell back into a contemplative mood; and his son took the opportunity to express concern about the sadness he had recently noticed in him. "Instead of lamenting my sadness, you should lament the reason for it," La Motte replied with a sigh. "I truly do, whatever it may be. May I ask, sir, what that reason is?"

Are then my misfortunes so little known to you, rejoined La Motte, as to make that question necessary? Am I not driven from my home, from my friends, and almost from my country? And shall it be asked why I am afflicted? Louis felt the justice of this reproof, and was a moment silent. That you are afflicted, Sir, does not excite my surprise, resumed he; it would indeed be strange, were you not.

"Are my misfortunes really so unknown to you," La Motte replied, "that you need to ask that question? Am I not driven from my home, my friends, and nearly from my country? And do you really need to ask why I’m suffering?" Louis recognized the validity of this rebuke and was quiet for a moment. "That you are suffering, Sir, doesn’t surprise me," he continued; "it would actually be strange if you weren’t."

What then does excite your surprise?

What surprises you, then?

The air of cheerfulness you wore when I first came hither.

The cheerful vibe you had when I first arrived here.

You lately lamented that I was afflicted, said La Motte, and now seem not very well pleased that I once was cheerful. What is the meaning of this?

"You recently complained that I was suffering," La Motte said, "and now it seems you’re not very happy that I was once in good spirits. What’s that all about?"

You much mistake me, said his son; nothing could give me so much satisfaction as to see that cheerfulness renewed; the same cause of sorrow existed at that time, yet you was then cheerful.

"You've got me all wrong," said his son; "nothing would make me happier than to see that cheerfulness come back. The same reason for your sadness is still there, but you were cheerful back then."

That I was then cheerful, said La Motte, you might, without flattery, have attributed to yourself; your presence revived me, and I was relieved at the same time from a load of apprehensions.

That I was cheerful then, said La Motte, you could, without flattery, credit to yourself; your presence lifted my spirits, and at the same time, eased my worries.

Why then, as the same cause exists, are you not still cheerful?

Why, then, if the same reason is still there, aren't you cheerful anymore?

And why do you not recollect that it is your father you thus speak to?

And why don’t you remember that you’re talking to your father?

I do, Sir, and nothing but anxiety for my father could have urged me thus far: it is with inexpressible concern I perceive you have some secret cause of uneasiness; reveal it, Sir, to those who claim a share in all your affliction, and suffer them, by participation to soften its severity. Louis looked up, and observed the countenance of his father pale as death: his lips trembled while he spoke. Your penetration, however, you may rely upon it, has, in the present instance, deceived you: I have no subject of distress, but what you are already acquainted with, and I desire this conversation may never be renewed.

I do, Sir, and nothing but worry for my father could have brought me this far: it’s with deep concern that I notice you seem to have some hidden source of trouble; please share it, Sir, with those who share in your pain, and let them help ease its burden. Louis looked up and saw that his father's face was as pale as death: his lips shook as he spoke. However, you can trust that your insight has, in this case, misled you: I have no source of distress other than what you already know, and I ask that we never talk about this again.

If it is your desire, of course I obey, said Louis; but, pardon me, Sir, if—

If that's what you want, I'll do it, said Louis; but, excuse me, Sir, if—

I will not pardon you, Sir, interrupted La Motte; let the discourse end here. Saying this, he quickened his steps; and Louis, not daring to pursue, walked quietly on till he reached the abbey.

I will not forgive you, Sir, interrupted La Motte; let’s end this conversation here. Saying this, he picked up his pace; and Louis, too afraid to follow, walked slowly on until he reached the abbey.

Adeline passed the greatest part of the day alone in her chamber, where, having examined her conduct, she endeavoured to fortify her heart against the unmerited displeasure of Madame La Motte. This was a task more difficult than that of self-acquittance. She loved her, and had relied on her friendship, which, notwithstanding the conduct of Madame, still appeared valuable to her. It was true, she had not deserved to lose it; but Madame was so averse to explanation, that there was little probability of recovering it, however ill-founded might be the cause of her dislike. At length she reasoned, or rather perhaps persuaded herself into tolerable composure; for to resign a real good with contentment is less an effort of reason than of temper.

Adeline spent most of the day alone in her room, where, after reflecting on her actions, she tried to strengthen her heart against Madame La Motte's unjust displeasure. This was a tougher challenge than coming to terms with herself. She loved her and had counted on her friendship, which, despite Madame's behavior, still seemed valuable to her. True, she didn’t deserve to lose it, but Madame was so opposed to talking things through that the chances of getting it back were slim, no matter how unfounded her animosity might be. Eventually, she reasoned, or maybe just convinced herself, into a sense of calm; because letting go of something truly good with acceptance is more about attitude than logic.

For many hours she busied herself upon a piece of work which she had undertaken for Madame La Motte; and this she did without the least intention of conciliating her favour, but because she felt there was something in thus repaying unkindness, which was suitable to her own temper, her sentiments, and her pride. Self-love may be the centre round which the human affections move; for whatever motive conduces to self-gratification may be resolved into self-love; yet some of these affections are in their nature so refined, that though we cannot deny their origin, they almost deserve the name of virtue. Of this species was that of Adeline.

For many hours, she kept herself busy with a project she had taken on for Madame La Motte. She did this not to win her favor but because she believed that repaying unkindness suited her character, her feelings, and her pride. Self-love may be the core around which human emotions revolve; anything that leads to personal satisfaction can be traced back to self-love. Yet, some of these feelings are so refined that, even if we recognize their source, they almost deserve to be called virtuous. Adeline's feelings were of this kind.

In this employment, and in reading, Adeline passed as much of the day as possible. From books, indeed, she had constantly derived her chief information and amusement: those belonging to La Motte were few, but well chosen; and Adeline could find pleasure in reading them more than once. When her mind was discomposed by the behaviour of Madame La Motte, or by a retrospection of her early misfortunes, a book was the opiate that lulled it to repose. La Motte had several of the best English poets, a language which Adeline had learned in the convent; their beauties, therefore, she was capable of tasting, and they often inspired her with enthusiastic delight.

In this job, Adeline spent as much of her day as she could reading. She often got her main knowledge and entertainment from books: although La Motte had only a few, they were well chosen, and Adeline enjoyed reading them multiple times. When she felt unsettled by Madame La Motte’s behavior or reflected on her past hardships, a book was the escape that calmed her mind. La Motte owned several of the best English poets, a language that Adeline had learned in the convent; therefore, she was able to appreciate their beauty, and they often filled her with excitement and joy.

At the decline of day she quitted her chamber to enjoy the sweet evening hour, but strayed no further than an avenue near the abbey, which fronted the west. She read a little; but finding it impossible any longer to abstract her attention from the scene around; she closed the book, and yielded to the sweet complacent melancholy which the hour inspired. The air was still; the sun sinking below the distant hill, spread a purple glow over the landscape, and touched the forest glades with softer light. A dewy freshness was diffused upon the air. As the sun descended, the dusk came silently on, and the scene assumed a solemn grandeur. As she mused, she recollected and repeated the following stanzas:

At sunset, she left her room to enjoy the lovely evening, but wandered no further than a path by the abbey facing west. She read for a bit, but found it impossible to focus on the book with the beautiful scene around her; she closed it and surrendered to the sweet, soothing melancholy the moment inspired. The air was calm; the sun setting behind the distant hill painted a purple hue over the landscape and bathed the forest clearings in a softer light. A fresh dew permeated the air. As the sun slipped down, dusk quietly set in, giving the scene a solemn grandeur. While she contemplated, she remembered and recited the following stanzas:

NIGHT.
Now evening is coming to an end! Her thoughtful walk comes to a close,
And Night brings on the dew and shadowy hours:
Her terrible display of celestial flames,
And all her group of imaginative abilities.
These paint temporary shapes in the dream of sleep,
These fill the waking soul with a delightful fear;
These move through the darkness in frightening shapes,
And awaken the exciting terrors of the dead!
Queen of deep contemplation—mysterious Night!
Whose footsteps bring darkness, and whose voice instills fear!
I welcome your shadows with intense pleasure,
And greet your empty winds that sigh so sadly!
When wrapped in clouds and riding the wind,
You roll the storm along the crashing shore,
I love to watch the overwhelming waves crash.
On the rocks below, and hear the roar.
I often seek your gentler fears, Night.
Your silent lightning and the glare of your meteors,
Your northern lights, bright with a blood-red color,
That light in the high sky heats the air.
But mainly I love you when your car holds
A shimmering light breaks through the fluffy clouds,
And shows the foggy mountain in the distance,
The nearby forest and the stream in the valley:
And unnamed things in the valley below,
That, faintly visible to the contemplative gaze,
Imagine, with Fancy's touch, a spectacular performance,
And lift her sweet romantic dreams up high.
Then let me stand among your deep shadows,
On a broad, wooded slope, listen to the breeze
That rises in a sorrowful tune all around,
And slowly fades away among the distant trees.
What a sad charm takes over the mind!
What sacred tears greet the rising joy!
While many an unseen spirit in the wind
Sighs to the lonely hour in sweet tones!
Ah! who would give in to the dear illusions that brought them joy,
Which Fancy wakes from silence and from darkness,
For all the serious aspects of Truth revealed,
For all the scenes that Day's bright eye sees!

On her return to the abbey she was joined by Louis, who, after some conversation, said, I am much grieved by the scene to which I was witness this morning, and have longed for an opportunity of telling you so. My mother's behaviour is too mysterious to be accounted for, but it is not difficult to perceive she labours under some mistake. What I have to request is, that whenever I can be of service to you, you will command me.

On her way back to the abbey, she was joined by Louis, who, after chatting for a bit, said, "I'm really upset about what I saw this morning and have been wanting to tell you. My mother's behavior is too confusing to understand, but it's clear she’s dealing with some kind of misunderstanding. What I ask is that whenever I can help you, just let me know."

Adeline thanked him for this friendly offer, which she felt more sensibly than she chose to express. I am unconscious, said she, of any offence that may have deserved Madame La Motte's displeasure, and am therefore totally unable to account for it. I have repeatedly sought an explanation, which she has as anxiously avoided; it is better, therefore, to press the subject no farther. At the same time, Sir, suffer me to assure you, I have a just sense of your goodness. Louis sighed, and was silent. At length, I wish you would permit me, resumed he, to speak with my mother upon this subject; I am sure I could convince her of her error.

Adeline thanked him for his kind offer, which she felt more deeply than she chose to say. "I'm not aware," she said, "of any offense that might have warranted Madame La Motte's displeasure, and I'm completely unable to explain it. I've tried to get an explanation several times, but she has avoided it every time; it's probably best not to pursue this any further. At the same time, sir, please let me assure you that I truly appreciate your kindness." Louis sighed and fell silent. Finally, he said, "I wish you would allow me to talk to my mother about this; I'm sure I could convince her she's mistaken."

By no means, replied Adeline: Madame La Motte's displeasure has given me inexpressible concern; but to compel her to an explanation, would only increase this displeasure, instead of removing it. Let me beg of you not to attempt it.

"Not at all," Adeline replied. "Madame La Motte's anger has deeply unsettled me; however, forcing her to explain would only make things worse, not better. Please, I urge you not to try."

I submit to your judgment, said Louis, but, for once, it is with reluctance. I should esteem myself most happy if I could be of service to you. He spoke this with an accent so tender, that Adeline, for the first time, perceived the sentiments of his heart. A mind more fraught with vanity than hers would have taught her long ago to regard the attentions of Louis as the result of something more than well-bred gallantry. She did not appear to notice his last words, but remained silent, and involuntarily quickened her pace. Louis said no more, but seemed sunk in thought; and this silence remained uninterrupted till they entered the abbey.

"I leave it up to your judgment," said Louis, "but I do so reluctantly this time. I would be really happy if I could help you." He said this with such a tender tone that Adeline, for the first time, understood the feelings in his heart. Anyone more vain than she would have figured out long ago that Louis's attention was about more than just polite kindness. She didn't seem to acknowledge his last words, staying silent and subconsciously walking faster. Louis didn’t say anything more, looking lost in thought, and the silence continued until they entered the abbey.







CHAPTER VI

So, terrible shadow!
Unreal mockery, then!
MACBETH.

Near a month elapsed without any remarkable occurrence: the melancholy of La Motte suffered little abatement; and the behaviour of Madame to Adeline, though somewhat softened, was still far from kind. Louis by numberless little attentions testified his growing affection for Adeline, who continued to treat them as passing civilities.

Almost a month passed without anything important happening: La Motte's sadness didn’t improve much, and Madame's attitude toward Adeline, though slightly kinder, remained quite cold. Louis expressed his growing affection for Adeline through many small acts, but she continued to view them as just polite gestures.

It happened, one stormy night, as they were preparing for rest, that they were alarmed by the trampling of horses near the abbey. The sound of several voices succeeded, and a loud knocking at the great gate of the hall soon after confirmed the alarm. La Motte had little doubt that the officers of justice had at length discovered his retreat, and the perturbation of fear almost confounded his senses: he, however, ordered the lights to be extinguished, and a profound silence to be observed, unwilling to neglect even the slightest possibility of security. There was a chance, he thought, that the persons might suppose the place uninhabited, and believe they had mistaken the object of their search. His orders were scarcely obeyed, when the knocking was renewed, and with increased violence. La Motte now repaired to a small grated window in the portal of the gate, that he might observe the number and appearance of the strangers.

It happened one stormy night, as they were getting ready for bed, that they were startled by the sound of horses trampling nearby the abbey. Several voices followed, and a loud banging on the big gate of the hall soon confirmed their fears. La Motte had little doubt that the officers of the law had finally found his hiding place, and the overwhelming fear almost bewildered him. However, he ordered the lights to be turned off and insisted on complete silence, not wanting to overlook even the slightest chance of safety. He thought there was a possibility that the visitors might assume the place was empty and believe they had missed their target. His instructions were barely followed when the banging started again, even more violently. La Motte then went to a small barred window in the gate's entrance to see how many strangers were outside and what they looked like.

The darkness of the night baffled his purpose, he could only perceive a group of men on horseback; but listening attentively, he distinguished part of their discourse. Several of the men contended that they had mistaken the place; till a person, who, from his authoritative voice, appeared to be their leader, affirmed that the lights had issued from this spot, and he was positive there were persons within. Having said this, he again knocked loudly at the gate, and was answered only by hollow echoes. La Motte's heart trembled at the sound, and he was unable to move.

The darkness of the night confused his intentions; he could only see a group of men on horseback. However, by listening closely, he caught part of their conversation. Several of the men argued that they had gotten the location wrong until a man, who sounded like their leader, asserted that the lights had come from this spot and that he was sure there were people inside. After saying this, he knocked loudly on the gate again, but all he heard in response were hollow echoes. La Motte's heart raced at the sound, and he found himself unable to move.

After waiting some time, the strangers seemed as if in consultation; but their discourse was conducted in such a low tone of voice, that La Motte was unable to distinguish its purport. They withdrew from the gate, as if to depart; but he presently thought he heard them amongst the trees on the other side of the fabric, and soon became convinced they had not left the abbey. A few minutes held La Motte in a state of torturing suspense; he quitted the grate, where Louis now stationed himself, for that part of the edifice which overlooked the spot where he supposed them to be waiting.

After waiting for a while, the strangers appeared to be in discussion; however, they spoke so softly that La Motte couldn't make out what they were saying. They stepped away from the gate as if they were about to leave, but he soon thought he heard them among the trees on the other side of the building and quickly became convinced they hadn't left the abbey. A few minutes left La Motte in a state of unbearable suspense; he left the gate, where Louis had now taken his position, to go to the part of the building that overlooked where he believed they were waiting.

The storm was now loud, and the hollow blasts which rushed among the trees prevented his distinguishing any other sound. Once, in the pauses of the wind, he thought he heard distinct voices; but he was not long left to conjecture, for the renewed knocking at the gate again appalled him; and regardless of the terrors of Madame La Motte and Adeline, he ran to try his last chance of concealment by means of the trap-door.

The storm was really loud now, and the strong gusts rushing through the trees drowned out any other sounds. Once, during a lull in the wind, he thought he heard clear voices. But he didn’t have time to think about it for long because the banging at the gate started again, terrifying him. Forgetting about the fears of Madame La Motte and Adeline, he rushed to try his last chance of hiding through the trap-door.

Soon after, the violence of the assailants seeming to increase with every gust of the tempest, the gate, which was old and decayed, burst from its hinges, and admitted them to the hall. At the moment of their entrance, a scream from Madame La Motte, who stood at the door of an adjoining apartment, confirmed the suspicions of the principal stranger, who continued to advance as fast as the darkness would permit him.

Soon after, the attackers' violence seemed to escalate with every gust of the storm, the gate, which was old and worn, burst from its hinges and swung open, letting them into the hall. At the moment they entered, a scream from Madame La Motte, who stood at the door of a nearby room, confirmed the suspicions of the main stranger, who continued to move forward as quickly as the darkness allowed.

Adeline had fainted, and Madame La Motte was calling loudly for assistance, when Peter entered with lights, and discovered the hall filled with men, and his young mistress senseless upon the floor. A chevalier now advanced, and, soliciting pardon of Madame for the rudeness of his conduct, was attempting an apology, when, perceiving Adeline, he hastened to raise her from the ground; but Louis, who now returned, caught her in his arms, and desired the stranger not to interfere.

Adeline had fainted, and Madame La Motte was loudly calling for help when Peter came in with lights and found the hall packed with men, and his young mistress unconscious on the floor. A chevalier stepped forward, asking Madame to forgive his earlier rudeness and trying to apologize, but when he saw Adeline, he rushed to lift her from the ground. However, Louis, who had just returned, grabbed her in his arms and told the stranger not to get involved.

The person to whom he spoke this, wore the star of one of the first orders in France, and had an air of dignity which declared him to be of superior rank. He appeared to be about forty, but perhaps the spirit and fire of his countenance made the impression of time upon his features less perceptible. His softened aspect and insinuating manners, while, regardless of himself, he seemed attentive only to the condition of Adeline, gradually dissipated the apprehensions of Madame La Motte, and subdued the sudden resentment of Louis. Upon Adeline, who was yet insensible, he gazed with an eager admiration, which seemed to absorb all the faculties of his mind. She was indeed an object not to be contemplated with indifference.

The person he was speaking to wore the insignia of one of the highest orders in France and had a dignified presence that signaled he was of noble status. He looked to be around forty, though the intensity and passion in his expression made it harder to notice the effects of age on his face. His gentle demeanor and charming behavior, as he focused solely on Adeline's condition and ignored his own needs, gradually eased Madame La Motte's worries and calmed Louis's sudden anger. He looked at Adeline, who was still unconscious, with a captivated admiration that seemed to occupy all his thoughts. She was certainly a person who commanded attention.

Her beauty, touched with the languid delicacy of illness, gained from sentiment what it lost in bloom. The negligence of her dress, loosened for the purpose of freer respiration, discovered those glowing charms, which her auburn tresses, that fell in profusion over her bosom, shaded, but could not conceal.

Her beauty, marked by the fragile softness of illness, gained a sense of emotion that made up for its fading radiance. The careless way she dressed, loosened to allow for easier breathing, revealed those radiant features that her flowing auburn hair, which cascaded over her chest, shaded but couldn’t hide.

There now entered another stranger, a young chevalier, who having spoke hastily to the elder, joined the general group that surrounded Adeline. He was of a person in which elegance was happily blended with strength, and had a countenance animated, but not haughty; noble, yet expressive of peculiar sweetness. What rendered it at present more interesting, was the compassion, he seemed to feel for Adeline, who now revived and saw him, the first object that met her eyes, bending over her in silent anxiety.

There now entered another stranger, a young knight, who quickly spoke to the older man before joining the group gathered around Adeline. He had an appearance where elegance was nicely combined with strength, and his face was animated, but not arrogant; noble, yet showing a special warmth. What made him even more captivating at that moment was the compassion he seemed to feel for Adeline, who had just revived and saw him—the first thing she noticed—leaning over her with a worried expression.

On perceiving him, a blush of quick surprise passed over her cheek, for she knew him to be the stranger she had seen in the forest. Her countenance instantly changed to the paleness of terror when she observed the room crowded with people. Louis now supported her into another apartment, where the two chevaliers, who followed her, again apologized for the alarm they had occasioned. The elder, turning to Madame La Motte, said, You are, no doubt, Madam, ignorant that I am the proprietor of this abbey. She started. Be not alarmed, Madam, you are safe and welcome. This ruinous spot has been long abandoned by me, and if it has afforded you a shelter I am happy. Madame La Motte expressed her gratitude for this condescension, and Louis declared his sense of the politeness of the Marquis de Montalt, for that was the name of the noble stranger.

On seeing him, a quick blush of surprise spread across her cheek, because she recognized him as the stranger she had encountered in the forest. Her face instantly turned pale with fear when she noticed the room filled with people. Louis then helped her into another room, where the two gentlemen who had followed her again apologized for causing her alarm. The older one turned to Madame La Motte and said, "You may not realize, Madam, that I own this abbey." She was taken aback. "Please don't be alarmed, Madam; you are safe and welcome here. This run-down place has been abandoned by me for a long time, and if it has given you shelter, I'm glad." Madame La Motte expressed her gratitude for his kindness, and Louis acknowledged the politeness of the Marquis de Montalt, which was the noble stranger's name.

My chief residence, said the Marquis, is in a distant province, but I have a chateau near the borders of the forest, and in returning from an excursion I have been benighted and lost my way. A light which gleamed through the trees attracted me hither; and such was the darkness without, that I did not know it proceeded from the abbey till I came to the door. The noble deportment of the strangers, the splendour of their apparel, and above all, this speech dissipated every remaining doubt of Madame's, and she was giving orders for refreshments to be set before them, when La Motte, who had listened, and was now convinced he had nothing to fear, entered the apartment.

"My main home," the Marquis said, "is in a far-off province, but I have a chateau near the edge of the forest. On my way back from a trip, I got caught in the dark and lost my way. A light shining through the trees drew me here, and it was so dark outside that I didn't realize it was coming from the abbey until I reached the door. The noble demeanor of the strangers, the elegance of their clothing, and especially this conversation cleared up any lingering doubts for Madame, and she was beginning to arrange for refreshments to be served when La Motte, who had been listening and was now sure he had nothing to worry about, walked into the room."

He advanced towards the Marquis with a complacent air; but as he would have spoke, the words of welcome faltered on his lips, his limbs trembled, and a ghastly paleness overspread his countenance.

He walked up to the Marquis with a self-satisfied demeanor; but as he tried to speak, the words of welcome caught in his throat, his limbs shook, and a sickly pale hue took over his face.

The Marquis was little less agitated, and in the first moment of surprise put his hand upon his sword; but recollecting himself, he withdrew it, and endeavoured to obtain a command of features. A pause of agonizing silence ensued. La Motte made some motion towards the door, but his agitated frame refused to support him, and he sunk into a chair, silent and exhausted. The horror of his countenance, together with his whole behaviour, excited the utmost surprise in Madame, whose eyes inquired of the Marquis more than he thought proper to answer: his look increased instead of explaining the mystery, and expressed a mixture of emotions which she could not analyze. Meanwhile she endeavoured to soothe and revive her husband; but he repressed her efforts, and, averting his face, covered it with his hands.

The Marquis was almost as shaken and, in a moment of shock, instinctively reached for his sword; but then he caught himself, pulled his hand back, and tried to compose his expression. An agonizing silence followed. La Motte moved toward the door, but his trembling body couldn’t hold him up, and he collapsed into a chair, silent and drained. The look of horror on his face and his entire demeanor left Madame in a state of confusion, her eyes silently asking the Marquis questions he didn’t feel comfortable answering. His expression only deepened the mystery, revealing a mix of feelings she couldn’t decode. In the meantime, she tried to comfort and energize her husband, but he pushed her efforts away, turning his face and covering it with his hands.

The Marquis seeming to recover his presence of mind, stepped to the door of the hall where his people were assembled, when La Motte, starting from his seat with a frantic air, called on him to return. The Marquis looked back and stopped: but still hesitating whether to proceed, the supplications of Adeline, who was now returned, added to those of La Motte, determined him, and he sat down. I request of you, my Lord, said La Motte, that we may converse for a few moments by ourselves.

The Marquis, seeming to regain his composure, walked to the door of the hall where his people were gathered, when La Motte suddenly jumped up from his seat with a frantic look and urged him to come back. The Marquis turned around and paused; still unsure whether to go on, he was swayed by the pleas of Adeline, who had just returned, along with La Motte's. He decided to sit down. "I ask you, my Lord," La Motte said, "that we have a few moments to talk privately."

The request is bold, and the indulgence perhaps dangerous, said the Marquis: it is more also than I will grant. You can have nothing to say with which your family are not acquainted—speak your purpose and be brief. La Motte's complexion varied to every sentence of this speech. Impossible, my Lord, said he; my lips shall close for ever, ere they pronounced before another human being the words reserved for you alone. I entreat—I supplicate of you a few moments' private discourse. As he pronounced these words, tears swelled into his eyes; and the Marquis, softened by his distress, consented, though with evident emotion and reluctance, to his request.

The request is bold, and the indulgence might be risky, said the Marquis: it's also more than I will allow. You have nothing to say that your family doesn’t already know—state your purpose and be quick about it. La Motte's face changed with every sentence of this speech. "No way, my Lord," he said; "my lips will remain sealed forever before I say the words meant for you alone to anyone else." I beg—I plead with you for a few moments of private conversation. As he said this, tears filled his eyes; and the Marquis, moved by his distress, agreed, though with clear emotion and reluctance, to his request.

La Motte took a light and led the Marquis to a small room in a remote part of the edifice, where they remained near an hour. Madame, alarmed by the length of their absence, went in quest of them: as she drew near, a curiosity in such circumstances perhaps not unjustifiable, prompted her to listen. La Motte just then exclaimed—The phrensy of despair!—some words followed, delivered in a low tone, which she could not understand. I have suffered more than I can express, continued he; the same image has pursued me in my midnight dream and in my daily wanderings. There is no punishment, short of death, which I would not have endured to regain the state of mind with which I entered this forest. I again address myself to your compassion.

La Motte took a light and led the Marquis to a small room in a quiet part of the building, where they stayed for about an hour. Madame, worried by how long they had been gone, went to find them. As she approached, her curiosity—perhaps understandable in such situations—made her want to listen in. Just then, La Motte exclaimed, "The madness of despair!" Some words followed, spoken in a low voice that she couldn't make out. "I've suffered more than I can express," he continued. "The same image has haunted me in my midnight dreams and during my daily wanderings. There’s no punishment, short of death, that I wouldn’t have endured to regain the state of mind I had when I entered this forest. I appeal to your compassion once more."

A loud gust of wind that burst along the passage where Madame La Motte stood, overpowered his voice and that of the Marquis, who spoke in reply: but she soon after distinguished these words,—To-morrow, my Lord, if you return to these ruins, I will lead you to the spot.

A loud gust of wind swept through the passage where Madame La Motte stood, drowning out his voice and that of the Marquis, who answered him. But she soon made out these words: "Tomorrow, my Lord, if you come back to these ruins, I will take you to the spot."

That is scarcely necessary, and may be dangerous, said the Marquis. From you, my Lord, I can excuse these doubts, resumed La Motte; but I will swear whatever you shall propose. Yes, continued he, whatever may be the consequence, I will swear to submit to your decree! The rising tempest again drowned the sound of their voices, and Madame La Motte vainly endeavoured to hear those words upon which probably hung the explanation of this mysterious conduct. They now moved towards the door, and she retreated with precipitation to the apartment where she had left Adeline with Louis and the young chevalier.

"That's hardly necessary, and it could be risky," said the Marquis. "I can understand your doubts, my Lord," La Motte replied, "but I will swear to anything you propose. Yes," he continued, "whatever the consequence, I will swear to follow your decision!" The rising storm once again drowned out their voices, and Madame La Motte tried in vain to catch the words that likely held the key to this mysterious behavior. They moved toward the door, and she hurried back to the room where she had left Adeline with Louis and the young chevalier.

Hither the Marquis and La Motte soon followed, the first haughty and cool, the latter somewhat more composed than before, though the impression of horror was not yet faded from his countenance. The Marquis passed on to the hall where his retinue awaited; the storm was not yet subsided, but he seemed impatient to be gone, and ordered his people to be in readiness. La Motte observed a sullen silence, frequently pacing the room with hasty steps, and sometimes lost in reverie. Meanwhile the Marquis, seating himself by Adeline, directed to her his whole attention, except when sudden fits of absence came over his mind and suspended him in silence: at these times the young chevalier addressed Adeline, who with diffidence and some agitation shrunk from the observance of both.

The Marquis and La Motte soon arrived, the former proud and aloof, the latter a bit more composed than before, although the look of horror still lingered on his face. The Marquis went straight to the hall where his entourage was waiting; the storm hadn't calmed down yet, but he seemed eager to leave and told his people to get ready. La Motte kept a gloomy silence, often pacing the room with quick steps, sometimes lost in thought. Meanwhile, the Marquis sat next to Adeline, focusing all his attention on her, except when he had sudden moments of distraction that left him quiet. During these times, the young chevalier spoke to Adeline, who, feeling shy and a bit anxious, pulled away from the gaze of both men.

The Marquis had been near two hours at the abbey, and the tempest still continuing, Madame La Motte offered him a bed. A look from her husband made her tremble for the consequence. Her offer was however politely declined, the Marquis being evidently as impatient to be gone, as his tenant appeared distressed by his presence. He often returned to the hall, and from the gates raised a look of impatience to the clouds. Nothing was to be seen through the darkness of night—nothing heard but the howlings of the storm.

The Marquis had been at the abbey for almost two hours, and with the storm still raging, Madame La Motte offered him a place to stay. A glance from her husband made her nervous about the implications. However, the Marquis politely rejected her offer, clearly as eager to leave as her husband seemed uncomfortable with his presence. He frequently went back to the hall and cast impatient glances at the cloud-covered sky from the gates. There was nothing visible through the darkness of the night—only the sounds of the storm echoed around them.

The morning dawned before he departed. As he was preparing to leave the abbey, La Motte again drew him aside, and held him for a few moments in close conversation. His impassioned gestures, which Madame La Motte observed from a remote part of the room, added to her curiosity a degree of wild apprehension, derived from the obscurity of the subject. Her endeavour to distinguish the corresponding words was baffled by the low voice in which they were uttered.

The morning broke before he left. As he got ready to leave the abbey, La Motte pulled him aside again and held him in a close conversation for a few moments. His animated gestures, which Madame La Motte watched from a distance in the room, sparked her curiosity along with a sense of anxiety from the mystery of the topic. Her attempt to catch the words they were saying was frustrated by the quiet tone in which they spoke.

The Marquis and his retinue at length departed; and La Motte, having himself fastened the gates, silently and dejectedly withdrew to his chamber. The moment they were alone, Madame seized the opportunity of entreating her husband to explain the scene she had witnessed. Ask me no questions, said La Motte sternly, for I will answer none. I have already forbidden your speaking to me on this subject.

The Marquis and his group eventually left, and La Motte, after locking the gates himself, quietly and sadly went to his room. As soon as they were alone, Madame took the chance to ask her husband to explain what she had seen. "Don't ask me any questions," La Motte said firmly, "because I won't answer any. I've already told you not to talk to me about this."

What subject? said his wife. La Motte seemed to recollect himself—No matter—I was mistaken—I thought you had repeated these questions before.

"What subject?" his wife asked. La Motte seemed to gather himself—“Never mind—I was mistaken—I thought you had asked these questions before.”

Ah! said Madame La Motte, it is then as I suspected; your former melancholy and the distress of this night have the same cause.

Ah! said Madame La Motte, so it is as I thought; your past sadness and the troubles of tonight have the same root.

And why should you either suspect or inquire? Am I always to be persecuted with conjectures?

And why should you suspect or ask? Am I always going to be tormented by assumptions?

Pardon me, I meant not to persecute you; but my anxiety for your welfare will not suffer me to rest under this dreadful uncertainty. Let me claim the privilege of a wife, and share the affliction which oppresses you. Deny me not.—La Motte interrupted her, Whatever may be the cause of the emotions which you have witnessed, I swear that I will not now reveal it. A time may come when I shall no longer judge concealment necessary; till then be silent, and desist from importunity; above all, forbear to remark to any one what you may have seen uncommon in me, bury your surmise in your own bosom, as you would avoid my curse and my destruction. The determined air with which he spoke this, while his countenance was overspread with a livid hue, made his wife shudder; and she forbore all reply.

I'm sorry, I didn't mean to upset you; but my concern for your well-being won't let me relax with this terrible uncertainty. Let me have the right of a wife and share the burden you're carrying. Please don’t deny me.—La Motte interrupted her, Whatever the reason for what you've seen in my emotions, I promise I won’t reveal it now. There may come a time when I feel it's no longer necessary to keep it hidden; until then, please be quiet and stop pressing me; above all, don’t mention to anyone anything unusual you've noticed about me. Keep your suspicions to yourself, as if to avoid my curse and destruction. The determined way he spoke, combined with the pale look on his face, made his wife shudder, and she held back her response.

Madame La Motte retired to bed, but not to rest. She ruminated on the past occurrence; and her surprise and curiosity concerning the words and behaviour of her husband were but more strongly stimulated by reflection. One truth, however, appeared: she could not doubt but the mysterious conduct of La Motte, which had for so many months oppressed her with anxiety, and the late scene with the Marquis, originated from the same cause. This belief, which seemed to prove how unjustly she had suspected Adeline, brought with it a pang of self-accusation. She looked forward to the morrow, which would lead the Marquis again to the abbey, with impatience. Wearied nature at length resumed her rights, and yielded a short oblivion of care.

Madame La Motte went to bed, but she couldn't sleep. She thought over what had happened in the past, and her surprise and curiosity about her husband’s words and behavior only grew stronger as she reflected. One truth stood out: she couldn’t doubt that La Motte’s mysterious actions, which had weighed heavily on her for months, and the recent encounter with the Marquis, came from the same source. This realization, which showed how wrongly she had suspected Adeline, brought a wave of guilt. She looked forward to the next day, eager for the Marquis to return to the abbey. Eventually, exhaustion took over, and she found a brief escape from her worries.

At a late hour the next day the family assembled to breakfast. Each individual of the party appeared silent and abstracted; but very different was the aspect of their features, and still more the complexion of their thoughts. La Motte seemed agitated by impatient fear, yet the sullenness of despair overspread his countenance; a certain wildness in his eye at times expressed the sudden start of horror, and again his features would sink into the gloom of despondency.

At a late hour the next day, the family gathered for breakfast. Each person in the group looked quiet and lost in thought; however, their expressions and the nature of their thoughts were very different. La Motte appeared to be anxious and fearful, yet his face was clouded by a heavy sadness. Sometimes, a wild look in his eyes showed flashes of horror, and at other moments, his features would fall into a dark gloom of hopelessness.

Madame La Motte seemed harassed with anxiety; she watched every turn of her husband's countenance, and impatiently awaited the arrival of the Marquis. Louis was composed and thoughtful. Adeline seemed to feel her full share of uneasiness; she had observed the behaviour of La Motte the preceding night with much surprise, and the happy confidence she had hitherto reposed in him was shaken. She feared also, lest the exigency of his circumstances should precipitate him again into the world, and that he would be either unable or unwilling to afford her a shelter beneath his roof.

Madame La Motte looked stressed and anxious; she kept an eye on her husband’s expression and impatiently awaited the Marquis's arrival. Louis appeared calm and deep in thought. Adeline seemed to share in the unease; she had noticed La Motte’s strange behavior the night before with surprise, and the trust she had previously placed in him was starting to waver. She also worried that the urgency of his situation might push him back into society, leaving him either unable or unwilling to give her shelter under his roof.

During breakfast La Motte frequently rose to the window, from whence he cast many an anxious look. His wife understood too well the cause of his impatience, and endeavoured to repress her own. In these intervals Louis attempted by whispers to obtain some information from his father; but La Motte always returned to the table, where the presence of Adeline prevented further discourse.

During breakfast, La Motte often got up to look out the window, where he cast many worried glances. His wife understood all too well the reason for his impatience and tried to keep her own in check. Meanwhile, Louis tried to get some information from his father through whispers, but La Motte always returned to the table, where Adeline's presence stopped any further conversation.

After breakfast, as he walked upon the lawn, Louis would have joined him, but La Motte peremptorily declared he intended to be alone; and soon after, the Marquis having not yet arrived, proceeded to a greater distance from the abbey.

After breakfast, while he was walking on the lawn, Louis would have joined him, but La Motte firmly stated that he wanted to be alone; and soon after, since the Marquis had not yet arrived, he walked further away from the abbey.

Adeline retired into their usual working room with Madame La Motte, who affected an air of cheerfulness and even of kindness. Feeling the necessity of offering some reason for the striking agitation of La Motte, and of preventing the surprise which the unexpected appearance of the Marquis would occasion Adeline, if she was left to connect it with his behaviour of the preceding night, she mentioned that the Marquis and La Motte had long been known to each other, and that this unexpected meeting, after an absence of many years, and under circumstances so altered and humiliating on the part of the latter, had occasioned him much painful emotion. This had been heightened by a consciousness that the Marquis had formerly misinterpreted some circumstances in his conduct towards him, which had caused a suspension of their intimacy.

Adeline went into their usual workspace with Madame La Motte, who put on a cheerful and even kind demeanor. Recognizing the need to explain La Motte's noticeable agitation and to prevent Adeline from being caught off guard by the Marquis's unexpected arrival—especially if she connected it to his behavior from the night before—she explained that the Marquis and La Motte had known each other for a long time. She added that this surprise reunion, after many years apart and under circumstances that were so changed and humiliating for La Motte, had brought him a lot of painful feelings. This was intensified by the awareness that the Marquis had previously misinterpreted some of La Motte's actions, which had led to a pause in their friendship.

This account did not bring conviction to the mind of Adeline, for it seemed inadequate to the degree of emotion which the Marquis and La Motte had mutually betrayed. Her surprise was excited, and her curiosity awakened by the words, which were meant to delude them both. But she forbore to express her thoughts.

This story didn't convince Adeline, as it felt insufficient compared to the level of emotion that the Marquis and La Motte had both shown. She was surprised and curious about the words that were intended to trick them both. But she held back her thoughts.

Madame proceeding with her plan, said, the Marquis was now expected, and she hoped whatever differences remained would be perfectly adjusted. Adeline blushed, and endeavouring to reply, her lips faltered. Conscious of this agitation, and of the observance of Madame La Motte, her confusion increased, and her endeavours to suppress served only to heighten it. Still she tried to renew the discourse, and still she found it impossible to collect her thoughts. Shocked lest Madame should apprehend the sentiment which had till this moment been concealed almost from herself, her colour fled, she fixed her eyes on the ground, and for some time found it difficult to respire. Madame La Motte inquired if she was ill; when Adeline, glad of the excuse, withdrew to the indulgence of her own thoughts, which were now wholly engrossed by the expectation of seeing again the young chevalier who had accompanied the Marquis.

Madame, moving forward with her plan, said that the Marquis was expected soon and she hoped any remaining differences would be resolved. Adeline blushed, and as she tried to respond, her words faltered. Aware of her agitation and Madame La Motte's watchful eye, her confusion only deepened, and her attempts to calm herself made it worse. Still, she tried to continue the conversation but found it impossible to gather her thoughts. Fearing that Madame might sense the feelings she had barely acknowledged herself, her color drained, she stared at the ground, struggling to breathe for a moment. Madame La Motte asked if she was unwell; seizing the opportunity, Adeline withdrew to focus on her own thoughts, which were now completely occupied by the anticipation of seeing the young chevalier who had accompanied the Marquis again.

As she looked from her room, she saw the Marquis on horseback, with several attendants, advancing at a distance, and she hastened to apprize Madame La Motte of his approach. In a short time, he arrived at the gates, and Madame and Louis went out to receive him, La Motte being not yet returned. He entered the hall, followed by the young chevalier, and accosting Madame with a sort of stately politeness, inquired for La Motte, whom Louis now went to seek.

As she looked out from her room, she saw the Marquis on horseback, accompanied by several attendants, approaching in the distance, and she quickly went to inform Madame La Motte of his arrival. Soon, he reached the gates, and Madame and Louis went out to greet him, since La Motte had not yet returned. He entered the hall, followed by the young chevalier, and addressed Madame with a kind of formal politeness, asking for La Motte, whom Louis then went to find.

The Marquis remained for a few minutes silent, and then asked of Madame La Motte how her fair daughter did? Madame understood it was Adeline he meant; and having answered his inquiry, and slightly said that she was not related to them, Adeline, upon some indication of the Marquis's wish, was sent for. She entered the room with a modest blush and a timid air, which seemed to engage all his attention. His compliments she received with a sweet grace; but when the young chevalier approached, the warmth of his manner rendered hers involuntarily more reserved, and she scarcely dared to raise her eyes from the ground, lest they should encounter his.

The Marquis stayed silent for a few minutes, then asked Madame La Motte how her beautiful daughter was doing. Madame realized he was referring to Adeline and answered his question, mentioning that she was not related to them. Sensing the Marquis wanted to see her, Adeline was called for. She walked into the room with a modest blush and a shy demeanor, which captured all his attention. She accepted his compliments with sweet grace, but when the young chevalier approached, his warm demeanor made her naturally more reserved, and she barely dared to look up, worried her eyes would meet his.

La Motte now entered and apologized for his absence, which the Marquis noticed only by a slight inclination of his head, expressing at the same time by his looks both distrust and pride. They immediately quitted the abbey together, and the Marquis beckoned his attendants to follow at a distance. La Motte forbad his son to accompany him, but Louis observed he took the way into the thickest part of the forest. He was lost in a chaos of conjecture concerning this affair, but curiosity and anxiety for his father induced him to follow at some distance.

La Motte walked in and apologized for being late, which the Marquis acknowledged with just a slight nod of his head, showing both distrust and pride in his expression. They quickly left the abbey together, and the Marquis signaled for his attendants to stay back. La Motte told his son not to come with him, but Louis noticed he headed toward the densest part of the forest. He was overwhelmed with questions about what was happening, but his curiosity and concern for his father made him follow from a distance.

In the mean time the young stranger, whom the Marquis addressed by the name of Theodore, remained at the abbey with Madame La Motte and Adeline. The former, with all her address, could scarcely conceal her agitation during this interval. She moved involuntary to the door whenever she heard a footstep, and several times she went to the hall door, in order to look into the forest, but as often returned, checked by disappointment; no person appeared. Theodore seemed to address as much of his attention to Adeline as politeness would allow him to withdraw from Madame La Motte. His manners so gentle, yet dignified, insensibly subdued her timidity, and banished her reserve. Her conversation no longer suffered a painful constraint, but gradually disclosed the beauties of her mind, and seemed to produce a mutual confidence. A similarity of sentiment soon appeared; and Theodore, by the impatient pleasure which animated his countenance, seemed frequently to anticipate the thought of Adeline.

In the meantime, the young stranger, whom the Marquis called Theodore, stayed at the abbey with Madame La Motte and Adeline. The former, despite her best efforts, could hardly hide her anxiety during this time. She instinctively moved to the door every time she heard a footstep, and several times she went to the hall door to look into the forest, but each time she came back disappointed; no one appeared. Theodore seemed to focus as much of his attention on Adeline as politeness allowed him to take away from Madame La Motte. His manners were gentle yet dignified, which naturally eased her shyness and made her more open. Their conversation no longer felt awkward, gradually revealing the beauty of her thoughts and creating a sense of mutual trust. Similar feelings soon emerged; and Theodore, by the eager joy lighting up his face, often seemed to anticipate Adeline's thoughts.

To them the absence of the Marquis was short, though long to Madame La Motte, whose countenance brightened when she heard the trampling of horses at the gate.

To them, the Marquis's absence was brief, but for Madame La Motte, it felt long; her face lit up when she heard the sound of horses trampling at the gate.

The Marquis appeared but for a moment, and passed on with La Motte to a private room, where they remained for some time in conference; immediately after which he departed. Theodore took leave of Adeline—who, as well as La Motte and Madame, attended them to the gates—with an expression of tender regret, and often, as he went, looked back upon the abbey, till the intervening branches entirely excluded it from his view.

The Marquis showed up for just a moment and went off with La Motte to a private room, where they talked for a while; right after that, he left. Theodore said goodbye to Adeline—who, along with La Motte and Madame, walked them to the gates—with a look of heartfelt sadness, and he kept glancing back at the abbey as he walked away until the trees fully blocked it from his sight.

The transient glow of pleasure diffused over the cheek of Adeline disappeared with the young stranger, and she sighed as she turned into the hall. The image of Theodore pursued her to her chamber; she recollected with exactness every particular of his late conversation—his sentiments so congenial with her own—his manners so engaging—his countenance so animated—so ingenious and so noble, in which manly dignity was blended with the sweetness of benevolence; these, and every other grace, she recollected, and a soft melancholy stole upon her heart. I shall see him no more, said she. A sigh that followed, told her more of her heart than she wished to know. She blushed, and sighed again; and then suddenly recollecting herself, she endeavoured to divert her thoughts to a different subject. La Motte's connection with the Marquis for sometime engaged her attention; but, unable to develop the mystery that attended it, she sought a refuge from her own reflections in the more pleasing ones to be derived from books.

The brief spark of happiness on Adeline's cheek faded as the young stranger left, and she sighed while walking into the hallway. The image of Theodore followed her to her room; she remembered every detail of their recent conversation—his thoughts that resonated with hers—his charming demeanor—his lively expression—so clever and noble, where manly strength mixed with kindness; all these qualities, along with others, came back to her, and a gentle sadness crept into her heart. I won’t see him again, she thought. The sigh that followed revealed more of her feelings than she wanted to acknowledge. She blushed and sighed again; then, suddenly pulling herself together, she tried to shift her thoughts to something else. La Motte's connection with the Marquis kept her mind occupied for a while; but unable to unravel the mystery surrounding it, she sought refuge from her thoughts in the sweeter ones that books provided.

During this time, Louis, shocked and surprised at the extreme distress which his father had manifested upon the first appearance of the Marquis, addressed him upon the subject. He had no doubt that the Marquis was intimately concerned in the event which made it necessary for La Motte to leave Paris, and he spoke his thoughts without disguise, lamenting at the same time the unlucky chance, which had brought him to seek refuge in a place, of all others, the least capable of affording it—the estate of his enemy. La Motte did not contradict this opinion of his son's, and joined in lamenting the evil fate which had conducted him thither.

During this time, Louis, shocked and surprised by the intense distress his father showed when the Marquis first appeared, brought up the topic with him. He was certain that the Marquis was closely involved in the event that forced La Motte to leave Paris, and he expressed his thoughts openly, also lamenting the unfortunate luck that led him to seek refuge in the one place that offered him the least protection—the estate of his enemy. La Motte didn’t disagree with his son’s opinion and also expressed sorrow over the bad luck that had brought him there.

The term of Louis's absence from his regiment was now nearly expired, and he took occasion to express his sorrow that he must soon be obliged to leave his father in circumstances so dangerous as the present. I should leave you, Sir, with less pain, continued he, was I sure I knew the full extent of your misfortunes; at present I am left to conjecture evils which perhaps do not exist. Relieve me, Sir, from this state of painful uncertainty, and suffer me to prove myself worthy of your confidence.

The time of Louis's absence from his regiment was almost up, and he took the opportunity to express his regret that he would soon have to leave his father in such dangerous circumstances. "I would leave you, Sir, with less pain," he continued, "if I were sure I understood the full scope of your troubles; right now, I'm left to guess at problems that may not even exist. Please free me from this painful uncertainty and allow me to show that I’m worthy of your trust."

I have already answered you on this subject, said La Motte, and forbad you to renew it: I am now obliged to tell you, I care not how soon you depart, if I am to be subjected to these inquiries. La Motte walked abruptly away, and left his son to doubt and concern.

I’ve already answered you about this, La Motte said, and told you not to bring it up again: I have to tell you now, I don’t care when you leave as long as I don't have to deal with these questions. La Motte walked away abruptly, leaving his son filled with doubt and worry.

The arrival of the Marquis had dissipated the jealous fears of Madame La Motte, and she awoke to a sense of her cruelty towards Adeline. When she considered her orphan state—the uniform affection which had appeared in her behaviour—the mildness and patience with which she had borne her injurious treatment, she was shocked, and took an early opportunity of renewing her former kindness. But she could not explain this seeming inconsistency of conduct, without betraying her late suspicions, which she now blushed to remember, nor could she apologize for her former behaviour, without giving this explanation.

The arrival of the Marquis had eased Madame La Motte's jealous fears, and she woke up feeling guilty about how she had treated Adeline. When she thought about Adeline's position as an orphan—the consistent kindness she had shown in her behavior—the calmness and patience with which she had endured her mistreatment, she was appalled and looked for a chance to show her kindness again. However, she couldn't explain this sudden change in behavior without revealing her recent suspicions, which she now felt embarrassed to recall, nor could she apologize for her past actions without giving that explanation.

She contented herself, therefore, with expressing in her manner the regard which was thus revived. Adeline was at first surprised, but she felt too much pleasure at the change to be scrupulous in inquiring its cause.

She was satisfied with showing her feelings through her actions. Adeline was initially surprised, but she felt too happy about the change to worry about figuring out why it happened.

But notwithstanding the satisfaction which Adeline received from the revival of Madame La Motte's kindness, her thoughts frequently recurred to the peculiar and forlorn circumstances of her condition. She could not help feeling less confidence than she had formerly done in the friendship of Madame La Motte, whose character now appeared less amiable than her imagination had represented it, and seemed strongly tinctured with caprice. Her thoughts often dwelt upon the strange introduction of the Marquis at the abbey, and on the mutual emotions and apparent dislike of La Motte and himself; and under these circumstances, it equally excited her surprise that La Motte should choose, and that the Marquis should permit him, to remain in his territory.

But despite the comfort Adeline felt from the return of Madame La Motte's kindness, she often found herself thinking about the strange and lonely situation she was in. She couldn't help but feel less confident than before in Madame La Motte's friendship, whose personality now seemed less pleasant than she had imagined and appeared strongly influenced by whims. Her mind frequently wandered to the unusual way the Marquis had appeared at the abbey and the mutual feelings and clear dislike between La Motte and him; given this, it puzzled her that La Motte would choose, and that the Marquis would allow him, to stay within his territory.

Her mind returned the oftener, perhaps, to this subject, because it was connected with Theodore; but it returned unconscious of the idea which attracted it. She attributed the interest she felt in the affair to her anxiety for the welfare of La Motte, and for her own future destination, which was now so deeply involved in his. Sometimes, indeed, she caught herself busy in conjecture as to the degree of relationship in which Theodore stood to the Marquis; but she immediately checked her thoughts, and severely blamed herself for having suffered them to stray to an object which she perceived was too dangerous to her peace.

Her mind often drifted back to this topic, perhaps because it was linked to Theodore; but it returned without realizing what was drawing it in. She believed her interest in the situation was due to her concern for La Motte's well-being and her own future, which was now so closely tied to his. Occasionally, she found herself wondering about the nature of Theodore's relationship with the Marquis; however, she quickly stopped her thoughts and harshly criticized herself for letting them wander to something she recognized was too risky for her peace of mind.







CHAPTER VII

Current fears
Are less than terrible thoughts.

A few days after the occurrence related in the preceding chapter, as Adeline was alone in her chamber, she was roused from a reverie by a trampling of horses near the gate; and on looking from the casement she saw the Marquis de Montalt enter the abbey. This circumstance surprised her, and an emotion, whose cause she did not trouble herself to inquire for, made her instantly retreat from the window. The same cause, however, led her thither again as hastily; but the object of her search did not appear, and she was in no haste to retire.

A few days after the events described in the previous chapter, Adeline was alone in her room when she was startled out of her daydream by the sound of horses trampling near the gate. Looking out the window, she saw the Marquis de Montalt enter the abbey. This surprised her, and without thinking too much about it, she quickly stepped back from the window. However, the same curiosity pulled her back to the window just as quickly, but the person she was looking for didn’t show up, and she wasn’t in a hurry to leave.

As she stood musing and disappointed, the Marquis came out with La Motte, and immediately looking up, saw Adeline and bowed. She returned his compliment respectfully, and withdrew from the window, vexed at having been seen there. They went into the forest, but the Marquis's attendants did not, as before, follow them thither. When they returned, which was not till after a considerable time, the Marquis immediately mounted his horse and rode away.

As she stood lost in thought and feeling let down, the Marquis came out with La Motte. As soon as he looked up, he saw Adeline and bowed. She respectfully returned the gesture and stepped away from the window, annoyed at having been spotted there. They went into the forest, but this time the Marquis's attendants didn't follow them like before. When they finally came back, which was quite a while later, the Marquis immediately got on his horse and rode off.

For the remainder of the day La Motte appeared gloomy and silent, and was frequently lost in thought. Adeline observed him with particular attention and concern: she perceived that he was always more melancholy after an interview with the Marquis, and was now surprised to hear that the latter had appointed to dine the next day at the abbey.

For the rest of the day, La Motte seemed down and quiet, often lost in thought. Adeline watched him closely, feeling worried. She noticed he was always more depressed after meeting with the Marquis and was now surprised to learn that the Marquis had scheduled dinner at the abbey for the next day.

When La Motte mentioned this, he added some high eulogiums on the character of the Marquis, and particularly praised his generosity and nobleness of soul. At this instant, Adeline recollected the anecdotes she had formerly heard concerning the abbey, and they threw a shadow over the brightness of that excellence which La Motte now celebrated. The account, however, did not appear to deserve much credit; a part of it, as far as a negative will admit of demonstration, having been already proved false; for it had been reported that the abbey was haunted, and no supernatural appearance had ever been observed by the present inhabitants.

When La Motte mentioned this, he spoke highly of the Marquis, especially praising his generosity and noble spirit. In that moment, Adeline remembered the stories she'd heard before about the abbey, which cast a shadow over the praise La Motte was now giving. However, the account didn’t seem very trustworthy; part of it had already been proven false, as it was said that the abbey was haunted, yet no supernatural events had ever been witnessed by the current residents.

Adeline, however, ventured to inquire whether it was the present Marquis of whom those injurious reports had been raised? La Motte answered her with a smile of ridicule: Stories of ghosts and hobgoblins have always been admired and cherished by the vulgar, said he: I am inclined to rely upon my own experience, at least as much as upon the accounts of these peasants; if you have seen any thing to corroborate these accounts, pray inform me of it, that I may establish my faith.

Adeline, however, dared to ask if it was the current Marquis about whom those harmful rumors had been spread. La Motte responded with a mocking smile: “Stories of ghosts and monsters have always been popular and loved by the common people,” he said. “I prefer to trust my own experiences at least as much as the stories from these peasants. If you've seen anything to support these claims, please let me know so I can adjust my beliefs.”

You mistake me, Sir, said she, it was not concerning supernatural agency that I would inquire; I alluded to a different part of the report, which hinted that some person had been confined here by order of the Marquis, who was said to have died unfairly; this was alleged as a reason for the Marquis's having abandoned the abbey.

"You've misunderstood me, Sir," she said. "I wasn't asking about supernatural forces; I meant a different part of the report that suggested someone had been held here on the Marquis's orders, and that this person was said to have died under suspicious circumstances. This was given as a reason for the Marquis leaving the abbey."

All the mere coinage of idleness, said La Motte; a romantic tale to excite wonder: to see the Marquis is alone sufficient to refute this; and if we credit half the number of those stories that spring from the same source, we prove ourselves little superior to the simpletons who invent them. Your good sense, Adeline, I think, will teach you the merit of disbelief.

All the idle chatter, said La Motte; a romantic story meant to stir curiosity: just seeing the Marquis is enough to disprove this; and if we believe even half of those tales that come from the same place, we show ourselves to be little better than the fools who make them up. Your common sense, Adeline, I believe, will help you appreciate the value of skepticism.

Adeline blushed and was silent; but La Motte's defence of the Marquis appeared much warmer and more diffuse than was consistent with his own disposition, or required by the occasion: his former conversation with Louis occurred to her, and she was the more surprised at what passed at present.

Adeline blushed and stayed quiet; however, La Motte's defense of the Marquis felt much more passionate and lengthy than matched his usual personality or what the situation called for: his earlier conversation with Louis came to her mind, and she was even more surprised by what was happening now.

She looked forward to the morrow with a mixture of pain and pleasure: the expectation of seeing again the young chevalier occupying her thoughts, and agitating them with a various emotion:—now she feared his presence, and now she doubted whether he would come. At length she observed this, and blushed to find how much he engaged her attention. The morrow arrived—the Marquis came—but he came alone; and the sunshine of Adeline's mind was clouded, though she was able to wear her usual air of cheerfulness. The Marquis was polite, affable, and attentive: to manners the most easy and elegant, was added the last refinement of polished life. His conversation was lively, amusing, sometimes even witty, and discovered great knowledge of the world; or, what is often mistaken for it, an acquaintance with the higher circles, and with the topics of the day.

She looked forward to the next day with a mix of pain and pleasure: the anticipation of seeing the young knight again filled her thoughts and stirred various emotions within her—at times she feared his presence, and other times she wondered if he would even show up. Eventually, she noticed this and blushed at how much he occupied her mind. The next day came—the Marquis arrived—but he came alone; and the brightness of Adeline's mood was dimmed, even though she managed to maintain her usual cheerful demeanor. The Marquis was polite, friendly, and attentive; he had a casual yet elegant manner that reflected the highest standards of refined living. His conversation was lively, entertaining, and sometimes even witty, showing a deep understanding of the world, or what is often mistaken for it—a familiarity with high society and the trending topics of the day.

Here La Motte was also qualified to converse with him, and they entered into a discussion of the characters and manners of the age with great spirit and some humour. Madame La Motte had not seen her husband so cheerful since they left Paris, and sometimes she could almost fancy she was there. Adeline listened, till the cheerfulness which she had at first only assumed became real. The address of the Marquis was so insinuating and affable, that her reserve insensibly gave way before it, and her natural vivacity resumed its long-lost empire.

Here, La Motte was also able to talk with him, and they engaged in a lively discussion about the characters and manners of the time with great energy and some humor. Madame La Motte hadn’t seen her husband this cheerful since they left Paris, and at times she could almost imagine they were still there. Adeline listened until the cheerfulness she had initially pretended began to feel genuine. The Marquis was so charming and friendly that her reserve gradually melted away, and her natural liveliness returned after being absent for so long.

At parting, the Marquis told La Motte he rejoiced at having found so agreeable a neighbour. La Motte bowed. I shall sometimes visit you, continued he, and I lament that I cannot at present invite Madame La Motte and her fair friend to my chateau; but it is undergoing some repairs, which make it but an uncomfortable residence.

At parting, the Marquis told La Motte he was glad to have such a pleasant neighbor. La Motte bowed. "I will visit you sometimes," he continued, "and I regret that I can't invite Madame La Motte and her lovely friend to my chateau right now; it's under some repairs, which makes it an uncomfortable place to stay."





The vivacity of La Motte disappeared with his guest, and he soon relapsed into fits of silence and abstraction. The Marquis is a very agreeable man, said Madame La Motte. Very agreeable, replied he. And seems to have an excellent heart, she resumed. An excellent one, said La Motte.

The energy of La Motte faded after his guest left, and he quickly fell back into silence and deep thought. "The Marquis is a really pleasant guy," said Madame La Motte. "Very pleasant," he replied. "And he seems to have a good heart," she continued. "A really good one," said La Motte.

You seem discomposed, my dear; what has disturbed you?

You look unsettled, my dear; what’s bothering you?

Not in the least—I was only thinking, that with such agreeable talents and such an excellent heart, it was a pity the Marquis should—

Not at all—I was just thinking that with such pleasant skills and such a good heart, it’s a shame the Marquis should—

What? my dear, said Madame with impatience. That the Marquis should—should suffer this abbey to fall into ruins, replied La Motte.

What? my dear, said Madame impatiently. That the Marquis would—let this abbey fall into ruins, replied La Motte.

Is that all? said Madame with disappointment.—That is all, upon my honour, said La Motte, and left the room.

"Is that it?" said Madame, feeling disappointed. "That's all, I swear," La Motte replied, and then left the room.

Adeline's spirits, no longer supported by the animated conversation of the Marquis, sunk into languor, and when he departed she walked pensively into the forest. She followed a little romantic path that wound along the margin of the stream and was overhung with deep shades. The tranquillity of the scenes which autumn now touched with her sweetest tints, softened her mind to a tender kind of melancholy; and she suffered a tear, which she knew not wherefore had stolen into her eye, to tremble there unchecked. She came to a little lonely recess formed by high trees; the wind sighed mournfully among the branches, and as it waved their lofty heads scattered their leaves to the ground. She seated herself on a bank beneath, and indulged the melancholy reflections that pressed on her mind.

Adeline's mood, no longer lifted by the lively conversation with the Marquis, fell into a sense of weariness, and when he left, she walked thoughtfully into the woods. She followed a winding path beside the stream, shaded by dense foliage. The calm beauty of the autumn scenes, touched by its softest colors, made her heart feel a gentle kind of sadness; a tear, which she couldn’t explain, formed in her eye and lingered there. She reached a small secluded area surrounded by tall trees; the wind sighed sadly through the branches, and as it moved their lofty tops, it scattered the leaves onto the ground. She sat down on a bank below and allowed herself to reflect on the melancholic thoughts that filled her mind.

O! could I dive into futurity and behold the events which await me! said she; I should perhaps, by constant contemplation, be enabled to meet them with fortitude. An orphan in this wide world—thrown upon the friendship of strangers for comfort, and upon their bounty for the very means of existence, what but evil have I to expect? Alas, my father! how could you thus abandon your child—how leave her to the storms of life—to sink, perhaps, beneath them? alas, I have no friend!

O! If only I could dive into the future and see the events that are waiting for me! she said; maybe then, by constantly thinking about them, I could face them with strength. An orphan in this vast world—depending on the friendship of strangers for comfort and on their kindness for the very basics of survival, what good can I expect? Oh, my father! how could you abandon your child like this—how could you leave her to face the storms of life—perhaps to sink beneath them? Oh, I have no friend!

She was interrupted by a rustling among the fallen leaves; she turned her head, and perceiving the Marquis's young friend, arose to depart. Pardon this intrusion, said he, your voice attracted me hither, and your words detained me: my offence, however, brings with it its own punishment; having learned your sorrows—how can I help feeling them myself? would that my sympathy or my suffering could rescue you from them!—He hesitated.—Would that I could deserve the title of your friend, and be thought worthy of it by yourself!

She was interrupted by a rustling in the fallen leaves; she turned her head and, seeing the Marquis's young friend, got up to leave. "Sorry for the interruption," he said, "your voice drew me here, and your words held me back: but my offense carries its own punishment; having learned of your sorrows—how can I not feel them too? I wish my sympathy or my suffering could free you from them!" He paused. "I wish I could earn the title of your friend and be seen as worthy of it by you!"

The confusion of Adeline's thoughts could scarcely permit her to reply; she trembled, and gently withdrew her hand, which he had taken while he spoke. You have perhaps heard, Sir, more than is true: I am indeed not happy; but a moment of dejection has made me unjust, and I am less unfortunate than I have represented. When I said I had no friend, I was ungrateful to the kindness of Monsieur and Madame La Motte, who have been more than friends—have been as parents to me.

The confusion in Adeline's mind barely allowed her to respond; she shook a little and slowly pulled her hand away, which he had taken while speaking. You might have heard things, Sir, that aren't completely accurate: I’m really not happy; but a moment of sadness has made me unfair, and I’m not as unfortunate as I’ve claimed. When I said I had no friends, I was ungrateful for the kindness of Monsieur and Madame La Motte, who have been more than friends—they’ve been like parents to me.

If so, I honour them, cried Theodore with warmth; and if I did not feel it to be presumption, I would ask why you are unhappy?—But—he paused. Adeline, raising her eyes, saw him gazing upon her with intense and eager anxiety, and her looks were again fixed upon the ground. I have pained you, said Theodore, by an improper request. Can you forgive me, and also when I add, that it was an interest in your welfare which urged my inquiry?

If that's the case, I respect them, Theodore said passionately; and if I didn't think it would be presumptuous, I'd ask why you're feeling unhappy?—But—he paused. Adeline, lifting her eyes, noticed him staring at her with intense and eager concern, and she looked down again. I've upset you, Theodore said, by asking something I shouldn't have. Can you forgive me, and also understand that it was my concern for your well-being that prompted my question?

Forgiveness, Sir, it is unnecessary to ask; I am certainly obliged by the compassion you express. But the evening is cold, if you please we will walk towards the abbey. As they moved on, Theodore was for some time silent. At length, It was but lately that I solicited your pardon, said he, and I shall now perhaps have need of it again; but you will do me the justice to believe that I have a strong and indeed a pressing reason to inquire how nearly you are related to Monsieur La Motte.

Forgiveness, sir, there's no need to ask; I truly appreciate your kindness. But it's chilly this evening, so if you don't mind, let's walk toward the abbey. As they continued on, Theodore was quiet for a while. Finally, he said, "It wasn't long ago that I asked for your forgiveness, and I might need it again soon. But you have to trust me when I say I have a good and urgent reason to ask how closely you're related to Monsieur La Motte."

We are not at all related, said Adeline; but the service he has done me I can never repay, and I hope my gratitude will teach me never to forget it.

"We're not related at all," Adeline said, "but I can never repay the help he's given me, and I hope my gratitude will remind me to never forget it."

Indeed! said Theodore, surprised: and may I ask how long you have known him?

"Really?" Theodore said, surprised. "Can I ask how long you’ve known him?"

Rather, Sir, let me ask why these questions should be necessary.

Rather, sir, let me ask why these questions are needed.

You are just, said he, with an air of self-condemnation, my conduct has deserved this reproof; I should have been more explicit. He looked as if his mind was labouring with something which he was unwilling to express. But you know not how delicately I am circumstanced, continued he; yet I will aver that my questions are prompted by the tenderest interest in your happiness—and even by my fears for your safety. Adeline started. I fear you are deceived, said he, I fear there's danger near you.

"You’re right," he said, sounding like he was blaming himself. "My behavior deserves this criticism; I should have been clearer." He looked like he was struggling with something he didn’t want to say. "But you don’t understand how delicate my situation is," he continued; "still, I can assure you that my questions come from a genuine concern for your happiness—and even from my worries about your safety." Adeline jumped slightly. "I’m afraid you’re mistaken," he said, "I’m worried there’s danger close to you."

Adeline stopped, and looking earnestly at him, begged he would explain himself. She suspected that some mischief threatened La Motte; and Theodore continuing silent, she repeated her request. If La Motte is concerned in this danger, said she, let me entreat you to acquaint him with it immediately; he has but too many misfortunes to apprehend.

Adeline paused and, looking seriously at him, asked him to explain himself. She sensed that something bad was threatening La Motte; and when Theodore remained quiet, she repeated her plea. If La Motte is involved in this danger, she said, please let me urge you to inform him right away; he has enough misfortunes to worry about.

Excellent Adeline! cried Theodore, that heart must be adamant that would injure you. How shall I hint what I fear is too true, and how forbear to warn you of your danger without—He was interrupted by a step among the trees, and presently after saw La Motte cross into the path they were in. Adeline felt confused at being thus seen with the chevalier, and was hastening to join La Motte; but Theodore detained her, and entreated a moment's attention. There is now no time to explain myself, said he; yet what I would say is of the utmost consequence to yourself.

“Excellent Adeline!” exclaimed Theodore. “Only a heart of stone could hurt you. How can I hint at what I fear is all too true, and how can I hold back from warning you of your danger without—” He was interrupted by a rustling among the trees, and soon saw La Motte walking into the path they were in. Adeline felt embarrassed at being seen with the chevalier and was quickly trying to catch up with La Motte, but Theodore stopped her and begged for a moment of her attention. “There’s no time to explain myself,” he said, “but what I want to say is extremely important for you.”

Promise, therefore, to meet me in some part of the forest at about this time to-morrow evening; you will then, I hope, be convinced that my conduct is directed neither by common circumstances nor common regard. Adeline shuddered at the idea of making an appointment; she hesitated, and at length entreated Theodore not to delay till to-morrow an explanation which appeared to be so important, but to follow La Motte and inform him of his danger immediately. It is not with La Motte I would speak, replied Theodore; I know of no danger that threatens him—but he approaches, be quick, lovely Adeline, and promise to meet me.

Promise to meet me in some part of the forest around this time tomorrow evening; I hope you’ll then see that my actions aren’t driven by ordinary situations or common feelings. Adeline shuddered at the thought of making an appointment; she hesitated and finally begged Theodore not to wait until tomorrow for an explanation that seemed so crucial, but to follow La Motte and let him know he was in danger right away. I don’t want to speak with La Motte, Theodore replied; I’m not aware of any danger he’s in—but he’s coming, so hurry, beautiful Adeline, and promise to meet me.

I do promise, said Adeline, with a faltering voice; I will come to the spot where you found me this evening, an hour earlier to-morrow. Saying this, she withdrew her trembling hand, which Theodore had pressed to his lips in token of acknowledgement, and he immediately disappeared.

"I promise," said Adeline, her voice shaky. "I'll come to the place where you found me this evening, an hour earlier tomorrow." After saying this, she pulled back her trembling hand, which Theodore had kissed in acknowledgment, and he immediately vanished.

La Motte now approached Adeline, who, fearing that he had seen Theodore, was in some confusion. Whither is Louis gone so fast? said La Motte. She rejoiced to find his mistake, and suffered him to remain in it. They walked pensively towards the abbey, where Adeline, too much occupied by her own thoughts to bear company, retired to her chamber. She ruminated upon the words of Theodore; and the more she considered them, the more she was perplexed. Sometimes she blamed herself for having made an appointment, doubting whether he had not solicited it for the purpose of pleading a passion; and now delicacy checked this thought, and made her vexed that she had presumed upon having inspired one. She recollected the serious earnestness of his voice and manner when he entreated her to meet him; and as they convinced her of the importance of the subject, she shuddered at a danger which she could not comprehend, looking forward to the morrow with anxious impatience.

La Motte now approached Adeline, who, fearing that he had seen Theodore, was a bit flustered. "Where did Louis go off to so quickly?" said La Motte. She was glad to see his misunderstanding and decided to let him stay in it. They walked quietly toward the abbey, where Adeline, too preoccupied with her own thoughts to enjoy company, retreated to her room. She reflected on Theodore's words, and the more she thought about them, the more confused she became. Sometimes she blamed herself for making an appointment, unsure whether he had asked for it to express his feelings; but then her sense of propriety stopped that thought and made her regret having assumed she had sparked any interest. She remembered the serious tone and look on his face when he asked her to meet him; and as those memories reminded her of how important the topic was, she felt a chill at the danger she couldn't fully understand, looking ahead to the next day with anxious anticipation.

Sometimes too a remembrance of the tender interest he had expressed for her welfare, and of his correspondent look and air, would steal across her memory, awakening a pleasing emotion and a latent hope that she was not indifferent to him. From reflections like these she was roused by a summons to supper:—the repast was a melancholy one, it being the last evening of Louis's stay at the abbey. Adeline, who esteemed him, regretted his departure, while his eyes were often bent on her with a look which seemed to express that he was about to leave the object of his affection. She endeavoured by her cheerfulness to reanimate the whole party, and especially Madame La Motte, who frequently shed tears. We shall soon meet again, said Adeline, I trust in happier circumstances. La Motte sighed. The countenance of Louis brightened at her words. Do you wish it? said he with peculiar emphasis. Most certainly I do, she replied: can you doubt my regard for my best friends?

Sometimes, a memory of the caring interest he showed in her well-being and his thoughtful expressions would come to her mind, stirring a warm feeling and a hidden hope that she mattered to him. These reflections were interrupted by a call to supper: the meal was a sad one, as it was the last evening of Louis's stay at the abbey. Adeline, who admired him, felt sad about his departure, while his gaze often fell on her with an expression that seemed to say he was about to leave the one he cared for. She tried to lift everyone's spirits, especially Madame La Motte, who was often in tears. "We'll see each other again soon, I hope under better circumstances," Adeline said. La Motte sighed. Louis's face lit up at her words. "Do you really wish for that?" he asked with a special emphasis. "Absolutely," she replied. "Can you doubt my affection for my closest friends?"

I cannot doubt any thing that is good of you, said he.

"I can't doubt anything good about you," he said.

You forget you have left Paris, said La Motte to his son, while a faint smile crossed his face; such a compliment would there be in character with the place—in these solitary woods it is quite outre.

"You forget you've left Paris," La Motte said to his son, a faint smile crossing his face; such a compliment would fit the place—out here in these lonely woods, it's really outre.

The language of admiration is not always that of compliment, Sir, said Louis. Adeline, willing to change the discourse, asked to what part of France he was going. He replied that his regiment was now at Peronne, and he should go immediately thither. After some mention of indifferent subjects, the family withdrew for the night to their several chambers.

The language of admiration isn’t always the same as giving compliments, Sir, Louis said. Adeline, eager to change the topic, asked where he was headed in France. He replied that his regiment was currently in Peronne, and he would be going there right away. After discussing some unimportant subjects, the family went to their separate rooms for the night.

The approaching departure of her son occupied the thoughts of Madame La Motte, and she appeared at breakfast with eyes swollen with weeping. The pale countenance of Louis seemed to indicate that he had rested no better than his mother. When breakfast was over, Adeline retired for a while, that she might not interrupt by her presence their last conversation. As she walked on the lawn before the abbey, she returned in thought to the occurrence of yesterday evening, and her impatience for the appointed interview increased. She was soon joined by Louis. It was unkind of you to leave us, said he, in the last moments of my stay. Could I hope that you would sometimes remember me when I am far away, I should depart with less sorrow. He then expressed his concern at leaving her: and though he had hitherto armed himself with resolution to forbear a direct avowal of an attachment, which must be fruitless, his heart now yielded to the force of passion, and he told what Adeline every moment feared to hear.

The upcoming departure of her son consumed Madame La Motte’s thoughts, and she appeared at breakfast with swollen eyes from crying. Louis's pale face suggested he hadn’t slept any better than his mother. Once breakfast was over, Adeline stepped away for a bit so their last conversation wouldn’t be interrupted by her presence. As she walked on the lawn in front of the abbey, she reflected on what had happened the previous evening, and her eagerness for their scheduled meeting grew. Louis soon joined her. “It was unkind of you to leave us,” he said, “in the last moments of my stay. If I could hope that you would sometimes think of me when I’m far away, I would leave with less sadness.” He then shared his worries about leaving her, and although he had previously steeled himself to avoid a direct confession of feelings that he thought were pointless, his heart now succumbed to his emotions, and he revealed what Adeline dreaded to hear.

This declaration, said Adeline, endeavouring to overcome the agitation it excited, gives me inexpressible concern.

"This statement," Adeline said, trying to manage the anxiety it caused her, "fills me with deep worry."

O, say not so! interrupted Louis, but give me some slender hope to support me in the miseries of absence. Say that you do not hate me—Say—

O, don’t say that! interrupted Louis, but give me a little hope to help me through the pain of being away. Just say that you don’t hate me—Say—

That I do most readily say, replied Adeline in a tremulous voice; if it will give you pleasure to be assured of my esteem and friendship—receive this assurance:—as the son of my best benefactors, you are entitled to——

That I do most readily say, replied Adeline in a shaky voice; if it will make you happy to know of my respect and friendship—take this assurance:—as the son of my greatest supporters, you are entitled to——

Name not benefits, said Louis, your merits outrun them all: and suffer me to hope for a sentiment less cool than that of friendship, as well as to believe that I do not owe your approbation of me to the actions of others. I have long borne my passion in silence, because I foresaw the difficulties that would attend it; nay, I have even dared to endeavour to overcome it: I have dared to believe it possible—forgive the supposition, that I could forget you—and——

Name no benefits, Louis said, your qualities surpass them all: and let me hope for something warmer than just friendship, as well as believe that your approval of me isn’t just due to the actions of others. I've kept my feelings hidden for a while because I anticipated the challenges that would come with it; indeed, I even tried to overcome them: I dared to think it was possible—forgive me for even considering that I could forget you—and——

You distress me, interrupted Adeline; this is a conversation which I ought not to hear. I am above disguise, and therefore assure you that, though your virtues will always command my esteem, you have nothing to hope from my love. Were it even otherwise, our circumstances would effectually decide for us. If you are really my friend, you will rejoice that I am spared this struggle between affection and prudence. Let me hope, also, that time will teach you to reduce love within the limits of friendship.

You upset me, Adeline interrupted; this is a conversation I shouldn’t be having. I'm being honest, and I want to make it clear that while I will always respect your good qualities, you shouldn't expect anything more from my feelings. Even if it were different, our situations would make it impossible. If you truly care about me as a friend, you should be glad I'm saved from this battle between feelings and common sense. I also hope that in time, you'll learn to keep love within the bounds of friendship.

Never, cried Louis vehemently: were this possible, my passion would be unworthy of its object. While he spoke, Adeline's favourite fawn came bounding towards her. This circumstance affected Louis even to tears. This little animal, said he, after a short pause, first conducted me to you: it was witness to that happy moment when I first saw you surrounded by attractions too powerful for my heart; that moment is now fresh in my memory, and the creature comes even to witness this sad one of my departure. Grief interrupted his utterance.

"Never!" Louis exclaimed passionately. "If that were true, my love would be unworthy of you." As he spoke, Adeline's favorite fawn ran up to her. This sight brought Louis to tears. "This little creature," he said after a brief pause, "was the one that brought me to you. It witnessed that joyful moment when I first saw you, surrounded by charms too strong for my heart to bear; that moment is still vivid in my mind, and now it comes to witness this sad moment of my departure." His grief cut off his words.

When he recovered his voice, he said, Adeline! when you look upon your little favourite and caress it, remember the unhappy Louis, who will then be far—far from you. Do not deny me the poor consolation of believing this!

When he found his voice again, he said, Adeline! when you look at your little favorite and cuddle it, remember the unhappy Louis, who will then be far—far away from you. Please don't deny me the small comfort of believing this!

I shall not require such a monitor to remind me of you, said Adeline with a smile; your excellent parents and your own merits have sufficient claim upon my remembrance. Could I see your natural good sense resume its influence over passion, my satisfaction would equal my esteem for you.

“I won’t need a reminder of you,” Adeline said with a smile. “Your wonderful parents and your own qualities are enough for me to remember you. If I could see your natural good sense return to dominate your emotions, my satisfaction would match my respect for you.”

Do not hope it, said Louis, nor will I wish it; for passion here is virtue. As he spoke he saw La Motte turning round an angle of the abbey. The moments are precious, said he, I am interrupted. O! Adeline, farewell! and say that you will sometimes think of me.

Do not hope for it, Louis said, nor will I wish for it; because passion here is virtue. As he spoke, he saw La Motte around the corner of the abbey. Time is precious, he said, I’m being interrupted. Oh! Adeline, goodbye! And please say that you will think of me sometimes.

Farewell, said Adeline, who was affected by his distress—farewell! and peace attend you. I will think of you with the affection of a sister.—He sighed deeply and pressed her hand; when La Motte, winding round another projection of the ruin, again appeared. Adeline left them together, and withdrew to her chamber, oppressed by the scene. Louis's passion and her esteem were too sincere not to inspire her with a strong degree of pity for his unhappy attachment. She remained in her chamber till he had quitted the abbey, unwilling to subject him or herself to the pain of a formal parting.

"Goodbye," said Adeline, touched by his sadness—"goodbye! I hope you find peace. I’ll hold you in my heart like a sister." He sighed deeply and held her hand tightly. Just then, La Motte appeared again around another corner of the ruins. Adeline left them alone and went back to her room, feeling weighed down by the situation. Louis’s feelings for her and her respect for him were so genuine that they filled her with deep sympathy for his unrequited love. She stayed in her room until he left the abbey, not wanting to put either of them through the sadness of a formal goodbye.

As evening and the hour of appointment drew nigh, Adeline's impatience increased; yet when the time arrived, her resolution failed, and she faltered from her purpose. There was something of indelicacy and dissimulation in an appointed interview on her part, that shocked her. She recollected the tenderness of Theodore's manner, and several little circumstances which seemed to indicate that his heart was not unconcerned in the event. Again she was inclined to doubt whether he had not obtained her consent to this meeting upon some groundless suspicion; and she almost determined not to go: yet it was possible Theodore's assertion might be sincere, and her danger real; the chance of this made her delicate scruples appear ridiculous; she wondered that she had for a moment suffered them to weigh against so serious an interest, and blaming herself for the delay they had occasioned, hastened to the place of appointment.

As evening and the time for their meeting approached, Adeline’s impatience grew. But when the moment came, her determination faltered, and she hesitated. She felt that there was something awkward and deceptive about an arranged meeting on her part, which made her uncomfortable. She remembered Theodore’s gentle demeanor and a few small things that seemed to show he cared about what would happen. Again, she started to wonder if he had arranged this meeting based on some unfounded suspicion; she almost decided not to go. Yet, it was possible that Theodore’s statement could be genuine, and her safety might be at risk. This possibility made her previous concerns seem petty; she couldn’t believe that she had let them hold her back from something so important, and blaming herself for the time she had wasted, she rushed to the meeting place.

The little path which led to this spot, was silent and solitary, and when she reached the recess Theodore had not arrived. A transient pride made her unwilling he should find that she was more punctual to his appointment than himself; and she turned from the recess into a track which wound among the trees to the right. Having walked some way without seeing any person or hearing a footstep, she returned; but he was not come, and she again left the place. A second time she came back, and Theodore was still absent. Recollecting the time at which she had quitted the abbey, she grew uneasy, and calculated that the hour appointed was now much exceeded. She was offended and perplexed; but she seated herself on the turf, and was resolved to wait the event. After remaining here till the fall of twilight in fruitless expectation, her pride became more alarmed; she feared that he had discovered something of the partiality he had inspired; and believing that he now treated her with purposed neglect, she quitted the place with disgust and self-accusation.

The little path that led to this spot was quiet and empty, and when she got to the alcove, Theodore hadn't arrived yet. A fleeting sense of pride made her reluctant to let him see that she was more on time than he was, so she turned away from the alcove and took a path that wound through the trees on her right. After walking for a while without seeing anyone or hearing any footsteps, she went back, but he still hadn't shown up, so she left again. She returned a second time, and Theodore was still missing. Remembering what time she had left the abbey, she became anxious and realized that the scheduled time had long passed. She felt offended and confused, but she sat down on the grass, determined to wait it out. After staying there until twilight fell in vain anticipation, her pride started to worry her more; she feared he had figured out her feelings for him, and believing he was now intentionally ignoring her, she left the spot feeling disgusted and full of self-recrimination.

When these emotions subsided, and reason resumed its influence, she blushed for what she termed this childish effervescence of self-love. She recollected, as if for the first time, these words of Theodore: I fear you are deceived, and that some danger is near you. Her judgment now acquitted the offender, and she saw only the friend. The import of these words, whose truth she no longer doubted, again alarmed her. Why did he trouble himself to come from the chateau, on purpose to hint her danger, if he did not wish to preserve her? And if he wished to preserve her, what but necessity could have withheld him from the appointment?

When these feelings calmed down and reason took over, she felt embarrassed about what she called this childish burst of self-love. She remembered, as if for the first time, Theodore’s words: "I fear you are deceived, and that some danger is near you." Her judgment now freed the offender from blame, and she only saw the friend. The meaning of these words, which she no longer doubted, alarmed her again. Why did he bother to come from the chateau just to warn her about danger if he didn’t want to protect her? And if he wanted to protect her, what could possibly have stopped him from the meeting?

These reflections decided her at once. She resolved to repair on the following day at the same hour to the recess, whither the interest which she believed him to take in her fate would no doubt conduct him in the hope of meeting her. That some evil hovered over her she could not disbelieve, but what it might be she was unable to guess. Monsieur and Madame La Motte were her friends, and who else, removed as she now thought herself, beyond the reach of her father, could injure her? But why did Theodore say she was deceived? She found it impossible to extricate herself from the labyrinth of conjecture, but endeavoured to command her anxiety till the following evening. In the mean time she engaged herself in efforts to amuse Madame La Motte, who required some relief after the departure of her son.

These thoughts made her decide right away. She made up her mind to go to the secluded spot the next day at the same time, believing that the interest he had in her fate would lead him there in hopes of seeing her. She couldn't deny that something bad was looming over her, but she couldn't figure out what it might be. Monsieur and Madame La Motte were her friends, and who else, considering how removed she felt from her father, could possibly harm her? But why did Theodore say she was mistaken? She found it impossible to escape the maze of thoughts, yet she tried to manage her anxiety until the next evening. In the meantime, she focused on trying to cheer up Madame La Motte, who needed some comfort after her son's departure.

Thus oppressed by her own cares and interested by those of Madame La Motte, Adeline retired to rest. She soon lost her recollection: but it was only to fall into harassed slumbers, such as but too often haunt the couch of the unhappy. At length her perturbed fancy suggested the following dream.

Thus burdened by her own worries and curious about Madame La Motte's troubles, Adeline went to bed. She quickly lost her focus, but only to fall into restless sleep, the kind that often plagues the beds of the unfortunate. Eventually, her troubled mind conjured the following dream.

She thought she was in a large old chamber belonging to the abbey, more ancient and desolate, though in part furnished, than any she had yet seen. It was strongly barricadoed, yet no person appeared. While she stood musing and surveying the apartment, she heard a low voice call her; and looking towards the place whence it came, she perceived by the dim light of a lamp a figure stretched on a bed that lay on the floor. The Voice called again; and approaching the bed, she distinctly saw the features of a man who appeared to be dying. A ghastly paleness overspread his countenance, yet there was an expression of mildness and dignity in it, which strongly interested her.

She thought she was in a large, old room belonging to the abbey, older and more desolate, although partially furnished, than any she had seen so far. It was heavily barricaded, yet no one was in sight. While she stood lost in thought and looking around the room, she heard a soft voice call her; and turning toward where it came from, she could make out a figure lying on a bed on the floor in the dim light of a lamp. The voice called her again; and as she got closer to the bed, she clearly saw the face of a man who looked like he was dying. He was incredibly pale, but there was a sense of kindness and dignity in his expression that deeply moved her.

While she looked on him his features changed, and seemed convulsed in the agonies of death. The spectacle shocked her, and she started back; but he suddenly stretched forth his hand, and seizing hers, grasped it with violence: she struggled in terror to disengage herself; and again looking on his face, saw a man who appeared to be about thirty, with the same features, but in full health, and of a most benign countenance. He smiled tenderly upon her, and moved his lips as if to speak, when the floor of the chamber suddenly opened and he sunk from her view. The effort she made to save herself from following awoke her.—This dream had so strongly impressed her fancy, that it was some time before she could overcome the terror it occasioned, or even be perfectly convinced she was in her own apartment. At length, however, she composed herself to sleep; again she fell into a dream.

While she watched him, his features changed, twisting as if he were in great pain. The sight shocked her, and she recoiled; but he suddenly reached out, grabbing her hand with a tight grip. She struggled in fear to free herself; and looking at his face again, she saw a man who looked about thirty, with the same features, but in good health and a very kind expression. He smiled gently at her and moved his lips as if to speak, when suddenly the floor of the room opened up and he vanished from her sight. The effort she made to pull back woke her up. This dream had impacted her so strongly that it took a while for her to shake off the fear it caused, or even fully convince herself she was back in her own room. Eventually, though, she managed to calm herself enough to sleep again; and once more, she fell into a dream.

She thought she was bewildered in some winding passages of the abbey; that it was almost dark, and that she wandered about a considerable time without being able to find a door. Suddenly she heard a bell toll from above, and soon after a confusion of distant voices. She redoubled her efforts to extricate herself. Presently all was still; and at length wearied with the search, she sat down on a step that crossed the passage. She had not been long here when she saw a light glimmer at a distance on the walls; but a turn in the passage, which was very long, prevented her seeing from what it proceeded. It continued to glimmer faintly for some time and then grew stronger, when she saw a man enter the passage habited in a long black cloak like those usually worn by attendants at funerals, and bearing a torch. He called to her to follow him, and led her through a long passage to the foot of a staircase. Here she feared to proceed, and was running back, when the man suddenly turned to pursue her, and with the terror which this occasioned she awoke.

She thought she was lost in some winding hallways of the abbey; it was almost dark, and she wandered for quite a while without being able to find a door. Suddenly, she heard a bell toll from above and then a mix of distant voices. She intensified her efforts to find her way out. Eventually, everything went quiet, and finally, exhausted from searching, she sat down on a step that crossed the hallway. She hadn’t been there long when she saw a faint light flickering on the walls; however, a sharp turn in the long passage kept her from seeing where it was coming from. The light continued to flicker faintly for a while before it got brighter, and then she saw a man enter the passage wearing a long black cloak like those usually worn by funeral attendants, carrying a torch. He called to her to follow him and led her down a long hallway to the bottom of a staircase. Here, she was afraid to go any further and turned to run back when the man suddenly turned to chase her, and the fear this caused made her wake up.

Shocked by these visions, and more so by their seeming connection, which now struck her, she endeavoured to continue awake, lest their terrific images should again haunt her mind: after some time, however, her harassed spirits again sunk into slumber, though not to repose.

Shocked by these visions, and even more by their apparent connection, which she now realized, she tried to stay awake, fearing that their terrifying images would haunt her mind again. However, after some time, her weary spirit slipped back into sleep, though not into rest.

She now thought herself in a large old gallery, and saw at one end of it a chamber door standing a little open and a light within: she went towards it, and perceived the man she had before seen, standing at the door and beckoning her towards him. With the inconsistency so common in dreams, she no longer endeavoured to avoid him, but advancing, followed him into a suit of very ancient apartments hung with black and lighted up as if for a funeral. Still he led her on, till she found herself in the same chamber she remembered to have seen in her former dream: a coffin covered with a pall stood at the further end of the room; some lights and several persons surrounded it, who appeared to be in great distress.

She now imagined herself in a large old gallery and noticed a chamber door slightly open at one end, with light coming from inside. She approached it and saw the man she had seen before, standing at the door and motioning for her to come over. With the unpredictability often found in dreams, she no longer tried to avoid him; instead, she moved forward and followed him into a set of very old rooms decorated in black and lit up as if for a funeral. He continued to lead her until she found herself in the same chamber she remembered from her previous dream: a coffin covered with a shroud stood at the far end of the room, surrounded by some lights and several people who seemed to be in deep distress.

Suddenly she thought these persons were all gone, and that she was left alone; that she went up to the coffin, and while she gazed upon it, she heard a voice speak, as if from within, but saw nobody. The man she had before seen, soon after stood by the coffin, and lifting the pall, she saw beneath it a dead person, whom she thought to be the dying chevalier she had seen in her former dream; his features were sunk in death, but they were yet serene. While she looked at him, a stream of blood gushed from his side, and descending to the floor the whole chamber was overflowed; at the same time some words were uttered in a voice she heard before; but the horror of the scene so entirely overcame her, that she started and awoke.

Suddenly, she felt like everyone had left, and she was all alone. She walked up to the coffin, and as she stared at it, she heard a voice coming from inside, but didn't see anyone. The man she had seen earlier soon appeared by the coffin, and as he lifted the covering, she saw a dead person underneath, whom she thought was the dying knight from her previous dream; his features were sunken from death but still calm. While she was looking at him, a stream of blood poured from his side, flowing down to the floor and flooding the entire room; at the same time, some words were spoken in a voice she recognized, but the horror of the scene completely overwhelmed her, causing her to jump and wake up.

When she had recovered her recollection, she raised herself in the bed, to be convinced it was a dream she had witnessed; and the agitation of her spirits was so great, that she feared to be alone, and almost determined to call Annette. The features of the deceased person, and the chamber where he lay, were strongly impressed upon her memory, and she still thought she heard the voice and saw the countenance which her dream represented. The longer she considered these dreams, the more she was surprised; they were so very terrible, returned so often, and seemed to be so connected with each other, that she could scarcely think them accidental; yet why they should be supernatural, she could not tell. She slept no more that night.

When she regained her memory, she sat up in bed, trying to convince herself that it had all been just a dream. Her anxiety was so intense that she was afraid to be alone and almost decided to call Annette. The features of the deceased and the room where he lay were etched clearly in her mind, and she still thought she could hear his voice and see his face as depicted in her dream. The more she reflected on these nightmares, the more bewildered she became; they were so frightening, occurred so frequently, and seemed so interconnected that she could hardly believe they were mere coincidences. Yet, she couldn’t understand why they felt supernatural. She didn’t sleep at all that night.







CHAPTER VIII

...... When these wonders
Let's meet together so that no one can say,
These are their reasons; they’re natural.
I believe they are significant matters.
Julius Caesar.

When Adeline appeared at breakfast, her harassed and languid countenance struck Madame La Motte, who inquired if she was ill. Adeline, forcing a smile upon her features, said she had not rested well, for that she had had very disturbed dreams: she was about to describe them, but a strong and involuntary impulse prevented her. At the same time La Motte ridiculed her concern so unmercifully, that she was almost ashamed to have mentioned it, and tried to overcome the remembrance of its cause.

When Adeline showed up for breakfast, her tired and weary face caught Madame La Motte's attention, who asked if she was feeling sick. Adeline, forcing a smile, replied that she hadn't slept well because she'd had some troubling dreams. She was about to share them, but a strong and uncontrollable urge stopped her. At the same time, La Motte made fun of her worries so harshly that Adeline felt almost embarrassed for bringing it up and tried to forget the reason behind it.

After breakfast, she endeavoured to employ her thoughts by conversing with Madame La Motte; but they were really engaged by the incidents of the last two days, the circumstance of her dreams, and her conjectures concerning the information to be communicated to her by Theodore. They had thus sat for some time, when a sound of voices arose from the great gate of the abbey; and on going to the casement, Adeline saw the Marquis and his attendants on the lawn below. The portal of the abbey concealed several people from her view, and among these it was possible might be Theodore, who had not yet appeared: she continued to look for him with great anxiety, till the Marquis entered the hall with La Motte and some other persons, soon after which Madame went to receive him, and Adeline retired to her own apartment.

After breakfast, she tried to keep her mind occupied by talking to Madame La Motte; but her thoughts were really consumed by what had happened in the last two days, the details of her dreams, and her guesses about what Theodore was going to tell her. They had been sitting like this for a while when they heard voices coming from the main gate of the abbey. Adeline went to the window and saw the Marquis and his entourage on the lawn below. The entrance of the abbey blocked her view of several people, including Theodore, who had not shown up yet. She kept looking for him with rising anxiety until the Marquis entered the hall with La Motte and a few other people. Soon after, Madame went to greet him, and Adeline went back to her own room.

A message from La Motte, however, soon called her to join the party, where she vainly hoped to find Theodore. The Marquis arose as she approached, and, having paid her some general compliments, the conversation took a very lively turn. Adeline, finding it impossible to counterfeit cheerfulness while her heart was sinking with anxiety and disappointment, took little part in it: Theodore was not once named. She would have asked concerning him, had it been possible to inquire with propriety; but she was obliged to content herself with hoping, first, that he would arrive before dinner, and then before the departure of the Marquis.

A message from La Motte soon summoned her to join the group, where she hoped to find Theodore. As she neared, the Marquis stood up and, after giving her some polite compliments, the conversation became quite lively. Adeline, unable to pretend to be cheerful while her heart was heavy with anxiety and disappointment, participated little: Theodore wasn’t mentioned once. She would have asked about him if it had been appropriate, but she had to settle for hoping that he would arrive before dinner, and then before the Marquis left.

Thus the day passed in expectation and disappointment. The evening was now approaching, and she was condemned to remain in the presence of the Marquis, apparently listening to a conversation which, in truth, she scarcely heard, while the opportunity was perhaps escaping that would decide her fate. She was suddenly relieved from this state of torture, and thrown into one, if possible, still more distressing.

Thus the day went by filled with hope and disappointment. Evening was now coming, and she was stuck in the company of the Marquis, seemingly listening to a conversation that, in reality, she barely paid attention to, while a chance that could change her life was possibly slipping away. She was abruptly freed from this state of torment, only to be plunged into one that was, if anything, even more agonizing.

The Marquis inquired for Louis, and being informed of his departure, mentioned that Theodore Peyrou had that morning set out for his regiment in a distant province. He lamented the loss he should sustain by his absence; and expressed some very flattering praise of his talents. The shock of this intelligence overpowered the long-agitated spirits of Adeline: the blood forsook her cheeks, and a sudden faintness came over her, from which she recovered only to a consciousness of having discovered her emotion, and the danger of relapsing into a second fit.

The Marquis asked about Louis, and when he learned of his departure, he mentioned that Theodore Peyrou had left that morning for his regiment in a far-off province. He expressed how much he would miss him and gave some very flattering compliments about his talents. This news overwhelmed Adeline, who had been anxious for a long time: her face drained of color, and she suddenly felt faint, recovering only to realize she had revealed her feelings and was at risk of having another episode.

She retired to her chamber, where being once more alone, her oppressed heart found relief from tears, in which she freely indulged. Ideas crowded so fast upon her mind, that it was long ere she could arrange them so as to produce any thing like reasoning. She endeavoured to account for the abrupt departure of Theodore. Is it possible, said she, that he should take an interest in my welfare, and yet leave me exposed to the full force of a danger which he himself foresaw? Or am I to believe that he has trifled with my simplicity for an idle frolic, and has now left me to the wondering apprehension he has raised? Impossible! a countenance so noble, and a manner so amiable, could never disguise a heart capable of forming so despicable a design. No!—whatever is reserved for me, let me not relinquish the pleasure of believing that he is worthy of my esteem.

She went to her room, and once she was alone again, her heavy heart found relief in tears, which she let flow freely. Thoughts rushed into her mind so quickly that it took a long time for her to sort them out into anything resembling logic. She tried to understand why Theodore left so suddenly. Is it possible, she wondered, that he actually cares about me, yet still leaves me vulnerable to a danger he saw coming? Or should I think that he toyed with my innocence for fun, and now has left me to deal with the confusion he created? No way! Someone with such a noble face and kind nature couldn’t hide a heart capable of such a mean-spirited plan. No!—whatever happens to me, I won’t give up the joy of believing that he deserves my respect.

She was awakened from thoughts like these by a peal of distant thunder, and now perceived that the gloominess of evening was deepened by the coming storm; it rolled onward, and soon after the lightning began to flash along the chamber. Adeline was superior to the affectation of fear, and was not apt to be terrified; but she now felt it unpleasant to be alone, and hoping that the Marquis might have left the abby, she went down to the sitting-room: but the threatening aspect of the heavens had hitherto detained him, and now the evening tempest made him rejoice that he had not quitted a shelter. The storm continued, and night came on. La Motte pressed his guest to take a bed at the abbey, and he at length consented; a circumstance which threw Madame La Motte into some perplexity as to the accommodation to be afforded him. After some time she arranged the affair to her satisfaction; resigning her own apartment to the Marquis, and that of Louis to two of his superior attendants; Adeline, it was further settled, should give up her room to Monsieur and Madame La Motte, and to remove to an inner chamber, where a small bed, usually occupied by Annette, was placed for her.

She was pulled from her thoughts by a distant rumble of thunder, and now noticed that the evening's gloom was intensified by the approaching storm; it rolled in, and soon after, lightning started to flash through the room. Adeline wasn't one to feign fear and usually wasn't easily scared; however, she now found it uncomfortable to be alone, and hoping the Marquis had left the abbey, she headed down to the sitting room. But the threatening sky had kept him there, and now the storm made him happy he hadn’t left the safety of the abbey. The storm kept raging, and night fell. La Motte urged his guest to stay overnight at the abbey, and eventually, he agreed, which left Madame La Motte a bit puzzled about how to accommodate him. After a while, she figured things out to her liking, giving her own room to the Marquis and moving Louis's belongings to two of his senior attendants; it was also decided that Adeline would give up her room for Monsieur and Madame La Motte and move to an inner chamber, where a small bed, usually occupied by Annette, was set up for her.

At supper the Marquis was less gay than usual; he frequently addressed Adeline, and his look and manner seemed to express the tender interest which her indisposition, for she still appeared pale and languid, had excited. Adeline, as usual, made an effort to forget her anxiety and appear happy: but the veil of assumed cheerfulness was too thin to conceal the features of sorrow; and her feeble smiles only added a peculiar softness to her air. The Marquis conversed with her on a variety of subjects, and displayed an elegant mind. The observations of Adeline, which, when called upon, she gave with reluctant modesty, in words at once simple and forceful, seemed to excite his admiration, which he sometimes betrayed by an inadvertent expression.

At dinner, the Marquis was less cheerful than usual; he often spoke to Adeline, and his expression and demeanor conveyed a caring concern about her condition, as she still looked pale and weak. Adeline, as always, tried to push aside her worries and seem happy, but the thin veil of her forced cheerfulness couldn’t hide her sadness, and her weak smiles only added a certain softness to her demeanor. The Marquis chatted with her about various topics, showcasing his refined intellect. Adeline’s comments, which she shared reluctantly and with modesty, were both simple and impactful, and they seemed to earn his admiration, which he occasionally revealed through an unguarded remark.

Adeline retired early to her room, which adjoined on one side to Madame La Motte's, and on the other to the closet formerly mentioned. It was spacious and lofty, and what little furniture it contained was falling to decay; but perhaps the present tone of her spirits might contribute more than these circumstances to give that air of melancholy which seemed to reign in it. She was unwilling to go to bed, lest the dreams that had lately pursued her should return; and determined to sit up till she found herself oppressed by sleep, when it was probable her rest would be profound. She placed the light on a small table, and taking a book, continued to read for above an hour, till her mind refused any longer to abstract itself from its own cares, and she sat for some time leaning pensively on her arm.

Adeline went to her room early, which was connected on one side to Madame La Motte's and on the other to the already mentioned closet. It was big and tall, and the little furniture it had was falling apart; but maybe her current mood added more to the sadness that seemed to fill the space than the state of the room itself. She didn't want to go to bed because she feared the dreams that had been haunting her would come back, so she decided to stay up until she felt so tired that her sleep would likely be deep. She set the light on a small table and picked up a book, reading for over an hour until her mind couldn't focus on anything but her own troubles, and she spent some time resting her chin on her arm, lost in thought.

The wind was high, and as it whistled through the desolate apartment, and shook the feeble doors, she often started, and sometimes even thought she heard sighs between the pauses of the gust; but she checked these illusions, which the hour of the night and her own melancholy imagination conspired to raise. As she sat musing, her eyes fixed on the opposite wall, she perceived the arras, with which the room was hung, wave backwards and forwards; she continued to observe it for some minutes, and then rose to examine it further. It was moved by the wind; and she blushed at the momentary fear it had excited; but she observed that the tapestry was more strongly agitated in one particular place than elsewhere, and a noise that seemed something more than that of the wind issued thence. The old bedstead, which La Motte had found in this apartment, had been removed to accommodate Adeline, and it was behind the place where this had stood, that the wind seemed to rush with particular force: curiosity prompted her to examine still further; she felt about the tapestry, and perceiving the wall behind shake under her hand, she lifted the arras, and discovered a small door, whose loosened hinges admitted the wind, and occasioned the noise she had heard.

The wind was strong, whistling through the empty apartment and rattling the weak doors. She often flinched and sometimes thought she heard sighs between the gusts, but she dismissed these illusions that the late hour and her own melancholic imagination stirred up. As she sat lost in thought, staring at the opposite wall, she noticed the tapestry hanging in the room swaying back and forth. She watched it for a few minutes before getting up to investigate it more closely. It was being moved by the wind, and she felt embarrassed by the fleeting fear it had caused her. However, she noticed that the tapestry was shaking more in one specific spot than elsewhere, and a sound that seemed more than just the wind came from that area. The old bed that La Motte had found in this apartment had been moved to make space for Adeline, and it was behind where the bed had been that the wind seemed to rush with particular force. Curiosity drove her to look closer; she felt around the tapestry and, noticing the wall behind it tremble under her hand, she lifted the tapestry to uncover a small door. Its loose hinges let the wind in, creating the noise she had heard.

The door was held only by a bolt, having undrawn which, and brought the light, she descended by a few steps into another chamber; she instantly remembered her dreams. The chamber was not much like that in which she had seen the dying chevalier, and afterwards the bier; but it gave her a confused remembrance of one through which she had passed. Holding up the light to examine it more fully, she was convinced by its structure that it was part of the ancient foundation. A shattered casement, placed high from the floor, seemed to be the only opening to admit light. She observed a door on the opposite side of the apartment; and after some moments of hesitation gained courage, and determined to pursue the inquiry. A mystery seems to hang over these chambers, said she, which it is perhaps my lot to develop; I will at least see to what that door leads.

The door was secured by just a bolt, and after sliding it open, she took a few steps down into another room; instantly, she recalled her dreams. This room was quite different from the one where she had seen the dying knight and later the coffin, but it triggered a vague memory of a place she had once passed through. As she raised the light to take a closer look, she realized from its structure that it was part of the ancient foundation. A broken window, set high on the wall, seemed to be the only source of light. She noticed a door on the opposite side of the room, and after a moment of hesitation, she gathered her courage and decided to continue her exploration. "There’s a mystery surrounding these rooms," she thought, "and it might be up to me to uncover it; I at least want to find out where that door leads."

She stepped forward, and having unclosed it, proceeded with faltering steps along a suite of apartments, resembling the first in style and condition, and terminating in one exactly like that where her dream had represented the dying person; the remembrance struck so forcibly upon her imagination, that she was in danger of fainting; and looking round the room, almost expected to see the phantom of her dream.

She stepped forward, opened the door, and walked hesitantly down a series of rooms that looked just like the first, ending in one that was exactly like the one in her dream where the dying person was. The memory hit her so hard that she almost fainted; as she looked around the room, she half-expected to see the ghost from her dream.

Unable to quit the place, she sat down on some old lumber to recover herself, while her spirits were nearly overcome by a superstitious dread, such as she had never felt before. She wondered to what part of the abbey these chambers belonged, and that they had so long escaped detection. The casements were all too high to afford any information from without. When she was sufficiently composed to consider the direction of the rooms and the situation of the abbey, there appeared not a doubt that they formed an interior part of the original building.

Unable to leave the place, she sat down on some old wood to gather herself, while her spirits were almost overwhelmed by a superstitious fear like she had never experienced before. She wondered what part of the abbey these rooms belonged to and how they had gone unnoticed for so long. The windows were all too high to provide any information from the outside. Once she was calm enough to think about the layout of the rooms and the location of the abbey, it became clear that they were an interior part of the original structure.

As these reflections passed over her mind, a sudden gleam of moonlight fell upon some object without the casement. Being now sufficiently composed to wish to pursue the inquiry, and believing this object might afford her some means of learning the situation of these rooms, she combated her remaining terrors; and in order to distinguish it more clearly, removed the light to an outer chamber; but before she could return, a heavy cloud was driven over the face of the moon, and all without was perfectly dark; she stood for some moments waiting a returning gleam, but the obscurity continued. As she went softly back for the light, her foot stumbled over something on the floor; and while she stooped to examine it, the moon again shone, so that she could distinguish through the casement, the eastern towers of the abbey. This discovery confirmed her former conjectures concerning the interior situation of these apartments. The obscurity of the place prevented her discovering what it was that had impeded her steps, but having brought the light forward, she perceived on the floor an old dagger: with a trembling hand she took it up, and upon a closer view perceived that it was spotted and stained with rust.

As these thoughts crossed her mind, a sudden beam of moonlight shone on something outside the window. Now feeling calm enough to continue her investigation, and thinking this object might help her understand the layout of these rooms, she fought against her lingering fears. To see it better, she moved the light to another room; but before she could return, a thick cloud covered the moon, plunging everything outside into complete darkness. She waited for a moment hoping for another beam of light, but the darkness remained. When she quietly went back for the light, her foot caught on something on the floor; as she bent down to check it out, the moon shone again, allowing her to see through the window the eastern towers of the abbey. This discovery confirmed her initial thoughts about the layout of these rooms. The dimness prevented her from figuring out what had tripped her, but as she brought the light forward, she noticed an old dagger on the floor. With a trembling hand, she picked it up, and upon closer inspection, saw that it was covered in spots and stained with rust.

Shocked and surprised, she looked round the room for some object that might confirm or destroy the dreadful suspicion which now rushed upon her mind; but she saw only a great chair with broken arms, that stood in one corner of the room, and a table in a condition equally shattered, except that in another part lay a confused heap of things, which appeared to be old lumber. She went up to it, and perceived a broken bedstead, with some decayed remnants of furniture, covered with dust and cobwebs, and which seemed indeed as if they had not been moved for many years. Desirous, however, of examining further, she attempted to raise what appeared to have been part of the bedstead; but it slipped from her hand, and, rolling to the floor, brought with it some of the remaining lumber. Adeline started aside and saved herself; and when the noise it made had ceased, she heard a small rustling sound, and as she was about to leave the chamber, saw something falling gently among the lumber.

Shocked and surprised, she looked around the room for something that might confirm or dispel the terrible suspicion rushing through her mind; but all she saw was a large chair with broken arms in one corner and a table in equally poor shape. In another part lay a messy pile of items that looked like old junk. She approached it and noticed a broken bed frame, along with some decayed pieces of furniture covered in dust and cobwebs, which seemed like they hadn't been touched in years. Curious to investigate further, she tried to lift what looked like part of the bed frame, but it slipped from her grip and tumbled to the floor, taking some of the other junk with it. Adeline jumped aside to avoid it, and once the noise subsided, she heard a faint rustling sound. Just as she was about to leave the room, she saw something gently falling among the debris.

It was a small roll of paper, tied with a string, and covered with dust. Adeline took it up, and on opening it perceived a hand writing. She attempted to read it, but the part of the manuscript she looked at was so much obliterated, that she found this difficult, though what few words were legible impressed her with curiosity and terror, and induced her to return with it immediately to her chamber.

It was a small roll of paper tied with a string and covered in dust. Adeline picked it up, and when she opened it, she saw handwriting. She tried to read it, but the section she looked at was so faded that it was hard for her to make it out. Still, the few words she could read filled her with curiosity and fear, prompting her to go back to her room with it right away.

Having reached her own room, she fastened the private door, and let the arras fall over it as before. It was now midnight. The stillness of the hour, interrupted only at intervals by the hollow sighings of the blast, heightened the solemnity of Adeline's feelings. She wished she was not alone, and before she proceeded to look into the manuscript, listened whether Madame La Motte was yet in her chamber:—not the least sound was heard, and she gently opened the door. The profound silence within almost convinced her that no person was there; but willing to be further satisfied, she brought the light and found the room empty. The lateness of the hour made her wonder that Madame La Motte was not in her chamber, and she proceeded to the top of the tower stairs, to hearken if any person was stirring.

Having reached her room, she locked the door and let the heavy curtain fall over it like before. It was now midnight. The stillness of the hour, broken only by the distant howling of the wind, deepened Adeline's feelings. She wished she wasn't alone, and before she checked the manuscript, she listened to see if Madame La Motte was in her room:—not a sound was heard, so she gently opened the door. The deep silence inside almost convinced her that no one was there; but wanting to be sure, she brought the light and found the room empty. The late hour made her wonder why Madame La Motte wasn't in her chamber, and she went to the top of the tower stairs to listen for any sign of life.

She heard the sound of voices from below, and, amongst the rest, that of La Motte speaking in his usual tone. Being now satisfied that all was well, she turned towards her room, when she heard the Marquis pronounce her name with very unusual emphasis. She paused. I adore her, pursued he, and by Heaven—He was interrupted by La Motte, my Lord, remember your promise.

She heard voices coming from downstairs, including La Motte's familiar voice. Feeling assured that everything was fine, she started to head back to her room when she heard the Marquis say her name with surprising emphasis. She stopped. "I adore her," he continued, "and by Heaven—" He was interrupted by La Motte, who said, "My Lord, remember your promise."

I do, replied the Marquis, and I will abide by it. But we trifle. To-morrow I will declare myself, and I shall then know both what to hope and how to act. Adeline trembled so excessively, that she could scarcely support herself: she wished to return to her chamber; yet she was too much interested in the words she had heard, not to be anxious to have them more fully explained. There was an interval of silence, after which they conversed in a lower tone. Adeline remembered the hints of Theodore, and determined, if possible, to be relieved from the terrible suspense she now suffered. She stole softly down a few steps, that she might catch the accents of the speakers, but they were so low that she could only now and then distinguish a few words. Her father, say you? said the Marquis. Yes, my Lord, her father. I am well informed of what I say. Adeline shuddered at the mention of her father, a new terror seized her, and with increasing eagerness she endeavoured to distinguish their words, but for some time found this to be impossible. Here is no time to be lost, said the Marquis, to-morrow then.—She heard La Motte rise, and believing it was to leave the room, she hurried up the steps, and having reached her chamber, sunk almost lifeless in a chair.

"I do," replied the Marquis, "and I will stick to it. But we're wasting time. Tomorrow I’ll declare myself, and then I’ll know what to hope for and how to act." Adeline trembled so much that she could barely support herself. She wanted to go back to her room, but she was too invested in what she had heard to not want a clearer explanation. There was a pause in the conversation, after which they spoke in lower tones. Adeline recalled Theodore's hints and decided that if possible, she wanted to be freed from the awful suspense she was feeling. She quietly crept down a few steps to catch the speakers' words, but they were so soft that she could only occasionally make out a few phrases. "Her father, you say?" asked the Marquis. "Yes, my Lord, her father. I know what I’m talking about." Adeline shuddered at the mention of her father; a new fear gripped her, and with growing urgency, she tried to eavesdrop, but for a while, this proved impossible. "There's no time to waste," said the Marquis, "tomorrow then." She heard La Motte get up, and thinking he was leaving the room, she rushed back up the steps. Once she reached her room, she collapsed almost lifelessly into a chair.

It was her father only of whom she thought. She doubted not that he had pursued and discovered her retreat; and though this conduct appeared very inconsistent with his former behaviour in abandoning her to strangers, her fears suggested that it would terminate in some new cruelty. She did not hesitate to pronounce this the danger of which Theodore had warned her; but it was impossible to surmise how he had gained his knowledge of it, or how he had become sufficiently acquainted with her story, except through La Motte, her apparent friend and protector, whom she was thus, though unwillingly, led to suspect of treachery. Why, indeed, should La Motte conceal from her only his knowledge of her father's intention, unless he designed to deliver her into his hands? Yet it was long ere she could bring herself to believe this conclusion possible. To discover depravity in those whom we have loved, is one of the most exquisite tortures to a virtuous mind, and the conviction is often rejected before it is finally admitted.

It was her father who occupied her thoughts. She had no doubt that he had tracked her down; and although this seemed very different from his previous behavior of leaving her with strangers, her fears led her to believe it would result in some new cruelty. She confidently identified this as the danger Theodore had warned her about; however, it was impossible to figure out how he had learned of it or how he knew her story so well, except through La Motte, her supposed friend and protector, whom she was now, though reluctantly, starting to suspect of betrayal. Why would La Motte keep her father's intentions a secret from her if he didn’t plan to hand her over to him? Yet, it took her a long time to accept this conclusion as possible. Discovering betrayal in those we have loved is one of the most painful experiences for a good person, and this realization is often denied before it is finally acknowledged.

The words of Theodore, which told her he was fearful she was deceived, confirmed this most painful apprehension of La Motte, with another yet more distressing, that Madame La Motte was also united against her. This thought, for a moment, subdued terror and left her only grief; she wept bitterly. Is this human nature? cried she. Am I doomed to find every body deceitful? An unexpected discovery of vice in those whom we have admired, inclines us to extend our censure of the individual to the species; we henceforth contemn appearances, and too hastily conclude that no person is to be trusted.

The words from Theodore, which revealed his fear that she was being deceived, confirmed La Motte's most painful worry, along with an even more distressing thought that Madame La Motte was also against her. This idea, for a moment, silenced her fear and left her with only sadness; she cried bitterly. Is this what being human is like? she exclaimed. Am I doomed to see everyone as deceitful? When we unexpectedly discover dishonesty in those we’ve admired, it makes us want to judge not just the individual but everyone. We then disregard appearances and too quickly assume that no one can be trusted.

Adeline determined to throw herself at the feet of La Motte on the following morning, and implore his pity and protection. Her mind was now too much agitated by her own interests to permit her to examine the manuscripts, and she sat musing in her chair till she heard the steps of Madame La Motte, when she retired to bed. La Motte soon after came up to his chamber; and Adeline, the mild, persecuted Adeline, who had now passed two days of torturing anxiety, and one night of terrific visions, endeavoured to compose her mind to sleep. In the present state of her spirits she quickly caught alarm, and she had scarcely fallen into a slumber when she was roused by a loud and uncommon noise. She listened, and thought the sound came from the apartments below, but in a few minutes there was a hasty knocking at the door of La Motte's chamber.

Adeline decided to throw herself at La Motte's feet the next morning and plead for his compassion and protection. Her mind was too troubled by her own concerns to focus on the manuscripts, so she sat lost in thought until she heard Madame La Motte's footsteps, at which point she went to bed. Shortly after, La Motte came to his room, and Adeline, the gentle, tormented Adeline who had already endured two days of agonizing anxiety and one night of terrifying dreams, tried to calm her mind enough to sleep. In her emotional state, she was easily startled, and she had barely fallen asleep when she was jolted awake by a loud and unusual noise. She listened carefully and thought the sound was coming from the rooms below, but moments later, there was a quick knock on the door to La Motte's room.

La Motte, who had just fallen asleep, was not easily to be roused; but the knocking increased with such violence, that Adeline, extremely terrified, arose and went to the door that opened from her chamber into his, with a design to call him. She was stopped by the voice of the Marquis, which she now clearly distinguished at the door. He called to La Motte to rise immediately; and Madame La Motte endeavoured at the same time to rouse her husband, who at length awoke in much alarm, and soon after joining the Marquis, they went down stairs together. Adeline now dressed herself, as well as her trembling hands would permit, and went into the adjoining chamber, where she found Madame La Motte extremely surprised and terrified.

La Motte, who had just fallen asleep, was hard to wake up; but the knocking got louder and more urgent, so Adeline, feeling very scared, got up and went to the door that connected her room to his, intending to call him. She was stopped by the voice of the Marquis, which she could now clearly hear at the door. He called for La Motte to get up immediately, and Madame La Motte tried at the same time to wake her husband, who eventually awoke in a panic. Shortly after, he joined the Marquis, and they went downstairs together. Adeline quickly got dressed as best as she could with her shaking hands and entered the next room, where she found Madame La Motte extremely surprised and frightened.

The Marquis in the mean time told La Motte, with great agitation, that he recollected having appointed some persons to meet him upon business of importance early in the morning, and it was therefore necessary for him to set off for his chateau immediately. As he said this, and desired that his servants might be called, La Motte could not help observing the ashy paleness of his countenance, or expressing some apprehension that his Lordship was ill. The Marquis assured him he was perfectly well, but desired that he might set out immediately. Peter was now ordered to call the other servants, and the Marquis having refused to take any refreshment, bade La Motte a hasty adieu, and as soon as his people were ready left the abbey.

The Marquis, clearly agitated, told La Motte that he remembered scheduling a meeting with some people about important business early in the morning, so he needed to leave for his chateau right away. As he said this and asked for his servants to be called, La Motte couldn't help but notice the ashen pallor of his face and felt some concern that his Lordship might be unwell. The Marquis assured him he was completely fine but insisted on leaving immediately. Peter was then told to gather the other servants, and after the Marquis declined any refreshments, he quickly bid La Motte farewell and left the abbey as soon as his staff was ready.

La Motte returned to his chamber, musing on the abrupt departure of his guest, whose emotion appeared much too strong to proceed from the cause assigned. He appeased the anxiety of Madame La Motte, and at the same time excited her surprise by acquainting her with the occasion of the late disturbance. Adeline, who had retired from the chamber on the approach of La Motte, looked out from her window on hearing the trampling of horses. It was the Marquis and his people, who just then passed at a little distance. Unable to distinguish who the persons were, she was alarmed at observing such a party about the abbey at that hour, and calling to inform La Motte of the circumstance, was made acquainted with what had passed.

La Motte went back to his room, thinking about the sudden departure of his guest, whose emotions seemed way too intense for the reason given. He calmed Madame La Motte's worries and surprised her by telling her what had caused the recent turmoil. Adeline, who had left the room when La Motte entered, looked out of her window when she heard the sound of horses. It was the Marquis and his entourage, who were passing by not too far away. Not being able to tell who they were, she felt uneasy seeing such a group near the abbey at that time and called to let La Motte know about it, only to find out what had happened.

At length she retired to her bed, and her slumbers were this night undisturbed by dreams.

At last, she went to bed, and this night her sleep was undisturbed by dreams.

When she arose in the morning, she observed La Motte walking alone in the avenue below, and she hastened to seize the opportunity which now offered of pleading her cause. She approached him with faltering steps, while the paleness and timidity of her countenance discovered the disorder of her mind. Her first words, without entering upon any explanation, implored his compassion. La Motte stopped, and looking earnestly in her face, inquired whether any part of his conduct towards her merited the suspicion which her request implied. Adeline for a moment blushed that she had doubted his integrity, but the words she had overheard returned to her memory.

When she got up in the morning, she saw La Motte walking alone on the path below, and she quickly took the chance to plead her case. She approached him with hesitant steps, her pale and anxious expression revealing her inner turmoil. Her first words, without any explanation, begged for his compassion. La Motte paused, looked intently at her, and asked if any part of his behavior towards her warranted the suspicion her request suggested. Adeline felt a moment of embarrassment for doubting his integrity, but the words she had overheard came back to her mind.

Your behaviour, Sir, said she, I acknowledge to have been kind and generous, beyond what I had a right to expect, but—and she paused. She knew not how to mention what she blushed to believe. La Motte continued to gaze on her in silent expectation, and at length desired her to proceed and explain her meaning. She entreated that he would protect her from her father. La Motte looked surprised and confused. Your father! said he. Yes, Sir, replied Adeline; I am not ignorant that he has discovered my retreat: I have every thing to dread from a parent who has treated me with such cruelty as you was witness of; and I again implore that you will save me from his hands.

"Your behavior, Sir," she said, "I admit has been kind and generous, beyond what I had any right to expect, but—" and she paused. She didn’t know how to bring up what made her blush to even think about. La Motte kept looking at her in silent anticipation, and finally asked her to go on and explain what she meant. She pleaded with him to protect her from her father. La Motte looked surprised and confused. "Your father!" he said. "Yes, Sir," Adeline replied; "I know that he has found out where I am hiding: I have everything to fear from a parent who has treated me with such cruelty as you witnessed; and I implore you once again to save me from him."

La Motte stood fixed in thought, and Adeline continued her endeavours to interest his pity. What reason have you to suppose, or rather how have you learned, that your father pursues you? The question confused Adeline, who blushed to acknowledge that she had overheard his discourse, and disdained to invent or utter a falsity: at length she confessed the truth. The countenance of La Motte instantly changed to a savage fierceness, and, sharply rebuking her for a conduct to which she had been rather tempted by chance than prompted by design, he inquired what she had overheard that could so much alarm her. She faithfully repeated the substance of the incoherent sentences that had met her ear;—while she spoke, he regarded her with a fixed attention. And was this all you heard? Is it from these few words that you draw such a positive conclusion? Examine them, and you will find they do not justify it.

La Motte stood deep in thought, while Adeline tried to get his sympathy. "What makes you think, or rather how did you come to know, that your father is after you?" The question threw Adeline off, and she blushed, embarrassed to admit that she had overheard his conversation. She didn't want to lie or make something up, so eventually, she admitted the truth. The expression on La Motte's face suddenly shifted to a fierce intensity, and he sharply scolded her for a behavior that was more accidental than intentional. He asked her what she had overheard that could cause her so much fear. She honestly repeated the gist of the disjointed remarks she had heard; as she spoke, he watched her intently. "Is this really all you heard? Is it based on these few words that you jump to such a strong conclusion? Look closely at them, and you'll see they don't support it."

She now perceived, what the fervour of her fears had not permitted her to observe before, that the words, unconnectedly as she heard them, imported little, and that her imagination had filled up the void in the sentences, so as to suggest the evil apprehended. Notwithstanding this, her fears were little abated. Your apprehensions are, doubtless, now removed, resumed La Motte; but to give you a proof of the sincerity which you have ventured to question, I will tell you they were just. You seem alarmed, and with reason. Your father has discovered your residence, and has already demanded you. It is true, that from a motive of compassion I have refused to resign you, but I have neither authority to withhold nor means to defend you. When he comes to enforce his demand, you will perceive this. Prepare yourself, therefore, for the evil, which you see is inevitable.

She now realized, what the intensity of her fears had previously prevented her from noticing, that the words—no matter how disconnected she heard them—meant very little, and that her imagination had filled in the gaps in the sentences, suggesting the feared outcome. Still, her fears were hardly lessened. "Your worries are probably gone now," La Motte said, "but to prove the honesty you’ve questioned, I’ll tell you they were justified. You look worried, and rightly so. Your father has found out where you are and has already asked for you. It’s true that out of compassion, I have refused to hand you over, but I have no authority to keep you or means to protect you. When he comes to insist on his request, you will see this. So, brace yourself for the trouble that is unavoidable."

Adeline for some time could speak only by her tears. At length, with a fortitude which despair had roused, she said, I resign myself to the will of Heaven! La Motte gazed on her in silence, and a strong emotion appeared in his countenance. He forbore, however, to renew the discourse, and withdrew to the abbey, leaving Adeline in the avenue, absorbed in grief.

Adeline could only express herself through tears for a while. Eventually, with a strength that came from her despair, she said, "I accept the will of Heaven!" La Motte looked at her in silence, and a deep emotion showed on his face. However, he chose not to continue the conversation and left for the abbey, leaving Adeline in the walkway, lost in her sorrow.

A summons to breakfast hastened her to the parlour, where she passed the morning in conversation with Madame La Motte, to whom she told all her apprehensions, and expressed all her sorrow. Pity and superficial consolation were all that Madame La Motte could offer, though apparently much affected by Adeline's discourse. Thus the hours passed heavily away, while the anxiety of Adeline continued to increase, and the moment of her fate seemed fast approaching. Dinner was scarcely over, when Adeline was surprised to see the Marquis arrive. He entered the room with his usual ease, and apologizing for the disturbance he had occasioned on the preceding night, repeated what he had before told La Motte.

A call for breakfast hurried her to the living room, where she spent the morning chatting with Madame La Motte. She shared all her worries and expressed her sadness. Pity and superficial comfort were all Madame La Motte could provide, even though she seemed genuinely affected by Adeline's words. The hours dragged on, and Adeline's anxiety only grew, making her feel like her fate was drawing near. Dinner had just finished when Adeline was surprised to see the Marquis arrive. He walked into the room with his usual poise, and after apologizing for the trouble he had caused the night before, reiterated what he had previously told La Motte.

The remembrance of the conversation she had overheard at first gave Adeline some confusion, and withdrew her mind from a sense of the evils to be apprehended from her father. The Marquis, who was, as usual, attentive to Adeline, seemed affected by her apparent indisposition, and expressed much concern for that dejection of spirits which, notwithstanding every effort, her manner betrayed. When Madame La Motte withdrew, Adeline would have followed her; but the Marquis entreated a few moments' attention, and led her back to her seat. La Motte immediately disappeared.

The memory of the conversation she had overheard initially confused Adeline, distracting her from the fear of the troubles she anticipated from her father. The Marquis, who always paid attention to Adeline, seemed worried by her obvious sadness and expressed genuine concern for her low spirits, which, despite her efforts, were evident in her demeanor. When Madame La Motte left, Adeline tried to follow her, but the Marquis kindly requested a few moments of her attention and guided her back to her seat. La Motte quickly vanished.

Adeline knew too well what would be the purport of the Marquis's discourse, and his words soon increased the confusion which her fears had occasioned. While he was declaring the ardour of his passion in such terms as but too often make vehemence pass for sincerity, Adeline, to whom this declaration, if honourable, was distressing, and if dishonourable, was shocking, interrupted him and thanked him for the offer of a distinction which, with a modest but determined air, she said she must refuse. She rose to withdraw. Stay, too lovely Adeline! said he, and if compassion for my sufferings will not interest you in my favour, allow a consideration of your own dangers to do so. Monsieur La Motte has informed me of your misfortunes, and of the evil that now threatens you; accept from me the protection which he cannot afford.

Adeline was well aware of what the Marquis intended to discuss, and his words only deepened the confusion her fears had caused. While he passionately declared his feelings in a way that often makes intensity seem like sincerity, Adeline found this declaration troubling if honorable and appalling if dishonorable. She interrupted him, thanking him for the offer of a distinction that, with a modest yet firm demeanor, she said she must decline. She stood up to leave. "Wait, beautiful Adeline!" he said. "If my suffering doesn’t move you, then consider your own dangers. Monsieur La Motte has told me about your hardships and the threats you face. Please accept my protection, which he cannot provide."

Adeline continued to move towards the door, when the Marquis threw himself at her feet, and seizing her hand, impressed it with kisses. She struggled to disengage herself. Hear me, charming Adeline! hear me, cried the Marquis; I exist but for you. Listen to my entreaties, and my fortune shall be yours. Do not drive me to despair by ill-judged rigour, or, because—

Adeline kept walking towards the door when the Marquis suddenly fell to his knees in front of her, grabbing her hand and covering it in kisses. She tried to pull away. "Please, lovely Adeline! Please listen to me," the Marquis pleaded. "I live only for you. If you hear my pleas, my wealth will be yours. Don’t push me to despair with your harshness, or, because—"

My Lord, interrupted Adeline with an air of ineffable dignity, and still affecting to believe his proposal honourable, I am sensible of the generosity of your conduct, and also flattered by the distinction you offer me; I will therefore say something more than is necessary to a bare expression of the denial which I must continue to give. I can not bestow my heart. You can not obtain more than my esteem, to which, indeed, nothing can so much contribute as a forbearance from any similar offers in future.

"My Lord," Adeline interjected with an air of undeniable dignity, still trying to see his offer as honorable, "I appreciate your generous conduct and am flattered by the distinction you've extended to me. However, I must say more than just a simple denial to express what I feel. I cannot give you my heart. You cannot expect anything beyond my respect, which, honestly, would be best served if you refrain from making similar offers in the future."

She again attempted to go, but the Marquis prevented her; and, after some hesitation, again urged his suit, though in terms that would no longer allow her to misunderstand him. Tears swelled into her eyes, but she endeavoured to check them; and with a look in which grief and indignation seemed to struggle for pre-eminence, she said, My Lord, this is unworthy of reply; let me pass.

She tried to leave again, but the Marquis stopped her. After some hesitation, he pressed his case once more, but this time with words that left no room for misunderstanding. Tears filled her eyes, but she tried to hold them back. With a look that showed a mix of sadness and anger, she said, "My Lord, this isn't worth responding to; let me go."

For a moment he was awed by the dignity of her manner, and he threw himself at her feet to implore forgiveness. But she waved her hand in silence, and hurried from the room. When she reached her chamber she locked the door, and, sinking into a chair, yielded to the sorrow that pressed at her heart. And it was not the least of her sorrow to suspect that La Motte was unworthy of her confidence; for it was almost impossible that he could be ignorant of the real designs of the Marquis. Madame La Motte, she believed, was imposed upon by a specious pretence of honourable attachment; and thus was she spared the pang which a doubt of her integrity would have added.

For a moment, she impressed him with the dignity of her presence, and he fell to his knees to beg for forgiveness. But she gestured for him to be quiet and rushed out of the room. Once in her room, she locked the door, sank into a chair, and surrendered to the sadness weighing on her heart. One of her deepest sorrows was suspecting that La Motte wasn’t deserving of her trust; it was almost impossible for him not to know the Marquis's true intentions. She thought Madame La Motte was deceived by a false facade of honorable affection, which spared her from the pain that doubt about her integrity would have brought.

She threw a trembling glance upon the prospect around her. On one side was her father, whose cruelty had already been but too plainly manifested; and on the other, the Marquis pursuing her with insult and vicious passion. She resolved to acquaint Madame La Motte with the purport of the late conversation; and, in the hope of her protection and sympathy, she wiped away her tears, and was leaving the room just as Madame La Motte entered it. While Adeline related what had passed, her friend wept, and appeared to suffer great agitation. She endeavoured to comfort her, and promised to use her influence in persuading La Motte to prohibit the addressee of the Marquis. You know, my dear, added Madame, that our present circumstances oblige us to preserve terms with the Marquis, and you will therefore suffer as little resentment to appear in your manner towards him as possible; conduct yourself with your usual ease in his presence, and I doubt not this affair will pass over without subjecting you to further solicitation.

She cast a shaky glance at her surroundings. On one side was her father, whose cruelty had already been all too obvious; on the other, the Marquis, pursuing her with insults and malicious desire. She decided to tell Madame La Motte about their recent conversation and, hoping for her protection and support, wiped her tears and was about to leave the room just as Madame La Motte walked in. While Adeline recounted what had happened, her friend cried and seemed very distressed. She tried to comfort her and promised to use her influence to convince La Motte to stop the Marquis from pursuing her. “You know, my dear,” Madame added, “that our current situation requires us to keep a polite distance from the Marquis, so you should try to show as little resentment as possible towards him. Act with your usual grace when you’re around him, and I’m sure this will blow over without putting you in any further awkward situations.”

Ah, Madam! said Adeline, how hard is the task you assign me! I entreat you that I may never more be subjected to the humiliation of being in his presence,—that, whenever he visits the abbey, I may be suffered to remain in my chamber.

Ah, Madam! said Adeline, how difficult is the task you’ve given me! I beg you to never put me in the embarrassing position of being around him again—whenever he comes to the abbey, please allow me to stay in my room.

This, said Madame La Motte, I would most readily consent to, would our situation permit it. But you well know our asylum in this abbey depends upon the good-will of the Marquis, which we must not wantonly lose; and surely such a conduct as you propose would endanger this. Let us use milder measures, and we shall preserve his friendship without subjecting you to any serious evil. Appear with your usual complaisance: the task is not so difficult as you imagine.

This, Madame La Motte said, I would gladly agree to if our situation allowed it. But you know our refuge in this abbey relies on the Marquis's goodwill, which we must not recklessly jeopardize; and surely the actions you're suggesting would put that at risk. Let’s take a gentler approach, and we’ll maintain his friendship without putting you in any serious trouble. Just act with your usual charm: it’s not as hard as you think.

Adeline sighed. I obey you, Madam, said she; it is my duty to do so: but I may be pardoned for saying—it is with extreme reluctance. Madame La Motte promised to go immediately to her husband; and Adeline departed, though not convinced of her safety, yet somewhat more at ease.

Adeline sighed. "I will obey you, Madam," she said; "it's my duty to do so, but I hope you'll forgive me for saying—it's with great reluctance." Madame La Motte promised to go right away to her husband, and Adeline left, feeling a bit more at ease, even though she wasn't fully convinced of her safety.

She soon after saw the Marquis depart; and as there now appeared to be no obstacle to the return of Madame La Motte, she expected her with extreme impatience. After thus waiting near an hour in her chamber, she was at length summoned to the parlour, and there found Monsieur La Motte alone. He arose upon her entrance, and for some minutes paced the room in silence. He then seated himself, and addressed her: What you have mentioned to Madame La Motte, said he, would give me much concern, did I consider the behaviour of the Marquis in a light so serious as she does. I know that young ladies are apt to misconstrue the unmeaning gallantry of fashionable manners; and you, Adeline, can never be too cautious in distinguishing between a levity of this kind and a more serious address.

She soon saw the Marquis leave; and since there seemed to be no reason for Madame La Motte's delay, she waited eagerly for her return. After waiting for nearly an hour in her room, she was finally called to the parlor, where she found Monsieur La Motte alone. He stood up when she entered, and for a few minutes, he walked around the room in silence. He then sat down and spoke to her: What you told Madame La Motte, he said, would worry me a lot if I viewed the Marquis’s behavior as seriously as she does. I know that young women often misinterpret the meaningless flirtation of social manners; and you, Adeline, should always be careful to distinguish between this kind of lightness and a more serious advance.

Adeline was surprised and offended that La Motte should think so lightly both of her understanding and disposition as his speech implied. Is it possible, Sir, said she, that you have been apprized of the Marquis's conduct?

Adeline was shocked and hurt that La Motte would think so little of her intelligence and character, as his words suggested. "Is it possible, sir," she said, "that you’ve heard about the Marquis’s behavior?"

It is very possible, and very certain, replied La Motte with some asperity; and very possible, also, that I may see this affair with a judgment less discoloured by prejudice than you do. But, however, I shall not dispute this point; I shall only request that, since you are acquainted with the emergency of my circumstances, you will conform to them, and not, by an ill-timed resentment, expose me to the enmity of the Marquis. He is now my friend, and it is necessary to my safety that he should continue such; but if I suffer any part of my family to treat him with rudeness, I must expect to see him my enemy. You may surely treat him with complaisance. Adeline thought the term rudeness a harsh one as La Motte applied it, but she forbore from any expression of displeasure. I could have wished, Sir, said she, for the privilege of retiring whenever the Marquis appeared; but since you believe this conduct would affect your interest, I ought to submit.

"It’s very possible, and actually quite certain," replied La Motte sharply, "and it's also possible that I see this situation with a less biased perspective than you do. However, I won't argue about this; I only ask that, since you know about my circumstances, you adjust your behavior accordingly and don’t, out of misplaced anger, put me at odds with the Marquis. He is currently my ally, and it's crucial for my safety that he remains so; but if I allow any member of my family to be disrespectful to him, I can expect him to become my enemy. You can certainly treat him courteously." Adeline thought the term disrespectful was too harsh in the way La Motte used it, but she held back her displeasure. "I would have liked, Sir," she said, "the option to leave whenever the Marquis is around; but since you believe this would negatively impact your interests, I’ll have to accept it."

This prudence and good-will delights me, said La Motte; and since you wish to serve me, know that you cannot more effectually do it than by treating the Marquis as a friend. The word friend, as it stood connected with the Marquis, sounded dissonantly to Adeline's ear; she hesitated, and looked at La Motte. As your friend, Sir, said she, I will endeavour to—treat him as mine, she would have said, but she found it impossible to finish the sentence. She entreated his protection from the power of her father.

"This kindness and good intentions make me happy," La Motte said. "And since you want to help me, know that the best way to do so is by treating the Marquis like a friend." The word friend, in relation to the Marquis, sounded jarring to Adeline; she hesitated and looked at La Motte. "As your friend, Sir," she said, "I will try to—" treat him like mine, she would have said, but she found it impossible to finish the sentence. She begged for his protection from her father's influence.

What protection I can afford is yours, said La Motte; but you know how destitute I am both of the right and the means of resisting him, and also how much I require protection myself. Since he has discovered your retreat, he is probably not ignorant of the circumstances which detain me here; and if I oppose him, he may betray me to the officers of the law, as the surest method of obtaining possession of you. We are encompassed with dangers, continued La Motte; would I could see any method of extricating ourselves!

"What protection I can offer is yours," La Motte said. "But you know how lacking I am in both the ability and the means to stand up to him, and how much I need protection myself. Since he’s found out where you are, he probably knows the reasons that keep me here. If I go against him, he might turn me in to the authorities, which would be the easiest way for him to get to you. We're surrounded by danger," La Motte continued, "I wish I could see a way for us to escape!"

Quit this abbey, said Adeline, and seek an asylum in Switzerland or Germany; you will then be freed from further obligation to the Marquis, and from the persecution you dread. Pardon me for thus offering advice, which is certainly in some degree prompted by a sense of my own safety, but which, at the same time, seems to afford the only means of ensuring yours.

"Leave this abbey," Adeline said, "and find refuge in Switzerland or Germany. You’ll be free from any further obligations to the Marquis and the harassment you fear. I apologize for giving this advice, which is partly motivated by my own desire for safety, but it also appears to be the only way to ensure yours."

Your plan is reasonable, said La Motte, had I money to execute it. As it is, I must be contented to remain here as little known as possible, and defend myself by making those who know me my friends. Chiefly I must endeavour to preserve the favour of the Marquis: he may do much, should your father even pursue desperate measures. But why do I talk thus? your father may ere this have commenced these measures, and the effects of his vengeance may now be hanging over my head. My regard for you, Adeline, has exposed me to this; had I resigned you to his will, I should have remained secure.

"Your plan makes sense," La Motte said, "if only I had the money to carry it out. As it is, I have to be satisfied with staying here as under the radar as possible, protecting myself by turning those who know me into my friends. Above all, I must try to keep the Marquis on my side: he could help a lot if your father decides to take drastic action. But why am I saying this? Your father might have already started those drastic actions, and the consequences of his wrath could be looming over me right now. My feelings for you, Adeline, have put me at risk; if I had let him have you, I would have been safe."

Adeline was so much affected by this instance of La Motte's kindness, which she could not doubt, that she was unable to express her sense of it. When she could speak, she uttered her gratitude in the most lively terms.—Are you sincere in these expressions? said La Motte.

Adeline was so touched by this act of kindness from La Motte, which she had no reason to doubt, that she couldn't find the words to express her feelings. When she finally found her voice, she conveyed her gratitude in the most enthusiastic way. —Are you being honest in what you're saying? asked La Motte.

Is it possible I can be less than sincere? replied Adeline, weeping at the idea of ingratitude.—Sentiments are easily pronounced, said La Motte, though they may have no connection with the heart; I believe them to be sincere so far only as they influence our actions.

"Is it possible for me to be anything less than genuine?" Adeline replied, crying at the thought of being ungrateful. "People can easily express their feelings," La Motte said, "even if those feelings don’t come from the heart. I think they are sincere only to the extent that they affect our actions."

What mean you, Sir? said Adeline with surprise.

"What do you mean, Sir?" Adeline said with surprise.

I mean to inquire whether, if an opportunity should ever offer of thus proving your gratitude, you would adhere to your sentiments?

I want to ask if, when the chance comes to show your gratitude this way, you would still feel the same?

Name one that I shall refuse, said Adeline with energy.

"Name one that I’ll refuse," Adeline said with determination.

If, for instance, the Marquis should hereafter avow a serious passion for you, and offer you his hand, would no petty resentment, no lurking prepossession for some more happy lover prompt you to refuse it?

If, for example, the Marquis were to admit that he has genuine feelings for you and asks for your hand in marriage, wouldn’t any minor resentment or lingering preference for another more fortunate suitor make you turn him down?

Adeline blushed, and fixed her eyes on the ground. You have, indeed, Sir, named the only means I should reject of evincing my sincerity. The Marquis I can never love, nor, to speak sincerely, ever esteem. I confess the peace of one's whole life is too much to sacrifice even to gratitude.—La Motte looked displeased. 'Tis as I thought, said he; these delicate sentiments make a fine appearance in speech, and render the person who utters them infinitely amiable; but bring them to the test of action, and they dissolve into air, leaving only the wreck of vanity behind.

Adeline blushed and focused her gaze on the ground. You have, indeed, Sir, identified the only way I cannot show my sincerity. I can never love the Marquis, nor, to be honest, will I ever respect him. I admit that sacrificing the peace of one’s entire life for gratitude is too much to ask for. La Motte looked unhappy. "Just as I thought," he said; "these delicate feelings sound nice when spoken and make the person expressing them seem incredibly charming; but when put to the test in action, they disappear, leaving nothing but the remains of vanity."

This unjust sarcasm brought tears to her eyes. Since your safety, Sir, depends upon my conduct, said she, resign me to my father: I am willing to return to him, since my stay here must involve you in new misfortune: let me not prove myself unworthy of the protection I have hitherto experienced, by preferring my own welfare to yours. When I am gone, you will have no reason to apprehend the Marquis's displeasure, which you may probably incur if I stay here; for I feel it impossible that I could even consent to receive his addresses, however honourable were his views.

This unfair sarcasm brought tears to her eyes. “Since your safety, Sir, depends on my actions,” she said, “please let me go back to my father. I’m willing to return to him, since staying here might bring you more trouble. I don’t want to be ungrateful for the protection I’ve received by putting my own interests before yours. Once I leave, you won’t have to worry about upsetting the Marquis, which you might if I stay here; because I honestly can’t imagine agreeing to his advances, no matter how honorable his intentions might be.”

La Motte seemed hurt and alarmed. This must not be, said he; let us not harass ourselves by stating possible evils, and then, to avoid them, fly to those which are certain. No, Adeline, though you are ready to sacrifice yourself to my safety, I will not suffer you to do so;—I will not yield you to your father but upon compulsion. Be satisfied, therefore, upon this point. The only return I ask, is a civil deportment towards the Marquis.

La Motte looked hurt and worried. This can't happen, he said; let's not stress ourselves by talking about possible problems, and then, to avoid them, run towards those that are certain. No, Adeline, even though you're willing to sacrifice yourself for my safety, I won't let you do that—I won't give you up to your father unless I'm forced to. So, be at ease about this. All I ask in return is to be polite to the Marquis.

I will endeavour to obey you, Sir, said Adeline.—Madame La Motte now entered the room, and this conversation ceased. Adeline passed the evening in melancholy thoughts, and retired as soon as possible to her chamber, eager to seek in sleep a refuge from sorrow.

I will try my best to obey you, Sir, said Adeline. —Madame La Motte then entered the room, and this conversation ended. Adeline spent the evening lost in sad thoughts and went to her room as soon as she could, eager to find refuge from her sadness in sleep.







CHAPTER IX

Many a sad night
He watched as the light slowly returned,
And sought the powers of sleep;
To spread a brief calm
Over his sorrowful bed, and in the comfort
To soak his burning eyes in the dull dew of forgetfulness.
Warton.

The MS. found by Adeline the preceding night had several times occurred to her recollection in the course of the day; but she had then been either too much interested by the events of the moment, or too apprehensive of interruption, to attempt a perusal of it. She now took it from the drawer in which it had been deposited, and, intending only to look cursorily over the few first pages, sat down with it by her bed-side.

The manuscript that Adeline had found the night before had crossed her mind several times throughout the day, but she had either been too caught up in the current events or too worried about being interrupted to read it. Now, she took it out of the drawer where she had put it and, planning to just skim the first few pages, sat down with it by her bedside.

She opened it with an eagerness of inquiry which the discoloured and almost obliterated ink but slowly gratified. The first words on the page were entirely lost, but those that appeared to commence the narrative were as follows:

She opened it with an eagerness to discover that the faded and almost erased ink only slowly satisfied. The first words on the page were completely missing, but the ones that seemed to begin the story were as follows:

O! ye, whoever ye are, whom chance or misfortune may hereafter conduct to this spot—to you I speak—to you reveal the story of my wrongs, and ask you to avenge them. Vain hope! yet it imparts some comfort to believe it possible that what I now write may one day meet the eye of a fellow-creature; that the words which tell my sufferings may one day draw pity from the feeling heart.

O! you, whoever you are, that fate or misfortune may lead to this place in the future—I speak to you—I reveal the story of my wrongs and ask you to seek justice for them. A pointless hope! Yet it gives me some comfort to believe that what I write now might someday be seen by another human being; that the words that express my suffering might one day evoke compassion from a kind heart.

Yet stay your tears—your pity now is useless: lone since have the pangs of misery ceased; the voice of complaining is passed away. It is weakness to wish for compassion which cannot be felt till I shall sink in the repose of death, and taste, I hope, the happiness of eternity!

Yet hold back your tears—your pity is pointless now: the pains of misery have long ceased; the voice of complaint is gone. It’s a weakness to desire compassion that can only be felt after I find peace in death and hopefully experience the happiness of eternity!

Know, then, that on the night of the twelfth of October, in the year 1642, I was arrested on the road to Caux,—and on the very spot where a column is erected to the memory of the immortal Henry,—by four ruffians, who, after disabling my servant, bore me through wilds and woods to this abbey. Their demeanour was not that of common banditti, and I soon perceived they were employed by a superior power to perpetrate some dreadful purpose. Entreaties and bribes were vainly offered them to discover their employer and abandon their design; they would not reveal even the least circumstance of their intentions.

Know that on the night of October 12th, 1642, I was arrested while traveling to Caux—right at the spot where a column stands in memory of the immortal Henry—by four thugs who, after incapacitating my servant, dragged me through wilderness and woods to this abbey. Their behavior was not like that of ordinary criminals, and I quickly realized they were working for a higher authority to carry out some terrible plan. Pleas and bribes were useless in getting them to reveal their employer or back off from their mission; they wouldn't disclose even the tiniest detail of their intentions.

But when, after a long journey, they arrived at this edifice, their base employer was at once revealed, and his horrid scheme but too well understood. What a moment was that! All the thunders of heaven seemed launched at this defenceless head! O! fortitude! nerve my heart to——

But when, after a long journey, they reached this building, their true employer was instantly revealed, and his terrible plan became all too clear. What a moment that was! It felt like all the forces of heaven were unleashed on this vulnerable head! Oh! Courage! Steady my heart to——

Adeline's light was now expiring in the socket, and the paleness of the ink, so feebly shone upon, baffled her efforts to discriminate the letters: it was impossible to procure a light from below, without discovering that she was yet up; a circumstance which would excite surprise, and lead to explanations such as she did not wish to enter upon. Thus compelled to suspend the inquiry, which so many attendant circumstances had rendered awfully interesting, she retired to her humble bed.

Adeline's candle was almost burned out, and the faint glow from the pale ink made it hard for her to read the letters. She couldn't get a light from downstairs without revealing that she was still awake, which would bring about questions and explanations she wanted to avoid. So, unable to continue her intriguing search, she went to her simple bed.

What she had read of the MS. awakened a dreadful interest in the fate of the writer, and called up terrific images to her mind. In these apartments!—said she; and she shuddered and closed her eyes. At length she heard Madame La Motte enter her chamber, and the phantoms of fear beginning to dissipate, left her to repose.

What she had read of the manuscript sparked a terrible curiosity about the writer's fate and flooded her mind with scary images. In these rooms!—she said, shuddering and closing her eyes. Finally, she heard Madame La Motte come into her room, and as the fears began to fade, she was able to relax.

In the morning she was awakened by Madame La Motte, and found to her disappointment that she had slept so much beyond her usual time as to be unable to renew the perusal of the MS.—La Motte appeared uncommonly gloomy, and Madame wore an air of melancholy, which Adeline attributed to the concern she felt for her. Breakfast was scarcely over, when the sound of horses' feet announced the arrival of a stranger; and Adeline from the oriel recess of the hall saw the Marquis alight. She retreated with precipitation, and, forgetting the request of La Motte, was hastening to her chamber: but the Marquis was already in the hall; and seeing her leaving it, turned to La Motte with a look of inquiry. La Motte called her back, and by a frown too intelligent reminded her of her promise. She summoned all her spirits to her aid, but advanced, notwithstanding, in visible emotion; while the Marquis addressed her as usual, the same easy gaiety playing upon his countenance and directing his manner.

In the morning, Madame La Motte woke her up, and to her disappointment, she realized she had slept much longer than usual, so she couldn’t get back to reading the manuscript. La Motte seemed unusually gloomy, and Madame had a sad expression, which Adeline thought was because she was worried about her. They had barely finished breakfast when the sound of horses' hooves signaled the arrival of a stranger; Adeline saw the Marquis get down from his horse from the oriel nook in the hall. She quickly stepped back and, forgetting La Motte's request, was hurrying to her room, but the Marquis was already in the hall. Noticing her leaving, he turned to La Motte with a questioning look. La Motte called her back and, with a knowing frown, reminded her of her promise. She gathered all her courage but walked forward, clearly emotional, while the Marquis addressed her as usual, with the same easy charm lighting up his face and guiding his demeanor.

Adeline was surprised and shocked at this careless confidence; which, however, by awakening her pride, communicated to her an air of dignity that abashed him. He spoke with hesitation, and frequently appeared abstracted from the subject of discourse. At length arising, he begged Adeline would favour him with a few moments' conversation. Monsieur and Madame La Motte were now leaving the room, when Adeline, turning to the Marquis, told him she would not hear any conversation except in the presence of her friends. But she said it in vain, for they were gone; and La Motte, as he withdrew, expressed by his looks how much an attempt to follow would displease him.

Adeline was surprised and shocked by this casual confidence; however, it sparked her pride and gave her an air of dignity that made him feel embarrassed. He spoke hesitantly and often seemed distracted from the topic at hand. Finally, he got up and asked Adeline if she could spare him a few moments for a conversation. Monsieur and Madame La Motte were just leaving the room when Adeline turned to the Marquis and told him she wouldn't discuss anything without her friends present. But it was pointless to say, as they had already left; and as La Motte exited, his expression made it clear how much he disapproved of any attempt to follow him.

She sat for some time in silence and trembling expectation. I am sensible, said the Marquis at length, that the conduct to which the ardour of my passion lately betrayed me, has injured me in your opinion, and that you will not easily restore me to your esteem; but I trust the offer which I now make you, both of my title and fortune, will sufficiently prove the sincerity of my attachment, and atone for the transgression which love only prompted.

She sat quietly for a while, feeling anxious. Finally, the Marquis spoke: "I know that my recent behavior, driven by my strong feelings, has damaged how you see me, and it won’t be easy for you to think well of me again. But I hope that my offer of both my title and my fortune will show you how sincere my feelings are and will make up for the mistake that love pushed me into."

After this specimen of common-place verbosity, which the Marquis seemed to consider as a prelude to triumph, he attempted to impress a kiss upon the hand of Adeline, who, withdrawing it hastily, said, You are already, my Lord, acquainted with my sentiments upon this subject, and it is almost unnecessary for me now to repeat that I cannot accept the honour you offer me.

After this example of typical wordiness, which the Marquis seemed to think was a sign of victory, he tried to kiss Adeline's hand. She quickly pulled it away and said, "You already know how I feel about this, my Lord, and it's almost unnecessary for me to repeat that I cannot accept the honor you’re offering me."

Explain yourself, lovely Adeline! I am ignorant that till now I ever made you this offer.

Explain yourself, beautiful Adeline! I didn't realize until now that I ever made you this offer.

Most true, Sir, said Adeline; and you do well to remind me of this, since, after having heard your former proposal, I cannot listen for a moment to any other. She rose to quit the room. Stay, Madam, said the Marquis, with a look in which offended pride struggled to conceal itself; do not suffer an extravagant resentment to operate against your true interests; recollect the dangers that surround you, and consider the value of an offer which may afford you at least an honourable asylum.

“Most definitely, Sir,” said Adeline, “and you’re right to remind me of this, because after hearing your earlier proposal, I can’t entertain any other for even a moment.” She stood up to leave the room. “Wait, Madam,” the Marquis said, his expression showing a mix of offended pride and an effort to hide it. “Don’t let your excessive anger get in the way of your best interests. Remember the dangers you face, and think about the worth of an offer that could at least provide you with a respectable refuge.”

My misfortunes, my Lord, whatever they are, I have never obtruded upon you; you will, therefore, excuse my observing, that your present mention of them conveys a much greater appearance of insult than compassion. The Marquis, though with evident confusion, was going to reply; but Adeline would not be detained, and retired to her chamber. Destitute as she was, her heart revolted from the proposal of the Marquis, and she determined never to accept it. To her dislike of his general disposition, and the aversion excited by his late offer, was added, indeed, the influence of a prior attachment, and of a remembrance which she found it impossible to erase from her heart.

My troubles, my Lord, whatever they may be, I have never pushed onto you; so please understand that your mention of them seems more insulting than caring. The Marquis, despite clearly being flustered, was about to respond; but Adeline wouldn't be held back and went to her room. Even without much, her heart revolted at the idea from the Marquis, and she decided she would never accept it. On top of her dislike for his overall character and the resentment from his recent proposal, there was also the weight of a previous attachment and memories she just couldn't shake from her heart.

The Marquis staid to dine, and in consideration of La Motte, Adeline appeared at table, where the former gazed upon her with such frequent and silent earnestness, that her distress became insupportable; and when the cloth was drawn, she instantly retired. Madame La Motte soon followed, and it was not till evening that she had an opportunity of returning to the MS. When Monsieur and Madame La Motte were in their chamber, and all was still, she drew forth the narrative, and trimming her lamp, sat down to read as follows:

The Marquis stayed for dinner, and to honor La Motte, Adeline joined them at the table. The Marquis looked at her with such constant and intense focus that it made her uncomfortable, and as soon as the meal was over, she quickly left. Madame La Motte soon followed her, and it wasn't until the evening that she could return to the manuscript. Once Monsieur and Madame La Motte were in their room and everything was quiet, she took out the narrative, adjusted her lamp, and sat down to read as follows:

The ruffians unbound me from my horse, and led me through the hall up the spiral staircase of the abbey: resistance was useless; but I looked around in the hope of seeing some person less obdurate than the men who brought me hither; some one who might be sensible to pity, and capable at least of civil treatment. I looked in vain; no person appeared: and this circumstance confirmed my worst apprehensions. The secrecy of the business foretold a horrible conclusion. Having passed some chambers, they stopped in one hung with old tapestry. I inquired why we did not go on, and was told I should soon know.

The thugs untied me from my horse and led me through the hall up the spiral staircase of the abbey: fighting back was pointless; but I searched around, hoping to find someone who was less harsh than the men who brought me here; someone who might have a sense of compassion and at least treat me politely. I searched in vain; no one appeared: and this only deepened my fears. The secretive nature of the situation hinted at a dreadful ending. After passing several rooms, they stopped in one decorated with old tapestries. I asked why we weren’t continuing, and I was told I would find out soon.

At that moment I expected to see the instrument of death uplifted, and silently recommended myself to God. But death was not then designed for me; they raised the arras, and discovered a door, which they then opened. Seizing my arms, they led me through a suite of dismal chambers beyond. Having reached the furthest of these, they again stopped: the horrid gloom of the place seemed congenial to murder, and inspired deadly thoughts. Again I looked round for the instrument of destruction, and again I was respited. I supplicated to know what was designed me; it was now unnecessary to ask who was the author of the design. They were silent to my question, but at length told me this chamber was my prison. Having said this, and set down a jug of water, they left the room, and I heard the door barred upon me.

At that moment, I expected to see the weapon of death raised, and I silently prayed to God. But death wasn't meant for me then; they pulled back the tapestry and revealed a door, which they opened. Grabbing my arms, they led me through a series of gloomy rooms beyond. When we reached the last of these, they stopped again: the dreadful darkness of the place felt like a backdrop for murder and filled me with grim thoughts. Once more, I looked around for the means of destruction, and once more I was spared. I begged to know what was intended for me; it was no longer necessary to ask who was behind it. They remained silent to my question, but eventually told me this room was my prison. After saying this and placing a jug of water down, they left the room, and I heard the door being locked behind me.

O sound of despair! O moment of unutterable anguish! The pang of death itself is surely not superior to that I then suffered. Shut out from day, from friends, from life—for such I must foretell it—in the prime of my years, in the height of my transgressions, and left to imagine horrors more terrible than any, perhaps, which certainty could give—I sink beneath the—

O sound of despair! O moment of unbearable anguish! The pain of death itself is surely not worse than what I felt then. Cut off from the daylight, from friends, from life—for that’s how I must predict it—in the prime of my years, at the peak of my mistakes, and left to imagine horrors more terrible than anything certainty could provide—I sink beneath the—

Here several pages of the manuscript were decayed with damp, and totally illegible. With much difficulty Adeline made out the following lines:

Here several pages of the manuscript were damaged by moisture and completely unreadable. With great effort, Adeline was able to discern the following lines:

Three days have now passed in solitude and silence: the horrors of death are ever before my eyes, let me endeavour to prepare for the dreadful change! When I awake in the morning I think I shall not live to see another night; and when night returns, that I must never more unclose my eyes on morning. Why am I brought hither—why confined thus rigorously—but for death! Yet what action of my life has deserved this at the hand of a fellow-creature?—Of——

Three days have now gone by in isolation and silence: the terrors of death are always in front of me, so I’ll try to get ready for the awful change! When I wake up in the morning, I think I won’t survive to see another night; and when night comes back, I fear I won’t ever open my eyes to see the morning again. Why am I brought here—why am I kept like this so harshly—if not for death! Yet what have I done in my life to deserve this from another human being?—Of——

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

O my children! O friends far distant! I shall never see you more—never more receive the parting look of kindness—never bestow a parting blessing!—Ye know not my wretched state—alas! ye cannot know it by human means. Ye believe me happy, or ye would fly to my relief. I know that what I now write cannot avail me, yet there is comfort in pouring forth my griefs; and I bless that man, less savage than his fellows, who has supplied me these means of recording them. Alas! he knows full well, that from this indulgence he has nothing to fear. My pen can call no friends to succour me, nor reveal my danger ere it is too late. O! ye, who may hereafter read what I now write, give a tear to my sufferings: I have wept often for the distresses of my fellow-creatures!

Oh my children! Oh friends far away! I'll never see you again—never again receive a kind farewell look—never again give you a parting blessing! You don't know my miserable condition—unfortunately! You can't know it through human means. You think I'm happy, or else you would rush to help me. I realize that what I'm writing now won't help me, but there's comfort in expressing my sorrows; and I’m grateful to that man, less cruel than others, who has given me these means to record them. Sadly, he knows perfectly well that he has nothing to worry about from this permission. My pen can’t call anyone to help me, nor reveal my danger before it's too late. Oh! you who may read this in the future, shed a tear for my suffering: I have often cried for the troubles of my fellow beings!

Adeline paused. Here the wretched writer appealed directly to her heart; he spoke in the energy of truth, and, by a strong illusion of fancy, it seemed as if his past suffering were at this moment present. She was for some time unable to proceed, and sat in musing sorrow. In these very apartments, said she, this poor sufferer was confined—here he—Adeline started, and thought she heard a sound; but the stillness of the night was undisturbed.—In these very chambers, said she, these lines were written—these lines, from which he then derived a comfort in believing they would hereafter be read by some pitying eye: this time is now come. Your miseries, O injured being! are lamented where they were endured. Here, where you suffered, I weep for your sufferings!

Adeline paused. In that moment, the heartbroken writer reached out to her directly; he spoke with such sincerity that, through a powerful illusion, it felt like his past pain was happening right then. She struggled for a while to continue, lost in her sorrowful thoughts. "In this very place," she said, "this poor soul was trapped—here he—" Adeline suddenly flinched, thinking she heard a noise, but the silence of the night remained unbroken. "In these very rooms," she continued, "these words were penned—words that gave him solace, believing they would one day be seen by someone who felt for him: that moment has arrived. Your suffering, oh wronged soul! is mourned where it was endured. Here, where you suffered, I cry for your pain!"

Her imagination was now strongly impressed, and to her distempered senses the suggestions of a bewildered mind appeared with the force of reality. Again she started and listened, and thought she heard Here distinctly repeated by a whisper immediately behind her. The terror of the thought, however, was but momentary, she knew it could not be; convinced that her fancy had deceived her, she took up the MS. and again began to read.

Her imagination was now deeply affected, and to her troubled senses, the ideas from her confused mind felt real. Again, she jumped and listened, thinking she heard Here distinctly whispered right behind her. The fear of that thought was only temporary; she knew it couldn't be true. Convinced that her mind had tricked her, she picked up the manuscript and started reading once more.

For what am I reserved? Why this delay? If I am to die—why not quickly? Three weeks have I now passed within these walls, during which time no look of pity has softened my afflictions; no voice, save my own, has met my ear. The countenances of the ruffians who attend me are stern and inflexible, and their silence is obstinate. This stillness is dreadful! O! ye, who have known what it is to live in the depths of solitude, who have passed your dreary days without one sound to cheer you; ye, and ye only, can tell what now I feel; and ye may know how much I would endure to hear the accents of a human voice.

For what am I waiting? Why the delay? If I'm going to die—then why not do it quickly? I’ve spent three weeks behind these walls now, during which no look of pity has eased my suffering; no voice, except my own, has reached my ears. The faces of the thugs who watch over me are hard and unyielding, and their silence is stubborn. This quiet is terrifying! O! you who have experienced what it is to live in deep solitude, who have spent your miserable days without a single sound to lift your spirits; you, and only you, can understand what I feel right now; and you might realize how much I would endure just to hear the sound of a human voice.

O dire extremity! O state of living death! What dreadful stillness! All around me is dead; and do I really exist, or am I but a statue? Is this a vision? Are these things real? Alas, I am bewildered!—this death-like and perpetual silence—this dismal chamber—the dread of further sufferings have disturbed my fancy. O for some friendly breast to lay my weary head on! some cordial accents to revive my soul!

O terrible situation! O state of living death! What awful silence! Everything around me feels lifeless; do I truly exist, or am I just a statue? Is this just a vision? Are these things really happening? Alas, I'm so confused!—this death-like and endless silence—this gloomy room—the fear of more suffering has unsettled me. O for some friendly shoulder to rest my tired head on! Some comforting words to bring my soul back to life!

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

I write by stealth. He who furnished me with the means, I fear, has suffered for some symptoms of pity he may have discovered for me; I have not seen him for several days: perhaps he is inclined to help me, and for that reason is forbid to come. O that hope! but how vain! Never more must I quit these walls while life remains. Another day is gone, and yet I live; at this time to-morrow night my sufferings may be sealed in death. I will continue my journal nightly, till the hand that writes shall be stopped by death: when the journal ceases, the reader will know I am no more. Perhaps these are the last lines I shall ever write.

I write in secret. The person who gave me the means to do this, I fear, has faced consequences for whatever compassion he might have felt for me; I haven't seen him in days. Maybe he wants to help me, and that's why he's been told not to come by. Oh, what hope! But how futile! I can never leave these walls as long as I live. Another day has passed, and I'm still alive; this time tomorrow night, my suffering could end in death. I will keep writing my journal every night until death stops my hand: when the journal ends, the reader will know I'm no longer here. These might be the last words I ever write.

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

Adeline paused, while her tears fell fast. Unhappy man! she exclaimed: and was here no pitying soul to save thee! Great God! thy ways are wonderful! While she sat musing, her fancy, which now wandered in the regions of terror, gradually subdued reason. There was a glass before her upon the table, and she feared to raise her looks towards it, lest some other face than her own should meet her eyes: other dreadful ideas and strange images of fantastic thought now crossed her mind.

Adeline paused, her tears streaming down. "Unhappy man!" she exclaimed. "Is there no one here to save you? Great God! Your ways are amazing!" As she sat lost in thought, her imagination, now wandering into terrifying places, slowly overtook her reason. There was a glass on the table in front of her, and she was afraid to look up at it, worried that she might see a face other than her own. Other dreadful thoughts and bizarre images flashed through her mind.

A hollow sigh seemed to pass near her. Holy Virgin, protect me! cried she, and threw a fearful glance round the room;—this is surely something more than fancy. Her fears so far overcame her, that she was several times upon the point of calling up a part of the family; but, unwillingness to disturb them, and a dread of ridicule, withheld her. She was also afraid to move, and almost to breathe. As she listened to the wind, that murmured at the casement of her lonely chamber, she again thought she heard a sigh. Her imagination refused any longer the control of reason, and, turning her eyes, a figure, whose exact form she could not distinguish, appeared to pass along an obscure part of the chamber: a dreadful chillness came over her, and she sat fixed in her chair. At length a deep sigh somewhat relieved her oppressed spirits, and her senses seemed to return.

A hollow sigh seemed to drift by her. Holy Virgin, protect me! she cried, throwing a fearful glance around the room; this is definitely something more than just my imagination. Her fears overwhelmed her to the point that she almost called for some family members multiple times, but she hesitated, not wanting to disturb them or be ridiculed. She was also too scared to move or even breathe. As she listened to the wind softly murmuring against the window of her lonely room, she thought she heard another sigh. Her imagination stopped listening to reason, and as she turned her eyes, she saw a figure, whose exact shape she couldn't quite make out, seem to pass through a dark corner of the room. A dreadful chill washed over her, and she sat frozen in her chair. Finally, a deep sigh somewhat eased her heavy heart, and her senses slowly began to come back.

All remaining quiet, after some time she began to question whether her fancy had not deceived her, and she so far conquered her terror as to desist from calling Madame La Motte: her mind was, however, so much disturbed, that she did not venture to trust herself that night again with the MS.; but having spent some time in prayer, and in endeavouring to compose her spirits, she retired to bed.

All was quiet for a while, and then she started to wonder if her imagination had played tricks on her. She managed to overcome her fear enough to stop calling for Madame La Motte. However, her mind was so unsettled that she didn’t dare to look at the manuscript again that night. After spending some time praying and trying to calm herself down, she went to bed.

When she awoke in the morning, the cheerful sun-beams played upon the casements, and dispelled the illusions of darkness: her mind soothed and invigorated by sleep, rejected the mystic and turbulent promptings of imagination. She arose refreshed and thankful; but upon going down to breakfast, this transient gleam of peace fled upon the appearance of the Marquis, whose frequent visits at the abbey, after what had passed, not only displeased, but alarmed her. She saw that he was determined to persevere in addressing her: and the boldness and insensibility of this conduct, while it excited her indignation, increased her disgust. In pity to La Motte, she endeavoured to conceal these emotions, though she now thought that he required too much from her complaisance, and began seriously to consider how she might avoid the necessity of continuing it. The Marquis behaved to her with the most respectful attention; but Adeline was silent and reserved, and seized the first opportunity of withdrawing.

When she woke up in the morning, the cheerful sunlight danced on the windows and chased away the darkness. Her mind, calm and refreshed from sleep, dismissed the restless and chaotic thoughts. She got up feeling grateful and rejuvenated; however, when she went down for breakfast, that brief moment of peace vanished with the appearance of the Marquis, whose frequent visits to the abbey, especially after everything that had happened, not only annoyed her but also worried her. She realized he was determined to keep addressing her, and the boldness and lack of awareness in his behavior, while it sparked her anger, only deepened her disgust. Out of consideration for La Motte, she tried to hide her feelings, even though she felt he was asking too much of her patience and started seriously thinking about how to avoid having to keep up that pretense. The Marquis treated her with the utmost respect, but Adeline remained quiet and distant, quickly finding an opportunity to leave.

As she passed up the spiral staircase, Peter entered the hall below, and seeing Adeline, he stopped and looked earnestly at her: she did not observe him, but he called her softly, and she then saw him make a signal, as if he had something to communicate. In the next instant, La Motte opened the door of the vaulted room, and Peter hastily disappeared. She proceeded to her chamber, ruminating upon this signal, and the cautious manner in which Peter had given it.

As she made her way up the spiral staircase, Peter entered the hall below. When he spotted Adeline, he paused and studied her intently. She didn’t notice him at first, but when he called her softly, she saw him gesture as if he had something to tell her. Just then, La Motte opened the door to the vaulted room, and Peter quickly vanished. She went to her room, pondering this gesture and the careful way Peter had signaled it.

But her thoughts soon returned to their wonted subjects. Three days were now passed, and she heard no intelligence of her father; she began to hope that he had relented from the violent measures hinted at by La Motte, and that he meant to pursue a milder plan: but when she considered his character, this appeared improbable, and she relapsed into her former fears. Her residence at the abbey was now become painful, from the perseverance of the Marquis and the conduct which La Motte obliged her to adopt; yet she could not think without dread of quitting it to return to her father.

But her thoughts soon drifted back to familiar topics. Three days had passed, and she still hadn’t heard anything about her father; she started to hope that he had backed off from the violent measures hinted at by La Motte and that he intended to take a gentler approach. However, considering his personality, that seemed unlikely, and she fell back into her previous fears. Her time at the abbey had become painful due to the Marquis's persistence and the behavior that La Motte forced her to adopt. Yet, the thought of leaving and returning to her father filled her with dread.

The image of Theodore often intruded upon her busy thoughts, and brought with it a pang which his strange departure occasioned. She had a confused notion that his fate was somehow connected with her own; and her struggles to prevent the remembrance of him served only to show how much her heart was his.

The image of Theodore frequently interrupted her busy thoughts, bringing with it a sharp pain from his unexpected departure. She had a vague sense that his fate was linked to her own; and her efforts to push him from her mind only made it clear how much her heart belonged to him.

To divert her thoughts from these subjects, and gratify the curiosity so strongly excited on the preceding night, she now took up the MS. but was hindered from opening it by the entrance of Madame La Motte, who came to tell her the Marquis was gone. They passed their morning together in work and general conversation; La Motte not appearing till dinner, when he said little, and Adeline less. She asked him, however, if he had heard from her father? I have not heard from him, said La Motte; but there is good reason, as I am informed by the Marquis, to believe he is not far off.

To distract herself from these thoughts and satisfy the curiosity that had been sparked the night before, she picked up the manuscript. However, she was interrupted before she could open it by Madame La Motte, who came to inform her that the Marquis had left. They spent their morning working and chatting, while La Motte didn't show up until dinner, when he spoke little, and Adeline said even less. She did ask him, though, if he had heard from her father. "I haven’t heard from him," La Motte replied, "but according to the Marquis, there's good reason to believe he’s nearby."

Adeline was shocked, yet she was able to reply with becoming firmness. I have already, Sir, involved you too much in my distress, and now see that resistance will destroy you, without serving me; I am therefore contented to return to my father, and thus spare you further calamity.

Adeline was shocked, but she managed to respond with appropriate firmness. "I've already involved you too much in my troubles, Sir, and I now see that resisting you will only harm you without helping me. So, I'm willing to go back to my father and spare you any more suffering."

This is a rash determination, replied La Motte; and if you pursue it, I fear you will severely repent. I speak to you as a friend, Adeline, and desire you will endeavour to listen to me without prejudice. The Marquis, I find, has offered you his hand. I know not which circumstance most excites my surprise, that a man of his rank and consequence should solicit a marriage with a person without fortune or ostensible connexions, or that a person so circumstanced should even for a moment reject the advantages just offered her. You weep, Adeline; let me hope that you are convinced of the absurdity of this conduct, and will no longer trifle with your good fortune. The kindness I have shown you must convince you of my regard, and that I have no motive for offering you this advice but your advantage. It is necessary, however, to say, that should your father not insist upon your removal, I know not how long my circumstances may enable me to afford even the humble pittance you receive here. Still you are silent.

"This is a hasty decision," La Motte replied, "and if you go through with it, I fear you'll regret it deeply. I'm speaking to you as a friend, Adeline, and I hope you'll try to hear me out without bias. I've found out that the Marquis has proposed to you. I'm not sure what surprises me more: that a man of his status and influence would want to marry someone who has no wealth or connections, or that someone in your position would even consider rejecting such an opportunity. You're crying, Adeline; I hope that means you've realized how ridiculous this choice is and that you won’t take your good fortune for granted anymore. The kindness I’ve shown you should make it clear how much I care, and that I have no other reason for giving you this advice than your own benefit. However, I must mention that if your father doesn’t insist on your leaving, I cannot guarantee how long I will be able to provide even the modest support you receive here. Yet, you remain silent."

The anguish which this speech excited, suppressed her utterance, and she continued to weep. At length she said, Suffer me, Sir, to go back to my father; I should indeed make an ill return for the kindness you mention, could I wish to stay after what you now tell me; and to accept the Marquis, I feel to be impossible. The remembrance of Theodore arose to her mind, and she wept aloud.

The pain this speech caused her made it hard for her to speak, and she kept crying. Finally, she said, "Please, sir, let me go back to my father; it would really be disrespectful to your kindness if I wanted to stay after what you've just said. I can't accept the Marquis; it feels impossible to me." The memory of Theodore came to her mind, and she cried out loud.

La Motte sat for some time musing. Strange infatuation! said he; is it possible that you can persist in this heroism of romance, and prefer a father so inhuman as yours, to the Marquis de Montalt! a destiny so full of danger, to a life of splendour and delight!

La Motte sat for a while lost in thought. What a strange obsession! he said; is it possible that you can keep up this romantic heroism and choose a father as cruel as yours over the Marquis de Montalt? A fate so fraught with danger instead of a life filled with luxury and joy!

Pardon me, said Adeline; a marriage with the Marquis would be splendid, but never happy. His character excites my aversion, and I entreat, Sir, that he may no more be mentioned.

"Pardon me," said Adeline. "A marriage with the Marquis would be wonderful, but never happy. His personality repulses me, and I ask you, sir, to please not mention him again."







CHAPTER X

Nor are those who lack warmth, whose soft voice
Reverbs have no emptiness.
LEAR.

The conversation related in the last chapter was interrupted by the entrance of Peter, who, as he left the room, looked significantly at Adeline, and almost beckoned. She was anxious to know what he meant, and soon after went into the hall, where she found him loitering. The moment he saw her, he made a sign of silence, and beckoned her into the recess. Well, Peter, what is it you would say? said Adeline.

The conversation from the last chapter was cut short by Peter entering the room. As he left, he gave Adeline a meaningful look and almost gestured for her to follow. She was curious about what he wanted to say, so she headed into the hall, where she found him hanging around. As soon as he saw her, he signaled her to be quiet and motioned for her to come closer. “So, Peter, what do you want to say?” Adeline asked.

Hush, Ma'mselle; for heaven's sake speak lower; if we should be overheard, we are all blown up.—Adeline begged him to explain what he meant Yes, Ma'mselle, that is what I have wanted all day long: I have watched and watched for an opportunity, and looked and looked till I was afraid my master himself would see me; but all would not do, you would not understand.

Hush, Miss; for heaven's sake, speak softly; if we get overheard, we're done for. —Adeline asked him to clarify what he meant. Yes, Miss, that's what I've wanted all day: I've been watching and waiting for a chance, and I've looked and looked until I was worried my master would notice me; but it was no use, you wouldn't understand.

Adeline entreated he would be quick. Yes Ma'm, but I'm so afraid we shall be seen; but I would do much to serve such a good young lady, for I could not bear to think of what threatened you, without telling you of it.

Adeline pleaded with him to hurry. "Yes, ma'am, but I'm really scared we might get caught; still, I would do anything to help such a wonderful young lady, because I can’t stand the thought of what’s coming for you without warning you about it."

For God's sake, said Adeline, speak quickly, or we shall be interrupted.

"For heaven's sake, Adeline said, speak fast, or we'll get interrupted."

Well then;—but you must first promise by the Holy Virgin never to say it was I that told you; my master would—

Well then;—but you must first promise by the Holy Virgin never to say it was I who told you; my boss would—

I do, I do, said Adeline.

I do, I do, Adeline said.

Well, then—on Monday evening as I—hark! did not I hear a step? do, Ma'mselle, just step this way to the cloisters: I would not for the world we should be seen: I'll go out at the hall door, and you can go through the passage. I would not for the world we should be seen.—Adeline was much alarmed by Peter's words, and hurried to the cloisters. He quickly appeared, and, looking cautiously round, resumed his discourse. As I was saying, Ma'mselle, Monday night, when the Marquis slept here, you know he sat up very late, and I can guess, perhaps, the reason of that. Strange things came out, but it is not my business to tell all I think.

Well, then—on Monday evening as I—wait! Did I hear a step? Please, Ma'mselle, just come this way to the cloisters: I wouldn’t want us to be seen. I'll go out the hall door, and you can go through the passage. I really don’t want us to be seen.—Adeline was quite alarmed by Peter's words, and rushed to the cloisters. He quickly appeared, and, looking around cautiously, continued speaking. As I was saying, Ma'mselle, Monday night, when the Marquis stayed here, you know he was up very late, and I think I can guess why. Strange things were revealed, but it's not my place to share everything I think.

Pray do speak to the purpose, said Adeline impatiently; what is this danger which you say threatens me? Be quick, or we shall be observed.

"Please get to the point," Adeline said impatiently. "What is this danger you say is threatening me? Hurry up, or we'll be noticed."

Danger enough, Ma'mselle, replied Peter, if you knew all; and when you do, what will it signify? for you can't help yourself. But that's neither here nor there; I was resolved to tell you, though I may repent it.

"There's plenty of danger, Miss," Peter replied, "if you knew everything; and when you do, what will it matter? You can't change anything. But that’s not the point; I was determined to tell you, even if I might regret it."

Or rather, you are resolved not to tell me, said Adeline; for you have made no progress towards it. But what do you mean? You was speaking of the Marquis.

Or rather, you’re determined not to tell me, said Adeline; because you haven’t made any progress on that. But what do you mean? You were talking about the Marquis.

Hush, Ma'am, not so loud. The Marquis, as I said, sat up very late, and my master sat up with him. One of his men went to bed in the oak room, and the other staid to undress his lord. So as we were sitting together. Lord have mercy! it made my hair stand on end! I tremble yet. So as we were sitting together—but as sure as I live, yonder is my master: I caught a glimpse of him between the trees; if he sees me it is all over with us. I'll tell you another time. So saying, he hurried into the abbey, leaving Adeline in a state of alarm, curiosity, and vexation. She walked out into the forest ruminating upon Peter's words, and endeavouring to guess to what they alluded: there Madame La Motte joined her, and they conversed on various topics till they reached the abbey.

Hush, ma'am, not so loud. The Marquis, as I mentioned, stayed up very late, and my master stayed up with him. One of his men went to bed in the oak room, while the other stayed to help his lord undress. So, as we were sitting there—goodness! It made my hair stand on end! I’m still trembling. Anyway, as we were sitting there—but I swear, there’s my master: I caught a glimpse of him between the trees; if he sees me, it’s all over for us. I’ll tell you more later. With that, he hurried into the abbey, leaving Adeline feeling alarmed, curious, and frustrated. She walked out into the forest, pondering Peter's words and trying to figure out what he meant. That's when Madame La Motte joined her, and they talked about various topics until they reached the abbey.

Adeline watched in vain through that day for an opportunity of speaking with Peter. While he waited at supper, she occasionally observed his countenance with great anxiety, hoping it might afford her some degree of intelligence on the subject of her fears. When she retired, Madame La Motte accompanied her to her chamber, and continued to converse with her for a considerable time, so that she had no means of obtaining an interview with Peter.—Madame La Motte appeared to labour under some great affliction; and when Adeline, noticing this, entreated to know the cause of her dejection, tears started into her eyes, and she abruptly left the room.

Adeline watched in vain all day for a chance to talk to Peter. While they were having dinner, she glanced at him anxiously, hoping to read something on his face that could ease her worries. When she went to her room, Madame La Motte came with her and chatted for quite a while, leaving Adeline no opportunity to meet with Peter. Madame La Motte seemed to be deeply troubled; when Adeline noticed this and asked what was bothering her, tears filled her eyes, and she suddenly left the room.

This behaviour of Madame La Motte concurred with Peter's discourse to alarm Adeline, who sat pensively upon her bed, giving up to reflection, till she was roused by the sound of a clock, which stood in the room below, and which now struck twelve. She was preparing for rest, when she recollected the MS. and was unable to conclude the night without reading it. The first words she could distinguish were the following:

This behavior of Madame La Motte matched Peter's talk, making Adeline uneasy as she sat lost in thought on her bed. She was deep in reflection until she was startled by the sound of a clock from the room below, striking twelve. Just as she was getting ready for bed, she remembered the manuscript and realized she couldn’t go to sleep without reading it. The first words she could make out were the following:

Again I return to this poor consolation—again I have been permitted to see another day. It is now midnight! My solitary lamp burns beside me; the time is awful, but to me the silence of noon is as the silence of midnight; a deeper gloom is all in which they differ. The still, unvarying hours are numbered only by my sufferings; Great God! when shall I be released:

Again I return to this meager comfort—again I’ve been allowed to see another day. It’s now midnight! My lonely lamp glows beside me; the time is terrible, but to me, the silence of noon feels just like the silence of midnight; the only difference is a deeper darkness. The quiet, unchanging hours are counted only by my pain; Great God! when will I be free?

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

But whence this strange confinement? I have never injured him. If death is designed me, why this delay; and for what but death am I brought hither? This abbey—alas!—Here the MS. was again illegible, and for several pages Adeline could only make out disjointed sentences.

But where did this strange confinement come from? I have never harmed him. If death is meant for me, why this wait; and why am I brought here for anything other than death? This abbey—oh no!—Here the manuscript was once again unreadable, and for several pages Adeline could only decipher fragmented sentences.

O bitter draught! when, when shall I have rest? O my friends! will none of ye fly to aid me; will none of ye avenge my sufferings? Ah! when it is too late—when I am gone for ever, ye will endeavour to avenge them.

O bitter cup! When, when will I find peace? O my friends! Will none of you come to my aid; will none of you take revenge for my pain? Ah! When it’s too late—when I am gone forever, you will try to get justice for me.

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

Once more is night returned to me. Another day has passed in solitude and misery. I have climbed to the casement, thinking the view of nature would refresh my soul, and somewhat enable me to support these afflictions. Alas! even this small comfort is denied me, the windows open towards other parts of this abbey, and admit only a portion of that day which I must never more fully behold. Last night! last night! O scene of horror!

Once again, night has come to me. Another day has gone by in loneliness and sadness. I've climbed to the window, hoping that the view of nature would lift my spirits and help me cope with these hardships. Sadly, even this small comfort is taken from me; the windows face other parts of this abbey and let in only a glimpse of the day I can never fully experience again. Last night! last night! Oh, what a horrifying scene!

Adeline shuddered. She feared to read the coming sentence, yet curiosity prompted her to proceed. Still she paused: an unaccountable dread came over her. Some horrid deed has been done here, said she; the reports of the peasants are true: murder has been committed. The idea thrilled her with horror. She recollected the dagger which had impeded her steps in the secret chamber, and this circumstance served to confirm her most terrible conjectures. She wished to examine it, but it lay in one of these chambers, and she feared to go in quest of it.

Adeline shuddered. She was scared to read the upcoming sentence, but curiosity pushed her to continue. Yet she hesitated: an inexplicable dread washed over her. Something awful has happened here, she thought; the villagers’ reports are true: a murder has been committed. The idea filled her with horror. She remembered the dagger that had blocked her way in the secret room, and this thought only reinforced her worst fears. She wanted to check it out, but it was in one of those rooms, and she was too scared to go looking for it.

Wretched, wretched victim! she exclaimed, could no friend rescue thee from destruction! O that I had been near! Yet what could I have done to save thee? Alas! nothing. I forget that even now, perhaps, I am, like thee, abandoned to dangers from which I have no friend to succour me. Too surely I guess the author of thy miseries! She stopped, and thought she heard a sigh, such as on the preceding night had passed along the chamber. Her blood was chilled, and she sat motionless. The lonely situation of her room, remote from the rest of the family, (for she was now in her old apartment, from which Madame La Motte had removed,) who were almost beyond call, struck so forcibly upon her imagination, that she with difficulty preserved herself from fainting. She sat for a considerable time, and all was still. When she was somewhat recovered, her first design was to alarm the family; but further reflection again withheld her.

Wretched, wretched victim! she exclaimed, could no friend save you from ruin! Oh, if only I had been near! But what could I have done to save you? Alas! nothing. I forget that even now, perhaps, I am, like you, left to face dangers without a friend to help me. I can guess all too well the source of your suffering! She paused, thinking she heard a sigh, similar to the one that had swept through the room the night before. Her blood ran cold, and she sat frozen in place. The isolation of her room, far from the rest of the family (since she was now in her old room, from which Madame La Motte had moved her), struck her imagination so deeply that she struggled to keep from fainting. She sat in silence for a long time, and everything was still. Once she had somewhat composed herself, her first thought was to alert the family; but after thinking it over, she hesitated again.

She endeavoured to compose her spirits, and addressed a short prayer to that Being, who had hitherto protected her in every danger. While she was thus employed, her mind gradually became elevated and reassured; a sublime complacency filled her heart, and she sat down once more to pursue the narrative.

She tried to calm herself and said a quick prayer to the one who had always kept her safe in every danger. As she did this, her thoughts slowly lifted and reassured her; a deep sense of peace filled her heart, and she sat down again to continue the story.

Several lines that immediately followed, were obliterated.—

Several lines that immediately followed were erased.

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *
* * * * * * * * * * * * * * *

He had told me I should not be permitted to live long, not more than three days, and bade me choose whether I would die by poison or the sword. O the agonies of that moment! Great God! thou seest my sufferings! I often viewed, with a momentary hope of escaping, the high grated windows of my prison—all things within the compass of possibility I was resolved to try, and with an eager desperation I climbed towards the casements, but my foot slipped, and falling back to the floor, I was stunned by the blow. On recovering, the first sounds I heard, were the steps of a person entering my prison. A recollection of the past returned, and deplorable was my condition. I shuddered at what was to come. The same man approached; he looked at me at first with pity, but his countenance soon recovered its natural ferocity. Yet he did not then come to execute the purposes of his employer: I am reserved to another day—Great God, thy will be done!

He told me I shouldn't be allowed to live much longer, not more than three days, and asked me to choose whether I'd prefer to die by poison or by the sword. Oh, the agony of that moment! Great God! You see my suffering! I often glanced at the high grated windows of my prison with a fleeting hope of escaping. I was determined to try everything possible, and with a desperate eagerness, I climbed towards the windows, but my foot slipped, and I fell back to the floor, stunned by the impact. When I came to, the first sounds I heard were the footsteps of someone entering my prison. Memories of the past flooded back, and my condition was dire. I shuddered at what was about to happen. The same man approached; he looked at me with pity at first, but his face soon returned to its usual ferocity. However, he didn’t come to carry out his employer’s orders this time: I'm spared for another day—Great God, your will be done!

Adeline could not go on. All the circumstances that seemed to corroborate the fate of this unhappy man, crowded upon her mind the reports concerning the abbey—the dreams which had forerun her discovery of the private apartments—the singular manner in which she had found the MS—and the apparition, which she now believed she had really seen. She blamed herself for not having yet mentioned the discovery of the manuscript and chambers to La Motte, and resolved to delay the disclosure no longer than the following morning. The immediate cares that had occupied her mind, and a fear of losing the manuscript before she had read it, had hitherto kept her silent.

Adeline couldn't continue. All the circumstances that seemed to support the fate of this unfortunate man flooded her mind: the reports about the abbey, the dreams that had preceded her discovery of the private rooms, the strange way she had found the manuscript, and the apparition she now believed she had really seen. She felt guilty for not having mentioned the discovery of the manuscript and the rooms to La Motte yet and decided she wouldn't wait any longer than the following morning to share it. The immediate worries that had preoccupied her and a fear of losing the manuscript before she had a chance to read it had kept her quiet until now.

Such a combination of circumstances, she believed, could only be produced by some supernatural power, operating for the retribution of the guilty. These reflections filled her mind with a degree of awe, which the loneliness of the large old chamber in which she sat, and the hour of the night, soon heightened into terror. She had never been superstitious, but circumstances so uncommon had hitherto conspired in this affair, that she could not believe them accidental. Her imagination, wrought upon by these reflections, again became sensible to every impression; she feared to look round, lest she should again see some dreadful phantom, and she almost fancied she heard voices swell in the storm which now shook the fabric.

Such a mix of circumstances, she thought, could only be caused by some supernatural force, working to punish the guilty. These thoughts filled her with a sense of awe that the loneliness of the big old room she was in, combined with the late hour, quickly turned into fear. She had never been superstitious, but the strange events surrounding this situation had been so unusual that she couldn't believe they were just a coincidence. Her imagination, influenced by these thoughts, became highly sensitive to every little sound; she was frightened to look around, fearing she might see some terrifying apparition again, and she almost believed she heard voices rising in the storm that was now shaking the building.

Still she tried to command her feelings so as to avoid disturbing the family; but they became so painful, that even the dread of La Motte's ridicule had hardly power to prevent her quitting the chamber. Her mind was now in such a state, that she found it impossible to pursue the story in the MS. though, to avoid the tortures of suspense, she had attempted it. She laid it down again, and tried to argue herself into composure. What have I to fear? said she; I am at least innocent, and I shall not be punished for the crime of another.

Still, she tried to control her emotions to avoid upsetting the family; but they became so overwhelming that even the fear of La Motte's mockery could hardly stop her from leaving the room. Her mind was in such turmoil that she found it impossible to continue the story in the manuscript, even though she had tried to do so to escape the agony of uncertainty. She put it down again and tried to reason herself into calmness. What do I have to fear? she thought; I am at least innocent, and I won't be punished for someone else's crime.

The violent gust of wind that now rushed through the whole suite of apartments, shook the door that led from her late bedchamber to the private rooms so forcibly, that Adeline, unable to remain longer in doubt, ran to see from whence the noise issued. The arras which concealed the door was violently agitated, and she stood for a moment observing it in indescribable terror; till believing it was swayed by the wind, she made a sudden effort to overcome her feelings, and was stooping to raise it. At that instant she thought she heard a voice. She stopped and listened, but every thing was still; yet apprehension so far overcame her, that she had no power either to examine or to leave the chamber.

The strong gust of wind that swept through the entire apartment shook the door connecting her old bedroom to the private rooms so forcefully that Adeline, unable to stay in doubt any longer, rushed to find out where the noise was coming from. The tapestry that covered the door was shaking violently, and she stood for a moment, consumed by indescribable fear, until she convinced herself it was just the wind. She made a quick effort to push past her feelings and bent down to lift it. In that moment, she thought she heard a voice. She paused and listened, but everything was silent; yet her anxiety was so overwhelming that she couldn't muster the strength to either investigate or leave the room.

In a few moments the voice returned: she was now convinced she had not been deceived, for, though low, she heard it distinctly, and was almost sure it repeated her own name. So much was her fancy affected, that she even thought it was the same voice she had heard in her dreams. This conviction entirely subdued the small remains of her courage, and sinking into a chair she lost all recollection.

In a few moments, the voice came back: she was now sure she hadn’t been fooled, because even though it was soft, she heard it clearly and almost believed it repeated her name. Her imagination was so influenced that she thought it was the same voice she had heard in her dreams. This belief completely crushed the little courage she had left, and sinking into a chair, she lost all awareness.

How long she remained in this state she knew not; but when she recovered, she exerted all her strength, and reached the winding staircase, where she called aloud. No one heard her; and she hastened, as fast as her feebleness would permit, to the chamber of Madame La Motte. She tapped gently at the door, and was answered by Madame, who was alarmed at being awakened at so unusual an hour, and believed that some danger threatened her husband. When she understood that it was Adeline, and that she was unwell, she quickly came to her relief. The terror that was yet visible in Adeline's countenance excited her inquiries, and the occasion of it was explained to her.

How long she stayed in this state, she didn’t know; but when she came to, she gathered all her strength and made her way to the winding staircase, where she called out. No one heard her; so she hurried, as fast as her weakness allowed, to Madame La Motte's room. She knocked softly on the door, and Madame answered, startled to be woken at such an unusual hour, fearing that something might be wrong with her husband. When she realized it was Adeline and that she was unwell, she quickly rushed to help her. The fear still visible on Adeline's face prompted her questions, and Adeline explained what had happened.

Madame was so much discomposed by the relation, that she called La Motte from his bed, who, more angry at being disturbed than interested for the agitation he witnessed, reproved Adeline for suffering her fancies to overcome her reason. She now mentioned the discovery she had made of the inner chamber and the manuscript, circumstances which roused the attention of La Motte so much, that he desired to see the MS. and resolved to go immediately to the apartments described by Adeline.

Madame was so unsettled by what she heard that she called La Motte from his bed. He was more annoyed at being woken up than concerned about her agitation and scolded Adeline for letting her imagination get the better of her. She then mentioned her discovery of the inner chamber and the manuscript, which piqued La Motte's interest so much that he wanted to see the manuscript and decided to head straight to the rooms Adeline described.

Madame La Motte endeavoured to dissuade him from his purpose; but La Motte, with whom opposition had always an effect contrary to the one designed, and who wished to throw further ridicule upon the terrors of Adeline, persisted in his intention. He called to Peter to attend with a light, and insisted that Madame La Motte and Adeline should accompany him. Madame La Motte desired to be excused, and Adeline at first declared she could not go; but he would be obeyed.

Madame La Motte tried to talk him out of his plans, but La Motte, who always seemed to react the opposite way to resistance, and who wanted to make Adeline’s fears seem even more ridiculous, stuck to his decision. He called for Peter to come with a light and insisted that Madame La Motte and Adeline should go with him. Madame La Motte asked to be excused, and Adeline initially said she couldn’t go; but he would have none of it.

They ascended the tower, and entered the first chambers together, for each of the party was reluctant to be the last; in the second chamber all was quiet and in order. Adeline presented the MS. and pointed to the arras which concealed the door. La Motte lifted the arras, and opened the door; but Madame La Motte and Adeline entreated to go no further—again he called to them to follow. All was quiet in the first chamber: he expressed his surprise that the rooms should so long have remained undiscovered, and was proceeding to the second, but suddenly stopped. We will defer our examination till to-morrow, said he, the damps of these apartments are unwholesome at any time; but they strike one more sensibly at night. I am chilled. Peter, remember to throw open the windows early in the morning, that the air may circulate.

They climbed the tower and entered the first chambers together, as each of them was hesitant to be the last one in. The second chamber was quiet and tidy. Adeline presented the manuscript and pointed to the tapestry that covered the door. La Motte lifted the tapestry and opened the door; however, Madame La Motte and Adeline pleaded with him not to go any further—he called for them to follow again. The first chamber was still quiet: he was surprised that the rooms had remained undiscovered for so long, and he was about to head to the second chamber when he suddenly stopped. "We'll postpone our investigation until tomorrow," he said. "The humidity in these rooms is unhealthy at any time, but it feels worse at night. I'm feeling cold. Peter, make sure to open the windows early in the morning so that fresh air can circulate."

Lord bless your honour, said Peter, don't you see I can't reach them; besides, I don't believe they are made to open; see what strong iron bars there are; the room looks for all the world like a prison: I suppose this is the place the people meant, when they said nobody that had been in ever came out. La Motte, who during this speech had been looking attentively at the high windows, which if he had seen them at first he had certainly not observed, now interrupted the eloquence of Peter, and bade him carry the light before them. They all willingly quitted these chambers, and returned to the room below, where a fire was lighted, and the party remained together for some time.

“Lord bless you, your honor,” Peter said, “don’t you see I can’t reach them? Besides, I don’t think they’re meant to open; look at those strong iron bars. This room looks just like a prison. I guess this is what people meant when they said once you’re in, you never come out.” La Motte, who had been closely watching the high windows that he definitely hadn’t noticed before, interrupted Peter’s speech and told him to carry the light in front of them. They all gladly left those chambers and returned to the room below, where a fire was lit, and they stayed together for a while.

La Motte for reasons best known to himself, attempted to ridicule the discovery and fears of Adeline, till she with a seriousness that checked him, entreated he would desist. He was silent; and soon after, Adeline, encouraged by the return of daylight, ventured to her chamber, and for some hours experienced the blessing of undisturbed repose.

La Motte, for reasons only he understood, tried to mock Adeline's fears and discovery until she, with a seriousness that made him stop, begged him to leave it alone. He fell silent; and not long after, Adeline, feeling encouraged by the morning light, went to her room and enjoyed several hours of peaceful rest.

On the following day, Adeline's first care was to obtain an interview with Peter, whom she had some hopes of seeing as she went downstairs: he, however, did not appear; and she proceeded to the sitting-room, where she found La Motte apparently much disturbed. Adeline asked him if he had looked at the MS. I have run my eye over it, said he, but it is so much obscured by time that it can scarcely be deciphered. It appears to exhibit a strange romantic story; and I do not wonder that after you had suffered its terrors to impress your imagination, you fancied you saw spectres and heard wondrous noises.

The next day, Adeline’s first priority was to talk to Peter, whom she hoped to see while going downstairs. However, he didn’t show up, so she went to the sitting room, where she found La Motte looking quite upset. Adeline asked him if he had looked over the manuscript. “I’ve glanced at it,” he said, “but it’s so faded with age that it’s hardly legible. It seems to tell a strange, romantic story, and I’m not surprised that after you let its horrors play on your mind, you thought you saw ghosts and heard incredible sounds.”

Adeline thought La Motte did not choose to be convinced, and she therefore forbore reply. During breakfast she often looked at Peter (who waited) with anxious inquiry; and from his countenance was still more assured that he had something of importance to communicate. In the hope of some conversation with him, she left the room as soon as possible, and repaired to her favourite avenue, where she had not long remained when he appeared.

Adeline felt that La Motte wasn't open to being convinced, so she held back her response. During breakfast, she frequently glanced at Peter (who was waiting) with a worried look, and from his expression, she was even more certain that he had something important to say. Hoping for a chance to talk to him, she left the room as soon as she could and went to her favorite avenue, where she hadn't been there long when he showed up.

God bless you! Ma'mselle, said he, I'm sorry I frighted you so last night.

God bless you! Miss, he said, I'm sorry I scared you so much last night.

Frighted me, said Adeline; how was you concerned in that?

"That scared me," said Adeline. "How were you involved in that?"

He then informed her that when he thought Monsieur and Madame La Motte were asleep, he had stolen to her chamber door, with an intention of giving her the sequel of what he had begun in the morning; that he had called several times as loudly as he dared; but receiving no answer, he believed she was asleep, or did not choose to speak with him, and he had therefore left the door. This account of the voice she had heard, relieved Adeline's spirits; she was even surprised that she did not know it, till remembering the perturbation of her mind for some time preceding, this surprise disappeared.

He then told her that when he thought Monsieur and Madame La Motte were asleep, he had quietly gone to her door, intending to continue what he had started in the morning. He had called out several times as loudly as he felt he could, but when he got no response, he thought she was either asleep or didn't want to talk to him, so he had left the door. This explanation for the voice she had heard eased Adeline's mind; she was even surprised she hadn’t recognized it until she remembered how unsettled she had been just before, making the surprise fade away.

She entreated Peter to be brief in explaining the danger with which she was threatened. If you'll let me go on my own way, Ma'am, you'll soon know it; but if you hurry me, and ask me questions here and there, out of their places, I don't know what I am saying.

She asked Peter to keep his explanation of the danger she faced short. "If you let me proceed on my own, Ma'am, you'll find out soon enough; but if you rush me and keep asking questions out of order, I won't know what I’m saying."

Be it so, said Adeline; only, remember that we may be observed.

Be that as it may, said Adeline; just remember that we might be seen.

Yes. Ma'mselle, I'm as much afraid of that as you are, for I believe I should be almost as ill off; however, that is neither here nor there, but I'm sure if you stay in this old abbey another night it will be worse for you; for, as I said before, I know all about it.

Yes. Miss, I'm just as scared of that as you are, because I think I’d be in a pretty bad spot too; however, that doesn’t really matter, but I’m certain that if you stay in this old abbey another night, it will be worse for you; because, as I mentioned before, I know all about it.

What mean you, Peter?

What do you mean, Peter?

Why, about this scheme that's going on.

Why, about this plan that's happening.

What then, is my father——?—Your father! interrupted Peter; Lord bless you, that is all fudge, to frighten you: your father, nor nobody else has ever sent after you; I dare say he knows no more of you than the Pope does—not he. Adeline looked displeased. You trifle, said she; if you have any thing to tell, say it quickly; I am in haste.

What then, is my father——?—Your father! interrupted Peter; Good grief, that’s just nonsense to scare you: your father, or anyone else for that matter, has ever looked for you; I bet he doesn’t know anything about you, just like the Pope doesn’t—definitely not. Adeline looked unhappy. You're joking, she said; if you have something to say, just say it quickly; I’m in a hurry.

Bless you, young lady, I meant no harm, I hope you're not angry; but I'm sure you can't deny that your father is cruel. But as I was saying, the Marquis de Montalt likes you; and he and my master (Peter looked round) have been laying their heads together about you. Adeline turned pale; she comprehended a part of the truth, and eagerly entreated him to proceed.

Bless you, young lady, I meant no harm. I hope you're not upset, but you have to admit that your father is cruel. Anyway, the Marquis de Montalt likes you, and he and my master (Peter glanced around) have been discussing you. Adeline went pale; she understood part of the truth and eagerly urged him to continue.

They have been laying their heads together about you. This is what Jaques the Marquis's man tells me: Says he, Peter, you little know what is going on: I could tell all if I chose it; but it is not for those who are trusted to tell again. I warrant now your master is close enough with you. Upon which I was piqued, and resolved to make him believe I could be trusted as well as he. Perhaps not says I; perhaps I know as much as you, though I do not choose to brag on't; and I winked.—Do you so? says he, then you are closer than I thought for. She is a fine girl, says he,—meaning you Ma'mselle; but she is nothing but a poor foundling after all, so it does not much signify. I had a mind to know further what he meant—so I did not knock him down. By seeming to know as much as he, I at last made him discover all; and he told me—but you look pale, Ma'mselle, are you ill?

They've been talking about you behind the scenes. This is what Jaques, the Marquis's guy, tells me: He says, "Peter, you have no idea what's happening. I could spill all the details if I wanted to, but it’s not for those who are trusted to repeat it." I bet your master is keeping things close to the vest with you. That got me a bit annoyed, so I decided to make him think I could be trusted just as much as he could. "Maybe not," I said. "Maybe I know just as much as you do, even if I don’t want to brag about it," and I winked. "Oh, really?" he replied, "then you're closer to the truth than I thought. She's a lovely girl," he said—referring to you, Ma'mselle—but in the end, she's just a poor foundling, so it doesn’t really matter. I wanted to find out more about what he meant, so I didn’t knock him out. By pretending to know as much as he did, I eventually got him to reveal everything, and he told me—but you look pale, Ma'mselle, are you okay?

No, said Adeline in a tremulous accent, and scarcely able to support herself; pray proceed.

No, Adeline said with a shaky voice, barely able to hold herself up; please go ahead.

And he told me that the Marquis had been courting you a good while, but you would not listen to him, and had even pretended he would marry you, and all would not do. As for marriage, says I, I suppose she knows the Marchioness is alive; and I'm sure she is not one for his turn upon other terms.

And he told me that the Marquis had been pursuing you for quite some time, but you weren't interested, and even acted like he wanted to marry you, but that didn't work. As for marriage, I said, I assume she knows the Marchioness is still alive; and I'm sure she wouldn't be into him under different circumstances.

The Marchioness is really living then! said Adeline.

“The Marchioness is really living, then!” said Adeline.

O yes, Ma'mselle! we all know that, and I thought you had known it too.—We shall see that, replies Jaques; at least, I believe that our master will outwit her.—I stared; I could not help it.—Aye, says he, you know your master has agreed to give her up to my Lord.

O yes, Miss! We all know that, and I thought you knew it too. —We'll find out, replies Jaques; at least, I believe our boss will outsmart her. —I was stunned; I couldn't help it. —Yeah, he says, you know your boss has agreed to hand her over to my Lord.

Good God! what will become of me? exclaimed Adeline.

Good God! What’s going to happen to me? exclaimed Adeline.

Aye, Ma'mselle, I am sorry for you; but hear me out. When Jaques said this, I quite forgot myself: I'll never believe it, said I, I'll never believe my master would be guilty of such a base action; he'll not give her up, or I'm no Christian.—Oh! said, Jaques, for that matter, I thought you'd known all, else I should not have said a word about it. However, you may soon satisfy yourself by going to the parlour door, as I have done; they're in consultation about it now, I dare say.

Sure, Miss, I'm really sorry for what you're going through; but hear me out. When Jaques said this, I lost my cool: I won't believe it, I said, I can't believe my master would do something so awful; he wouldn't give her up, or I'm not a true believer.—Oh! said Jaques, I assumed you already knew everything, otherwise I wouldn't have said anything. But you can find out for yourself by going to the parlor door, like I did; I bet they're discussing it right now.

You need not repeat any more of this conversation, said Adeline; but tell me the result of what you heard from the parlour.

"You don't need to go over any more of this conversation," Adeline said, "but please let me know what you heard from the parlor."

Why, Ma'mselle, when he said this, I took him at his word, and went to the door, where, sure enough, I heard my master and the Marquis talking about you. They said a great deal which I could make nothing of; but, at last, I heard the Marquis say, You know the terms; on these terms only will I consent to bury the past in ob—ob—oblivion——that was the word. Monsieur La Motte then told the Marquis, if he would return to the abbey upon such a night, meaning this very night, Ma'mselle, every thing should be prepared according to his wishes;—Adeline shall then be yours, my Lord, said he—you are already acquainted with her chamber.

Why, Miss, when he said this, I took him seriously and went to the door, where I could hear my master and the Marquis talking about you. They said a lot that didn't make much sense to me, but then I heard the Marquis say, "You know the terms; I will only agree to forget the past on those terms"—that was the word. Monsieur La Motte then told the Marquis that if he would come back to the abbey tonight, everything would be arranged according to his wishes; "Adeline will then be yours, my Lord," he said—"you already know her room."

At these words Adeline clasped her hands, and raised her eyes to heaven in silent despair.—Peter went on. When I heard this, I could not doubt what Jaques had said.—Well, said he, what do you think of it now?—Why, that my master's a rascal, says I.—It's well you don't think mine one too, says he.—Why, as for that matter, says I——Adeline, interrupting him, inquired if he had heard any thing further. Just then, said Peter, we heard Madame La Motte come out from another room, and so we made haste back to the kitchen.

At these words, Adeline clasped her hands and raised her eyes to the heavens in silent despair. — Peter continued. When I heard this, I couldn’t doubt what Jaques had said. — "Well," he said, "what do you think of it now?" — "I think my master's a scoundrel," I replied. — "It's good you don't think mine is one too," he said. — "Well, as for that," I started, but Adeline interrupted him, asking if he had heard anything more. Just then, Peter said, we heard Madame La Motte coming out from another room, so we hurried back to the kitchen.

She was not present at this conversation then? said Adeline. No, Ma'mselle; but my master has told her of it, I warrant. Adeline was almost as much shocked by this apparent perfidy of Madame La Motte, as by a knowledge of the destruction that threatened her. After musing a few moments in extreme agitation, Peter, said she, you have a good heart, and feel a just indignation at your master's treachery—will you assist me to escape?

She wasn’t there for that conversation, right? said Adeline. No, Mademoiselle; but I bet my master has told her about it. Adeline was almost as shocked by this apparent betrayal by Madame La Motte as she was by the knowledge of the disaster looming over her. After thinking for a moment in great distress, she said, Peter, you have a good heart and a rightful anger at your master’s betrayal—will you help me escape?

Ah, Ma'mselle! said he, how can I assist you? besides, where can we go? I have no friends about here, no more than yourself.

Ah, Miss! he said, how can I help you? Also, where can we go? I have no friends around here, just like you.

O! replied Adeline in extreme emotion, we fly from enemies; strangers may prove friends: assist me but to escape from this forest, and you will claim my eternal gratitude; I have no fears beyond it.

"O!" Adeline exclaimed with intense emotion, "We run from enemies; strangers can become friends. Just help me escape from this forest, and you'll have my eternal gratitude. I have no fears beyond it."

Why as for this forest, replied Peter, I am weary of it myself; though when we first came I thought it would be fine living here, at least, I thought it was very different from any life I had ever lived before. But these ghosts that haunt the abbey—I am no more a coward than other men, but I don't like them; and then there is so many strange reports abroad; and my master—I thought I could have served him to the end of the world, but now I care not how soon I leave him, for his behaviour to you, Ma'mselle.

"About this forest," Peter replied, "I'm tired of it myself. When we first arrived, I thought living here would be great; at least, I believed it was very different from any life I had lived before. But these ghosts that haunt the abbey—I’m no more a coward than anyone else, but I really don’t like them. Plus, there are so many strange stories going around. And my master—I thought I could serve him until the end of time, but now I don't care how soon I leave him because of how he treats you, Ma'mselle."

You consent then to assist me in escaping? said Adeline with eagerness.

"You agree to help me escape, then?" Adeline asked eagerly.

Why as to that, Ma'mselle, I would willingly, if I knew where to go. To be sure I have a sister lives in Savoy, but that is a great way off; and I have saved a little money out of my wages, but that won't carry us such a long journey.

Why, as for that, Miss, I would gladly go if I knew where to. I do have a sister living in Savoy, but that’s quite far away; and I’ve saved a little money from my wages, but it won’t take us on such a long trip.

Regard not that, said Adeline; if I was once beyond this forest, I would then endeavour to take care of myself, and repay you for your kindness.

“Don’t worry about that,” said Adeline; “if I can just make it through this forest, I’ll do my best to take care of myself and repay you for your kindness.”

O! as for that, Madam——Well, well, Peter, let us consider how we may escape. This night—say you this night—the Marquis is to return? Yes, Ma'mselle, to-night about dark. I have just thought of a scheme:—my master's horses are grazing in the forest; we may take one of them, and send it back from the first stage: but how shall we avoid being seen? besides if we go off in the daylight, he will soon pursue and overtake us; and if you stay till night, the Marquis will be come, and then there is no chance. If they miss us both at the same time too, they'll guess how it is, and set off directly. Could not you contrive to go first, and wait for me till the hurly-burly's over? Then, while they're searching in the place under ground for you, I can slip away, and we should be out of their reach before they thought of pursuing us.

Oh, regarding that, ma'am—Well, Peter, let's think about how we can escape. This night—you're telling me tonight—the Marquis is coming back? Yes, miss, tonight around dark. I just came up with a plan: my master's horses are grazing in the forest; we could take one of them and send it back from the first stop. But how can we avoid being seen? Plus, if we leave during the day, he'll catch up to us quickly; and if we wait until night, the Marquis will arrive, and then there's no hope. If they notice we’re both missing at the same time, they'll figure it out and set off right away. Could you manage to leave first and wait for me until the chaos dies down? Then, while they're searching underground for you, I can sneak away, and we should be out of their reach before they think to chase us.





Adeline agreed to the truth of all this, and was somewhat surprised at Peter's sagacity. She inquired if he knew of any place in the neighbourhood of the abbey, where she could remain concealed, till he came with a horse. Why yes, Madam, there is a place, now I think of it, where you may be safe enough, for nobody goes near; but they say it's haunted, and perhaps you would not like to go there. Adeline, remembering the last night, was somewhat startled at this intelligence; but a sense of her present danger pressed again upon her mind, and overcame every other apprehension. Where is this place? said she; if it will conceal me, I shall not hesitate to go.

Adeline accepted the truth of all this and was somewhat surprised by Peter's insight. She asked if he knew of any place near the abbey where she could stay hidden until he returned with a horse. “Well, yes, Madam, there is a spot that comes to mind where you might be safe, as nobody goes there; but they say it’s haunted, and you might not want to go,” he replied. Adeline, recalling the previous night, was a bit taken aback by this information; however, the sense of her current danger weighed heavily on her mind and overshadowed any other fears. “Where is this place?” she asked. “If it can hide me, I won’t hesitate to go.”

It is an old tomb that stands in the thickest part of the forest, about a quarter of a mile off the nearest way and almost a mile the other. When my master used to hide himself so much in the forest, I have followed him somewhere thereabouts, but I did not find out the tomb till t'other day. However, that's neither here nor there; if you dare venture to it, Ma'mselle, I'll show you the nearest way. So saying he pointed to a winding path on the right. Adeline, having looked round without perceiving any person near, directed Peter to lead her to the tomb: they pursued the path, till turning into a gloomy romantic part of the forest, almost impervious to the rays of the sun, they came to the spot whither Louis had formerly traced his father.

It’s an old tomb hidden deep in the forest, about a quarter of a mile from the nearest path and nearly a mile from the other. When my master used to spend so much time in the woods, I followed him around this area, but I didn’t discover the tomb until a few days ago. But that’s not important; if you’re brave enough to go there, Ma'mselle, I can show you the quickest way. With that, he pointed to a winding path on the right. Adeline, looking around and not seeing anyone nearby, asked Peter to take her to the tomb. They followed the path until they entered a dark, picturesque part of the forest, almost completely shaded from the sunlight, and arrived at the spot Louis had previously marked for his father.

The stillness and solemnity of the scene struck awe upon the heart of Adeline, who paused and surveyed it for some time in silence. At length Peter led her into the interior part of the ruin, to which they descended by several steps. Some old abbot, said he, was formerly buried here, as the Marquis's people say; and it's like enough that he belonged to the abbey yonder. But I don't see why he should take it in his head to walk; he was not murdered, surely!

The calm and seriousness of the scene amazed Adeline, who stopped to take it all in for a while in silence. Finally, Peter guided her into the deeper part of the ruins, which they reached by going down several steps. "An old abbot used to be buried here," he said, according to the Marquis's people; "and it's likely he belonged to the abbey over there. But I don’t understand why he would decide to walk around; he wasn’t murdered, for sure!"

I hope not, said Adeline.

I hope not, Adeline said.

That's more than can be said for all that lies buried at the abbey though, and——Adeline interrupted him: Hark! surely I hear a noise, said she; Heaven protect us from discovery! They listened, but all was still; and they went on. Peter opened a low door, and they entered upon a dark passage, frequently obstructed by loose fragments of stone, and along which they moved with caution. Whither are we going? said Adeline.—I scarcely know myself, said Peter, for I never was so far before, but the place seems quiet enough. Something obstructed his way; it was a door which yielded to his hand, and discovered a kind of cell obscurely seen by the twilight admitted through a grate above. A partial gleam shot athwart the place, leaving the greatest part of it in shadow.

That's more than can be said for everything buried at the abbey, though, and—Adeline interrupted him: Listen! I think I hear something, she said; God protect us from being found out! They listened, but everything was quiet; and they continued on. Peter opened a low door, and they stepped into a dark passage, often blocked by loose stones, and they moved carefully. Where are we going? Adeline asked. I can barely tell myself, Peter replied, since I've never been this far before, but it seems pretty quiet here. Something got in his way; it was a door that yielded to his touch, revealing a kind of cell dimly lit by the twilight coming through a grate above. A sliver of light cut across the space, leaving most of it in shadow.

Adeline sighed as she surveyed it. This is a frightful spot, said she: but if it will afford me a shelter, it is a palace. Remember, Peter, that my peace and honour depend upon your faithfulness; be both discreet and resolute. In the dusk of the evening, I can pass from the abbey with least danger of being observed, and in this cell I will wait your arrival. As soon as Monsieur and Madame La Motte are engaged in searching the vaults, you will bring here a horse; three knocks upon the tomb shall inform me of your arrival. For Heaven's sake be cautious, and be punctual!

Adeline sighed as she looked around. "This is a terrible place," she said, "but if it gives me shelter, it's like a palace. Remember, Peter, my peace and honor rely on your loyalty; be both careful and determined. In the evening twilight, I can leave the abbey with the least chance of being seen, and I’ll wait for you in this cell. As soon as Monsieur and Madame La Motte start searching the vaults, you’ll bring a horse here; three knocks on the tomb will let me know you’ve arrived. For heaven's sake, be careful and be on time!"

I will, Ma'mselle, let come what may.

I will, Miss, let whatever happens, happen.

They re-ascended to the forest; and Adeline fearful of observation, directed Peter, to run first to the abbey, and invent some excuse for his absence, if he had been missed. When she was again alone, she yielded to a flood of tears, and indulged the excess of her distress. She saw herself without friends, without relations, destitute, forlorn, and abandoned to the worst of evils; betrayed by the very persons to whose comfort she had so long administered, whom she had loved as her protectors, and revered as her parents! These reflections touched her heart with the most afflicting sensations, and the sense of her immediate danger was for a while absorbed in the grief occasioned by a discovery of such guilt in others.

They went back up to the forest, and Adeline, worried about being seen, told Peter to head to the abbey first and make up a reason for his absence if anyone noticed he was gone. When she was alone again, she broke down in tears and let her distress take over. She felt completely alone—without friends or family, destitute, lost, and facing the worst possible circumstances; betrayed by the very people she had cared for and loved, who she had seen as her protectors and revered as her parents! These thoughts filled her heart with deep sorrow, and for a moment, her immediate fear was overshadowed by the pain of realizing such betrayal from others.

At length she roused all her fortitude, and turning towards the abbey endeavoured to await with patience the hour of evening, and to sustain an appearance of composure in the presence of Monsieur and Madame La Motte. For the present she wished to avoid seeing either of them, doubting her ability to disguise her emotions: having reached the abbey, she therefore passed on to her chamber. Here she endeavoured to direct her attention to indifferent subjects, but in vain; the danger of her situation, and the severe disappointment she had received in the character of those whom she had so much esteemed and even loved, pressed hard upon her thoughts. To a generous mind few circumstances are more afflicting than a discovery of perfidy in those whom we have trusted, even though it may fail of any absolute inconvenience to ourselves. The behaviour of Madame La Motte in thus, by concealment, conspiring to her destruction, particularly shocked her.

At last, she gathered all her strength and, turning towards the abbey, tried to patiently wait for evening while maintaining a calm demeanor in front of Monsieur and Madame La Motte. For now, she wanted to avoid seeing either of them, unsure if she could conceal her feelings. Once she reached the abbey, she went straight to her room. Here, she attempted to focus on trivial topics, but it was useless; the danger of her situation and the deep disappointment she felt regarding the people she had respected and even loved weighed heavily on her mind. For a noble heart, few things are more painful than discovering betrayal from those we trusted, even if it doesn’t bring any direct harm to us. Madame La Motte's actions, collaborating to bring about her ruin through deceit, particularly troubled her.

How has my imagination deceived me! said she; what a picture did it draw of the goodness of the world! And must I then believe that every body is cruel and deceitful? No—let me still be deceived, and still suffer, rather than be condemned to a state of such wretched suspicion. She now endeavoured to extenuate the conduct of Madame La Motte, by attributing it to a fear of her husband. She dares not oppose his will, said she, else she would warn me of my danger, and assist me to escape from it. No—I will never believe her capable of conspiring my ruin; terror alone keeps her silent.

How has my imagination fooled me! she said; what a vivid picture it created of the goodness in the world! Do I really have to believe that everyone is cruel and deceitful? No—I'd rather keep being fooled and keep suffering than be stuck in a state of such miserable suspicion. She now tried to excuse Madame La Motte's behavior by saying it was just out of fear of her husband. She doesn't dare go against his wishes, she said, otherwise she would warn me about my danger and help me escape it. No—I will never believe she could plot my ruin; fear alone keeps her quiet.

Adeline was somewhat comforted by this thought. The benevolence of her heart taught her, in this instance to sophisticate. She perceived not, that by ascribing the conduct of Madame La Motte to terror, she only softened the degree of her guilt, imputing it to a motive less depraved but not less selfish. She remained in her chamber till summoned to dinner, when, drying her tears, she descended with faltering steps and a palpitating heart to the parlour. When she saw La Motte, in spite of all her efforts she trembled and grew pale; she could not behold even with apparent indifference the man who she knew had destined her to destruction. He observed her emotion, and inquiring if she was ill, she saw the danger to which her agitation exposed her. Fearful lest La Motte should suspect its true cause, she rallied all her spirits, and with a look of complacency answered she was well.

Adeline felt a bit comforted by this idea. Her kind heart led her to overthink things. She didn’t realize that by attributing Madame La Motte's actions to fear, she was only easing the severity of her guilt, attributing it to a less immoral but still selfish motive. She stayed in her room until called for dinner, and after drying her tears, she went down to the parlor with shaky legs and a racing heart. When she saw La Motte, despite her efforts, she trembled and turned pale; she couldn’t even pretend to be indifferent to the man who she knew had set her on a path to ruin. He noticed her distress and asked if she was unwell. She recognized the risk her agitation posed. Worried that La Motte might guess the true reason for her reaction, she gathered her composure and replied with a pleasant expression that she was fine.

During dinner she preserved a degree of composure that effectually concealed the varied anguish of her heart. When she looked at La Motte, terror and indignation were her predominant feelings; but when she regarded Madame La Motte, it was otherwise: gratitude for her former tenderness had long been confirmed into affection, and her heart now swelled with the bitterness of grief and disappointment. Madame La Motte appeared depressed and said little. La Motte seemed anxious to prevent thought, by assuming a fictitious and unnatural gaiety: he laughed and talked, and threw off frequent bumpers of wine: it was the mirth of desperation. Madame became alarmed, and would have restrained him; but he persisted in his libations to Bacchus till reflection seemed to be almost overcome.

During dinner, she managed to stay composed enough to hide the pain she felt inside. When she looked at La Motte, she was filled with fear and anger; but when she faced Madame La Motte, it was different: she felt a deep gratitude for her past kindness that had turned into affection, and her heart ached with grief and disappointment. Madame La Motte seemed downcast and spoke little. La Motte tried to push away his thoughts by acting overly cheerful: he laughed a lot, chatted, and downed glasses of wine; it was laughter born from desperation. Madame La Motte got worried and tried to stop him, but he kept drinking to the point where it seemed like he could hardly think anymore.

Madame La Motte, fearful that in the carelessness of the present moment he might betray himself, withdrew with Adeline to another room. Adeline recollected the happy hours she once passed with her, when confidence banished reserve, and sympathy and esteem dictated the sentiments of friendship: now those hours were gone for ever; she could no longer unbosom her griefs to Madame La Motte, no longer even esteem her. Yet, notwithstanding all the danger to which she was exposed by the criminal silence of the latter, she could not converse with her, consciously for the last time, without feeling a degree of sorrow which wisdom may call weakness, but to which benevolence will allow a softer name.

Madame La Motte, worried that he might accidentally reveal too much in the current moment, took Adeline to another room. Adeline remembered the happy times she had spent with her when trust replaced hesitation, and shared feelings of friendship were guided by sympathy and respect. Now, those times were lost forever; she could no longer share her sorrows with Madame La Motte, and could no longer even hold her in high regard. Yet, despite the risk posed by Madame La Motte's guilty silence, she couldn't talk to her, knowing it would be the last time, without feeling a sadness that some might call a weakness but that kindness would label differently.

Madame La Motte in her conversation appeared to labour under an almost equal oppression with Adeline: her thoughts were abstracted from the subject of discourse, and there were long and frequent intervals of silence. Adeline more than once caught her gazing with a look of tenderness upon her, and saw her eyes fill with tears. By this circumstance she was so much affected, that she was several times upon the point of throwing herself at her feet, and imploring her pity and protection. Cooler reflection showed her the extravagance and danger of this conduct: she suppressed her emotions, but they at length compelled her to withdraw from the presence of Madame La Motte.

Madame La Motte seemed to be almost as burdened as Adeline during their conversation; her mind was distracted from what they were discussing, and there were long and frequent pauses of silence. Adeline caught her looking at her with a gentle gaze more than once, and she noticed tears welling up in her eyes. This moved Adeline deeply, to the point where she almost threw herself at Madame La Motte's feet, begging for her compassion and protection. However, after some cooler thinking, she realized how irrational and risky that would be. She held back her feelings, but eventually, they forced her to leave Madame La Motte's presence.

CHAPTER XI

You! to whom the unknown world
It is revealed with all its shadowy forms;
Who sees the frightening unreal scene,
While elegance lifts the curtain between;
Ah, Fear! Ah, panicked Fear!
I see you nearby!
I recognize your hurried pace and your tired look.
Like you, I begin, like you, I fly chaotically!
COLLINS.

Adeline anxiously watched from her chamber window the sun set behind the distant hills, and the time of her departure draw nigh: it set with uncommon splendour, and threw a fiery gleam athwart the woods and upon some scattered fragments of the ruins, which she could not gaze upon with indifference. Never, probably, again shall I see the sun sink below those hills, said she, or illumine this scene! Where shall I be when next it sets—where this time to-morrow? sunk perhaps in misery! She wept at the thought. A few hours, resumed Adeline, and the Marquis will arrive—a few hours, and this abbey will be a scene of confusion and tumult: every eye will be in search of me, every recess will be explored. These reflections inspired her with new terror, and increased her impatience to be gone.

Adeline anxiously watched from her room as the sun set behind the distant hills, and the time for her departure approached. It set with unusual brilliance, casting a fiery glow across the woods and onto some scattered pieces of the ruins, which she couldn't look at without feeling something. "I may never again see the sun dip below those hills," she thought, "or light up this place! Where will I be when it sets again—where will I be a day from now? Probably buried in misery!" The thought made her cry. "In just a few hours," Adeline continued, "the Marquis will arrive—in just a few hours, and this abbey will be a scene of chaos and disorder: everyone will be looking for me, every corner will be searched." These thoughts filled her with new dread and made her even more anxious to leave.

Twilight gradually came on, and she now thought it sufficiently dark to venture forth: but before she went, she kneeled down and addressed herself to Heaven. She implored support and protection, and committed herself to the care of the God of mercies. Having done this, she quitted her chamber, and passed with cautious steps down the winding staircase. No person appeared, and she proceeded through the door of the tower into the forest. She looked around; the gloom of the evening obscured every object.

Twilight slowly fell, and she felt it was dark enough to go out. But before she left, she knelt down and prayed to Heaven. She asked for support and protection and entrusted herself to the care of the God of mercy. After doing this, she left her room and carefully descended the winding staircase. No one was around, so she went through the tower door and into the forest. She glanced around; the evening darkness hid everything from view.

With a trembling heart she sought the path pointed out by Peter, which led to the tomb: having found it, she passed along forlorn and terrified. Often did she start as the breeze shook the light leaves of the trees, or as the bat flitted by gamboling in the twilight; and often, as she looked back towards the abbey, thought she distinguished amid the deepening gloom the figures of men. Having proceeded some way, she suddenly heard the feet of horses, and soon after a sound of voices, among which she distinguished that of the Marquis; they seemed to come from the quarter she was approaching, and evidently advanced. Terror for some minutes arrested her steps; she stood in a state of dreadful hesitation: to proceed was to run into the hands of the Marquis; to return was to fall into the power of La Motte.

With a racing heart, she followed the path Peter had indicated, which led to the tomb. Once she found it, she moved forward, feeling lost and scared. She often jumped as the breeze rustled the light leaves of the trees or as a bat darted by in the twilight. Many times, when she glanced back toward the abbey, she thought she could make out the silhouettes of men in the deepening darkness. After walking for a bit, she suddenly heard the sound of horses’ hooves, and soon after, voices, including that of the Marquis. It seemed like they were coming from the direction she was heading, and they were getting closer. Fear froze her in place for a moment; she was caught in horrifying indecision: moving forward meant running into the hands of the Marquis, while turning back meant falling into the control of La Motte.

After remaining for some time uncertain whither to fly, the sounds suddenly took a different direction, and wheeled towards the abbey. Adeline had a short cessation of terror; she now understood that the Marquis had passed this spot only in his way to the abbey, and she hastened to secrete herself in the ruin. At length, after much difficulty, she reached it, the deep shades almost concealing it from her search. She paused at the entrance, awed by the solemnity that reigned within, and the utter darkness of the place; at length she determined to watch without till Peter should arrive. If any person approaches, said she, I can hear them before they can see me, and I can then secrete myself in the cell.

After being unsure for a while about where to go, the sounds suddenly changed direction and headed toward the abbey. Adeline briefly felt less afraid; now she realized that the Marquis had only passed this spot on his way to the abbey, and she hurried to hide in the ruin. After a lot of difficulty, she finally reached it, with the deep shadows nearly hiding it from her view. She stopped at the entrance, feeling intimidated by the solemn atmosphere inside and the complete darkness of the place; eventually, she decided to wait outside until Peter arrived. "If anyone comes," she thought, "I can hear them before they see me, and then I can hide in the cell."

She leaned against a fragment of the tomb in trembling expectation, and as she listened, no sound broke the silence of the hour. The state of her mind can only be imagined by considering that upon the present time turned the crisis of her fate. They have now, thought she, discovered my flight; even now they are seeking me in every part of the abbey. I hear their dreadful voices call me; I see their eager looks. The power of imagination almost overcame her. While she yet looked around, she saw lights moving at a distance; sometimes they glimmered between the trees, and sometimes they totally disappeared.

She leaned against a piece of the tomb, shaking with anticipation, and as she listened, the silence of the hour was unbroken. The state of her mind can only be understood by realizing that the outcome of her fate rested on this moment. They must have discovered my escape, she thought; they are probably searching for me all over the abbey right now. I can hear their terrifying voices calling for me; I see their eager expressions. The power of her imagination nearly overwhelmed her. While she looked around, she noticed lights moving in the distance; sometimes they flickered between the trees, and sometimes they vanished completely.

They seemed to be in a direction with the abbey; and she now remembered that in the morning she had seen a part of the fabric through an opening in the forest. She had therefore no doubt that the lights she saw proceeded from people in search of her: who, she feared, not finding her at the abbey, might direct their steps towards the tomb. Her place of refuge now seemed too near her enemies to be safe, and she would have fled to a more distant part of the forest, but recollected that Peter would not know where to find her.

They seemed to be heading toward the abbey, and she now recalled that in the morning she had seen part of it through a gap in the trees. She had no doubt that the lights she saw came from people looking for her, who, she worried, might head to the tomb if they couldn't find her at the abbey. Her hiding spot now felt too close to her enemies to be safe, and she considered running to a more remote area of the forest, but then remembered that Peter wouldn’t know where to look for her.

While these thoughts passed over her mind, she heard distant voices in the wind, and was hastening to conceal herself in the cell, when she observed the lights suddenly disappear. All was soon after hushed in silence and darkness, yet she endeavoured to find the way to the cell. She remembered the situation of the outward door and of the passage, and having passed these, she unclosed the door of the cell. Within it was utterly dark. She trembled violently, but entered; and having felt about the walls, at length seated herself on a projection of stone.

While these thoughts raced through her mind, she heard distant voices in the wind and hurried to hide in the cell when she noticed the lights suddenly go out. Soon, everything was quiet and dark, but she tried to find her way to the cell. She remembered where the outside door and the passage were, and after passing them, she opened the door to the cell. Inside, it was completely dark. She shook with fear but went in anyway; after feeling around the walls, she finally sat down on a stone ledge.

She here again addressed herself to Heaven, and endeavoured to reanimate her spirits till Peter should arrive. Above half an hour elapsed in this gloomy recess, and no sound foretold his approach. Her spirits sunk; she feared some part of their plan was discovered or interrupted, and that he was detained by La Motte. This conviction operated sometimes so strongly upon her fears, as to urge her to quit the cell alone, and seek in flight her only chance of escape.

She turned her attention to Heaven again and tried to lift her spirits until Peter arrived. More than half an hour passed in this dark place, and there was no sign of him coming. Her spirits began to fade; she worried that part of their plan had been discovered or interrupted, and that La Motte was holding him up. This belief sometimes weighed so heavily on her fears that it pushed her to consider leaving the cell alone, seeking her only chance of escape through flight.

While this design was fluctuating in her mind, she distinguished through the grate above a clattering of hoofs. The noise approached, and at length stopped at the tomb. In the succeeding moment she heard three strokes of a whip; her heart beat, and for some moments her agitation was such, that she made no effort to quit the cell. The strokes were repeated: she now roused her spirits, and stepping forward, ascended to the forest. She called Peter; for the deep gloom would not permit her to distinguish either man or horse. She was quickly answered, Hush! Ma'mselle, our voices will betray us.

While this design was shifting in her mind, she heard a clattering of hooves through the grate above. The noise came closer and eventually stopped at the tomb. Then she heard three cracks of a whip; her heart raced, and for a while, she was so agitated that she didn’t try to leave the cell. The cracks happened again: she gathered her courage, stepped forward, and made her way to the forest. She called out to Peter, as the thick darkness made it impossible for her to see either the man or the horse. She quickly received a reply, “Hush! Ma'mselle, our voices will give us away.”

They mounted and rode off as fast as the darkness would permit. Adeline's heart revived at every step they took. She inquired what had passed at the abbey, and how he had contrived to get away. Speak softly, Ma'mselle; you'll know all by and by, but I can't tell you now. He had scarcely spoke ere they saw lights move along at a distance; and coming now to a more open part of the forest, he set off on a full gallop, and continued the pace till the horse could hold it no longer. They looked back, and no lights appearing, Adeline's terror subsided. She inquired again what had passed at the abbey when her flight was discovered. You may speak without fear of being heard, said she, we are gone beyond their reach, I hope.

They mounted their horses and rode off as quickly as the darkness allowed. Adeline's heart lifted with every step they took. She asked what had happened at the abbey and how he managed to escape. "Speak quietly, Ma'mselle; you'll find out everything soon, but I can't explain right now." He had barely spoken when they saw lights moving in the distance; arriving at a more open part of the forest, he took off at a full gallop and kept that pace until the horse could no longer maintain it. They looked back, and when no lights appeared, Adeline's fear eased. She asked again about what happened at the abbey after her escape was revealed. "You can talk without worrying about being overheard," she said, "we should be far enough away from them, I hope."

Why, Ma'mselle, said he, you had not been gone long before the Marquis arrived, and Monsieur La Motte then found out you was fled. Upon this a great rout there was, and he talked a great deal with the Marquis.

Why, Miss, he said, you hadn't been gone long before the Marquis arrived, and Mr. La Motte then discovered that you had run away. After that, there was a big commotion, and he had a long conversation with the Marquis.

Speak louder, said Adeline, I cannot hear you.

"Speak louder," Adeline said. "I can't hear you."

I will, Ma'mselle—

Sure thing, Ma'mselle—

Oh! heavens! interrupted Adeline, What voice is this? It is not Peter's. For God's sake tell me who you are, and whither I am going?

Oh! heavens! interrupted Adeline, What voice is this? It's not Peter's. For God's sake, tell me who you are and where I'm going?

You'll know that soon enough, young lady, answered the stranger, for it was indeed not Peter; I am taking you where my master ordered. Adeline, not doubting he was the Marquis's servant, attempted to leap to the ground; but the man, dismounting, bound her to the horse. One feeble ray of hope at length beamed upon her mind; she endeavoured to soften the man to pity, and pleaded with all the genuine eloquence of distress; but he understood his interest too well to yield even for a moment to the compassion which, in spite of himself, her artless supplication inspired.

"You'll find out soon enough, young lady," the stranger replied, because it definitely wasn’t Peter; "I'm taking you where my master ordered." Adeline, not doubting he was the Marquis's servant, tried to jump to the ground, but the man dismounted and tied her to the horse. Finally, a weak ray of hope flickered in her mind; she tried to appeal to the man’s compassion and pleaded with all the genuine emotion of distress. But he was too aware of his own interests to give in, even for a moment, to the sympathy her sincere plea inspired, despite himself.

She now resigned herself to despair, and in passive silence submitted to her fate. They continued thus to travel, till a storm of rain accompanied by thunder and lightning drove them to the covert of a thick grove. The man believed this a safe situation, and Adeline was now too careless of life to attempt convincing him of his error. The storm was violent and long, but as soon as it abated they set off on full gallop; and having continued to travel for about two hours, they came to the borders of the forest, and soon after to a high lonely wall, which Adeline could just distinguish by the moonlight, which now streamed through the parting clouds.

She now gave in to despair and quietly accepted her fate. They kept traveling until a storm with rain, thunder, and lightning forced them into the shelter of a dense grove. The man thought this was a safe place, and Adeline was too indifferent to life to try and persuade him otherwise. The storm was fierce and lasted a long time, but as soon as it calmed down, they took off at full speed. After about two hours of riding, they reached the edge of the forest and soon after saw a tall, isolated wall that Adeline could barely make out in the moonlight, which was now shining through the clearing clouds.

Here they stopped: the man dismounted, and having opened a small door in the wall, he unbound Adeline, who shrieked, though involuntarily and in vain, as he took her from the horse. The door opened upon a narrow passage, dimly lighted by a lamp, which hung at the further end. He led her on; they came to another door; it opened, and disclosed a magnificent saloon splendidly illuminated, and fitted up in the most airy and elegant taste.

Here they stopped: the man got off the horse and opened a small door in the wall, freeing Adeline, who screamed, though it was involuntary and in vain, as he lifted her from the horse. The door led to a narrow passage, dimly lit by a lamp hanging at the far end. He guided her onward; they reached another door, which opened to reveal a magnificent room that was beautifully lit and decorated in a light and elegant style.

The walls were painted in fresco, representing scenes from Ovid, and hung above with silk, drawn up in festoons, and richly fringed. The sofas were of a silk to suit the hangings. From the centre of the ceiling, which exhibited a scene from the Armida of Tasso, descended a silver lamp of Etruscan form; it diffused a blaze of light that, reflected from large pier glasses, completely illuminated the saloon. Busts of Horace, Ovid, Anacreon, Tibullus, and Petronius Arbiter, adorned the recesses, and stands of flowers placed in Etruscan vases breathed the most delicious perfume. In the middle of the apartment stood a small table spread with a collation of fruits, ices, and liqueurs. No person appeared. The whole seemed the works of enchantment, and rather resembled the palace of a fairy than any thing of human conformation.

The walls were painted in fresco, showing scenes from Ovid, and draped with silk, arranged in festoons and richly fringed. The sofas were made of silk to match the curtains. From the center of the ceiling, which displayed a scene from Tasso's Armida, hung a silver lamp in Etruscan style; it cast a bright light that, reflected from large mirrors, fully lit up the room. Busts of Horace, Ovid, Anacreon, Tibullus, and Petronius Arbiter decorated the recesses, and arrangements of flowers in Etruscan vases filled the air with a delightful fragrance. In the center of the room stood a small table set with an assortment of fruits, ice creams, and liqueurs. No one was there. The entire scene felt like magic, resembling a fairy palace more than anything made by humans.

Adeline was astonished, and inquired where she was; but the man refused to answer her questions; and having desired her to take some refreshment, left her. She walked to the windows, from which a gleam of moonlight discovered to her an extensive garden, where groves and lawns, and water glittering in the moonbeam, composed a scenery of varied and romantic beauty. What can this mean! said she: Is this a charm to lure me to destruction? She endeavoured, with a hope of escaping, to open the windows, but they were all fastened; she next attempted several doors, and found them also secured.

Adeline was shocked and asked where she was, but the man wouldn’t answer her questions. After suggesting she have some refreshments, he left her alone. She walked over to the windows, and through the moonlight, she saw a large garden filled with groves, lawns, and shimmering water, creating a scene of varied and romantic beauty. What could this mean? she wondered. Is this some trap to lead me to my doom? She tried to open the windows, hoping to escape, but they were all locked. She then tried several doors and found them all secured as well.

Perceiving all chance of escape was removed, she remained for some time given up to sorrow and reflection; but was at length drawn from her reverie by the notes of soft music, breathing such dulcet and entrancing sounds as suspended grief and awaked the soul to tenderness and pensive pleasure. Adeline listened in surprise, and insensibly became soothed and interested; a tender melancholy stole upon her heart, and subdued every harsher feeling: but the moment the strain ceased, the enchantment dissolved, and she returned to a sense of her situation.

Realizing that all hope of escape was gone, she spent some time lost in sorrow and deep thought. Eventually, she was pulled from her reverie by the sound of soft music, which played such sweet and captivating notes that they eased her sadness and awakened feelings of tenderness and thoughtful joy. Adeline listened in surprise and found herself gradually calmed and intrigued; a gentle sadness crept into her heart and softened any harsher feelings. But as soon as the music stopped, the magic faded, and she was brought back to the reality of her situation.

Again the music sounded—music such as charmeth sleep—and again she gradually yielded to its sweet magic. A female voice, accompanied by a lute, a hautboy, and a few other instruments, now gradually swelled into a tone so exquisite as raised attention into ecstasy. It sunk by degrees, and touched a few simple notes with pathetic softness, when the measure was suddenly changed, and in a gay and airy melody Adeline distinguished the following words:

Again the music played—music that lulls you to sleep—and once more she slowly surrendered to its sweet enchantment. A woman's voice, backed by a lute, an oboe, and a few other instruments, gradually rose into a tone so beautiful it lifted her attention into bliss. It gradually faded, touching on a few simple notes with tender softness, when the rhythm suddenly shifted, and in a lively and light-hearted melody, Adeline recognized the following words:

Track.
Life's a colorful, diverse illusion,
Joy and sadness—light and dark;
Turn from sorrow's dark cloud,
Enjoy the pleasures before they disappear.
Fancy paints with unreal hues,
Smile of happiness, and feeling sad;
If they are both just ideal,
Why reject the apparent good?
So, that’s enough! It’s Wisdom calling you,
Bids you ask Time for assistance right now;
Don't trust the future—Hope captivates you,
"Enjoy the pleasures before they disappear."

The music ceased; but the sounds still vibrated on her imagination, and she was sunk in the pleasing languor they had inspired, when the door opened, and the Marquis de Montalt appeared. He approached the sofa where Adeline sat, and addressed her, but she heard not his voice—she had fainted. He endeavoured to recover her, and at length succeeded; but when she unclosed her eyes, and again beheld him, she relapsed into a state of insensibility; and having in vain tried various methods to restore her, he was obliged to call assistance. Two young women entered; and when she began to revive, he left them to prepare her for his reappearance. When Adeline perceived that the Marquis was gone, and that she was in the care of women, her spirits gradually returned; she looked at her attendants, and was surprised to see so much elegance and beauty.

The music stopped, but the sounds still lingered in her mind, and she was lost in the pleasant daze they had created when the door opened and the Marquis de Montalt walked in. He approached the sofa where Adeline sat and spoke to her, but she didn’t hear him—she had fainted. He tried to revive her and eventually succeeded, but when she opened her eyes and looked at him again, she fainted once more. After trying different methods to bring her back, he had no choice but to call for help. Two young women came in, and when she started to regain consciousness, he stepped aside to let them prepare her for his return. When Adeline realized the Marquis was gone and that women were tending to her, her spirits started to lift; she looked at her attendants and was surprised by their elegance and beauty.

Some endeavour she made to interest their pity; but they seemed wholly insensible to her distress, and began to talk of the Marquis in terms of the highest admiration. They assured her it would be her own fault if she was not happy, and advised her to appear so in his presence. It was with the utmost difficulty that Adeline forbore to express the disdain which was rising to her lips, and that she listened to their discourse in silence. But she saw the inconvenience and fruitlessness of opposition, and she commanded her feelings.

Some effort she made to gain their sympathy; but they appeared completely indifferent to her suffering and started to speak of the Marquis with the greatest admiration. They assured her it would be her own fault if she wasn't happy, and advised her to act happy in front of him. Adeline struggled not to show the contempt building up in her, and she listened to their conversation in silence. However, she realized that resisting was both inconvenient and pointless, so she controlled her emotions.

They were thus proceeding in their praises of the Marquis, when he himself appeared; and waving his hand, they immediately quitted the apartment. Adeline beheld him with a kind of mute despair while he approached and took her hand, which she hastily withdrew; and turning from him with a look of unutterable distress, burst into tears. He was for some time silent, and appeared softened by her anguish: but again approaching and addressing her in a gentle voice, he entreated her pardon for the step which despair, and, as he called it, love had prompted. She was too much absorbed in grief to reply, till he solicited a return of his love; when her sorrow yielded to indignation, and she reproached him with his conduct. He pleaded that he had long loved and sought her upon honourable terms, and his offer of those terms he began to repeat; but raising his eyes towards Adeline, he saw in her looks the contempt which he was conscious he deserved.

They were continuing to praise the Marquis when he suddenly appeared; waving his hand, they immediately left the room. Adeline looked at him with a sort of silent despair as he approached and took her hand, which she quickly pulled away. Turning away with a look of deep distress, she burst into tears. He stayed silent for a while, appearing moved by her pain, but then he came closer and spoke to her gently, asking for her forgiveness for the decision that despair and, as he called it, love had led him to take. She was too wrapped up in her grief to answer until he asked for her love back; then her sorrow turned into anger, and she confronted him about his behavior. He argued that he had long loved her and pursued her honorably, and he began to repeat his offer of commitment, but when he looked at Adeline, he saw in her expression the contempt he knew he deserved.

For a moment he was confused, and seemed to understand both that his plan was discovered and his person despised; but soon resuming his usual command of feature, he again pressed his suit, and solicited her love. A little reflection showed Adeline the danger of exasperating his pride by an avowal of the contempt which his pretended offer of marriage excited; and she thought it not improper, upon an occasion in which the honour and peace of her life was concerned, to yield somewhat to the policy of dissimulation. She saw that her only chance of escaping his designs depended upon delaying them, and she now wished him to believe her ignorant that the Marchioness was living, and that his offers were delusive.

For a moment, he was confused and seemed to realize that his plan was discovered and that he was despised. But soon, regaining his usual composure, he pressed his case and asked for her love again. After a bit of thought, Adeline recognized the risk of angering his pride by openly expressing the contempt his fake marriage proposal stirred in her. She felt it was reasonable, in a situation where her honor and peace were at stake, to play along with some deception. She understood that her only chance of escaping his intentions depended on delaying them, and she now wanted him to believe that she was unaware the Marchioness was alive and that his offers were empty.

He observed her pause; and in the eagerness to turn her hesitation to his advantage, renewed his proposal with increased vehemence—To-morrow shall unite us, lovely Adeline; to-morrow you shall consent to become the Marchioness de Montalt. You will then return my love and——

He noticed her hesitate; and in his eagerness to use her uncertainty to his advantage, he pushed his proposal with even more intensity—Tomorrow will unite us, beautiful Adeline; tomorrow you will agree to become the Marchioness de Montalt. Then you will return my love and——

You must first deserve my esteem, my Lord.

You first need to earn my respect, my Lord.

I will—I do deserve it. Are you not now in my power, and do I not forbear to take advantage of your situation? Do I not make you the most honourable proposals?—Adeline shuddered: If you wish I should esteem you, my Lord, endeavour, if possible, to make me forget by what means I came into your power; if your views are indeed honourable, prove them so by releasing me from my confinement.

I will—I deserve it. Aren't you in my control now, and am I not choosing not to exploit your situation? Am I not offering you the most honorable proposals? —Adeline shuddered: If you want me to respect you, my Lord, try, if you can, to help me forget how I ended up in your control; if your intentions are truly honorable, prove it by freeing me from this confinement.

Can you then wish, lovely Adeline, to fly from him who adores you? replied the Marquis with a studied air of tenderness. Why will you exact so severe a proof of my disinterestedness, a disinterestedness which is not consistent with love? No, charming Adeline! let me at least have the pleasure of beholding you till the bonds of the church shall remove every obstacle to my love. To-morrow——

Can you really want to escape from someone who loves you, beautiful Adeline? the Marquis responded with a deliberate hint of tenderness. Why must you demand such a harsh test of my selflessness, which isn’t compatible with love? No, lovely Adeline! please, let me at least enjoy the sight of you until the bonds of the church remove every obstacle to my love. Tomorrow——

Adeline saw the danger to which she was now exposed, and interrupted him. Deserve my esteem, Sir, and then you will obtain it: as a first step towards which, liberate me from a confinement that obliges me to look on you only with terror and aversion. How can I believe your professions of love, while you show that you have no interest in my happiness?—Thus did Adeline, to whom the arts and the practice of dissimulation were hitherto equally unknown, condescend to make use of them in disguising her indignation and contempt. But though these arts were adopted only for the purpose of self-preservation, she used them with reluctance, and almost with abhorrence; for her mind was habitually impregnated with the love of virtue, in thought, word, and action; and while her end in using them was certainly good, she scarcely thought that end could justify the means.

Adeline recognized the danger she was in and interrupted him. Earn my respect, Sir, and then you will have it: as a first step toward that, free me from this confinement that forces me to see you only with fear and disgust. How can I believe your claims of love when you show no concern for my happiness?—In this moment, Adeline, who had never before resorted to deceit or manipulation, found herself resorting to these tactics to hide her anger and disgust. But although she used these tactics solely for her own safety, she did so with reluctance and almost with loathing; her mind was deeply rooted in a love for virtue in thought, word, and deed; and while her intentions were good, she could hardly believe that they justified the means.

The Marquis persisted in his sophistry. Can you doubt the reality of that love, which to obtain you has urged me to risk your displeasure? But have I not consulted your happiness, even in the very conduct which you condemn? I have removed you from a solitary and desolate ruin to a gay and splendid villa, where every luxury is at your command, and where every person shall be obedient to your wishes.

The Marquis kept arguing with his clever reasoning. Can you really doubt the existence of that love, which has driven me to risk your disapproval to have you? But haven’t I thought about your happiness, even in the way you criticize me? I’ve taken you from a lonely and bleak place to a beautiful and luxurious villa, where every comfort is at your disposal, and where everyone will cater to your wishes.

My first wish is to go hence, said Adeline; I entreat, I conjure you, my Lord, no longer to detain me. I am a friendless and wretched orphan, exposed to many evils, and I fear abandoned to misfortune: I do not wish to be rude; but allow me to say, that no misery can exceed that I shall feel in remaining here, or indeed in being any where pursued by the offers you make me. Adeline had now forgot her policy: tears prevented her from proceeding, and she turned away her face to hide her emotion.

"My first wish is to leave here," said Adeline. "I urge you, my Lord, please do not keep me any longer. I am a lonely and miserable orphan, vulnerable to many dangers, and I fear I am doomed to bad luck. I don’t want to be disrespectful, but I have to say that no suffering can compare to what I will feel by staying here, or even being anywhere chased by the advances you make toward me." Adeline had now forgotten her strategy: tears stopped her from continuing, and she turned her face away to hide her feelings.

By Heaven! Adeline, you do me wrong, said the Marquis, rising from his seat and seizing her hand; I love, I adore you; yet you doubt my passion, and are insensible to my vows. Every pleasure possible to be enjoyed within these walls you shall partake,—but beyond them you shall not go. She disengaged her hand, and in silent anguish walked to a distant part of the saloon: deep sighs burst from her heart, and almost fainting she leaned on a window-frame for support.

By heaven! Adeline, you are wronging me, said the Marquis, getting up from his seat and taking her hand; I love you, I adore you; yet you doubt my feelings and are indifferent to my promises. You will experience every pleasure that can be had within these walls—but you shall not go beyond them. She pulled her hand away and, in silent pain, walked to a far corner of the room: deep sighs escaped her heart, and nearly fainting, she leaned on the window frame for support.

The Marquis followed her: Why thus obstinately persist in refusing to be happy? said he: recollect the proposal I have made you, and accept it while it is yet in your power. To-morrow a priest shall join our hands—Surely, being, as you are, in my power, it must be your interest to consent to this? Adeline could answer only by tears; she despaired of softening his heart to pity, and feared to exasperate his pride by disdain. He now led her, and she suffered him, to a seat near the banquet, at which he pressed her to partake of a variety of confectionaries, particularly of some liqueurs of which he himself drank freely: Adeline accepted only of a peach.

The Marquis followed her: "Why do you insist on being unhappy?" he asked. "Remember the proposal I made to you, and accept it while you still can. Tomorrow, a priest will join us together—Surely, since you are in my power, it must be in your best interest to agree to this?" Adeline could only respond with tears; she had lost hope in softening his heart to feel compassion, and was afraid of provoking his pride with disdain. He now led her, and she allowed him, to a seat near the banquet, where he urged her to enjoy a variety of sweets, especially some liqueurs that he himself drank liberally. Adeline only accepted a peach.

And now the Marquis, who interrupted her silence into a secret compliance with his proposal, resumed all his gaiety and spirit, while the long and ardent regards he bestowed on Adeline overcame her with confusion and indignation. In the midst of the banquet, soft music again sounded the most tender and impassioned airs; but its effect on Adeline was now lost, her mind being too much embarrassed and distressed by the presence of the Marquis to admit even the soothings of harmony. A song was now heard, written with that sort of impotent art by which some voluptuous poets believe they can at once conceal and recommend the principles of vice. Adeline received it with contempt and displeasure; and the Marquis perceiving its effect, presently made a sign for another composition, which, adding the force of poetry to the charms of music, might withdraw her mind from the present scene, and enchant it in sweet delirium.

And now the Marquis, having interrupted her silence to secretly agree with his proposal, regained all his cheerfulness and energy, while the long and intense glances he directed at Adeline left her feeling confused and angry. In the middle of the banquet, soft music played again, offering the most tender and passionate melodies; however, its effect on Adeline was now lost, as her mind was too troubled and distressed by the presence of the Marquis to even appreciate the soothing sounds. A song was heard, crafted with that kind of ineffective artistry that some sensual poets believe can both hide and promote immoral ideas. Adeline reacted to it with disdain and annoyance; noticing her reaction, the Marquis soon signaled for another piece, one that, by combining the power of poetry with the allure of music, might distract her from the current situation and enchant her in delightful bliss.

Spirit's Song.
In the air that I can't see, I live,
On the sloping sunbeams play;
Explore the cave's deepest chamber,
Where daylight has never wandered before.
Dive beneath the green ocean waves,
And play in the salty depths;
Skim every shore that Neptune touches,
From the flatlands of Lapland to the heights of India.
I often rise with quick power
Above the vast earth's dark area;
Follow the sun's blazing path
Through realms of space to thoughts we don't yet understand:
And often listen to heavenly sounds
That fill the air with the presence of unseen people,
As I go through my nightly rounds
Across wooded slopes and quiet valleys.
Beneath the shade of swaying trees,
On the green bank of the clear fountain,
In a thoughtful evening, I sit comfortably,
While dying music softly plays.
And often at the edge of a high cliff,
That hangs over the western ocean,
I watch the colorful hues passing quickly,
And twilight covers the smooth surface of the water.
Then, when the breeze has died down,
And the ocean is rarely heard to wash,
For me, the sea nymphs gently play.
Their sweet shells beneath the waves.
Their sweet shells! I can hear them now,
Slowly, the pressure on my ear builds.
Now softly falls—now sings low,
Until joy turns into a tear.
The beam that glistens on the dew,
And shakes in the leafy shade,
And colors the scene with a softer tone,
Calls me to wander the lonely clearing;
Or take me to some crumbling tower,
Faintly shown by moonlight glow,
Where the solitary traveler possesses my strength
In the dark shadows, things appear real.
In exciting sounds that whisper sorrow,
And a moment of silence creates more fear;
In music, breathing from below
Sad, serious melodies that bring the dead to life.
Invisible I move—unknown I'm feared!
Fancy's wildest dreams I create;
And often, my voice is heard by poets.
To pass away in the evening winds.

When the voice ceased, a mournful strain, played with exquisite expression, sounded from a distant horn; sometimes the notes floated on the air in soft undulations—now they swelled into full and sweeping melody, and now died faintly into silence, when again they rose and trembled in sounds so sweetly tender, as drew tears from Adeline, and exclamations of rapture from the Marquis: he threw his arm round her, and would have pressed her towards him; but she liberated herself from his embrace, and with a look, on which was impressed the firm dignity of virtue, yet touched with sorrow, she awed him to forbearance. Conscious of a superiority which he was ashamed to acknowledge, and endeavouring to despise the influence which he could not resist, he stood for a moment the slave of virtue, though the votary of vice. Soon, however, he recovered his confidence, and began to plead his love; when Adeline, no longer animated by the spirit she had lately shown, and sinking beneath the languor and fatigue which the various and violent agitations of her mind produced, entreated he would leave her to repose.

When the voice stopped, a sad tune, played with incredible feeling, came from a distant horn; sometimes the notes floated softly through the air—then they swelled into a full, sweeping melody, only to fade away into silence, before rising again, trembling with a sweet tenderness that brought tears to Adeline’s eyes and exclamations of delight from the Marquis. He wrapped his arm around her and tried to pull her closer, but she pushed him away. With a look that combined the strong dignity of virtue and a touch of sadness, she commanded him to hold back. Aware of a superiority he was ashamed to admit and trying to dismiss the influence he couldn’t resist, he stood there for a moment, a prisoner of virtue, even as a follower of vice. However, he soon regained his confidence and began to profess his love; but Adeline, no longer driven by the spirit she had recently shown and weighed down by the weariness and exhaustion from the intense emotions she had experienced, asked him to let her rest.

The paleness of her countenance and the tremulous tone of her voice were too expressive to be misunderstood; and the Marquis, bidding her remember to-morrow, with some hesitation withdrew. The moment she was alone she yielded to the bursting anguish of her heart; and was so absorbed in grief, that it was some time before she perceived she was in the presence of the young women who had lately attended her, and had entered the saloon soon after the Marquis quitted it; they came to conduct her to her chamber. She followed them for some time in silence, till, prompted by desperation, she again endeavoured to awaken their compassion: but again the praises of the Marquis were repeated: and perceiving that all attempts to interest them in her favour were in vain she dismissed them. She secured the door through which they had departed, and then, in the languid hope of discovering some means of escape, she surveyed her chamber. The airy elegance with which it was fitted up, and the luxurious accommodations with which it abounded, seemed designed to fascinate the imagination and to seduce the heart. The hangings were of straw-coloured silk, adorned with a variety of landscapes and historical paintings, the subjects of which partook of the voluptuous character of the owner; the chimney-piece, of Parian marble, was ornamented with several reposing figures from the antique. The bed was of silk, the colour of the hangings, richly fringed with purple and silver, and the head made in form of a canopy. The steps which were placed near the bed to assist in ascending it, were supported by cupids apparently of solid silver. China vases filled with perfume stood in several of the recesses, upon stands of the same structure as the toilet, which was magnificent, and ornamented with a variety of trinkets.

The paleness of her face and the shaky tone of her voice were too clear to be misinterpreted; and the Marquis, reminding her to think of tomorrow, hesitated before leaving. As soon as she was alone, she succumbed to the overwhelming pain in her heart and was so consumed by sorrow that it took her a while to realize she was with the young women who had recently attended her and had entered the room shortly after the Marquis left; they had come to lead her to her room. She followed them in silence for some time until, driven by despair, she tried once more to stir their sympathy: but once again, they went on about how great the Marquis was. Recognizing that all her attempts to gain their favor were fruitless, she sent them away. She locked the door they left through and then, in a faint hope of finding a way to escape, she looked around her room. The airy elegance of the decor and the luxurious comforts seemed designed to captivate the imagination and lure the heart. The drapes were made of straw-colored silk, embellished with various landscapes and historical paintings that echoed the owner's indulgent tastes; the fireplace, made of Parian marble, was decorated with several reclining figures from antiquity. The bed was silk, matching the drapes, richly trimmed with purple and silver, and had a canopy head. The steps placed near the bed to help climb into it were supported by cupids that looked like they were made of solid silver. China vases filled with perfume were positioned in several nooks, on stands matching the magnificent vanity, which was adorned with a variety of trinkets.

Adeline threw a transient look upon these various objects, and proceeded to examine the windows, which descended to the floor and opened into balconies towards the garden she had seen from the saloon. They were now fastened, and her efforts to move them were ineffectual: at length she gave up the attempt. A door next attracted her notice, which she found was not fastened; it opened upon a dressing-closet, to which she descended by a few steps: two windows appeared, she hastened towards them; one refused to yield, but her heart beat with sudden joy when the other opened to her touch.

Adeline quickly glanced at the various objects and then turned to examine the windows that reached the floor and opened onto balconies overlooking the garden she had seen from the saloon. They were locked now, and her attempts to move them were unsuccessful; eventually, she gave up trying. Next, she noticed a door that wasn’t locked; it opened into a dressing room, which she descended a few steps into. There were two windows there, and she hurried toward them; one wouldn’t budge, but her heart raced with sudden joy when the other opened at her touch.

In the transport of the moment, she forgot that its distance from the ground might yet deny the escape she meditated. She returned to lock the door of the closet, to prevent a surprise, which, however, was unnecessary, that of the bed-room being already secured. She now looked out from the window; the garden lay before her, and she perceived that the window, which descended to the floor, was so near the ground, that she might jump from it with ease: almost in the same moment she perceived this, she sprang forward and alighted safely in an extensive garden, resembling more an English pleasure ground, than a series of French parterres.

In the moment of urgency, she forgot that the distance to the ground might prevent the escape she was planning. She went back to lock the closet door to avoid any surprises, which was unnecessary since the bedroom door was already secured. She then looked out the window; the garden stretched out before her, and she realized that the window, which reached down to the floor, was so close to the ground that she could easily jump out. Almost as soon as she made this realization, she leaped forward and landed safely in a large garden, which looked more like an English park than a series of French flower beds.

Thence she had little doubt of escaping, either by some broken fence, or low part of the wall; she tripped lightly along, for hope played round her heart. The clouds of the late storm were now dispersed, and the moonlight, which slept on the lawns and spangled the flowerets yet heavy with rain drops, afforded her a distinct view of the surrounding scenery; she followed the direction of the high wall that adjoined the chateau, till it was concealed from her sight by a thick wilderness, so entangled with boughs and obscured by darkness, that she feared to enter, and turned aside into a walk on the right; it conducted her to the margin of a lake overhung with lofty trees.

From there, she was pretty sure she could escape, either through a broken fence or a low section of the wall. She walked lightly, as hope filled her heart. The clouds from the recent storm had cleared, and the moonlight, which lay softly on the lawns and glittered on the flowers still heavy with raindrops, gave her a clear view of the area around her. She followed the high wall that bordered the chateau until it disappeared from her sight behind a dense thicket, so tangled with branches and shrouded in darkness that she hesitated to enter it and instead turned onto a path to the right. This led her to the edge of a lake covered by tall trees.

The moonbeams dancing upon the waters, that with gentle undulation played along the shore, exhibited a scene of tranquil beauty, which would have soothed a heart less agitated than was that of Adeline: she sighed as she transiently surveyed it, and passed hastily on in search of the garden wall, from which she had now strayed a considerable way. After wandering for some time through alleys and over lawns, without meeting with any thing like a boundary to the grounds, she again found herself at the lake, and now traversed its border with the footsteps of despair:—tears rolled down her cheeks. The scene around exhibited only images of peace and delight; every object seemed to repose; not a breath waved the foliage, not a sound stole through the air: it was in her bosom only that tumult and distress prevailed. She still pursued the windings of the shore, till an opening in the woods conducted her up a gentle ascent: the path now wound along the side of a hill where the gloom was so deep, that it was with some difficulty she found her way: suddenly, however, the avenue opened to a lofty grove, and she perceived a light issue from a recess at some distance.

The moonlight dancing on the water, gently rippling along the shore, presented a scene of calm beauty that would have soothed a heart less troubled than Adeline's. She sighed as she briefly took it in and hurried on, searching for the garden wall from which she had wandered far away. After wandering for a while through pathways and over lawns, without finding any sort of boundary to the grounds, she found herself back at the lake and now walked along its edge with heavy steps: tears streamed down her cheeks. The scene around her showed nothing but images of peace and joy; everything seemed still; not a breeze stirred the leaves, and not a sound broke the silence. It was only in her heart that chaos and sorrow reigned. She continued to follow the shore until a gap in the woods led her up a gentle slope: the path now wound along the side of a hill where the shadows were so deep that it was hard to find her way. Suddenly, however, the path opened up to a tall grove, and she noticed a light coming from a recess in the distance.

She paused, and her first impulse was to retreat; but listening, and hearing no sound, a faint hope beamed upon her mind, that the person to whom the light belonged, might be won to favour her escape. She advanced, with trembling and cautious steps, towards the recess, that she might secretly observe the person, before she ventured to enter it. Her emotion increased as she approached; and, having reached the bower, she beheld, through an open window, the Marquis reclining on a sofa, near which stood a table, covered with fruit and wine. He was alone, and his countenance was flushed with drinking.

She paused, her first instinct was to back away; but as she listened and heard nothing, a glimmer of hope lit up in her mind that the person the light belonged to might help her escape. She moved forward, her steps shaky and cautious, toward the alcove so she could secretly observe who it was before she decided to enter. Her nerves heightened as she got closer, and when she reached the bower, she saw through an open window the Marquis lounging on a sofa, with a table beside him laid out with fruit and wine. He was by himself, and his face was flushed from drinking.

While she gazed, fixed to the spot by terror, he looked up towards the casement; the light gleamed full upon her face, but she stayed not to learn whether he had observed her, for, with the swiftness of sound, she left the place and ran, without knowing whether she was pursued. Having gone a considerable way, fatigue at length compelled her to stop, and she threw herself upon the turf, almost fainting with fear and languor. She knew, if the Marquis detected her in an attempt to escape, he would, probably, burst the bounds which she had hitherto prescribed to himself, and that she had the most dreadful evils to expect. The palpitations of terror were so strong, that she could with difficulty breathe.

While she stared, frozen in fear, he looked up towards the window; the light shone brightly on her face, but she didn’t stop to see if he noticed her. With the speed of sound, she left the spot and ran, unsure if she was being chased. After going quite a distance, exhaustion finally forced her to stop, and she collapsed onto the grass, nearly passing out from fear and fatigue. She knew that if the Marquis caught her trying to escape, he would likely break the limits he had set for himself, and she had terrible consequences to face. The palpitations of fear were so intense that she could barely breathe.

She watched and listened in trembling expectation, but no form met her eye, no sound her ear; in this state she remained a considerable time. She wept, and the tears she shed relieved her oppressed heart. O my father! said she, why did you abandon your child? If you knew the dangers to which you have exposed her, you would, surely, pity and relieve her. Alas! shall I never find a friend! am I destined still to trust and be deceived?—Peter too, could he be treacherous? She wept again, and then returned to a sense of her present danger, and to a consideration of the means of escaping it—but no means appeared.

She watched and listened with anxiety, but nothing appeared before her eyes, no sound reached her ears; she stayed like this for quite a while. She cried, and the tears she shed eased her heavy heart. Oh my father! she said, why did you leave your child? If you knew the dangers you put her in, you would surely feel sorry for her and help her. Alas! will I never find a friend? Am I meant to keep trusting and getting betrayed?—Could Peter really be untrustworthy? She cried again, and then remembered her current danger and started thinking about ways to escape it—but no options seemed to come to mind.

To her imagination the grounds were boundless; she had wandered from lawn to lawn, and from grove to grove, without perceiving any termination to the place; the garden-wall she could not find, but she resolved neither to return to the chateau, nor to relinquish her search. As she was rising to depart, she perceived a shadow move along at some distance: she stood still to observe it. It slowly advanced and then disappeared; but presently she saw a person emerge from the gloom, and approach the spot where she stood. She had no doubt that the Marquis had observed her, and she ran with all possible speed to the shade of some woods on the left. Footsteps pursued her, and she heard her name repeated, while she in vain endeavoured to quicken her pace.

To her imagination, the grounds seemed endless; she had wandered from lawn to lawn and from grove to grove, not noticing any end to the place. She couldn’t find the garden wall, but she was determined not to go back to the chateau or give up her search. As she was about to leave, she noticed a shadow moving in the distance and paused to watch. It slowly came closer and then vanished; but soon she saw someone emerge from the darkness and approach where she stood. She was sure the Marquis had spotted her, so she dashed towards the cover of some woods on the left. She heard footsteps behind her, calling her name, as she struggled to pick up her pace.

Suddenly the sound of pursuit turned, and sunk away in a different direction: she paused to take breath; she looked around, and no person appeared. She now proceeded slowly along the avenue, and had almost reached its termination, when she saw the same figure emerge from the woods and dart across the avenue: it instantly pursued her and approached. A voice called her, but she was gone beyond its reach, for she had sunk senseless upon the ground: it was long before she revived: when she did, she found herself in the arms of a stranger, and made an effort to disengage herself.

Suddenly, the sound of footsteps chasing her changed direction and faded away. She paused to catch her breath, looked around, and saw no one. Slowly, she continued down the path and was almost at the end when she saw that same figure come out of the woods and dash across the path. It immediately chased after her and got closer. A voice called out to her, but she was already too far away; she had collapsed onto the ground, unconscious. It was a long time before she came to. When she finally did, she found herself in the arms of a stranger and tried to break free.

Fear nothing, lovely Adeline, said he, fear nothing: you are in the arms of a friend, who will encounter any hazard for your sake; who will protect you with his life. He pressed her gently to his heart. Have you then forgot me? continued he. She looked earnestly at him, and was now convinced that it was Theodore who spoke. Joy was her first emotion; but, recollecting his former abrupt departure, at a time so critical to her safety and that he was the friend of the Marquis, a thousand mingled sensations struggled in her breast, and overwhelmed her with mistrust, apprehension, and disappointment.

“Don’t be afraid, beautiful Adeline,” he said, “don’t be afraid: you’re in the arms of a friend who will face any danger for you; who will protect you with his life.” He gently pressed her to his heart. “Have you forgotten me then?” he continued. She looked at him intently and was now sure it was Theodore who was speaking. Joy was her first feeling; however, remembering his sudden departure at such a critical time for her safety and that he was friends with the Marquis, a mix of emotions battled inside her, flooding her with distrust, worry, and disappointment.

Theodore raised her from the ground, and while he yet supported her, let us fly from this place, said he; a carriage waits to receive us; it shall go wherever you direct, and convey you to your friends. This last sentence touched her heart: Alas, I have no friends! said she, nor do I know whither to go. Theodore gently pressed her hand between his, and, in a voice of the softest compassion, said, My friends then shall be yours; suffer me to lead you to them. But I am in agony while you remain in this place; let us hasten to quit it. Adeline was going to reply, when voices were heard among the trees, and Theodore, supporting her with his arm, hurried her along the avenue; they continued their flight till Adeline, panting for breath, could go no further.

Theodore lifted her off the ground, and while he held her up, he said, "Let’s get out of here; a carriage is waiting for us. It will take you wherever you want and bring you to your friends." Those last words touched her heart: "Alas, I have no friends!" she replied, "and I don’t even know where to go." Theodore gently held her hand in his and, with the softest compassion in his voice, said, "Then my friends will be yours; let me take you to them. But I’m in pain while you stay here; let’s hurry and leave." Adeline was about to respond when they heard voices among the trees. Theodore, supporting her with his arm, rushed her down the path; they continued running until Adeline, out of breath, could go no further.





Having paused a while, and heard no footsteps in pursuit, they renewed their course: Theodore knew that they were now not far from the garden wall; but he was also aware, that in the intermediate space several paths wound from remote parts of the grounds into the walk he was to pass, from whence the Marquis's people might issue and intercept him. He, however, concealed his apprehensions from Adeline, and endeavoured to soothe and support her spirits.

Having taken a moment to stop and noticing there were no footsteps behind them, they continued on their way. Theodore was aware they were close to the garden wall, but he also knew there were several paths leading from different areas of the grounds to the walkway he needed to take, where the Marquis's people could come out and block him. Still, he hid his worries from Adeline and tried to comfort and encourage her.

At length they reached the wall, and Theodore was leading her towards a low part of it, near which stood the carriage, when again they heard voices in the air. Adeline's spirits and strength were nearly exhausted, but she made a last effort to proceed and she now saw the ladder at some distance by which Theodore had descended to the garden. Exert yourself yet a little longer, said he, and you will be in safety. He held the ladder while she ascended; the top of the wall was broad and level, and Adeline, having reached it, remained there till Theodore followed and drew the ladder to the other side.

At last, they reached the wall, and Theodore was guiding her toward a lower section of it, close to where the carriage was parked, when they heard voices again. Adeline's energy and strength were almost gone, but she pushed herself to keep going and spotted the ladder a little way off that Theodore had used to get into the garden. "Just push a bit more," he encouraged, "and you’ll be safe." He held the ladder steady while she climbed up; the top of the wall was wide and flat, and Adeline stayed there until Theodore came up after her and pulled the ladder over to the other side.

When they had descended, the carriage appeared in waiting, but without the driver. Theodore feared to call, lest his voice should betray him; he, therefore, put Adeline into the carriage, and went in search of the postillion, whom he found asleep under a tree at some distance: having awakened him, they returned to the vehicle, which soon drove furiously away. Adeline did not yet dare to believe herself safe; but, after proceeding a considerable time without interruption, joy burst upon her heart, and she thanked her deliverer in terms of the warmest gratitude. The sympathy expressed in the tone of his voice and manner, proved that his happiness, on this occasion, almost equalled her own.

When they got down, the carriage was waiting, but there was no driver. Theodore hesitated to call out, fearing his voice would give him away; instead, he helped Adeline into the carriage and went to look for the postilion, whom he found asleep under a tree not far away. After waking him up, they returned to the carriage, which soon took off at a furious pace. Adeline still couldn't fully believe she was safe; however, after traveling for a while without any issues, joy filled her heart, and she expressed her deepest gratitude to her rescuer. The sympathy in his voice and demeanor showed that his happiness in this moment was almost as strong as hers.

As reflection gradually stole upon her mind, anxiety superseded joy: in the tumult of the late moments, she thought only of escape; but the circumstances of her present situation now appeared to her, and she became silent and pensive: she had no friends to whom she could fly, and was going with a young chevalier, almost a stranger to her, she knew not whither. She remembered how often she had been deceived and betrayed where she trusted most, and her spirits sunk: she remembered also the former attention which Theodore had shown her, and dreaded lest his conduct might be prompted by a selfish passion. She saw this to be possible, but she disdained to believe it probable, and felt that nothing could give her greater pain than to doubt the integrity of Theodore.

As her thoughts began to settle, anxiety replaced joy: in the chaos of the final moments, all she could think about was getting away; but now the reality of her situation hit her, leaving her quiet and thoughtful. She had no friends to turn to and was with a young knight, who was nearly a stranger, heading who knows where. She recalled how often she had been misled and betrayed by those she trusted the most, and her spirits dropped. She also remembered the attention Theodore had given her in the past and feared that his behavior might be driven by selfish desires. While she recognized this as a possibility, she couldn't bring herself to believe it was likely, and she felt that nothing could hurt her more than doubting Theodore's honesty.

He interrupted her reverie, by recurring to her late situation at the abbey. You would be much surprised, said he, and, I fear, offended that I did not attend my appointment at the abbey, after the alarming hints I had given you in our last interview. That circumstance has, perhaps, injured me in your esteem, if, indeed, I was ever so happy as to possess it: but my designs were overruled by those of the Marquis de Montalt; and I think I may venture to assert, that my distress upon this occasion was, at least, equal to your apprehensions.

He interrupted her daydream by bringing up her recent situation at the abbey. "You might be surprised," he said, "and I’m afraid, offended that I didn’t keep my appointment at the abbey after the alarming hints I dropped during our last conversation. That may have damaged my standing with you, if I was ever lucky enough to have it at all. But my plans were overruled by the Marquis de Montalt’s, and I think it’s safe to say that my distress in this situation was at least as great as your worries."

Adeline said, she had been much alarmed by the hints he had given her, and by his failing to afford further information concerning the subject of her danger; and—She checked the sentence that hung upon her lips, for she perceived that she was unwarily betraying the interest he held in her heart. There were a few moments of silence, and neither party seemed perfectly at ease. Theodore, at length, renewed the conversation: Suffer me to acquaint you, said he, with the circumstances that withheld me from the interview I solicited; I am anxious to exculpate myself. Without waiting her reply, he proceeded to inform her, that the Marquis had, by some inexplicable means, learned or suspected the subject of their last conversation, and, perceiving his designs were in danger of being counteracted, had taken effectual means to prevent her obtaining further intelligence of them. Adeline immediately recollected that Theodore and herself had been seen in the forest by La Motte, who had, no doubt, suspected their growing intimacy, and had taken care to inform the Marquis how likely he was to find a rival in his friend.

Adeline said she was really worried by the hints he had dropped and by his failure to give her more information about her danger; and—She stopped herself from finishing her thought because she realized she was unintentionally revealing how much he meant to her. There was a few moments of silence, and neither of them seemed completely comfortable. Theodore finally broke the silence: Let me tell you why I couldn’t meet with you as I wanted; I really want to clear my name. Without waiting for her response, he continued to explain that the Marquis had, through some strange means, learned or suspected what they had talked about last time, and realizing that his plans were at risk, had taken effective steps to stop her from getting more information about them. Adeline quickly recalled that Theodore and she had been seen in the forest by La Motte, who had likely suspected their growing closeness and had made sure to inform the Marquis about the potential rival in his friend.

On the day following that on which I last saw you, said Theodore, the Marquis, who is my colonel, commanded me to prepare to attend my regiment, and appointed the following morning for my journey. This sudden order gave me some surprise, but I was not long in doubt concerning the motive for it: a servant of the Marquis, who had been long attached to me, entered my room soon after I had left his lord, and expressing concern at my abrupt departure, dropped some hints respecting it, which excited my surprise. I inquired further, and was confirmed in the suspicions I had for some time entertained of the Marquis's designs upon you.

“On the day after I last saw you,” said Theodore, “the Marquis, my colonel, ordered me to get ready to join my regiment, scheduling my departure for the next morning. This unexpected order surprised me, but I quickly figured out the reason for it: a servant of the Marquis, who has been loyal to me for a long time, came into my room shortly after I left his lordship and, showing concern about my sudden exit, hinted at some things that piqued my curiosity. I pressed for more information and confirmed the suspicions I’d had for some time about the Marquis’s intentions towards you.”

Jaques further informed me, that our late interview had been noticed and communicated to the Marquis. His information had been obtained from a fellow-servant, and it alarmed me so much, that I engaged him to send me intelligence from time to time, concerning the proceedings of the Marquis. I now looked forward to the evening which would bring me again to your presence with increased impatience: but the ingenuity of the Marquis effectually counteracted my endeavours and wishes; he had made an engagement to pass the day at the villa of a nobleman some leagues distant, and, notwithstanding all the excuses I could offer, I was obliged to attend him. Thus compelled to obey, I passed a day of more agitation and anxiety than I had ever before experienced. It was midnight before we returned to the Marquis's chateau. I arose early in the morning to commence my journey, and resolved to seek an interview with you before I left the province.

Jaques also told me that our recent meeting had been noticed and reported to the Marquis. He got this information from another servant, and it worried me so much that I asked him to keep me updated on the Marquis's activities from time to time. I was now eagerly anticipating the evening when I could be with you again, but the cleverness of the Marquis completely thwarted my plans and desires; he had arranged to spend the day at the villa of a nobleman several miles away, and despite all the excuses I tried to make, I had to go with him. Forced to comply, I spent a day filled with more anxiety and unrest than I'd ever felt before. We didn’t get back to the Marquis's chateau until midnight. I got up early the next morning to start my journey, determined to seek a meeting with you before I left the region.

When I entered the breakfast room, I was much surprised to find the Marquis there already, who, commending the beauty of the morning, declared his intention of accompanying me as far as Chineau. Thus unexpectedly deprived of my last hope, my countenance, I believe, expressed what I felt, for the scrutinizing eye of the Marquis instantly changed from seeming carelessness to displeasure. The distance from Chineau to the abbey was at least twelve leagues; yet I had once some intention of returning from thence, when the Marquis should leave me, till I recollected the very remote chance there would even then be of seeing you alone, and also, that if I was observed by La Motte, it would awaken all his suspicions, and caution him against any future plan I might see it expedient to attempt; I therefore proceeded to join my regiment.

When I walked into the breakfast room, I was really surprised to find the Marquis already there. He praised the beauty of the morning and said he planned to accompany me as far as Chineau. Losing my last hope so unexpectedly must have shown on my face because the Marquis's gaze quickly shifted from feigned indifference to annoyance. The distance from Chineau to the abbey was at least twelve leagues. At one point, I thought about going back after the Marquis left me, but then I remembered how unlikely it would be for me to see you alone. Plus, if La Motte spotted me, it would raise all his suspicions and make him cautious about any future plans I might want to pursue. So, I decided to head back to my regiment.

Jaques sent me frequent accounts of the operations of the Marquis; but his manner of relating them was so very confused, that they only served to perplex and distress me. His last letter, however, alarmed me so much, that my residence in quarters became intolerable; and, as I found it impossible to obtain leave of absence, I secretly left the regiment, and concealed myself in a cottage about a mile from the chateau, that I might obtain the earliest intelligence of the Marquis's plans. Jaques brought me daily information, and, at last, an account of the horrible plot which was laid for the following night.

Jaques frequently updated me on the Marquis's activities, but his way of telling the stories was so jumbled that it only confused and disturbed me. However, his last letter frightened me so much that staying in my quarters became unbearable. Since I couldn’t get permission to take time off, I secretly left the regiment and hid in a cottage about a mile away from the chateau, hoping to get the earliest news of the Marquis's plans. Jaques brought me daily updates, and eventually, he informed me about the terrible plot set for the following night.

I saw little probability of warning you of your danger. If I ventured near the abbey, La Motte might discover me, and frustrate every attempt on my part to save you; yet I determined to encounter this risk for the chance of seeing you, and towards evening I was preparing to set out for the forest, when Jaques arrived, and informed me that you was to be brought to the chateau. My plan was thus rendered less difficult. I learned also, that the Marquis, by means of those refinements in luxury, with which he is but too well acquainted, designed, now that his apprehension of losing you was no more, to seduce you to his wishes, and impose upon you by a fictitious marriage. Having obtained information concerning the situation of the room allotted you, I ordered a chaise to be in waiting, and with a design of scaling your window, and conducting you thence, I entered the garden at midnight.

I didn't think I could warn you about the danger you were in. If I got too close to the abbey, La Motte might spot me and ruin any chance I had to save you. Still, I decided to take that risk just for the possibility of seeing you. I was getting ready to head to the forest in the evening when Jaques showed up and told me you were being taken to the chateau. This made my plan a lot easier. I also found out that the Marquis, being well-versed in the finer points of luxury, intended to seduce you now that he no longer feared losing you, and trick you with a fake marriage. After learning about the location of the room assigned to you, I arranged for a carriage to be waiting and planned to climb through your window to help you escape, so I entered the garden at midnight.

Theodore having ceased to speak:—I know not how words can express my sense of the obligations I owe you, said Adeline, or my gratitude for your generosity.

Theodore stopped speaking. “I don’t know how to put into words how much I appreciate everything you’ve done for me,” Adeline said, “or how grateful I am for your kindness.”

Ah! call it not generosity, he replied, it was love. He paused. Adeline was silent. After some moments of expressive emotion, he resumed; But pardon this abrupt declaration; yet why do I call it abrupt, since my actions have already disclosed what my lips have never, till this instant, ventured to acknowledge. He paused again. Adeline was still silent. Yet do me the justice to believe, that I am sensible of the impropriety of pleading my love at present, and have been surprised into this confession. I promise also to forbear from a renewal of the subject, till you are placed in a situation where you may freely accept, or refuse, the sincere regards I offer you. If I could, however, now be certain that I possess your esteem, it would relieve me from much anxiety.

Ah! Don’t call it generosity, he replied; it was love. He paused. Adeline was silent. After a moment of deep emotion, he continued; But forgive this sudden confession; yet why do I call it sudden, since my actions have already revealed what my words have never dared to admit until now. He paused again. Adeline remained silent. But please believe that I realize how inappropriate it is to express my love right now, and I've been caught up in this confession. I also promise to hold off on bringing up this topic again until you’re in a position where you can freely accept or reject the genuine feelings I have for you. However, if I could know for sure that I have your respect, it would ease a lot of my worries.

Adeline felt surprised that he should doubt her esteem for him, after the signal and generous service he had rendered her; but she was not yet acquainted with the timidity of love. Do you then, said she in a tremulous voice, believe me ungrateful? It is impossible I can consider your friendly interference in my behalf without esteeming you. Theodore immediately took her hand and pressed it to his lips in silence. They were both too much agitated to converse, and continued to travel for some miles without exchanging a word.

Adeline was shocked that he would doubt her feelings for him after the significant and generous help he had given her; but she still didn't understand the hesitance that comes with love. "So, do you really think I'm ungrateful?" she asked, her voice shaky. "I can't possibly see your kind support on my behalf without holding you in high regard." Theodore instantly took her hand and kissed it without saying a word. They were both too moved to talk and traveled for several miles in silence.







CHAPTER XII

And hope smiled enchantingly, waving her golden.
hair,
She had been singing longer—but, with a frown,
Revenge came quickly.
Ode to the Emotions.

The dawn of morning now trembled through the clouds, when the travellers stopped at a small town to change horses. Theodore entreated Adeline to alight and take some refreshment, and to this she at length consented. But the people of the inn were not yet up, and it was some time before the knocking and the roaring of the postillion could rouse them.

The morning light was just starting to break through the clouds when the travelers stopped at a small town to switch horses. Theodore urged Adeline to get off and grab some food, and after a while, she finally agreed. However, the inn's staff wasn't awake yet, and it took quite a bit of knocking and shouting from the postillion to wake them up.

Having taken some slight refreshment, Theodore and Adeline returned to the carriage. The only subject upon which Theodore could have spoke with interest, delicacy forbade him at this time to notice; and after pointing out some beautiful scenery on the road, and making other efforts to support a conversation, he relapsed into silence. His mind, though still anxious, was now relieved from the apprehension that had long oppressed it. When he first saw Adeline, her loveliness made a deep impression on his heart: there was a sentiment in her beauty, which his mind immediately acknowledged, and the effect of which, her manners and conversation had afterwards confirmed. Her charms appeared to him like those since so finely described by an English poet:

Having had a light snack, Theodore and Adeline got back into the carriage. The only topic that Theodore could have discussed with genuine interest was something he couldn't bring himself to mention at that moment; after pointing out some beautiful scenery along the way and making other attempts to keep the conversation going, he fell silent. Although he was still anxious, he felt a weight lifted from the worries that had long burdened him. When he first saw Adeline, her beauty left a strong impression on his heart: there was something in her looks that his mind instantly recognized, and the effect of which was later reinforced by her manners and conversation. Her allure reminded him of the captivating descriptions by an English poet:

Oh! Have you seen, covered in the morning dew,
Does the budding rose show off its young bloom?
When its fresh colors first come into view.
It shrinks back and hardly trusts the brightness of day.
So gentle, so fragile, so sweet she arrived,
The youthful glow of her blush is just beginning to appear on her cheek.
I stared, I sighed, I felt the gentle spark,
I felt a deep emotional ache and grew weak with desire.

A knowledge of her destitute condition and of the dangers with which she was environed, had awakened in his heart the tenderest touch of pity, and assisted the change of admiration into love. The distress he suffered, when compelled to leave her exposed to these dangers, without being able to warn her of them, can only be imagined. During his residence with his regiment, his mind was the constant prey of terrors, which he saw no means of combating but by returning to the neighbourhood of the abbey where he might obtain early intelligence of the Marquis's schemes, and be ready to give his assistance to Adeline.

Aware of her desperate situation and the dangers surrounding her, he felt a deep pang of pity that transformed his admiration into love. The distress he felt when he had to leave her exposed to these threats, unable to warn her, is something only he could truly comprehend. While he was with his regiment, he was constantly plagued by fears, knowing that the only way to combat them was to return to the area around the abbey, where he could gather information about the Marquis's plans and be ready to help Adeline.

Leave of absence he could not request, without betraying his design where most he dreaded it should be known; and at length with a generous rashness, which though it defied law was impelled by virtue, he secretly quitted his regiment. The progress of the Marquis's plan he had observed with trembling anxiety, till the night that was to decide the fate of Adeline and himself roused all his mind to action, and involved him in a tumult of hope and fear, horror and expectation.

He couldn't ask for a leave of absence without revealing his plan, which he feared others would discover. Eventually, with a boldness driven by virtue, he secretly left his regiment. He had watched the Marquis's scheme with anxious anticipation, and when the night came that would determine the fate of Adeline and himself, it ignited a storm of hope and fear, horror and expectation within him.

Never till the present hour had he ventured to believe she was in safety. Now the distance they had gained from the chateau without perceiving any pursuit, increased his best hopes. It was impossible he could sit by the side of his beloved Adeline, and receive assurances of her gratitude and esteem, without venturing to hope for her love. He congratulated himself as her preserver, and anticipated scenes of happiness when she should be under the protection of his family. The clouds of misery and apprehension disappeared from his mind, and left it to the sunshine of joy. When a shadow of fear would sometimes return, or when he recollected with compunction the circumstances under which he had left his regiment, stationed as it was upon the frontiers, and in a time of war, he looked at Adeline, and her countenance with instantaneous magic beamed peace upon his heart.

Never before had he dared to believe she was safe. Now that they had put some distance between themselves and the chateau without noticing any pursuit, his hopes grew stronger. It was impossible for him to sit next to his beloved Adeline, hearing her express her gratitude and appreciation, without daring to hope for her love. He congratulated himself for saving her and envisioned happy times ahead when she would be under his family's protection. The dark clouds of misery and worry faded from his mind, leaving room for the sunshine of joy. Whenever a flicker of fear returned, or when he felt guilt about leaving his regiment stationed on the frontiers during a time of war, he would look at Adeline, and her face instantly filled his heart with peace.

But Adeline had a subject of anxiety from which Theodore was exempt: the prospect of her future days was involved in darkness and uncertainty. Again she was going to claim the bounty of strangers—again going to encounter the uncertainty of their kindness; exposed to the hardships of dependance, or to the difficulty of earning a precarious livelihood. These anticipations obscured the joy occasioned by her escape, and by the affection which the conduct and avowal of Theodore had exhibited. The delicacy of his behaviour, in forbearing to take advantage of her present situation to plead his love, increased her esteem and flattered her pride.

But Adeline had a source of worry that Theodore didn’t have: her future was filled with darkness and uncertainty. She was once again about to rely on the generosity of strangers—facing the unpredictability of their kindness; vulnerable to the struggles of dependence or the challenges of making a shaky living. These thoughts overshadowed the happiness she felt from her escape and the affection that Theodore had shown through his actions and words. The way he acted, not taking advantage of her current situation to profess his love, only made her admire him more and boosted her confidence.

Adeline was lost in meditation upon subjects like these, when the postillion stopped the carriage, and pointing to part of a road which wound down the side of a hill they had passed, said there were several horsemen in pursuit! Theodore immediately ordered him to proceed with all possible speed, and to strike out of the great road into the first obscure way that offered. The postillion cracked his whip in the air, and set off as if he was flying for life. In the meanwhile Theodore endeavoured to reanimate Adeline, who was sinking with terror, and who now thought, if she could only escape from the Marquis, she could defy the future.

Adeline was deep in thought about things like this when the postillion stopped the carriage and pointed to a part of the road that twisted down the side of a hill they had just passed, saying there were several horsemen chasing them! Theodore immediately told him to go as fast as possible and to take the first side path that came up. The postillion cracked his whip in the air and took off like he was racing for his life. Meanwhile, Theodore tried to lift Adeline's spirits, who was overwhelmed with fear and thought that if she could just get away from the Marquis, she could take on whatever was next.

Presently they struck into a by lane screened and overshadowed by thick trees. Theodore again looked from the window, but the closing boughs prevented his seeing far enough to determine whether the pursuit continued. For his sake Adeline endeavoured to disguise her emotions. This lane, said Theodore, will certainly lead to a town or village, and then we have nothing to apprehend: for, though my single arm could not defend you against the number of our pursuers, I nave no doubt of being able to interest some of the inhabitants in our behalf.

Right now, they turned onto a narrow lane shaded by thick trees. Theodore looked out the window again, but the closing branches blocked his view, making it hard to tell if they were still being followed. Adeline tried to hide her feelings for his sake. "This lane," Theodore said, "will definitely lead us to a town or village, and then we'll be safe. Even though I couldn’t defend you by myself against all our pursuers, I’m sure I could get some locals to help us."

Adeline appeared to be comforted by the hope this reflection suggested: and Theodore again looked back: but the windings of the road closed his view, and the rattling of the wheels overcame every other sound. At length he called to the postillion to stop; and having listened attentively without perceiving any sound of horses, he began to hope they were now in safety. Do you know whither this road leads? said he. The postillion answered that he did not, but he saw some houses through the trees at a distance, and believed that it led to them. This was most welcome intelligence to Theodore, who looked forward and perceived the houses. The postillion set off. Fear nothing, my adored Adeline, said he, you are now safe; I will part with you but with life. Adeline sighed, not for herself only, but for the danger to which Theodore might be exposed.

Adeline seemed comforted by the hope this thought brought her, and Theodore looked back again. But the twists in the road blocked his view, and the clattering of the wheels drowned out every other sound. Finally, he called to the driver to stop. After listening carefully and not hearing any horse sounds, he began to feel hopeful that they were now safe. "Do you know where this road leads?" he asked. The driver replied that he didn’t know, but he could see some houses through the trees in the distance and thought the road led to them. This news was very welcome to Theodore, who looked ahead and saw the houses. The driver set off again. "Don’t worry, my beloved Adeline," he said, "you are safe now; I will only let you go with my life." Adeline sighed, not just for herself, but also for the danger Theodore might be facing.

They had continued to travel in this manner for near half an hour, when they arrived at a small village, and soon after stopped at an inn, the best the place afforded. As Theodore lifted Adeline from the chaise, he again entreated her to dismiss her apprehensions, and spoke with a tenderness to which she could reply only by a smile that ill concealed her anxiety. After ordering refreshments, he went out to speak with the landlord; but had scarcely left the room when Adeline observed a party of horsemen enter the inn yard, and she had no doubt these were the persons from whom they fled. The faces of two of them only were turned towards her, but she thought the figure of one of the others not unlike that of the Marquis.

They had been traveling this way for almost half an hour when they reached a small village and soon stopped at the best inn available. As Theodore helped Adeline out of the carriage, he urged her again to put aside her worries and spoke with a tenderness that she could only respond to with a smile that barely hid her anxiety. After he ordered some refreshments, he stepped outside to talk to the landlord; but as soon as he left the room, Adeline noticed a group of horsemen entering the inn yard, and she was sure these were the people they were trying to escape from. Only two of their faces were visible to her, but she thought one of the others looked a lot like the Marquis.

Her heart was chilled, and for some moments the powers of reason forsook her. Her first design was to seek concealments but while she considered the means, one of the horsemen looked up to the window near, which she stood, and speaking to his companions they entered the inn. To quit the room without being observed was impossible; to remain there, alone and unprotected as she was, would almost be equally dangerous. She paced the room in an agony of terror, often secretly calling on Theodore, and often wondering he did not return. These were moments of indescribable suffering. A loud and tumultuous sound of voices now arose from a distant part of the house, and she soon, distinguished the words of the disputants. I arrest you in the king's name, said one; and bid you, at your peril, attempt to go from hence, except under a guard.

Her heart felt cold, and for a few moments, she lost her ability to think clearly. Her first instinct was to look for a place to hide, but as she thought about her options, one of the horsemen glanced up at the nearby window where she stood and spoke to his companions before they entered the inn. It was impossible to leave the room without being seen; staying there alone and vulnerable was just as risky. She paced the room in sheer panic, often silently calling for Theodore and wondering why he hadn’t come back. These were moments of unbearable agony. Suddenly, a loud and chaotic noise of voices erupted from a distant part of the house, and she quickly recognized the words of the argument. “I arrest you in the king's name,” one voice said, “and I warn you, at your own risk, to try to leave here without a guard.”

The next minute Adeline heard the voice of Theodore in reply. I do not mean to dispute the king's orders, said he, and give you my word of honour not to go without you; but first unhand me, that I may return to that room; I have a friend there whom I wish to speak with. To this proposal they at first objected, considering it merely as an excuse to obtain an opportunity of escaping; but after much altercation and entreaty his request was granted. He sprang forward towards the room where Adeline remained; and while a sergeant and corporal followed him to the door, the two soldiers went out into the yard of the inn to watch the windows of the apartment.

The next minute, Adeline heard Theodore's voice in reply. "I don’t mean to argue with the king's orders," he said, "and I promise you that I won’t leave without you; but first let me go back to that room, as I have a friend there I want to talk to." Initially, they objected to this proposal, thinking it was just an excuse to find a way to escape; but after a lot of discussion and pleading, they agreed to his request. He rushed toward the room where Adeline was, and while a sergeant and corporal followed him to the door, the two soldiers went outside into the inn's yard to keep an eye on the apartment's windows.

With an eager hand he unclosed the door; but Adeline hastened not to meet him, for she had fainted almost at the beginning of the dispute. Theodore called loudly for assistance; and the mistress of the inn soon appeared with her stock of remedies, which were administered in vain to Adeline, who remained insensible, and by breathing alone gave signs of her existence. The distress of Theodore was in the mean time heightened by the appearance of the officers, who, laughing at the discovery of his pretended friend, declared they could wait no longer. Saying this, they would have forced him from the inanimate form of Adeline, over whom he hung in unutterable anguish, when fiercely turning upon them he drew his sword, and swore no power on earth should force him away before the lady recovered.

With eager hands, he opened the door; but Adeline didn’t rush to meet him, as she had fainted almost at the start of the argument. Theodore called out loudly for help, and the innkeeper quickly arrived with her supplies of remedies, which were applied to Adeline in vain, as she lay unresponsive, only showing signs of life through her breathing. Meanwhile, Theodore's distress grew as the officers appeared, laughing at the revelation of his fake friend, stating they could wait no longer. Saying this, they attempted to pull him away from Adeline's lifeless form, over which he hovered in deep anguish. Turning fiercely toward them, he drew his sword and swore that no force on earth would make him leave until the lady regained consciousness.

The men, enraged by the action and the determined air of Theodore, exclaimed, Do you oppose the king's orders? and advanced to seize him: but he presented the point of his sword, and bade them at their peril approach. One of them immediately drew. Theodore kept his guard, but did not advance. I demand only to wait here till the lady recovers, said he;—you understand the alternative. The man already exasperated by the opposition of Theodore, regarded the latter part of his speech as a threat, and became determined not to give up the point: he pressed forward; and while his comrade called the men from the yard, Theodore wounded him slightly in the shoulder, and received himself the stroke of a sabre on his head.

The men, furious about Theodore's actions and his resolute attitude, shouted, "Are you challenging the king's orders?" and moved in to grab him. But he pointed his sword at them and warned them to stay back at their own risk. One of them quickly drew his weapon. Theodore held his ground but didn’t move forward. "I just want to wait here until the lady gets better," he said; "you know what happens if you don't." The man, already irritated by Theodore's defiance, took that last part of his statement as a threat and was determined not to back down. He advanced, and while his friend called the men from the yard, Theodore managed to graze him on the shoulder, but took a sabre strike to his head in return.

The blood gushed furiously from the wound: Theodore, staggering to a chair, sunk into it, just as the remainder of the party entered the room; and Adeline unclosed her eyes to see him ghastly pale, and covered with blood. She uttered an involuntary scream, and exclaiming, They have murdered him, nearly relapsed. At the sound of her voice he raised his head, and smiling held out his hand to her. I am not much hurt said he faintly, and shall soon be better, if indeed you are recovered. She hastened towards him, and gave her hand. Is nobody gone for a surgeon? said she with a look of agony. Do not be alarmed, said Theodore, I am not so ill as you imagine. The room was now crowded with people, whom the report of the affray had now brought together; among these was a man who acted as physician, apothecary, and surgeon to the village, and who now stepped forward to the assistance of Theodore.

The blood poured out from the wound: Theodore, struggling to reach a chair, slumped into it just as the rest of the group entered the room. Adeline opened her eyes to see him shockingly pale and covered in blood. She let out an involuntary scream, exclaiming, "They’ve killed him," nearly collapsing. At the sound of her voice, he lifted his head and, smiling, extended his hand to her. "I’m not that hurt," he said weakly, "and I’ll soon be fine, if you’re okay." She hurried over and took his hand. "Has nobody gone for a doctor?" she asked, her face full of worry. "Don't panic," Theodore replied, "I’m not as bad off as you think." The room was now filled with people drawn by the news of the altercation; among them was a man who served as the village doctor, pharmacist, and surgeon, who stepped forward to help Theodore.

Having examined the wound, he declined giving his opinion, but ordered the patient to be immediately put to bed; to which the officers objected, alleging that it was their duty to carry him to the regiment. That cannot be done without great danger to his life, replied the doctor; and—

Having looked at the wound, he refused to share his opinion but instructed that the patient be taken to bed right away. The officers disagreed, claiming it was their responsibility to bring him back to the regiment. "That can't be done without putting his life at serious risk," the doctor replied; and—

Oh; his life, said the sergeant; we have nothing to do with that, we must do our duty. Adeline, who had hitherto stood in trembling anxiety, could now no longer be silent. Since the surgeon, said she, has declared it his opinion that this gentleman cannot be removed in his present condition without endangering his life, you will remember that if he dies, yours will probably answer it.

Oh, his life, the sergeant said; that’s not our concern, we have to do our duty. Adeline, who had been standing there anxiously, could no longer keep quiet. Since the surgeon has stated that this gentleman can’t be moved in his current state without risking his life, you should keep in mind that if he dies, you will likely be responsible for it.

Yes, rejoined the surgeon, who was unwilling to relinquish his patient; I declare before these witnesses, that he cannot be removed with safety: you will do well therefore to consider the consequences. He has received a very dangerous wound, which requires the most careful treatment, and the event is even then doubtful; but if he travels, a fever may ensue, and the wound will then be mortal. Theodore heard this sentence with composure, but Adeline could with difficulty conceal the anguish of her heart: she roused all her fortitude to suppress the tears that struggled in her eyes; and though she wished to interest the humanity or to awaken the fears of the men in behalf of their unfortunate prisoner, she dared not to trust her voice with utterance.

“Yes,” replied the surgeon, who was reluctant to give up his patient. “I swear in front of these witnesses that he cannot be moved safely. You would be wise to think about the consequences. He has a very serious wound that needs careful treatment, and even then the outcome is uncertain; but if he travels, he could develop a fever, and then the wound could become fatal.” Theodore listened to this statement calmly, but Adeline struggled to hide the pain in her heart. She summoned all her strength to hold back the tears that were threatening to fall, and although she wanted to appeal to the compassion or stir the fears of the men on behalf of their unfortunate prisoner, she couldn’t trust her voice to speak.

From this internal struggle she was relieved by the compassion of the people who filled the room, and becoming clamorous in the cause of Theodore, declared the officers would be guilty of murder if they removed him. Why he must die at any rate, said the sergeant, for quitting his post, and drawing upon me in the execution of the king's orders. A faint sickness seized the heart of Adeline, and she leaned for support against Theodore's chair, whose concern for himself was for a while suspended in his anxiety for her. He supported her with his arm, and forcing a smile, said in a low voice, which she only could hear. This is a misrepresentation; I doubt not, when the affair is inquired into, it will be settled without any serious consequences.

From her internal struggle, she found relief in the compassion of the people filling the room. They grew loud in their support for Theodore, declaring that the officers would be guilty of murder if they took him away. “He must die anyway,” said the sergeant, “for leaving his post and drawing on me while carrying out the king's orders.” A wave of faint sickness washed over Adeline, and she leaned for support against Theodore's chair, whose worry for himself temporarily faded as he focused on her. He supported her with his arm and, forcing a smile, spoke in a low voice that only she could hear. “This is a misunderstanding; I’m sure that when this is looked into, it will be resolved without any serious consequences.”

Adeline knew these words were uttered only to console her, and therefore did not give much credit to them, though Theodore continued to give her similar assurances of his safety. Meanwhile the mob, whose compassion for him had been gradually excited by the obduracy of the officer, were now roused to pity and indignation by the seeming certainty of his punishment, and the unfeeling manner in which it had been denounced. In a short time they became so much enraged that, partly from a dread of further consequences, and partly from the shame which their charges of cruelty occasioned, the sergeant consented that he should be put to bed, till his commanding officer might direct what was to be done. Adeline's joy at this circumstance overcame for a moment the sense of her misfortunes and of her situation.

Adeline knew these words were just meant to comfort her, so she didn’t really believe them, even though Theodore kept assuring her he was safe. Meanwhile, the crowd, whose sympathy for him had been gradually stirred by the officer's stubbornness, was now filled with pity and anger over the apparent certainty of his punishment and the cold way it had been announced. Before long, they were so furious that, partly because they were afraid of what might happen next and partly because of the shame their accusations of cruelty brought them, the sergeant agreed to let him rest until his commanding officer decided what to do. Adeline's happiness about this situation momentarily overshadowed her feelings of misfortune and despair.

She waited in an adjoining room the sentence of the surgeon, who was now engaged in examining the wound; and though the accident would in any other circumstances have severely afflicted her, she now lamented it the more, because she considered herself as the cause of it, and because the misfortune by illustrating more fully the affection of her lover, drew him closer to her heart, and seemed therefore to sharpen the poignancy of her affliction. The dreadful assertion that Theodore, should he recover, would be punished with death, she scarcely dared to consider, but endeavoured to believe that it was no more than a cruel exaggeration of his antagonist.

She waited in a nearby room for the surgeon's verdict, who was busy examining the wound. Even though the accident would have normally upset her deeply, she felt even worse now because she blamed herself for it. The misfortune, by highlighting her lover's affection, drew him closer to her heart and intensified her pain. The horrifying idea that Theodore could face execution if he survived was almost too much for her to bear, so she tried to convince herself that it was just a cruel exaggeration from his opponent.

Upon the whole, Theodore's present danger, together with the attendant circumstances, awakened all her tenderness, and discovered to her the true state of her affections. The graceful form, the noble, intelligent, countenance, and the engaging manners which she had at first admired in Theodore, became afterwards more interesting by that strength of thought and elegance of sentiment exhibited in his conversation. His conduct, since her escape, had excited her warmest gratitude; and the danger which he had now encountered in her behalf, called forth her tenderness, and heightened it into love. The veil was removed from her heart, and she saw for the first time its genuine emotions.

Overall, Theodore's current danger, along with everything happening around it, brought out all her compassion and revealed her true feelings. The charming figure, the noble, intelligent face, and the appealing demeanor that she initially admired in Theodore became even more captivating because of the depth of thought and elegance of sentiment he showed in their conversations. His actions since her escape had stirred her deepest gratitude, and the risk he now faced for her sake brought out her affection and elevated it into love. The shield over her heart was lifted, and for the first time, she recognized her true emotions.

The surgeon at length came out of Theodore's chamber into the room where Adeline was waiting to speak with him. She inquired concerning the state of his wound. You are a relation of the gentleman's, I presume, Madam; his sister, perhaps? The question vexed and embarrassed her, and without answering it she repeated her inquiry. Perhaps, Madam, you are more nearly related, pursued the surgeon, seeming also to disregard her question,—perhaps you are his wife? Adeline blushed, and was about to reply, but he continued his speech. The interest you take in his welfare is at least very flattering, and I would almost consent to exchange conditions with him, were I sure of receiving such tender compassion from so charming a lady. Saying this, he bowed to the ground. Adeline assuming a very reserved air, said, Now, Sir, that you have concluded your compliment, you will perhaps attend to my question; I have inquired how you have left your patient.

The surgeon finally stepped out of Theodore's room and into the one where Adeline was waiting to talk to him. She asked about the condition of his wound. "You must be a relative of the gentleman's, I assume, ma’am; perhaps his sister?" The question annoyed and flustered her, and without answering it, she repeated her inquiry. "Maybe you’re more closely related," the surgeon continued, seemingly ignoring her question—"could you be his wife?" Adeline blushed and was about to respond, but he kept going. "The interest you show in his well-being is certainly flattering, and I would almost trade places with him if I knew I’d receive such tender care from such a charming lady." With that, he bowed deeply. Adeline, maintaining a very composed demeanor, replied, "Now, sir, that you've finished your compliment, perhaps you can answer my question; I asked how your patient is doing."

That, Madam, is perhaps a question very difficult to be resolved; and it is likewise a very disagreeable office to pronounce ill news—I fear he will die. The surgeon opened his snuff-box and presented it to Adeline. Die! she exclaimed in a faint voice, die!

That, ma'am, is probably a question that's really hard to answer; and it’s also a really unpleasant task to deliver bad news—I’m afraid he will die. The surgeon opened his snuffbox and offered it to Adeline. “Die!” she exclaimed in a faint voice, “die!”

Do not be alarmed, Madam, resumed the surgeon, observing her grow pale, do not be alarmed. It is possible that the wound may not have reached the——, he stammered, in that case the——, stammering again, is not affected; and if so, the interior membranes of the brain are not touched: in this case the wound may perhaps escape inflammation, and the patient may possibly recover. But if, on the other hand——

Do not worry, ma'am, the surgeon continued, noticing her go pale, don’t be alarmed. It’s possible that the wound may not have reached the——, he hesitated, in which case the——, stumbling over his words again, is not affected; and if that’s the case, the internal membranes of the brain are untouched: in which case the wound might avoid infection, and the patient could potentially recover. But if, on the other hand——

I beseech you, Sir, to speak intelligibly, interrupted Adeline, and not to trifle with my anxiety. Do you really believe him in danger?

I urge you, sir, to speak clearly, interrupted Adeline, and not to make light of my anxiety. Do you really think he's in danger?

In danger, Madam, exclaimed the surgeon, in danger! yes, certainly, in very great danger. Saying this, he walked away with an air of chagrin and displeasure. Adeline remained for some moments in the room, in an excess of sorrow, which she found it impossible to restrain; and then drying her tears, and endeavouring to compose her countenance, she went to inquire for the mistress of the inn, to whom she sent a waiter. After expecting her in vain for some time, she rang the bell, and sent another message somewhat more pressing. Still the hostess did not appear; and Adeline at length went herself down stairs, where she found her, surrounded by a number of people, relating, with a loud voice and various gesticulations, the particulars of the late accident. Perceiving Adeline, she called out, Oh! here is Mademoiselle herself; and the eyes of the assembly were immediately turned upon her. Adeline, whom the crowd prevented from approaching the hostess, now beckoned her, and was going to withdraw; but the landlady, eager in the pursuit of her story, disregarded the signal. In vain did Adeline endeavour to catch her eye; it glanced every where but upon her, who was unwilling to attract the further notice of the crowd by calling out.

"In danger, Madam!" the surgeon exclaimed. "Yes, certainly, in very great danger." With that, he walked away, clearly upset. Adeline stood in the room for a few moments, overwhelmed with sorrow that she couldn't contain. After drying her tears and trying to compose herself, she went to look for the innkeeper, sending a waiter to find her. After waiting for some time without success, she rang the bell and sent a more urgent message. Still, the hostess didn’t show up, so Adeline finally went downstairs herself, where she found the innkeeper surrounded by a crowd, loudly sharing the details of the recent accident. When she saw Adeline, she exclaimed, "Oh! Here’s Mademoiselle herself!" and all eyes in the room turned to her. Adeline, unable to get closer to the hostess because of the crowd, gestured for her to come over but was ignored as the landlady continued her story. Adeline tried in vain to catch her eye, but it darted everywhere except to her, and she didn’t want to get the crowd's attention by calling out.

It is a great pity, to be sure, that he should be shot, said the landlady, he's such a handsome man; but they say he certainly will if he recovers. Poor gentleman! he will very likely not suffer though, for the doctor says he will never go out of this house alive. Adeline now spoke to a man who stood near, and desiring he would tell the hostess she wished to speak with her, left the place.

It’s really unfortunate that he got shot, the landlady said; he’s such a good-looking guy. But they say he probably will if he gets better. Poor guy! He most likely won’t even feel pain, though, because the doctor says he won’t leave this house alive. Adeline then talked to a man standing nearby and asked him to tell the hostess she wanted to speak with her, before leaving the place.

In about ten minutes the landlady appeared. Alas! Mademoiselle, said she, your brother is in a sad condition; they fear he won't get over. Adeline inquired whether there was any other medical person in the town than the surgeon whom she had seen. Lord, Madam, this is a rare healthy place; we have little need of medicine people here; such an accident never happened in it before. The doctor has been here ten years, but there's very bad encouragement for his trade, and I believe he's poor enough himself. One of the sort's quite enough for us. Adeline interrupted her to ask some questions concerning Theodore, whom the hostess had attended to his chamber. She inquired how he had borne the dressing of the wound, and whether he appeared to be easier after the operation; questions to which the hostess gave no very satisfactory answers. She now inquired whether there was any surgeon in the neighbourhood of the town, and was told there was not.

In about ten minutes, the landlady showed up. Oh no! she said, your brother is in a bad condition; they’re worried he won’t pull through. Adeline asked if there was any other doctor in town besides the surgeon she had seen. Goodness, Ma'am, this is a really healthy place; we hardly ever need doctors here; nothing like this has happened before. The doctor has been around for ten years, but there’s very little demand for his services, and I think he’s pretty poor himself. One of his kind is plenty for us. Adeline interrupted to ask some questions about Theodore, whom the landlady had taken to his room. She wanted to know how he handled the wound dressing and if he seemed to feel better after the operation; questions the landlady didn’t answer very satisfactorily. She then asked if there was any surgeon nearby, and was told there wasn’t.

The distress visible in Adeline's countenance seemed to excite the compassion of the landlady, who now endeavoured to console her in the best manner she was able. She advised her to send for her friends, and offered to procure a messenger. Adeline sighed, and said it was unnecessary. I don't know, Ma'mselle, what you may think necessary, continued the hostess; but I know I should think it very hard to die in a strange place, with no relations near me, and I dare say the poor gentleman thinks so himself; and besides, who is to pay for his funeral if he dies? Adeline begged she would be silent; and desiring that every proper attention might be given, she promised her a reward for her trouble, and requested pen and ink immediately. Ay, to be sure, Ma'mselle, that is the proper way; why your friends would never forgive you if you did not acquaint them; I know it by myself. And as for taking care of him, he shall have every thing the house affords; and I warrant there is never a better inn in the province, though the town is none of the biggest. Adeline was obliged to repeat her request for pen and ink, before the loquacious hostess would quit the room.

The sadness on Adeline's face seemed to stir the landlady's compassion, who tried her best to comfort her. She suggested that Adeline call for her friends and offered to find a messenger. Adeline sighed and said it wasn't necessary. "I don't know, Ma'mselle, what you might think is necessary," the hostess continued, "but I personally would find it quite hard to die in a strange place without any family around, and I'm sure the poor gentleman feels the same way; besides, who would pay for his funeral if he passes away?" Adeline asked her to be quiet and promised a reward for her help if she ensured that everything was taken care of. She then requested pen and ink immediately. "Of course, Ma'mselle, that’s the right approach; your friends would never forgive you if you didn’t let them know; I know that from experience. And as for taking care of him, he’ll have everything the house can provide; I bet there isn't a better inn in the province, even if the town isn’t the largest." Adeline had to repeat her request for pen and ink before the talkative hostess would leave the room.

The thought of sending for Theodore's friends had, in the tumult of the late scenes, never occurred to her, and she was now somewhat consoled by the prospect of comfort which it opened for him. When the pen and ink were brought, she wrote the following note to Theodore:—

The idea of calling for Theodore's friends had, in the chaos of the recent events, never crossed her mind, and she now felt a bit more at ease with the potential comfort it offered him. Once the pen and ink were brought to her, she wrote the following note to Theodore:—

"In your present condition, you have need of every comfort that can be procured you; and surely there is no cordial more valuable in illness than the presence of a friend. Suffer me, therefore, to acquaint your family with your situation: it will be a satisfaction to me, and, I doubt not, a consolation to you."

"In your current state, you need every comfort available to you; and there’s nothing more comforting during illness than having a friend by your side. So, let me inform your family about your situation: it will bring me satisfaction, and I’m sure it will be a comfort to you."

In a short time after she had sent the note, she received a message from Theodore, entreating most respectfully, but earnestly, to see her for a few minutes. She immediately went to his chamber, and found her worst apprehensions confirmed, by the languor expressed in his countenance; while the shock she received, together with her struggle to disguise her emotions, almost overcame her. I thank you for this goodness, said he, extending his hand, which she received, and sitting down by the bed, burst into a flood of tears. When her agitation had somewhat subsided, and, removing her handkerchief from her eyes, she again looked on Theodore, a smile of the tenderest love expressed his sense of the interest she took in his welfare, and administered a temporary relief to her heart.

In a short time after she had sent the note, she received a message from Theodore, politely but earnestly asking to see her for a few minutes. She immediately went to his room and found her worst fears confirmed by the weariness on his face; the shock she felt, along with her struggle to hide her emotions, nearly overwhelmed her. "Thank you for your kindness," he said, extending his hand, which she took. Sitting down by the bed, she burst into tears. Once her emotions calmed down a bit, and after she wiped her eyes, she looked at Theodore again. A smile full of deep love showed how much he appreciated her concern for his well-being and gave her some temporary relief.

Forgive this weakness, said she; my spirits have of late been so variously agitated—Theodore interrupted her: These tears are more flattering to my heart. But for my sake endeavour to support yourself: I doubt not I shall soon be better; the surgeon—

"Please excuse my weakness," she said. "I've been feeling so mixed up lately." Theodore interrupted her, "These tears make my heart swell. But for my sake, try to stay strong. I’m sure I’ll be feeling better soon; the surgeon—"

I do not like him, said Adeline; but tell me how you find yourself? He assured her that he was now much easier than he had yet been; and mentioning her kind note, he led to the subject on account of which he had solicited to see her. My family, said he, reside at a great distance from hence, and I well know their affection is such, that, were they informed of my situation, no consideration, however reasonable, could prevent their coming to my assistance: but before they can arrive, their presence will probably be unnecessary (Adeline looked earnestly at him.) I should probably be well, pursued he, smiling, before a letter could reach them; it would, therefore, occasion them unnecessary pain, and moreover a fruitless journey. For your sake, Adeline, I could wish they were here; but a few days will more fully show the consequences of my wound: let us wait at least till then, and be directed by circumstances.

"I don't like him," Adeline said. "But how are you doing?" He assured her that he was feeling much better than he had before. Mentioning her thoughtful note, he brought up the reason he wanted to see her. "My family," he said, "lives quite a distance away, and I know their love for me is strong enough that if they were aware of my situation, nothing could keep them from coming to help me. But by the time they arrive, I’ll probably be fine." Adeline looked at him intently. "I should be okay," he continued with a smile, "by the time a letter gets to them. It would only cause them unnecessary worry and a pointless trip. For your sake, Adeline, I wish they were here; but let’s wait a few days to see how my injury heals. Let's go with the flow and see what happens."

Adeline forbore to press the subject further, and turned to one more immediately interesting. I much wish, said she, that you had a more able surgeon; you know the geography of the province better than I do; are we in the neighbourhood of any town likely to afford you other advice?

Adeline chose not to push the topic any further and shifted to a more pressing matter. "I really wish you had a better surgeon," she said. "You know the area better than I do; are we near any town that could provide you with additional help?"

I believe not, said he; and this is an affair of little consequence, for my wound is so inconsiderable that a very moderate share of skill may suffice to cure it. But why, my beloved Adeline, do you give way to this anxiety? why suffer yourself to be disturbed by this tendency to forebode the worst? I am willing, perhaps presumptuously so, to attribute it to your kindness; and suffer me to assure you, that while it excites my gratitude, it increases my tenderest esteem. O Adeline! since you wish my speedy recovery, let me see you composed: while I believe you to be unhappy I cannot be well.—She assured him she would endeavour to be at least tranquil; and fearing the conversation, if prolonged, would be prejudicial to him, she left him to repose.

"I don't believe so," he said; "and this matter is not very serious, since my injury is so minor that a small amount of skill should be enough to heal it. But why, my dear Adeline, are you letting this worry you? Why allow yourself to be upset by this tendency to think the worst? I might be presumptuous, but I want to think it’s because of your care for me; and let me assure you that while this makes me grateful, it deepens my fondest affection for you. Oh Adeline! Since you want me to recover quickly, please try to be calm: as long as I feel you’re unhappy, I won’t be well." She promised him she would try to be at least at peace, and worried that carrying on the conversation would be harmful to him, she left him to rest.

As she turned out of the gallery she met the hostess, upon whom certain words of Adeline had operated as a talisman, transforming neglect and impertinence into officious civility. She came to inquire whether the gentleman above stairs had every thing that he liked, for she was sure it was her endeavour that he should. I have got him a nurse, Ma'mselle, to attend him, and I dare say she will do very well; but I will look to that, for I shall not mind helping him myself sometimes. Poor gentleman! how patiently he bears it! One would not think now that he believes he is going to die; yet the doctor told him so himself, or at least as good. Adeline was extremely shocked at this imprudent conduct of the surgeon, and dismissed the landlady, after ordering a slight dinner.

As she exited the gallery, she ran into the hostess, who had been affected by some words from Adeline, changing her neglect and rudeness into overly polite behavior. The hostess came to check if the gentleman upstairs had everything he wanted, as she was determined to make sure he did. "I’ve got him a nurse, Miss, to take care of him, and I’m sure she’ll be fine; but I’ll keep an eye on things because I don’t mind helping him myself sometimes. Poor guy! He’s handling it so well! You wouldn’t think he believes he’s going to die; but the doctor told him as much, or something very close to it." Adeline was really taken aback by the surgeon's reckless behavior and sent the landlady away after ordering a light dinner.

Towards evening the surgeon again made his appearance; and having passed some time with his patient, returned to the parlour, according to the desire of Adeline, to inform her of his condition. He answered Adeline's inquiries with great solemnity. It is impossible to determine positively at present. Madam, but I have reason to adhere to the opinion I gave you this morning. I am not apt indeed, to form opinions upon uncertain grounds—I will give you a singular instance of this:

Towards evening, the surgeon came back; after spending some time with his patient, he returned to the living room, as Adeline requested, to update her on his condition. He responded to Adeline's questions with great seriousness. "It's impossible to say for sure at this point, Madam, but I still hold the same opinion I shared with you this morning. I don't usually make assumptions based on uncertain information—I’ll give you a unique example of this:

It is not above a fortnight since I was sent for to a patient at some leagues distance: I was from home when the messenger arrived, and the case being urgent, before I could reach the patient another physician was consulted, who had ordered such medicines as he thought proper, and the patient had been apparently relieved by them. His friends were congratulating themselves upon his improvement when I arrived, and had agreed in opinion with the physician that there was no danger in his case. Depend upon it, said I, you are mistaken; these medicines cannot have relieved him; the patient is in the utmost danger. The patient groaned; but my brother physician persisted in affirming that the remedies he had prescribed would not only be certain, but speedy, some good effect having been already produced by them. Upon this I lost all patience; and adhering to my opinion, that these effects were fallacious and the case desperate, I assured the patient himself that his life was in the utmost danger. I am not one of those, Madam, who deceive their patients to the last moment;—but you shall hear the conclusion.

It’s been less than two weeks since I was called to see a patient several miles away. I wasn’t home when the messenger showed up, and since the situation was urgent, by the time I got there, another doctor had been consulted. He had prescribed some medications that he believed were appropriate, and the patient seemed to be responding to them. His friends were celebrating his improvement when I arrived and agreed with the doctor that there was no cause for concern. I told them, “You’re wrong; these medications haven’t helped him; the patient is in serious danger.” The patient groaned, but my fellow doctor insisted that the treatments he prescribed would not only be effective but also quick, claiming some positive results had already occurred. At that point, I lost all patience and stuck to my belief that those results were misleading and the situation was critical. I informed the patient directly that his life was in grave danger. I’m not one of those people, Madam, who mislead their patients until the very end; but you will hear the outcome.

My brother physician was, I suppose, enraged by the firmness of my opposition, for he assumed a most angry look, which did not in the least affect me, and turning to the patient, desired he would decide upon which of our opinions to rely, for he must decline acting with me. The patient did me the honour, pursued the surgeon with a smile of complacency and smoothing his ruffles, to think more highly of me than, perhaps, I deserved, for he immediately dismissed my opponent. I could not have believed, said he, as the physician left the room—I could not have believed that a man who has been so many years in the profession could be so wholly ignorant of it.

My brother, who is a doctor, seemed really angry at my strong disagreement. He had a very angry expression, which didn’t bother me at all, and he turned to the patient and asked him to choose whose opinion to believe, stating he wouldn't work with me anymore. The patient honored me by smiling at the surgeon and smoothing his cuffs, thinking more highly of me than I probably deserved, and he immediately let my opponent go. "I can’t believe," he said as the doctor left the room, "that someone who’s been in this profession for so long could be so completely clueless about it."

I could not have believed it either, said I.—I am astonished that he was not aware of my danger, resumed the patient. I am astonished likewise, replied I. I was resolved to do what I could for the patient, for he was a man of understanding, as you perceive, and I had a regard for him. I therefore altered the prescriptions, and myself administered the medicines; but all would not do,—my opinion was verified, and he died even before the next morning.—Adeline, who had been compelled to listen to this long story, sighed at the conclusion of it. I don't wonder that you are affected, Madam, said the surgeon; the instance I have related is certainly a very affecting one. It distressed me so much, that it was some time before I could think or even speak concerning it. But you must allow, Madam, continued he, lowering his voice and bowing with a look of self-congratulation, that this was a striking instance of the infallibility of my judgment.

"I couldn’t have believed it either," I said. "I'm amazed he wasn't aware of my danger," the patient continued. "I’m amazed too," I replied. I was determined to do everything I could for the patient because he was a smart man, as you can see, and I cared about him. So, I changed the prescriptions and personally administered the medicines; but nothing worked—my fears were confirmed, and he died before morning. Adeline, who had to listen to this long story, sighed at the end. "I can see why you're affected, ma'am," said the surgeon; "the situation I described is definitely a heartbreaking one. It troubled me so much that it took me a while to even think or talk about it. But you must admit, ma'am," he continued, lowering his voice and smiling with a sense of pride, "this was a clear example of the accuracy of my judgment."

Adeline shuddered at the infallibility of his judgment, and made no reply. It was a shocking thing for the poor man, resumed the surgeon.—It was indeed, very shocking, said Adeline.—It affected me a good deal when it happened, continued he.—Undoubtedly, Sir, said Adeline.

Adeline shivered at the certainty of his judgment and didn’t respond. "It was a terrible thing for the poor man," the surgeon continued. "It really was very shocking," Adeline agreed. "It affected me a lot when it happened," he went on. "Of course," said Adeline.

But time wears away the most painful impressions.

But time fades even the most painful memories.

I think you mention it was about a fortnight since this happened?

I think you said it was about two weeks ago that this happened?

Somewhere thereabouts, replied the surgeon without seeming to understand the observation.—And will you permit me, Sir, to ask the name of the physician who so ignorantly opposed you?

“Somewhere around there,” replied the surgeon, not really grasping the comment. “And may I ask, Sir, the name of the physician who foolishly disagreed with you?”

Certainly, Madame; it is Lafance.

Sure, Madam; it's Lafance.

He lives in the obscurity he deserves, no doubt, said Adeline.

He lives in the obscurity he deserves, no doubt, said Adeline.

Why no, Madam, he lives in a town of some note, at about the distance of four leagues from hence; and affords one instance, among many others, that the public opinion, is generally erroneous. You will hardly believe it, but I assure you it is a fact, that this man comes into a great deal of practice, while I am suffered to remain here neglected, and, indeed very little known.

Why no, ma'am, he lives in a well-known town, about four leagues away from here; and he is just one example among many that shows how public opinion is usually wrong. You probably won't believe it, but I assure you it's true that this man has a lot of work, while I'm left here ignored and, honestly, very little recognized.

During his narrative Adeline had been considering by what means she could discover the name of the physician; for the instance that had been produced to prove his ignorance, and the infallibility of his opponent, had completely settled her opinion concerning them both. She now more than ever wished to deliver Theodore from the hands of the surgeon, and was musing on the possibility, when he with so much self-security, developed the means.

During her story, Adeline had been thinking about how she could find out the name of the doctor; because the example given to show his ignorance and the infallibility of his rival had fully shaped her opinion of both of them. She now more than ever wanted to free Theodore from the surgeon’s grasp and was contemplating how to do it when he confidently revealed the way.

She asked him a few more questions concerning the state of Theodore's wound; and was told it was much as it had been, but that some degree of fever had come on. But I have ordered a fire to be made in the room, continued the surgeon, and some additional blankets to be laid on the bed; these, I doubt not, will have a proper effect. In the mean time they must be careful to keep from him every kind of liquid, except some cordial draughts which I shall send. He will naturally ask for drink, but it must on no account be given to him.

She asked him a few more questions about how Theodore's wound was doing, and he replied that it was about the same, but he had developed a bit of fever. "I've ordered a fire to be started in the room," the surgeon continued, "and some extra blankets to be added to the bed; I’m sure these will help. In the meantime, they should make sure to keep any kind of liquid away from him, except for some special drinks I’ll send. He will likely ask for something to drink, but it can’t be given to him under any circumstances."

You do not approve then of the method which I have somewhere heard of, said Adeline, of attending to nature in these cases?

"You don't approve of the method I've heard about, then?" said Adeline, "of paying attention to nature in these situations?"

Nature, Madam! pursued he, nature is the most improper guide in the world: I always adopt a method directly contrary to what she would suggest; for what can be the use of art, if she is only to follow nature? This was my first opinion on setting out in life, and I have ever since strictly adhered to it. From what I have said, indeed, Madam, you may perhaps perceive that my opinions may be depended on; what they once are they always are, for my mind is not of that frivolous kind to be affected by circumstances.

Nature, ma'am! he continued, nature is the worst guide in the world. I always take an approach that's completely opposite to what she suggests; after all, what's the point of art if it's just going to mimic nature? This was my initial opinion when I set out in life, and I've stuck to it ever since. From what I've said, you might realize, ma'am, that my opinions are reliable; once I form an opinion, it stays that way, because my mind isn’t the kind to be swayed by circumstances.

Adeline was fatigued by this discourse, and impatient to impart to Theodore her discovery of a physician: but the surgeon seemed by no means disposed to leave her, and was expatiating upon various topics, with new instances of his surprising sagacity, when the waiter brought a message that some person desired to see him. He was, however, engaged upon too agreeable a topic to be easily prevailed upon to quit it, and it was not till after a second message was brought that he made his bow to Adeline and left the room. The moment he was gone she sent a note to Theodore, entreating his permission to call in the assistance of the physician.

Adeline was worn out by this conversation and eager to tell Theodore about the doctor she had found; however, the surgeon didn’t seem ready to leave her side and was going on about various subjects, offering more examples of his impressive insight, when the waiter came in with a message that someone wanted to see him. Still, he was too engrossed in the pleasant discussion to be easily persuaded to leave, and it wasn’t until a second message arrived that he finally said goodbye to Adeline and left the room. As soon as he was gone, she sent a note to Theodore, asking for his permission to bring in the doctor’s help.

The conceited manners of the surgeon had by this time given Theodore a very unfavourable opinion of his talents, and the last prescription had so fully confirmed it, that he now readily consented to have other advice. Adeline immediately inquired for a messenger; but recollecting that the residence of the physician was still a secret, she applied to the hostess, who being really ignorant of it, or pretending to be so, gave her no information. What further inquiries she made were equally ineffectual, and she passed some hours in extreme distress, while the disorder of Theodore rather increased than abated.

The surgeon's arrogant behavior had given Theodore a very negative impression of his skills, and his last prescription confirmed that opinion so much that Theodore was now willing to seek a second opinion. Adeline quickly asked for a messenger, but remembering that the physician's location was still a secret, she turned to the hostess, who was either genuinely unaware or pretending not to know, and provided no information. Any further questions she asked were just as unhelpful, and she spent several hours in deep distress as Theodore's condition worsened rather than improved.

When supper appeared, she asked the boy who waited if he knew a physician of the name of Lafance in the neighbourhood. Not in the neighbourhood, Madame; but I know doctor Lafance of Chancy, for I come from the town.—Adeline inquired further, and received very satisfactory answers. But the town was at some leagues distance, and the delay this circumstance must occasion again alarmed her; she, however, ordered a messenger to be immediately dispatched, and having sent again to inquire concerning Theodore, retired to her chamber for the night.

When dinner was served, she asked the boy who was serving if he knew a doctor named Lafance in the area. “Not in the area, Madame; but I know Dr. Lafance from Chancy, since I come from that town.” Adeline asked more questions and got very satisfactory answers. But the town was several leagues away, and the time this would take made her anxious again; however, she ordered a messenger to be sent immediately and, after sending another inquiry about Theodore, went to her room for the night.

The continued fatigue she had suffered for the last fourteen hours overcame anxiety, and her harassed spirits sunk to repose. She slept till late in the morning, and was then awakened by the landlady, who came to inform her that Theodore was much worse, and to inquire what should be done. Adeline, finding that the physician was not arrived, immediately arose, and hastened to inquire further concerning Theodore. The hostess informed her that he had passed a very disturbed night; that he had complained of being very hot, and desired that the fire in his room might be extinguished; but that the nurse knew her duty too well to obey him, and had strictly followed the doctor's orders.

The ongoing fatigue she had experienced for the last fourteen hours overshadowed her anxiety, and her stressed mind finally found some peace. She slept in late, and was then woken by the landlady, who came to tell her that Theodore was feeling much worse, and to ask what should be done. Adeline, realizing that the doctor hadn’t arrived yet, quickly got up and rushed to find out more about Theodore. The landlady told her that he had a very restless night; he had complained of feeling very hot and wanted the fire in his room to be put out; however, the nurse knew her responsibilities too well to give in to him and had strictly followed the doctor's orders.

She added, that he had taken the cordial draughts regularly, but had, notwithstanding, continued to grow worse, and at last became light-headed. In the mean time the boy who had been sent for the physician was still absent:—And no wonder, continued the hostess; why, only consider, it's eight leagues off, and the lad had to find the road, bad as it is, in the dark. But indeed, Ma'mselle, you might as well have trusted our doctor, for we never want any body else, not we, in the town here; and if I might speak my mind, Jaques had better have been sent off for the young gentleman's friends than for this strange doctor that nobody knows.

She added that he had been taking the medicine regularly, but still got worse and eventually became delirious. Meanwhile, the boy sent to get the doctor was still missing:—And it’s no surprise, continued the hostess; just think about it, it’s eight leagues away, and the kid had to find the way, which is tough even in the light. But honestly, Ma'mselle, you could’ve just trusted our local doctor, because we never need anyone else in this town; and if I may be honest, Jaques would have been better off looking for the young gentleman's friends instead of this unknown doctor that nobody knows.

After asking some further questions concerning Theodore, the answers to which rather increased than diminished her alarm, Adeline endeavoured to compose her spirits, and await in patience the arrival of the physician. She was now more sensible than ever of the forlornness of her own condition, and of the danger of Theodore's, and earnestly wished that his friends could be informed of his situation; a wish which could not be gratified, for Theodore, who alone could acquaint her with their place of residence, was deprived of recollection.

After asking some more questions about Theodore, the answers only heightened her anxiety rather than lessening it. Adeline tried to calm herself and wait patiently for the doctor to arrive. She felt more acutely than ever the hopelessness of her own situation and the peril Theodore was in. She desperately wished that his friends could be informed of what was happening, but that wish couldn’t be fulfilled since Theodore, the only person who could tell her where they lived, was unable to remember anything.

When the surgeon arrived and perceived the situation of his patient, he expressed no surprise; but having asked some questions and given a few general directions, he went down to Adeline. After paying her his usual compliments, he suddenly assumed an air of importance,—I am sorry Madam, said he, that it is my office to communicate disagreeable intelligence, but I wish you to be prepared for the event, which I fear, is approaching. Adeline comprehended his meaning; and though she had hitherto given little faith to his judgment, she could not hear him hint at the immediate danger of Theodore without yielding to the influence of fear.

When the surgeon arrived and saw his patient’s condition, he showed no surprise; but after asking a few questions and giving some general instructions, he went down to Adeline. After paying her his usual compliments, he suddenly took on a serious tone. “I’m sorry, Madam,” he said, “that I have to share bad news with you, but I want you to be ready for what I fear is coming.” Adeline understood what he meant; and even though she hadn’t trusted his judgment much before, she couldn’t hear him suggest Theodore was in immediate danger without feeling frightened.

She entreated him to acquaint her with all he apprehended: and he then proceeded to say that Theodore was, as he had foreseen, much worse this morning than he had been the preceding night; and the disorder having now affected his head, there was every reason to fear it would prove fatal in a few hours. The worst consequences may ensue, continued he; if the wound becomes inflamed, there will be very little chance of his recovery.

She urged him to share everything he understood: and he then went on to say that Theodore was, as he had expected, much worse this morning than he had been the night before; and since the illness had now affected his head, there was every reason to fear it would be fatal in a few hours. The worst outcomes could happen, he continued; if the wound becomes inflamed, there will be very little chance of his recovery.

Adeline listened to this sentence with a dreadful calmness, and gave no utterance to grief, either by words or tears. The gentleman, I suppose, Madam, has friends, and the sooner you inform them of his condition the better. If they reside at any distance, it is indeed too late; but there are other necessary—You are ill, Madam!

Adeline listened to this sentence with a terrifying calmness, revealing no grief, whether through words or tears. "The gentleman, I assume, Madam, has friends, and the sooner you let them know about his situation, the better. If they live far away, it’s truly too late; however, there are other important—You look unwell, Madam!"

Adeline made an effort to speak, but in vain, and the surgeon now called loudly for a glass of water; she drank it, and a deep sigh that she uttered, seemed somewhat to relieve her oppressed heart: tears succeeded. In the mean time the surgeon perceiving she was better, though not well enough to listen to his conversation, took leave, and promised to return in an hour. The physician was not yet arrived, and Adeline awaited his appearance with a mixture of fear and anxious hope.

Adeline tried to speak, but it was no use. The surgeon then called out loudly for a glass of water; she drank it, and a deep sigh she let out seemed to ease her heavy heart a bit: tears followed. Meanwhile, the surgeon noticed she was improving, although not well enough to engage in conversation, so he said goodbye and promised to come back in an hour. The doctor had not arrived yet, and Adeline waited for him with a mix of fear and anxious hope.

About noon he came; and having been informed of the accident by which the fever was produced, and of the treatment which the surgeon had given it, he ascended to Theodore's chamber. In a quarter of an hour he returned to the room where Adeline expected him: The gentleman is still delirious, said he, but I have ordered him a composing draught.——Is there any hope, Sir? inquired Adeline. Yes, Madam, certainly there is hope; the case at present is somewhat doubtful, but a few hours may enable me to judge with more certainty: in the mean time, I have directed that he shall be kept quiet, and be allowed to drink freely of some diluting liquids.

Around noon, he arrived; and after hearing about the accident that caused the fever and the treatment the surgeon provided, he went up to Theodore's room. He returned to the space where Adeline was waiting about fifteen minutes later. "The gentleman is still delirious," he said, "but I've given him a calming potion." "Is there any hope, Sir?" Adeline asked. "Yes, Madam, there is definitely hope; the situation is a bit uncertain right now, but a few hours should give me a clearer picture. In the meantime, I've instructed that he remain calm and that he can drink plenty of clear liquids."

He had scarcely, at Adeline's request, recommended a surgeon, instead of the one at present employed, when the latter gentleman entered the room, and perceiving the physician, threw a glance of mingled surprise and anger at Adeline, who retired with him to another apartment, where she dismissed him with a politeness which he did not deign to return, and which he certainly did not deserve.

He had just, at Adeline's request, suggested a different surgeon instead of the one currently being used when the latter walked into the room. Seeing the physician, he shot Adeline a look of surprise and anger, and she stepped away with him to another room. There, she dismissed him with a courtesy that he didn’t bother to reciprocate, and he definitely didn’t deserve.

Early the following morning the surgeon arrived; but either the medicines or the crisis of the disorder had thrown Theodore into a deep sleep, in which he remained for several hours. The physician now gave Adeline reason to hope for a favourable issue, and every precaution was taken to prevent his being disturbed. He awoke perfectly sensible and free from fever; and his first words inquired for Adeline, who soon learned that he was out of danger.

Early the next morning, the surgeon arrived; but either the medications or the severity of the illness had put Theodore into a deep sleep, which lasted for several hours. The doctor gave Adeline hope for a positive outcome, and every effort was made to ensure he wouldn’t be disturbed. He awoke fully alert and without fever, and his first question was about Adeline, who soon found out that he was out of danger.

In a few days he was sufficiently recovered to be removed from his chamber to a room adjoining, where Adeline met him with a joy which she found it impossible to repress; and the observance of this lighted up his countenance with pleasure: indeed Adeline, sensible to the attachment he had so nobly testified, and softened by the danger he had encountered, no longer attempted to disguise the tenderness of her esteem, and was at length brought to confess the interest his first appearance had impressed upon her heart.

In a few days, he was well enough to be moved from his room to an adjacent one, where Adeline greeted him with joy that she couldn't hide. Seeing her happiness brought a smile to his face. In fact, Adeline, aware of the strong feelings he had shown, and touched by the danger he had faced, no longer tried to hide her deep affection for him. She finally admitted the effect his first appearance had on her heart.

After an hour of affecting conversation, in which the happiness of a young and mutual attachment totally occupied their minds, and excluded every idea not in unison with delight, they returned to a sense of their present embarrassments. Adeline recollected that Theodore was arrested for disobedience of orders, and deserting his post; and Theodore, that he must shortly be torn away from Adeline, who would be left exposed to all the evils from which he had so lately rescued her. This thought overwhelmed his heart with anguish; and after a long pause he ventured to propose what his wishes had often suggested—a marriage with Adeline before he departed from the village: this was the only means of preventing, perhaps, an eternal separation; and though he saw the many dangerous inconveniences to which she would be exposed by a marriage with a man circumstanced like himself, yet these appeared so unequal to those she would otherwise be left to encounter alone, that his reason could no longer scruple to adopt what his affection had suggested.

After an hour of deep conversation, where the happiness of their young love completely filled their minds and pushed away any thoughts that weren’t aligned with joy, they became aware of their current troubles. Adeline remembered that Theodore was facing arrest for disobeying orders and leaving his post; and Theodore, that he would soon be forced to leave Adeline, who would be left vulnerable to all the dangers he had just saved her from. This thought filled his heart with pain; and after a long pause, he dared to suggest what he had often wished for—a marriage with Adeline before he had to leave the village: this was the only way to possibly avoid an eternal separation. Although he recognized the many serious risks she would face by marrying a man in his situation, those risks seemed minor compared to the challenges she would have to face alone, so his mind could no longer hesitate to accept what his heart had suggested.

Adeline was for some time too much agitated to reply: and though she had little to oppose to the arguments and pleadings of Theodore; though she had no friends to control, and no contrariety of interests to perplex her, she could not bring herself to consent thus hastily to a marriage with a man of whom she had little knowledge, and to whose family and connexions she had no sort of introduction. At length she entreated he would drop the subject; and the conversation for the remainder of the day was more general, yet still interesting.

Adeline was too upset to respond for a while, and even though she didn’t have much to counter Theodore’s arguments and pleas; didn’t have friends to influence her, and wasn’t caught up in conflicting interests, she couldn’t agree so quickly to marry someone she barely knew and to whose family and connections she had no introduction. Finally, she begged him to change the topic, and the rest of their conversation for the day was more general, but still engaging.

That similarity of taste and opinion which had at first attracted them, every moment now more fully disclosed. Their discourse was enriched by elegant literature, and endeared by mutual regard. Adeline had enjoyed few opportunities of reading; but the books to which she had access, operating upon a mind eager for knowledge, and upon a taste peculiarly sensible of the beautiful and the elegant, had impressed all their excellences upon her understanding. Theodore had received from nature many of the qualities of genius, and from education, all that it could bestow; to these were added a noble independency of spirit, a feeling heart, and manners which partook of a happy mixture of dignity and sweetness.

The similarity in taste and opinions that had initially drawn them together was now becoming even more apparent. Their conversations were enriched by sophisticated literature and strengthened by their mutual affection. Adeline had few chances to read, but the books she had access to fueled her eagerness for knowledge and her appreciation for beauty and elegance, leaving a lasting impression on her understanding. Theodore possessed many natural qualities of genius and had gained as much as education could offer; along with this, he had a strong independent spirit, a compassionate heart, and a personality that blended dignity with sweetness.

In the evening, one of the officers who, upon the representation of the sergeant, was sent by the person employed to prosecute military criminals, arrived at the village; and entering the apartment of Theodore, from which Adeline immediately withdrew, informed him with an air of infinite importance that he should set out on the following day for head-quarters. Theodore answered that he was not able to bear the journey, and referred him to his physician: but the officer replied that he should take no such trouble, it being certain that the physician might be instructed what to say, and that he should begin his journey on the morrow. Here has been delay enough, said he, already; and you will have sufficient business on your hands when you reach head-quarters; for the sergeant whom you have severely wounded intends to appear against you; and this, with the offence you have committed by deserting your post——

In the evening, one of the officers sent by the person responsible for prosecuting military criminals arrived in the village after the sergeant's report. He entered Theodore's room, from which Adeline quickly left, and informed him with great seriousness that he would need to leave for headquarters the following day. Theodore replied that he couldn't make the journey and referred him to his doctor. However, the officer insisted it wasn't necessary to trouble the doctor, as it was clear that the doctor could be told what to say, and he was set to start his journey the next day. "There's already been enough delay," he said, "and you’ll have enough to deal with when you get to headquarters because the sergeant you seriously injured plans to press charges against you, along with the offense of abandoning your post—"

Theodore's eyes flashed fire: Deserting! said he, rising from his seat and darting a look of menace at his accuser—who dares to brand me with the name of deserter? But instantly recollecting how much his conduct had appeared to justify the accusation, he endeavoured to stifle his emotions; and with a firm voice and composed manner said, that when he reached head-quarters he should be ready to answer whatever might be brought against him, but that till then he should be silent. The boldness of the officer was repressed by the spirit and dignity with which Theodore spoke these words, and muttering a reply that was scarcely audible, he left the room.

Theodore's eyes blazed with anger. "Deserting!" he exclaimed, standing up and shooting a threatening look at his accuser. "Who dares call me a deserter?" But as he quickly remembered how much his actions had seemed to support the claim, he tried to suppress his feelings. With a steady voice and calm demeanor, he stated that when he got to headquarters, he would be prepared to respond to any accusations, but until then, he would remain silent. The officer's boldness was subdued by the strength and dignity with which Theodore delivered his words, and muttering a barely audible response, he left the room.

Theodore sat musing on the danger of his situation: he knew that he had much to apprehend from the peculiar circumstances attending his abrupt departure from his regiment, it having been stationed in a garrison town upon the Spanish frontiers, where the discipline was very severe, and from the power of his colonel, the Marquis de Montalt, whom pride and disappointment would now rouse to vengeance, and probably render indefatigable in the accomplishment of his destruction. But his thoughts soon fled from his own danger to that of Adeline; and in the consideration of this, all his fortitude forsook him: he could not support the idea of leaving her exposed to the evils he foreboded, nor, indeed, of a separation so sudden as that which now threatened him: and when she again entered the room, he renewed his solicitations for a speedy marriage, with all the arguments that tenderness and ingenuity could suggest.

Theodore sat reflecting on the danger he was in: he knew he had a lot to worry about because of the unusual circumstances surrounding his sudden departure from his regiment, which had been stationed in a garrison town on the Spanish border, where the discipline was very strict, and because of the influence of his colonel, the Marquis de Montalt, whose pride and disappointment would now push him towards revenge and likely make him relentless in pursuing Theodore's downfall. But his thoughts quickly shifted from his own danger to Adeline's; as he considered this, all his strength left him: he couldn't bear the thought of leaving her vulnerable to the troubles he feared, nor could he handle such an abrupt separation that now loomed over him. When she entered the room again, he renewed his pleas for a quick marriage, using all the arguments that kindness and creativity could offer.

Adeline, when she learned that he was to depart on the morrow, felt as if bereaved of her last comfort: all the horrors of his situation arose to her mind, and she turned from him in unutterable anguish. Considering her silence as a favourable presage, he repeated his entreaties that she would consent to be his, and thus give him a surety that their separation should not be eternal. Adeline sighed deeply to these words: And who can know that our separation will not be eternal, said she, even if I could consent to the marriage you propose? But while you hear my determination, forbear to accuse me of indifference; for indifference towards you would indeed be a crime, after the services you have rendered me.

Adeline, when she found out he was leaving the next day, felt like she had lost her last source of comfort: all the terrible things about his situation flooded her mind, and she turned away from him in overwhelming pain. Thinking her silence was a good sign, he insisted again that she agree to be with him, giving him a guarantee that their separation wouldn’t last forever. Adeline sighed deeply at his words: "And who can say that our separation won’t be forever," she said, "even if I could agree to the marriage you’re suggesting? But while you hear my decision, please don’t accuse me of being indifferent; being indifferent towards you would truly be a crime after everything you’ve done for me."

And is a cold sentiment of gratitude all that I must expect from you? said Theodore. I know that you are going to distress me with a proof of your indifference, which you mistake for the suggestions of prudence; and that I shall be compelled to look without reluctance upon the evils that may shortly await me. Ah, Adeline! if you mean to reject this, perhaps the last proposal which I can ever make to you, cease at least to deceive yourself with an idea that you love me—that delirium is fading even from my mind.

And is the only thing I can expect from you a cold sense of gratitude? said Theodore. I know you're going to upset me with a demonstration of your indifference, which you confuse with being sensible; and that I’ll have to face the troubles that might soon come my way without hesitation. Ah, Adeline! If you plan to turn down this, maybe the last offer I’ll ever make to you, then at least stop fooling yourself into thinking that you love me—that illusion is slipping away from my mind.

Can you then so soon forget our conversation of this morning? replied Adeline; and can you think so lightly of me as to believe I would profess a regard which I do not feel? If indeed you can believe this, I shall do well to forget that I ever made such an acknowledgement, and you that you heard it.

Can you really forget our conversation from this morning so quickly? replied Adeline; and can you think so little of me that you believe I would express feelings I don't actually have? If you can truly think that, I should probably forget that I ever said it, and you should forget that you heard it.

Forgive me, Adeline, forgive the doubts and inconsistencies I have betrayed: let the anxieties of love, and the emergency of my circumstances, plead for me. Adeline; smiling faintly through her tears, held out her hand, which he seized and pressed to his lips. Yet do not drive me to despair by a rejection of my suit, continued Theodore; think what I must suffer to leave you here destitute of friends and protection.

Forgive me, Adeline, forgive the doubts and inconsistencies I've shown: let the anxieties of love and the urgency of my situation speak for me. Adeline, smiling faintly through her tears, extended her hand, which he grasped and pressed to his lips. But please don’t push me to despair by rejecting my feelings, Theodore continued; think about what I would go through to leave you here without friends and protection.

I am thinking how I may avoid a situation so deplorable, said Adeline. They say there is a convent which receives boarders, within a few miles, and thither I wish to go.

I’m trying to figure out how I can avoid such a terrible situation, said Adeline. They say there’s a convent that takes in boarders a few miles away, and that’s where I want to go.

A convent! rejoined Theodore; would you go to a convent? Do you know the persecutions you would be liable to; and that if the Marquis should discover you, there is little probability the superior would resist his authority, or at least his bribes?

A convent! Theodore replied; would you really go to a convent? Do you have any idea of the troubles you could face? If the Marquis found out where you were, it’s unlikely the head of the convent would defy his power, or at the very least, his money.

All this I have considered, said Adeline, and am prepared to encounter it, rather than enter into an engagement which at this time can be productive only of misery to us both.

All of this I have thought about, said Adeline, and I’m ready to face it, rather than get into a commitment that can only bring us both misery right now.

Ah, Adeline! could you think thus, if you truly loved? I see myself about to be separated, and that perhaps for ever, from the object of my tenderest affections; and I cannot but express all the anguish I feel—I cannot forbear to repeat every argument that may afford even the slightest possibility of altering your determination. But you, Adeline, you look with complacency upon a circumstance which tortures me with despair.

Ah, Adeline! Could you really think this way if you loved me? I see that I’m about to be separated, maybe forever, from the one I care for the most; and I can’t help but share all the pain I feel—I can’t stop myself from repeating every argument that might give even the slightest chance of changing your mind. But you, Adeline, you seem calm about something that drives me to despair.

Adeline, who had long strove to support her spirits in his presence, while she adhered to a resolution which reason suggested, but which the pleadings of her heart powerfully opposed, was unable longer to command her distress, and burst into tears. Theodore was in the same moment convinced of his error, and shocked at the grief he had occasioned. He drew his chair towards her, and taking her hand, again entreated her pardon, and endeavoured in the tenderest accents to soothe and comfort her.—What a wretch was I to cause you this distress, by questioning that regard with which I can no longer doubt you honour me! Forgive me, Adeline; say but you forgive me, and whatever may be the pain of this separation, I will no longer oppose it.

Adeline, who had long tried to keep her spirits up in his presence while sticking to a resolution that made sense but went against what her heart felt, could no longer hold back her sadness and burst into tears. At that same moment, Theodore realized his mistake and was overwhelmed with regret for the pain he had caused. He moved his chair closer to her, took her hand, and once again begged for her forgiveness, trying to soothe and comfort her with the gentlest words. "How cruel was I to cause you this pain by questioning the feelings I can no longer doubt you have for me! Please forgive me, Adeline; just say that you forgive me, and no matter how painful this separation is, I won’t stand in the way anymore."

You have given me some pain, said Adeline, but you have not offended me.—She then mentioned some further particulars concerning the convent. Theodore endeavoured to conceal the distress which the approaching separation occasioned him, and to consult with her on these plans with composure. His judgment by degrees prevailed over his passions, and he now perceived that the plan she suggested, would afford her best chance of security. He considered, what in the first agitation of his mind had escaped him, that he might be condemned upon the charges brought against him, and that his death, should they have been married, would not only deprive her of her protector, but leave her more immediately exposed to the designs of the Marquis, who would doubtless attend his trial. Astonished that he had not noticed this before, and shocked at the unwariness by which he might have betrayed her into so dangerous a situation, he became at once reconciled to the idea of leaving her in a convent. He could have wished to place her in the asylum of his own family: but the circumstances under which she must be introduced were so awkward and painful, and above all, the distance at which they resided would render a journey so highly dangerous for her, that he forbore to propose it. He entreated only that she would allow him to write to her; but recollecting that his letters might be a means of betraying the place of her residence to the Marquis, he checked himself: I must deny myself even this melancholy pleasure, said he, lest my letters should discover your abode; yet hew shall I be able to endure the impatience and uncertainty to which prudence condemns me! If you are in danger, I shall be ignorant of it; though, indeed, did I know it, said he with a look of despair, I could not fly to save you. O exquisite misery! 'tis now only I perceive all the horrors of confinement—'tis now only that I understand all the value of liberty.

“You’ve caused me some pain,” Adeline said, “but you haven’t offended me.” She then shared more details about the convent. Theodore tried to hide the distress he felt at the impending separation and discuss her plans calmly. Gradually, his logic overcame his emotions, and he realized that the plan she proposed would give her the best chance of safety. He remembered, in the initial turmoil of his thoughts, that he could be charged with the accusations against him, and that if they had married, his death would not only leave her without a protector but also expose her to the Marquis’ schemes, who would undoubtedly be present at his trial. Surprised that he hadn’t considered this sooner and horrified at how his carelessness could have put her in such a dangerous situation, he accepted the idea of leaving her in a convent. He would have preferred to place her in his own family’s care, but the circumstances of her introduction would be incredibly awkward and painful, and more importantly, the distance they lived apart made the journey far too risky for her, so he hesitated to suggest it. He only begged her to let him write to her; but remembering that his letters might inadvertently reveal her location to the Marquis, he stopped himself. “I must deny myself even this sad comfort,” he said, “for fear my letters might expose where you are; but how will I endure the impatience and uncertainty that prudence demands of me! If you’re in danger, I won’t even know about it; though, to be honest,” he said with a look of despair, “even if I did, I couldn’t rush to save you. Oh, the exquisite misery! It’s only now that I see all the horrors of confinement—it’s only now that I understand the true value of freedom.”

His utterance was interrupted by the violent agitation of his mind; he arose from his chair, and walked with quick paces about the room. Adeline sat, overcome by the description which Theodore had given of his approaching situation, and by the consideration that she might remain in the most terrible suspense concerning his fate. She saw him in a prison—pale—emaciated, and in chains:—she saw all the vengeance of the Marquis descending upon him; and this for his noble exertions in her cause. Theodore, alarmed by the placid despair expressed in her countenance, threw himself into a chair by hers, and taking her hand, attempted to speak comfort to her; but the words faltered on his lips, and he could only bathe her hand with tears.

His words were cut short by the turmoil in his mind; he got up from his chair and started pacing quickly around the room. Adeline sat there, overwhelmed by Theodore's description of what was going to happen to him, and by the thought that she might be left in awful suspense about his fate. She pictured him in a prison—pale, frail, and in chains—envisioning all of the Marquis's wrath coming down on him for his courageous efforts on her behalf. Theodore, noticing the quiet despair in her expression, sat down in a chair next to hers, took her hand, and tried to offer her some comfort; but the words got stuck in his throat, and all he could do was weep as he held her hand.

This mournful silence was interrupted by the arrival of the carriage at the inn, and Theodore, arising, went to the window that opened into the yard. The darkness of the night prevented his distinguishing the objects without, but a light now brought from the house showed him a carriage and four, attended by several servants. Presently he saw a gentleman, wrapped up in a roquelaure, alight and enter the inn, and in the next moment he heard the voice of the Marquis.

This sad silence was interrupted by the arrival of the carriage at the inn. Theodore got up and went to the window that opened into the yard. The darkness of the night made it hard for him to see outside, but a light brought from the house showed him a carriage and four horses, attended by several servants. Soon after, he saw a gentleman, wrapped in a long coat, get down and enter the inn, and in the next moment, he heard the voice of the Marquis.

He had flown to support Adeline, who was sinking with terror, when the door opened, and the Marquis followed by the officers and several servants entered. Fury flashed from his eyes as they glanced upon Theodore, who hung over Adeline with a look of fearful solicitude—Seize that traitor, said he, turning to the officers; why have you suffered him to remain here so long?

He had flown to support Adeline, who was overwhelmed with fear, when the door opened, and the Marquis, followed by the officers and several servants, walked in. Anger blazed in his eyes as they looked at Theodore, who leaned over Adeline with a worried expression—Seize that traitor, he said to the officers; why have you allowed him to stay here so long?

I am no traitor, said Theodore with a firm voice and the dignity of conscious worth, but a defender of innocence, of one whom the treacherous Marquis de Montalt would destroy.

"I am not a traitor," Theodore said firmly, with the dignity of someone who knows their worth, "but a defender of innocence, of someone whom the deceitful Marquis de Montalt wants to destroy."

Obey your orders, said the Marquis to the officers. Adeline shrieked, held faster by Theodore's arm, and entreated the men not to part them. Force only can effect it, said Theodore, as he looked round for some instrument of defence; but he could see none, and in the same moment they surrounded and seized him. Dread every thing from my vengeance, said the Marquis to Theodore, as he caught the hand of Adeline, who had lost all power of resistance and was scarcely sensible of what passed; dread every thing from my vengeance; you know you have deserved it.

"Follow your orders," the Marquis told the officers. Adeline screamed, gripping Theodore's arm tighter, and begged the men not to separate them. "Only force can make that happen," Theodore said as he looked for something to defend himself with; but he saw nothing, and just then they surrounded and grabbed him. "Fear everything from my wrath," the Marquis said to Theodore, as he took Adeline's hand, which had lost all strength and she was barely aware of what was happening; "fear everything from my wrath; you know you’ve brought this on yourself."

I defy your vengeance, cried Theodore, and dread only the pangs of conscience, which your power cannot inflict upon me, though your vices condemn you to its tortures.

I challenge your revenge, shouted Theodore, and I only fear the pain of conscience, which your power can’t impose on me, even though your wrongdoings sentence you to its torment.

Take him instantly from the room, and see that he is strongly fettered, said the Marquis; he shall soon know what a criminal who adds insolence to guilt may suffer.—Theodore exclaiming, Oh, Adeline! farewell! was now forced out of the room; while Adeline, whose torpid senses were roused by his voice and his last looks, fell at the feet of the Marquis, and with tears of agony implored compassion for Theodore: but her pleadings for his rival served only to irritate the pride and exasperate the hatred of the Marquis. He denounced vengeance on his head, and imprecations too dreadful for the spirits of Adeline, whom he compelled to rise; and then endeavouring to stifle the emotions of rage, which the presence of Theodore had excited, he began to address her with his usual expressions of admiration.

“Take him out of here right away, and make sure he’s securely restrained,” said the Marquis; “he will soon understand what a criminal who adds arrogance to his wrongdoing can face.” Theodore, exclaiming, “Oh, Adeline! Farewell!” was forcibly removed from the room. Adeline, whose dull senses were awakened by his voice and final glance, fell at the Marquis’s feet and, with tears of despair, begged for compassion for Theodore. But her pleas for her rival only served to provoke the Marquis’s pride and inflame his hatred. He vowed to take revenge on Theodore and unleashed curses too horrible for Adeline, whom he forced to stand. Then, trying to suppress the rage that Theodore’s presence had stirred up, he began to speak to her with his usual flattering words.

The wretched Adeline, who, regardless of what he said, still endeavoured to plead for her unhappy lover, was at length alarmed by the returning rage which the countenance of the Marquis expressed; and exerting all her remaining strength, she sprung from his grasp towards the door of the room: but he seized her hand before she could reach it, and regardless of her shrieks, bringing her back to her chair, was going to speak, when voices were heard in the passage, and immediately the landlord and his wife, whom Adeline's cries had alarmed, entered the apartment. The Marquis, turning furiously at them, demanded what they wanted; but not waiting for an answer, he bade them attend him, and quitting the room, she heard the door locked upon her.

The miserable Adeline, who, no matter what he said, still tried to advocate for her unfortunate lover, was finally overwhelmed by the returning fury reflected in the Marquis's face. Summoning all her remaining strength, she leaped from his grip toward the door of the room. But he grabbed her hand before she could reach it, and completely ignoring her screams, pulled her back to her chair. He was about to speak when voices were heard in the hallway, and immediately the landlord and his wife, alerted by Adeline’s cries, entered the room. The Marquis, glaring furiously at them, demanded to know what they wanted, but without waiting for a response, ordered them to follow him. As he left the room, she heard the door lock behind her.





Adeline now ran to the windows, which were unfastened and opened into the inn-yard. All was dark and silent. She called aloud for help, but no person appeared; and the windows were so high that it was impossible to escape unassisted. She walked about the room in an agony of terror and distress, now stooping to listen, and fancying she heard voices disputing below and now quickening her steps, as suspense increased the agitation of her mind.

Adeline ran to the windows, which were unlocked and opened into the inn yard. Everything was dark and silent. She called out for help, but no one came; the windows were so high that she couldn’t escape without assistance. She paced around the room in a panic of fear and distress, sometimes bending down to listen, imagining she heard voices arguing below, and then speeding up her steps as her anxiety grew.

She had continued in this state for near half an hour, when she suddenly heard a violent noise in the lower part of the house, which increased till all was uproar and confusion. People passed quickly through the passages, and doors were frequently opened and shut. She called, but received no answer. It immediately occurred to her that Theodore, having heard her screams, had attempted to come to her assistance, and that the bustle had been occasioned by the opposition of the officers. Knowing their fierceness and cruelty, she was seized with dreadful apprehensions for the life of Theodore.

She had been in this state for almost half an hour when she suddenly heard a loud noise coming from downstairs, which grew until there was total chaos and confusion. People rushed through the hallways, and doors were constantly being opened and closed. She called out, but got no response. It hit her that Theodore, having heard her screams, must have tried to help her, and that the commotion was caused by the officers fighting against him. Knowing how brutal and ruthless they could be, she was filled with terrible fear for Theodore's life.

A confused uproar of voices now sounded from below, and the screams of women convinced her there was fighting; she even thought she heard the clashing of swords: the image of Theodore dying by the hands of the Marquis now rose to her imagination, and the terrors of suspense became almost insupportable. She made a desperate effort to force the door, and again called for help; but her trembling hands were powerless, and every person in the house seemed to be too much engaged even to hear her. A loud shriek now pierced her ears, and amidst the tumult that followed she clearly distinguished deep groans. This confirmation of her fears deprived her of all her remaining spirits, and growing faint, she sunk almost lifeless into a chair near the door. The uproar gradually subsided till all was still, but nobody returned to her. Soon after she heard voices in the yard, but she had no power to walk across the room, even to ask the questions she wished, yet feared, to have answered.

A chaotic mix of voices erupted from below, and the screams of women made her think there was a fight; she even thought she heard swords clashing. The image of Theodore dying at the hands of the Marquis flooded her mind, and the suspense became almost unbearable. She made a frantic effort to force the door and called for help again, but her shaking hands were useless, and everyone in the house seemed too busy to even hear her. A sharp scream suddenly reached her ears, and amidst the chaos that followed, she distinctly heard deep groans. This confirmation of her fears drained her of remaining strength, and she grew faint, sinking almost lifeless into a chair by the door. The noise gradually subsided until everything was quiet, but no one came back to her. Soon after, she heard voices in the yard, but she couldn't muster the strength to cross the room to ask the questions she both wanted and feared to have answered.

About a quarter of an hour elapsed, when the door was unlocked, and the hostess appeared with a countenance as pale as death. For God's sake, said Adeline, tell me what has happened? Is he wounded? Is he killed?

About fifteen minutes passed when the door was unlocked, and the hostess appeared with a face as pale as death. For God's sake, said Adeline, tell me what happened? Is he hurt? Is he dead?

He is not dead, Ma'mselle, but—

He’s not dead, Miss, but—

He is dying then?—tell me where he is—let me go.

He’s dying then?—tell me where he is—let me go.

Stop, Ma'mselle, cried the hostess, you are to stay here, I only want the hartshorn out of that cupboard there. Adeline tried to escape by the door; but the hostess, pushing her aside, locked it, and went down stairs.

"Stop, Miss," the hostess exclaimed, "you need to stay here. I just want the hartshorn from that cupboard over there." Adeline attempted to slip out the door, but the hostess shoved her aside, locked the door, and went downstairs.

Adeline's distress now entirely overcame her, and she sat motionless and scarcely conscious that she existed, till roused by a sound of footsteps near the door, which was again opened, and three men, whom she knew to be the Marquis's servants entered. She had sufficient recollection to repeat the questions she had asked the landlady; but they answered only that she must come with them, and that a chaise was waiting for her at the door. Still she urged her questions. Tell me if he lives, cried she.—Yes, Ma'mselle, he is alive, but he is terribly wounded, and the surgeon is just come to him. As they spoke they hurried her along the passage: and without noticing her entreaties and supplications to know whither she was going, they had reached the foot of the stairs, when her cries brought several people to the door. To these the hostess related that the lady was the wife of a gentleman just arrived, who had overtaken her in her flight with a gallant; an account which the Marquis's servants corroborated. 'Tis the gentleman who has just fought the duel, added the hostess, and it was on her account.

Adeline's distress completely overwhelmed her, and she sat frozen, hardly aware of her own existence, until she was jolted by the sound of footsteps near the door. It opened again, and three men, whom she recognized as the Marquis's servants, entered. She had enough presence of mind to repeat the questions she had asked the landlady, but they only replied that she had to come with them and that a carriage was waiting for her outside. Still, she pressed them for answers. "Tell me if he lives," she cried. "Yes, Mademoiselle, he is alive, but he is badly wounded, and the surgeon has just arrived." As they spoke, they hurried her down the hall, ignoring her pleas to know where she was going. They reached the bottom of the stairs when her cries drew several people to the door. The landlady explained that the lady was the wife of a gentleman who had just caught up with her during her escape with another man, a story that the Marquis's servants confirmed. "It's the gentleman who just had the duel," the landlady added, "and it was for her sake."

Adeline, partly disdaining to take any notice of this artful story, and partly from her desire to know the particulars of what had happened, contented herself with repeating her inquiries; to which one of the spectators at last replied, that the gentleman was desperately wounded. The Marquis's people would now have hurried her into the chaise, but she sunk lifeless in their arms; and her condition so interested the humanity of the spectators, that, notwithstanding their belief of what had been said, they opposed the effort made to carry her, senseless as she was, into the carriage.

Adeline, partly ignoring this clever story and partly wanting to learn the details of what had happened, kept asking her questions. Eventually, one of the onlookers answered that the gentleman was seriously injured. The Marquis's people tried to hurry her into the carriage, but she collapsed, limp in their arms. Her condition moved the viewers so much that, despite believing what they had heard, they resisted the attempt to take her, unconscious as she was, into the carriage.

She was at length taken into a room, and by proper applications restored to her senses. There she so earnestly besought an explanation of what had happened, that the hostess acquainted her with some particulars of the late rencounter. When the gentleman that was ill heard your screams, Madam, said she, he became quite outrageous, as they tell me, and nothing could pacify him. The Marquis, for they say he is a Marquis, but you know best, was then in the room with my husband and I, and when he heard the uproar, he went down to see what was the matter; and when he came into the room where the Captain was, he found him struggling with the sergeant. Then the Captain was more outrageous than ever; and notwithstanding he had one leg chained, and no sword, he contrived to get the sergeant's cutlass out of the scabbard, and immediately flew at the Marquis, and wounded him desperately; upon which he was secured.—It is the Marquis then who is wounded, said Adeline; the other gentleman is not hurt?

She was eventually taken into a room and, with some proper care, brought back to her senses. There, she urgently asked for an explanation of what had happened, prompting the hostess to share some details about the recent incident. "When the sick gentleman heard your screams, Madam," she said, "he became quite enraged, or so I've been told, and nothing could calm him down. The Marquis—apparently he is a Marquis, though you know better—was in the room with my husband and me at the time. When he heard the commotion, he went downstairs to see what was going on. Once he entered the room where the Captain was, he found him struggling with the sergeant. The Captain was more furious than ever; and even with one leg chained and no sword, he managed to pull the sergeant's cutlass from the scabbard and immediately attacked the Marquis, wounding him seriously, after which he was restrained." "So it’s the Marquis who is wounded," Adeline said. "The other gentleman isn't hurt?"

No, not he, replied the hostess; but he will smart for it by and by, for the Marquis swears he will do for him. Adeline for a moment forgot all her misfortunes and all her danger in thankfulness for the immediate escape of Theodore; and she was proceeding to make some further inquiries concerning him, when the Marquis's servants entered the room, and declared they could wait no longer. Adeline, now awakened to a sense of the evils with which she was threatened, endeavoured to win the pity of the hostess, who however was, or affected to be, convinced of the truth of the Marquis's story, and therefore insensible to all she could urge. Again she addressed his servants, but in vain; they would neither suffer her to remain longer at the inn, nor inform her whither she was going; but in the presence of several persons, already prejudiced by the injurious assertions of the hostess, Adeline was hurried into the chaise, and her conductors mounting their horses, the whole party was very soon beyond the village.

“No, not him,” replied the hostess; “but he will pay for it soon, because the Marquis swears he will take care of him.” Adeline, for a moment, forgot all her troubles and fears in her relief over Theodore’s immediate escape. Just as she was about to ask more about him, the Marquis's servants came into the room and said they couldn't wait any longer. Adeline, now fully aware of the dangers she faced, tried to gain the sympathy of the hostess, who, however, seemed convinced of the truth of the Marquis's claims and remained indifferent to everything she said. She turned to his servants again, but it was useless; they wouldn’t let her stay at the inn any longer or tell her where she was being taken. With several people already biased by the hostess's hurtful comments, Adeline was quickly pushed into the carriage, and as her escorts mounted their horses, the entire group soon left the village.

Thus ended Adeline's share of an adventure, begun with a prospect not only of security, but of happiness—an adventure which had attached her more closely to Theodore, and shown him to be more worthy of her love; but which, at the same time, had distressed her by new disappointment, produced the imprisonment of her generous and now adored lover, and delivered both himself and her into the power of a rival irritated by delay, contempt, and opposition.

Thus ended Adeline's part of an adventure, which began with the promise of not just safety, but also happiness—an adventure that had drawn her closer to Theodore and revealed him to be more deserving of her love; yet, at the same time, it had upset her with fresh disappointment, resulted in the imprisonment of her noble and now cherished lover, and handed both him and her over to a rival fueled by frustration, disdain, and resistance.







CHAPTER XIII

Neither sea, nor shade, nor shield, nor rock, nor cave,
Neither quiet deserts nor the gloomy grave,
Where fiery rage intends to scowl—can save.

The surgeon of the place, having examined the Marquis's wound, gave him an immediate opinion upon it, and ordered that he should be put to bed: but the Marquis, ill as he was, had scarcely any other apprehension than that of losing Adeline, and declared he should be able to begin his journey in a few hours. With this intention he had begun to give orders for keeping horses in readiness, when the surgeon persisting most seriously, and even passionately to exclaim that his life would be the sacrifice of his rashness, he was carried to a bedchamber, where his valet alone was permitted to attend him.

The local surgeon, after assessing the Marquis's wound, immediately shared his opinion and advised that he should be put to bed. However, despite his condition, the Marquis was more worried about losing Adeline and insisted he would be ready to start his journey in a few hours. With this in mind, he began making arrangements to have horses ready when the surgeon, growing increasingly serious and even passionately insisting that his life could be lost due to his recklessness, had him taken to a bedroom, where only his valet was allowed to attend to him.

This man, the convenient confident of all his intrigues, had been the chief instrument in assisting his designs concerning Adeline, and was indeed the very person who had brought her to the Marquis's villa on the borders of the forest. To him the Marquis gave his further directions concerning her: and, foreseeing the inconvenience as well as the danger of detaining her at the inn, he had ordered him, with several other servants, to carry her away immediately in a hired carriage. The valet having gone to execute his orders, the Marquis was left to his own reflections, and to the violence of contending passions.

This man, the go-to guy for all his schemes, was the main player in helping with his plans for Adeline, and he was actually the one who had brought her to the Marquis's villa near the forest. The Marquis gave him additional instructions regarding her, and realizing the issues and risks of keeping her at the inn, he had ordered him, along with a few other servants, to take her away right away in a rented carriage. Once the valet went off to carry out his orders, the Marquis was left alone with his thoughts and the turmoil of conflicting emotions.

The reproaches and continued opposition of Theodore, the favoured lover of Adeline, exasperated his pride and roused all his malice. He could not for a moment consider this opposition, which was in some respects successful, without feeling an excess of indignation and inveteracy, such as the prospect of a speedy revenge could alone enable him to support.

The criticisms and ongoing resistance from Theodore, Adeline's preferred lover, fueled his pride and awakened all his bitterness. He couldn't bear to think about this opposition, which was somewhat effective, without experiencing an overwhelming sense of anger and deep-seated resentment that only the thought of swift revenge could help him endure.

When he had discovered Adeline's escape from the villa, his surprise at first equalled his disappointment; and, after exhausting the paroxysms of his rage upon his domestics, he dispatched them all different ways in pursuit of her, going himself to the abbey, in the faint hope that, destitute as she was of other succour, she might have fled thither. La Motte, however, being as much surprised as himself, and as ignorant of the route which Adeline had taken, he returned to the villa impatient of intelligence, and found some of his servants arrived, without any news of Adeline, and those who came afterwards were as successless as the first.

When he found out Adeline had escaped from the villa, his initial surprise matched his disappointment. After venting his anger on his staff, he sent them all off in different directions to look for her, while he went to the abbey, hoping that, with no one else to help her, she might have gone there. La Motte, equally shocked and just as clueless about the path Adeline had taken, returned to the villa, frustrated by the lack of information. Some of his servants had come back without any news about Adeline, and those who arrived later were just as unsuccessful as the first group.

A few days after, a letter from the lieutenant-colonel of the regiment informed him, that Theodore had quitted his company, and had been for some time absent, nobody knew where. This information, confirming a suspicion which had frequently occurred to him, that Theodore had been by some means or other instrumental in the escape of Adeline, all his other passions became for a time subservient to his revenge, and he gave orders for the immediate pursuit and apprehension of Theodore: but Theodore, in the mean time, had been overtaken and secured.

A few days later, a letter from the lieutenant-colonel of the regiment informed him that Theodore had left his company and had been missing for a while, with no one knowing where he was. This news confirmed a suspicion he had often had, that Theodore had somehow played a role in Adeline's escape. All his other feelings were set aside for a time as he focused on his desire for revenge, and he ordered the immediate pursuit and capture of Theodore. However, in the meantime, Theodore had already been found and secured.

It was in consequence of having formerly observed the growing partiality between him and Adeline, and of intelligence received from La Motte, who had noticed their interview in the forest, that the Marquis had resolved to remove a rival so dangerous to his love, and so likely to be informed of his designs. He had therefore told Theodore, in a manner as plausible as he could, that it would be necessary for him to join the regiment; a notice which affected him only as it related to Adeline, and which seemed the less extraordinary, as he had already been at the villa a much longer time than was usual with the officers invited by the Marquis. Theodore, indeed, very well knew the character of the Marquis, and had accepted his invitation rather from an unwillingness to show any disrespect to his colonel by a refusal, than from a sanguine expectation of pleasure.

It was because he had previously noticed the growing closeness between him and Adeline, and due to information he received from La Motte, who had seen their meeting in the forest, that the Marquis decided to eliminate a rival so threatening to his affection and likely to discover his plans. He had therefore told Theodore, as convincingly as he could, that it was necessary for him to join the regiment; a notice that only concerned him in relation to Adeline, and which seemed less unusual since he had already been at the villa much longer than typical for the officers invited by the Marquis. Theodore did know the character of the Marquis well and had accepted his invitation more out of a desire not to disrespect his colonel by refusing, rather than out of any hopeful expectation of enjoyment.

From the men who had apprehended Theodore, the Marquis received the information, which had enabled him to pursue and recover Adeline; but though he had now effected this, he was internally a prey to the corrosive effects of disappointed passion and exasperated pride. The anguish of his wound was almost forgotten in that of his mind, and every pang he felt seemed to increase his thirst of revenge, and to recoil with new torture upon his heart. While he was in this state, he heard the voice of the innocent Adeline imploring protection; but her cries excited in him neither pity nor remorse: and when, soon after, the carriage drove away, and he was certain both that she was secured and Theodore was wretched, he seemed to feel some cessation of mental pain.

From the men who had caught Theodore, the Marquis got the information that allowed him to track down and rescue Adeline. However, even though he had achieved this, he was internally suffering from the damaging effects of crushed desire and heightened pride. The pain from his wound was almost forgotten in the turmoil of his mind, and every ache he felt seemed to fuel his craving for revenge, striking back with new torment on his heart. In this state, he heard Adeline’s innocent voice begging for help; yet her pleas stirred no pity or guilt in him. Soon after, when the carriage drove away and he knew both that she was safe and Theodore was miserable, he felt a momentary relief from his mental anguish.

Theodore, indeed, did suffer all that a virtuous mind, labouring under oppression so severe, could feel; but he was at least free from those inveterate and malignant passions which tore the bosom of the Marquis, and which inflict upon the professor a punishment more severe than any they can prompt him to imagine for another. What indignation he might feel towards the Marquis, was at this time secondary to his anxiety for Adeline. His captivity was painful, as it prevented his seeking a just and honourable revenge; but it was dreadful, as it withheld him from attempting the rescue of her whom he loved more than life.

Theodore truly experienced all that a virtuous mind could endure under such severe oppression; however, he was at least free from the deep, destructive emotions that tormented the Marquis and caused the professor to suffer a punishment far worse than anything he could come up with for someone else. Any anger he might have felt towards the Marquis was overshadowed by his concern for Adeline. His imprisonment was painful because it stopped him from seeking a rightful and honorable revenge; but it was terrifying because it kept him from trying to rescue the person he loved more than life itself.

When he heard the wheels of the carriage that contained her drive off, he felt an agony of despair which almost overcame his reason. Even the stern hearts of the soldiers who attended him were not wholly insensible to his wretchedness, and by venturing to blame the conduct of the Marquis they endeavoured to console their prisoner. The physician, who was just arrived, entered the room during this paroxysm of his distress, and both feeling and expressing much concern at his condition, inquired with strong surprise why he had been thus precipitately removed to a room so very unfit for his reception?

When he heard the carriage wheels driving away with her, he felt a wave of despair that nearly overwhelmed him. Even the tough soldiers around him couldn’t completely ignore his misery, and by daring to criticize the Marquis's actions, they tried to comfort their captive. The doctor, who had just arrived, walked into the room during this episode of distress, and both concerned and surprised by his condition, asked why he had been moved so suddenly to a room that was so unsuitable for him.

Theodore explained to him the reason of this, of the distress he suffered, and of the chains by which he was disgraced; and perceiving the physician listened to him with attention and compassion, he became desirous of acquainting him with some further particulars, for which purpose he desired the soldiers to leave the room. The men, complying with his request, stationed themselves on the outside of the door.

Theodore told him why this was happening, about the pain he was going through, and the shame he felt from the chains. Noticing that the doctor was listening with care and sympathy, he wanted to share more details, so he asked the soldiers to step out of the room. The men agreed and stood outside the door.

He then related all the particulars of the late transaction, and of his connection with the Marquis. The physician attended to his narrative with deep concern, and his countenance frequently expressed strong agitation. When Theodore concluded, he remained for some time silent and lost in thought; at length, awaking from his reverie, he said, I fear your situation is desperate: the character of the Marquis is too well known to suffer him either to be loved or respected; from such a man you have nothing to hope, for he has scarcely any thing to fear: I wish it was in my power to serve you, but I see no possibility of it.

He then shared all the details of the recent event and his connection with the Marquis. The doctor listened to his story with great concern, and his expression often showed intense agitation. When Theodore finished, he remained silent for a while, lost in thought; finally, coming out of his daze, he said, "I fear your situation is hopeless: the Marquis's reputation is too well-known for anyone to truly love or respect him; from someone like him, you can expect nothing, as he has little to fear. I wish I could help you, but I don't see any way to do so."

Alas! said Theodore, my situation is indeed desperate, and—for that suffering angel—deep sobs interrupted his voice, and the violence of his agitation would not allow him to proceed. The physician could only express the sympathy he felt for his distress, and entreat him to be more calm, when a servant entered the room from the Marquis, who desired to see the physician immediately. After some time, he said he would attend the Marquis; and having endeavoured to attain a degree of composure which he found it difficult to assume, he wrung the hand of Theodore and quitted the room, promising to return before he left the house.

"Unfortunately," said Theodore, "my situation is truly desperate, and—for that suffering angel"—deep sobs interrupted his voice, and the intensity of his emotions made it hard for him to continue. The physician could only show his sympathy for Theodore's distress and urge him to calm down when a servant entered the room from the Marquis, who wanted to see the physician immediately. After a while, he said he would go to the Marquis; and trying to gain some composure that he found challenging to muster, he squeezed Theodore's hand and left the room, promising to return before he left the house.

He found the Marquis much agitated both in body and mind, and rather more apprehensive for the consequences of the wound than he had expected. His anxiety for Theodore now suggested a plan, by the execution of which he hoped he might be able to serve him. Having felt his patient's pulse, and asked some questions, he assumed a very serious look; when the Marquis, who watched every turn of his countenance, desired he would, without hesitation, speak his opinion.

He found the Marquis very upset both physically and mentally, and even more worried about the consequences of the wound than he had anticipated. His concern for Theodore sparked an idea, which he hoped would help him. After checking his patient’s pulse and asking a few questions, he adopted a very serious expression; the Marquis, who was keeping a close eye on his face, urged him to share his thoughts without holding back.

I am sorry to alarm you, my Lord, but here is some reason for apprehension: how long is it since you received the wound.

I’m sorry to worry you, my Lord, but there’s a good reason to be concerned: how long has it been since you got the wound?

Good God! there is danger then! cried the Marquis, adding some bitter execrations against Theodore.—There certainly is danger, replied the physician; a few hours may enable me to determine its degree.

Good God! There’s danger then! shouted the Marquis, adding some harsh curses against Theodore. —There definitely is danger, replied the doctor; a few hours should help me figure out how serious it is.

A few hours, Sir! interrupted the Marquis; a few hours! The physician entreated him to be more calm. Confusion! cried the Marquis: a man in health may, with great composure, entreat a dying man to be calm. Theodore will be broke upon the wheel for it, however.

A few hours, Sir! interrupted the Marquis; a few hours! The doctor urged him to remain calm. Confusion! shouted the Marquis: a healthy person can calmly ask a dying person to stay calm. But Theodore will be punished severely for it, anyway.

You mistake me, Sir, said the physician; if I believed you a dying man, or, indeed, very near death, I should not have spoken as I did. But it is of consequence I should know how long the wound has been inflicted.—The Marquis's terror now began to subside, and he gave a circumstantial account of the affray with Theodore, representing that he had been basely used in an affair where his own conduct had been perfectly just and humane. The physician heard this relation with great coolness, and when it concluded without making any comment upon it, told the Marquis he would prescribe a medicine which he wished him to take immediately.

"You've misunderstood me, Sir," said the physician. "If I thought you were dying or even very close to death, I wouldn’t have spoken like that. But it’s important for me to know how long the wound has been there." The Marquis's fear started to fade, and he gave a detailed account of the fight with Theodore, claiming that he had been poorly treated in a situation where his actions were entirely just and compassionate. The physician listened to this story with great calmness, and when it ended, he didn’t comment on it but told the Marquis he would prescribe some medicine for him to take right away.

The Marquis again alarmed by the gravity of his manner, entreated he would declare most seriously, whether he thought him in immediate danger. The physician hesitated, and the anxiety of the Marquis increased: It is of consequence, said he, that I should know my exact situation. The physician then said, that if he had any worldly affairs to settle, it would be as well to attend to them, for that it was impossible to say what might be the event.

The Marquis, once again troubled by the seriousness of his demeanor, urged him to honestly confirm whether he thought he was in immediate danger. The physician hesitated, making the Marquis even more anxious. "It's important," he said, "that I know my exact situation." The physician then replied that if he had any matters to wrap up, it would be wise to take care of them, as it was impossible to predict what might happen.

He then turned the discourse, and said he had just been with the young officer under arrest, who, he hoped, would not be removed at present, as such a procedure must endanger his life. The Marquis uttered a dreadful oath, and, cursing Theodore for having brought him to his present condition, said he should depart with the guard that very night. Against the cruelty of this sentence the physician ventured to expostulate; and endeavouring to awaken the Marquis to a sense of humanity, pleaded earnestly for Theodore. But these entreaties and arguments seemed, by displaying to the Marquis a part of his own character, to rouse his resentment and rekindle all the violence of his passions.

He then changed the topic and said he had just spoken to the young officer who was under arrest, and he hoped he wouldn’t be moved right now, as that could put his life in danger. The Marquis swore angrily and, blaming Theodore for his situation, declared that he would leave with the guard that very night. The physician dared to protest against this cruel decision and, trying to appeal to the Marquis’s sense of compassion, earnestly pleaded for Theodore. But these pleas and arguments seemed to only show the Marquis a side of himself, provoking his anger and reigniting all his violent passions.

The physician at length withdrew in despondency, after promising, at the Marquis's request, not to leave the inn. He had hoped, by aggravating his danger, to obtain some advantages both for Adeline and Theodore; but the plan had quite a contrary effect: for the apprehension of death, so dreadful to the guilty mind of the Marquis, instead of awakening penitence, increased his desire of vengeance against the man who had brought him to such a situation. He determined to have Adeline conveyed where Theodore, should he by any accident escape, could never obtain her; and thus to secure to himself at least some means of revenge. He knew, however, that when Theodore was once safely conveyed to his regiment, his destruction was certain; for should he even be acquitted of the intention of deserting, he would be condemned for having assaulted his superior officer.

The doctor finally left, feeling hopeless, after promising the Marquis he wouldn't leave the inn. He had hoped that by making his situation worse, he could gain some advantages for Adeline and Theodore. But the plan backfired: instead of feeling remorse, the fear of death only intensified the Marquis's desire for revenge against the man who had put him in this position. He decided to have Adeline taken somewhere Theodore could never reach her, ensuring he would have at least some way to get back at him. However, he knew that once Theodore was safely back with his regiment, his downfall would be inevitable. Even if he were acquitted of the intent to desert, he would still be charged with assaulting a superior officer.

The physician returned to the room where Theodore was confined. The violence of his distress was now subsided into a stern despair more dreadful than the vehemence which had lately possessed him. The guard, in compliance with his request, having left the room, the physician repeated to him some part of his conversation with the Marquis. Theodore, after expressing his thanks, said he had nothing more to hope. For himself he felt little; it was for his family and Adeline he suffered. He inquired what route she had taken; and though he had no prospect of deriving advantage from the information, desired the physician to assist him in obtaining it: but the landlord and his wife either were, or affected to be, ignorant of the matter, and it was in vain to apply to any other person.

The doctor returned to the room where Theodore was locked up. The intensity of his distress had now turned into a grim despair that was more terrifying than the rage he had felt recently. The guard, following his request, had left the room, so the doctor shared some details of his conversation with the Marquis. Theodore, after thanking him, said he had nothing more to hope for. He felt little for himself; his suffering was for his family and Adeline. He asked what route she had taken, and although he knew he wouldn’t benefit from the information, he asked the doctor to help him find out. But the landlord and his wife either claimed to be unaware of it or really didn’t know, and it was useless to ask anyone else.

The sergeant now entered with orders from the Marquis for the immediate departure of Theodore, who heard the message with composure, though the physician could not help expressing his indignation at this precipitate removal, and his dread of the consequences that might attend it. Theodore had scarcely time to declare his gratitude for the kindness of this valuable friend, before the soldiers entered the room to conduct him to the carriage in waiting. As he bade him farewell, Theodore slipped his purse into his hand, and turning abruptly away, told the soldiers to lead on: but the physician stopped him, and refused the present with such serious warmth that he was compelled to resume it. He wrung the hand of his new friend, and being unable to speak, hurried away. The whole party immediately set off; and the unhappy Theodore was left to the remembrance of his past hopes and sufferings, to his anxiety for the fate of Adeline, the contemplation of his present wretchedness, and the apprehension of what might be reserved for him in future. For himself, indeed, he saw nothing but destruction, and was only relieved from total despair by a feeble hope that she whom he loved better than himself might one time enjoy that happiness of which he did not venture to look for a participation.

The sergeant walked in with orders from the Marquis for Theodore to leave immediately. Theodore listened calmly, but the physician couldn’t hide his anger at the hasty removal and his fears about the potential consequences. Theodore barely had time to express his gratitude for the support of this valuable friend before the soldiers entered to escort him to the carriage waiting outside. As he said goodbye, Theodore slipped some money into his hand, and turning away abruptly, told the soldiers to go ahead. But the physician stopped him and refused the gift with such earnestness that he had to take it back. He squeezed the hand of his new friend, and unable to find words, hurried off. The whole group set off immediately, leaving the unfortunate Theodore alone to reflect on his past hopes and sufferings, his worry for Adeline’s fate, his current misery, and his fear of what was yet to come. He could see nothing ahead but destruction and was only somewhat comforted by a faint hope that the woman he loved more than himself might one day find the happiness he no longer dared to seek for himself.







CHAPTER XIV

Do you have the courage? When your head was just hurting,
I wrap my handkerchief around your forehead,
And at midnight, I held your head in my hand;
And, like the attentive minutes to the hour.
Now and then, it lifted the gloomy atmosphere.
King John.
If the midnight chime
Spoke with his strong voice and bold words,
Sound one to the sleepy crowd of night;
If this were a churchyard where we stand,
And you are burdened with a thousand wrongs;
Or if that gloomy spirit Melancholy
Had baked your blood and made it heavy, thick;
Then, despite the watchful day with its wide-open eyes,
I would share my thoughts with you.
King John.

Meanwhile the persecuted Adeline continued to travel, with little interruption, all night. Her mind suffered such a tumult of grief, regret, despair, and terror, that she could not be said to think. The Marquis's valet, who had placed himself in the chaise with her, at first seemed inclined to talk; but her inattention soon silenced him, and left her to the indulgence of her own misery.

Meanwhile, the persecuted Adeline kept traveling, with hardly any breaks, all night. Her mind was overwhelmed with a mix of grief, regret, despair, and terror, to the point where she couldn't really think. The Marquis's valet, who had gotten into the carriage with her, initially seemed eager to chat; however, her lack of interest quickly silenced him and let her wallow in her own misery.

They seemed to travel through obscure lanes and by-ways, along which the carriage drove as furiously as the darkness would permit. When the dawn appeared, she perceived herself on the borders of a forest, and renewed her entreaties to know whither she was going. The man replied he had no orders to tell, but she would soon see. Adeline, who had hitherto supposed they were carrying her to the villa, now began to doubt it; and as every place appeared less terrible to her imagination than that, her despair began to abate, and she thought only of the devoted Theodore, whom she knew to be the victim of malice and revenge.

They seemed to be driving through dark, winding streets, going as fast as the night would allow. When dawn broke, she realized she was on the edge of a forest and repeated her pleas to find out where they were headed. The man responded that he wasn’t allowed to share that information, but she would find out soon enough. Adeline, who had initially thought they were taking her to the villa, started to have doubts. Since every place seemed less frightening to her than that, her despair began to lessen, and all she could think about was the devoted Theodore, whom she knew was being targeted out of spite and revenge.

They now entered upon the forest, and it occurred to her that she was going to the abbey; for though she had no remembrance of the scenery through which she passed, it was not the less probable that this was the forest of Fontanville, whose boundaries were by much too extensive to have come within the circle of her former walks. This conjecture revived a terror little inferior to that occasioned by the idea of going to the villa; for at the abbey she would be equally in the power of the Marquis, and also in that of her cruel enemy La Motte. Her mind revolted at the picture her fancy drew; and as the carriage moved under the shades, she threw from the window a look of eager inquiry for some object which might confirm or destroy her present surmise: she did not long look, before an opening in the forest showed her the distant towers of the abbey—I am, indeed, lost then, said she, bursting into tears.

They entered the forest, and it struck her that she was heading to the abbey; although she didn’t remember the scenery she was passing through, it seemed likely that this was the forest of Fontanville, which was far too large to fit within the boundaries of her previous walks. This thought brought back a fear that was almost as intense as the idea of going to the villa; at the abbey, she would be just as much at the mercy of the Marquis and her cruel enemy La Motte. She couldn’t stand the image her mind created, and as the carriage moved through the shadows, she peered out the window, eager to find something that could either confirm or dispel her current suspicion. It wasn’t long before she spotted an opening in the forest that revealed the distant towers of the abbey—“I am truly lost then,” she said, bursting into tears.

They were soon at the foot of the lawn, and Peter was seen running to open the gate, at which the carriage stopped. When he saw Adeline, he looked surprised and made an effort to speak; but the chaise now drove up to the abbey, where, at the door of the hall, La Motte himself appeared. As he advanced to take her from the carriage, an universal trembling seized her; it was with the utmost difficulty she supported herself, and for some moments she neither observed his countenance nor heard his voice. He offered his arm to assist her into the abbey, which she at first refused, but having tottered a few paces was obliged to accept; they then entered the vaulted room, where, sinking into a chair, a flood of tears came to her relief. La Motte did not interrupt the silence, which continued for some time, but paced the room in seeming agitation. When Adeline was sufficiently recovered to notice external objects, she observed his countenance, and there read the tumult of his soul, while he was struggling to assume a firmness which his better feelings opposed.

They soon arrived at the edge of the lawn, and Peter was seen running to open the gate where the carriage stopped. When he spotted Adeline, he looked surprised and tried to speak; but the carriage then drove up to the abbey, where La Motte himself appeared at the door of the hall. As he moved forward to help her out of the carriage, a deep tremor took hold of her; she struggled to hold herself together, and for several moments, she didn’t notice his expression or hear his voice. He offered his arm to help her into the abbey, which she initially refused, but after tottering a few steps, she had no choice but to accept it; they then entered the vaulted room, where, collapsing into a chair, a wave of tears brought her some relief. La Motte didn’t break the silence, which lasted for a while, but walked around the room in apparent agitation. When Adeline was finally able to focus on her surroundings, she noticed his expression and saw the turmoil in his soul, while he struggled to maintain a composure that his deeper feelings resisted.

La Motte now took her hand, and would have led her from the room; but she stopped, and with a kind of desperate courage made an effort to engage him to pity and to save her. He interrupted her; It is not in my power, said he in a voice of emotion; I am not master of myself or my conduct; inquire no further—it is sufficient for you to know that I pity you; more I cannot do. He gave her no time to reply, but taking her hand led her to the stairs of the tower, and from thence to the chamber she had formerly occupied.

La Motte took her hand and tried to lead her out of the room, but she paused and, gathering some desperate courage, made an effort to get him to feel sympathy for her and to help her. He cut her off, saying in an emotional tone, "It's beyond my control; I can’t manage my own actions or feelings. Don’t ask any more—just know that I pity you; that’s all I can offer." He didn’t give her a chance to respond and, taking her hand, guided her to the stairs of the tower and then to the room she had previously occupied.

Here you must remain for the present, said he, in a confinement which is, perhaps, almost as involuntary on my part as it can be on yours. I am willing to render it as easy as possible, and have therefore ordered some books to be brought you.

Here you have to stay for now, he said, in a situation that might be just as unwilling on my part as it is on yours. I want to make it as comfortable as I can, so I’ve arranged for some books to be brought to you.

Adeline made an effort to speak; but he hurried from the room, seemingly ashamed of the part he had undertaken, and unwilling to trust himself with her tears. She heard the door of the chamber locked; and then looking towards the windows, perceived they were secured: the door that led to the other apartments was also fastened. Such preparation for security shocked her; and hopeless as she had long believed herself, she now perceived her mind sink deeper in despair. When the tears she shed had somewhat relieved her, and her thoughts could turn from the subjects of her immediate concern, she was thankful for the total seclusion allotted her, since it would spare her the pain she must feel in the presence of Monsieur and Madame La Motte, and allow the unrestrained indulgence of her own sorrow and reflection; reflection which, however distressing, was preferable to the agony inflicted on the mind when, agitated by care and fear, it is obliged to assume an appearance of tranquillity.

Adeline tried to speak, but he rushed out of the room, clearly embarrassed by what he had done and unable to face her tears. She heard the door to the room lock and, looking towards the windows, realized they were secured. The door leading to the other rooms was also locked. This level of security shocked her, and despite how hopeless she had felt for a long time, she now felt her despair grow deeper. After she shed some tears and felt a little relief, she was grateful for the complete isolation she had, as it spared her the pain of being with Monsieur and Madame La Motte and allowed her to fully indulge in her grief and thoughts. Even though reflecting was distressing, it was better than the torment caused by having to pretend to be calm when her mind was troubled by worry and fear.

In about a quarter of an hour her chamber door was unlocked, and Annette appeared with refreshments and books: she expressed satisfaction at seeing Adeline again, but seemed fearful of speaking, knowing, probably, that it was contrary to the orders of La Motte, who, she said, was waiting at the bottom of the stairs. When Annette was gone, Adeline took some refreshment, which was indeed necessary, for she had tasted nothing since she left the inn. She was pleased, but not surprised, that Madame La Motte did not appear, who, it was evident, shunned her from a consciousness of her own ungenerous conduct,—a consciousness which offered some presumption that she was still not wholly unfriendly to her. She reflected upon the words of La Motte,—I am not master of myself or my conduct,—and though they afforded her no hope, she derived some comfort, poor as it was, from the belief that he pitied her. After some time spent in miserable reflection and various conjectures, her long-agitated spirits seemed to demand repose, and she lay down to sleep.

In about fifteen minutes, her room door was unlocked, and Annette came in with snacks and books. She was glad to see Adeline again but seemed hesitant to talk, probably knowing it went against La Motte's orders, who, she said, was waiting at the bottom of the stairs. After Annette left, Adeline had some food, which she really needed since she hadn't eaten anything since leaving the inn. She was happy, but not surprised, that Madame La Motte didn't show up; it was clear she was avoiding her due to her own guilty conscience—which suggested that she might not be entirely unfriendly after all. Adeline thought about La Motte's words—I'm not in control of myself or my actions—and although they gave her no hope, she found some small comfort, however insufficient, in believing that he felt sorry for her. After spending some time in miserable reflection and various thoughts, her frazzled mind seemed to crave rest, and she lay down to sleep.

Adeline slept quietly for several hours, and awoke with a mind refreshed and tranquillized. To prolong this temporary peace, and to prevent therefore the intrusion of her own thoughts, she examined the books La Motte had sent her: among these she found some that in happier times had elevated her mind and interested her heart: their effect was now weakened; they were still, however, able to soften for a time the sense of her misfortunes.

Adeline slept soundly for several hours and woke up feeling refreshed and calm. To extend this brief moment of peace and keep her own thoughts at bay, she looked through the books La Motte had sent her. Among these, she found some that had once uplifted her spirit and captivated her heart in happier times. Their impact was now diminished, but they were still able to ease her awareness of her troubles for a little while.

But this Lethean medicine to a wounded mind was but a temporary blessing; the entrance of La Motte dissolved the illusions of the page, and awakened her to a sense of her own situation. He came with food, and having placed it on the table left the room without speaking. Again she endeavoured to read, but his appearance had broken the enchantment; bitter reflection returned to her mind, and brought with it the image of Theodore—of Theodore lost to her for ever!

But this forgetful remedy for a troubled mind was only a temporary relief; when La Motte entered, it shattered the illusions of the page and brought her back to the reality of her situation. He came in with food, set it on the table, and left the room without saying a word. She tried to read again, but his arrival had ruined the magic; painful thoughts flooded her mind, along with the image of Theodore—of Theodore lost to her forever!

La Motte meanwhile experienced all the terrors that could be inflicted by a conscience not wholly hardened to guilt. He had been led on by passion to dissipation, and from dissipation to vice; but having once touched the borders of infamy, the progressive steps followed each other fast, and he now saw himself the pander of a villain, and the betrayer of an innocent girl whom every plea of justice and humanity called upon him to protect. He contemplated his picture—he shrunk from it, but he could change its deformity only by an effort too nobly daring for a mind already effeminated by vice. He viewed the dangerous labyrinth into which he was led, and perceived, as if for the first time, the progression of his guilt: from this labyrinth he weakly imagined further guilt could alone extricate him. Instead of employing his mind upon the means of saving Adeline from destruction, and himself from being instrumental to it, he endeavoured only to lull the pangs of conscience, and to persuade himself into a belief that he must proceed in the course he had begun. He knew himself to be in the power of the Marquis, and he dreaded that power more than the sure though distant punishment that awaits upon guilt. The honour of Adeline, and the quiet of his own conscience, he consented to barter for a few years of existence.

La Motte, in the meantime, experienced all the fears that could come from a conscience not completely hardened to guilt. He had been driven by passion into a life of excess, and from excess into wrongdoing; but having once brushed against infamy, the steps toward his downfall came quickly, and he now saw himself as the accomplice of a villain and the betrayer of an innocent girl whom all appeals to justice and humanity urged him to protect. He looked at his situation—he recoiled from it, but he could only change its ugliness with an effort too noble for a mind already weakened by vice. He recognized the dangerous maze he had entered and understood, as if for the first time, the progression of his guilt: from this maze, he foolishly thought that only further wrongdoing could free him. Instead of focusing on how to save Adeline from destruction and himself from being part of it, he only sought to dull the pangs of conscience and persuade himself that he had to continue down the path he had chosen. He knew he was at the mercy of the Marquis, and he feared that power more than the certain but distant punishment that awaited guilt. He agreed to trade Adeline's honor and his own peace of mind for a few more years of life.

He was ignorant of the present illness of the Marquis, or he would have perceived that there was a chance of escaping the threatened punishment at a price less enormous than infamy, and he would perhaps have endeavoured to save Adeline and himself by flight. But the Marquis, foreseeing the possibility of this, had ordered his servants carefully to conceal the circumstance which detained him, and to acquaint La Motte that he should be at the abbey in a few days, at the same time directing his valet to await him there. Adeline, as he expected, had neither inclination nor opportunity to mention it; and thus La Motte remained ignorant of the circumstance which might have preserved him from further guilt and Adeline from misery.

He was unaware of the Marquis's current illness, or he would have realized that there was a chance to avoid the impending punishment at a cost less dramatic than disgrace, and he might have tried to escape with Adeline. But the Marquis, anticipating this possibility, had instructed his servants to carefully hide the situation that kept him from returning and to inform La Motte that he would be at the abbey in a few days, while also telling his valet to wait for him there. Adeline, as he expected, had neither the desire nor the chance to mention it; and so La Motte remained in the dark about the situation that could have saved him from further wrongdoing and Adeline from suffering.

Most unwillingly had La Motte made his wife acquainted with the action which had made him absolutely dependent upon the will of the Marquis; but the perturbation of his mind partly betrayed him: frequently in his sleep he muttered incoherent sentences, and frequently would start from his slumber, and call in passionate exclamation upon Adeline. These instances of a disturbed mind had alarmed and terrified Madame La Motte, who watched while he slept, and soon gathered from his words a confused idea of the Marquis's designs.

Most reluctantly, La Motte had told his wife about the situation that left him completely at the mercy of the Marquis; however, his troubled mind often gave him away: he would frequently mutter nonsensical phrases in his sleep and often wake up suddenly, calling out for Adeline in a fit of passion. These signs of a disturbed mind had alarmed and frightened Madame La Motte, who watched over him as he slept, and soon pieced together a vague understanding of the Marquis's intentions from his words.

She hinted her suspicions to La Motte, who reproved her for having entertained them; but his manner, instead of repressing, increased her fears for Adeline; fears, which the conduct of the Marquis soon confirmed. On the night that he slept at the abbey, it had occurred to her that whatever scheme was in agitation it would now most probably be discussed; and anxiety for Adeline made her stoop to a meanness which, in other circumstances, would have been despicable. She quitted her room, and concealing herself in an apartment adjoining that in which she had left the Marquis and her husband, listened to their discourse. It turned upon the subject she had expected, and disclosed to her the full extent of their designs. Terrified for Adeline, and shocked at the guilty weakness of La Motte, she was for some time incapable of thinking, or determining how to proceed. She knew her husband to be under great obligation to the Marquis, whose territory thus afforded him a shelter from the world, and that it was in the power of the former to betray him into the hands of his enemies. She believed also that the Marquis would do this, if provoked: yet she thought, upon such an occasion, La Motte might find some way of appeasing the Marquis without subjecting himself to dishonour. After some further reflection, her mind became more composed, and she returned to her chamber, where La Motte soon followed. Her spirits, however, were not now in a state to encounter either his displeasure or his opposition, which she had too much reason to expect whenever she should mention the subject of her concern, and she therefore resolved not to notice it till the morrow.

She hinted at her suspicions to La Motte, who scolded her for having them; but his reaction only increased her worries for Adeline. Her fears were soon confirmed by the way the Marquis acted. On the night he stayed at the abbey, she realized that whatever plans were in the works would likely be discussed then, and her anxiety for Adeline led her to do something she usually found beneath her. She left her room and, hiding in a nearby room next to where the Marquis and her husband were, listened to their conversation. It turned out to be about the very topic she expected, revealing the full scope of their plans. Terrified for Adeline and appalled by La Motte's weakness, she was momentarily at a loss for what to think or how to act. She knew that her husband owed a lot to the Marquis, who provided him with shelter from the outside world, and that La Motte had the power to betray him to his enemies. She also believed that the Marquis might do this if provoked; however, she thought La Motte could perhaps smooth things over with the Marquis without losing his honor. After considering it a bit more, her thoughts settled, and she returned to her room, where La Motte soon followed. However, her emotions weren't in a place where she could handle his anger or resistance, which she expected would come up if she brought up her worries, so she decided to wait until the next day to mention it.

On the morrow she told La Motte all he had uttered in his dreams; and mentioned other circumstances, which convinced him it was in vain any longer to deny the truth of her apprehensions. His wife then represented to him how possible it was to avoid the infamy into which he was about to plunge, by quitting the territories of the Marquis; and pleaded so warmly for Adeline, that La Motte in sullen silence appeared to meditate upon the plan. His thoughts were however very differently engaged. He was conscious of having deserved from the Marquis a dreadful punishment, and knew that if he exasperated him by refusing to acquiesce with his wishes, he had little to expect from flight, for the eye of justice and revenge would pursue him with indefatigable research.

The next day, she told La Motte everything he had said in his dreams and brought up other details that convinced him it was pointless to deny the truth of her concerns any longer. His wife then pointed out that he could avoid the disgrace he was about to face by leaving the Marquis's lands, and she argued passionately for Adeline, prompting La Motte to sit in gloomy silence as he considered the idea. However, his thoughts were occupied with something else. He was aware that he deserved a severe punishment from the Marquis and understood that if he angered him by refusing to comply with his wishes, he could expect little from fleeing, as the forces of justice and revenge would relentlessly pursue him.

La Motte meditated how to break this to his wife, for he perceived that there was no other method of counteracting her virtuous compassion for Adeline, and the dangerous consequences to be expected from it, than by opposing it with terror for his safety; and this could be done only by showing her the full extent of the evils that must attend the resentment of the Marquis. Vice had not yet so entirely darkened his conscience, but that the blush of shame stained his cheek, and his tongue faltered when he would have told his guilt. At length, finding it impossible to mention particulars, he told her that on account of an affair which no entreaties should ever induce him to explain, his life was in the power of the Marquis. You see the alternative, said he, take your choice of evils; and, if you can, tell Adeline of her danger, and sacrifice my life to save her from a situation which many would be ambitious to obtain.—Madame La Motte, condemned to the horrible alternative of permitting the seduction of innocence, or of dooming her husband to destruction, suffered a distraction of thought which defied all control. Perceiving, however, that an opposition to the designs of the Marquis would ruin La Motte and avail Adeline little, she determined to yield and endure in silence.

La Motte thought about how to tell his wife, realizing that the only way to counteract her virtuous concern for Adeline—and the serious consequences it could bring—was to replace it with fear for his safety. The only way to do this was by revealing the extent of the dangers posed by the Marquis. His conscience wasn’t completely consumed by guilt yet, as a blush of shame colored his cheeks, and his words stumbled when he tried to confess his wrongdoing. Eventually, unable to share the details, he told her that because of a situation he would never explain, his life was in the hands of the Marquis. “You see the choice,” he said, “pick your evil; and if you can, inform Adeline of her danger and risk my life to protect her from a scenario that many would envy.” Madame La Motte, faced with the terrible choice of allowing innocence to be corrupted or condemning her husband to destruction, found herself in a state of turmoil that was beyond her control. However, seeing that opposing the Marquis would ruin La Motte and do little to help Adeline, she decided to give in and suffer in silence.

At the time when Adeline was planning her escape from the abbey, the significant looks of Peter had led La Motte to suspect the truth and to observe them more closely. He had seen them separate in the hall with apparent confusion, and had afterwards observed them conversing together in the cloisters. Circumstances so unusual left him not a doubt that Adeline had discovered her danger, and was concerting with Peter some means of escape. Affecting, therefore, to be informed of the whole affair, he charged Peter with treachery towards himself, and threatened him with the vengeance of the Marquis if he did not disclose all he knew. The menace intimidated Peter, and supposing that all chance of assisting Adeline was gone, he made a circumstantial confession, and promised to forbear acquainting Adeline with the discovery of the scheme. In this promise he was seconded by inclination, for he feared to meet the displeasure which Adeline, believing he had betrayed her, might express.

At the time when Adeline was planning her escape from the abbey, Peter's significant glances had made La Motte suspicious of the truth and prompted him to watch them more closely. He had seen them part in the hall with clear confusion, and later he noticed them talking together in the cloisters. Such unusual circumstances left him with no doubt that Adeline had realized her danger and was coordinating an escape plan with Peter. Therefore, pretending to be fully aware of what was going on, he accused Peter of betraying him and threatened him with the Marquis's wrath if he didn't reveal everything he knew. The threat intimidated Peter, and believing that any chance to help Adeline had vanished, he gave a detailed confession and promised not to inform Adeline about the discovery of the plan. He was also inclined to keep this promise because he feared facing Adeline's anger, as she might think he had betrayed her.

On the evening of the day on which Adeline's intended escape was discovered, the Marquis designed to come to the abbey, and it had been agreed that he should then take Adeline to his villa. La Motte had immediately perceived the advantage of permitting Adeline to repair, in the belief of being undiscovered, to the tomb. It would prevent much disturbance and opposition, and spare himself the pain he must feel in her presence, when she should know that he had betrayed her. A servant of the Marquis might go at the appointed hour to the tomb, and wrapt in the disguise of night might take her quietly thence in the character of Peter. Thus, without resistance she would be carried to the villa, nor discover her mistake till it was too late to prevent its consequence.

On the evening when Adeline's planned escape was found out, the Marquis planned to come to the abbey, and it was agreed that he would then take Adeline to his villa. La Motte quickly saw the benefit of allowing Adeline to go to the tomb, thinking she was undetected. It would help avoid a lot of trouble and conflict, and save him from the pain he would feel when she realized he had betrayed her. A servant of the Marquis could go to the tomb at the agreed time, and wrapped in the cover of night could quietly take her away disguised as Peter. That way, without any resistance, she would be brought to the villa, not realizing her mistake until it was too late to change the outcome.

When the Marquis did arrive, La Motte, who was not so much intoxicated by the wine he had drunk as to forget his prudence, informed him of what had happened and what he had planned; and the Marquis approving it, his servant was made acquainted with the signal, which afterwards betrayed Adeline to his power.

When the Marquis finally arrived, La Motte, who wasn't so drunk from the wine he had consumed that he forgot to be cautious, informed him of what had happened and what he had in mind. The Marquis approved of the plan, and his servant was then made aware of the signal, which later led to Adeline being exposed to his control.

A deep consciousness of the unworthy neutrality she had observed in Adeline's concerns, made Madame La Motte anxiously avoid seeing her now that she was again in the abbey. Adeline understood this conduct; and she rejoiced that she was spared the anguish of meeting her as an enemy, whom she had once considered as a friend. Several days now passed in solitude, in miserable retrospection, and dreadful expectation. The perilous situation of Theodore was almost the constant subject of her thoughts. Often did she breathe an agonizing wish for his safety, and often look round the sphere of possibility in search of hope: but hope had almost left the horizon of her prospect, and when it did appear, it sprung only from the death of the Marquis, whose vengeance threatened most certain destruction.

A strong awareness of the unworthy indifference she had noticed in Adeline's matters made Madame La Motte eagerly avoid seeing her now that she was back at the abbey. Adeline understood this behavior and felt relieved that she was saved from the pain of facing her as an enemy, someone she had once thought of as a friend. Several days passed in isolation, filled with miserable reflection and dreadful anticipation. The dangerous situation of Theodore was almost always on her mind. She often sighed with a painful wish for his safety and frequently searched her surroundings for any glimmer of hope: but hope had almost vanished from her view, and when it did appear, it came only from the death of the Marquis, whose revenge posed a very real threat of destruction.

The Marquis, meanwhile, lay at the inn at Caux, in a state of very doubtful recovery. The physician and surgeon, neither of whom he would dismiss nor suffer to leave the village, proceeded upon contrary principles; and the good effect of what the one prescribed, was frequently counteracted by the injudicious treatment of the other. Humanity alone prevailed on the physician to continue his attendance. The malady of the Marquis was also heightened by the impatience of his temper, the terrors of death, and the irritation of his passions. One moment he believed himself dying, another he could scarcely be prevented from attempting to follow Adeline to the abbey. So various were the fluctuations of his mind, and so rapid the schemes that succeeded each other, that his passions were in a continual state of conflict. The physician attempted to persuade him that his recovery greatly depended upon tranquillity, and to prevail upon him to attempt at least some command of his feelings; but he was soon silenced in hopeless disgust by the impatient answers of the Marquis.

The Marquis, meanwhile, was at the inn in Caux, in a very questionable state of recovery. The doctor and the surgeon, neither of whom he would dismiss nor let leave the village, were working with opposing methods; and the beneficial effects of one’s treatment were often undermined by the misguided actions of the other. Only the doctor's sense of duty kept him attending. The Marquis's condition was worsened by his impatient nature, his fear of death, and the turmoil of his emotions. One moment he thought he was dying, and the next he could hardly be stopped from trying to follow Adeline to the abbey. His mind was in constant turmoil, with rapid shifts in plans leading to ongoing internal conflicts. The doctor tried to convince him that his recovery relied heavily on finding some peace and urged him to at least try to control his feelings, but he was quickly silenced by the Marquis's impatient responses.

At length the servant who had carried off Adeline returned; and the Marquis having ordered him into his chamber, asked so many questions in a breath, that the man knew not which to answer. At length he pulled a folded paper from his pocket, which he said had been dropped in the chaise by Mademoiselle Adeline, and as he thought his Lordship would like to see it, he had taken care of it. The Marquis stretched forth his hand with eagerness, and received a note addressed to Theodore. On perceiving the superscription, the agitation of jealous rage for a moment overcame him, and he held it in his hand unable to open it.

At last, the servant who had taken Adeline returned; and the Marquis, having ordered him into his room, fired so many questions at him all at once that the man didn’t know which to answer. Finally, he pulled a folded paper from his pocket, which he said had been dropped in the carriage by Mademoiselle Adeline, and since he thought his Lordship would want to see it, he had kept it safe. The Marquis eagerly reached out his hand and took the note addressed to Theodore. When he saw the name on the envelope, a surge of jealous rage momentarily overwhelmed him, and he held it in his hand, unable to open it.

He, however, broke the seal, and found it to be a note of inquiry, written by Adeline to Theodore during his illness, and which from some accident she had been prevented from sending him. The tender solicitude it expressed for his recovery stung the soul of the Marquis, and drew from him a comparison of her feelings on the illness of his rival and that of himself. She could be solicitous for his recovery, said he, but for mine she only dreads it. As if willing to prolong the pain this little billet had excited, he then read it again. Again he cursed his fate and execrated his rival. Giving himself up, as usual, to the transports of his passion, he was going to throw it from him, when his eyes caught the seal, and he looked earnestly at it: his anger seemed now to have subsided, he deposited the note carefully in his pocket-book, and was for some time lost in thought.

He broke the seal and discovered a note of concern that Adeline had written to Theodore during his illness, which she had somehow been unable to send him. The genuine care she expressed for his recovery stung the Marquis and led him to compare her feelings about his rival's illness to how she felt about him. She could show care for Theodore's recovery, he thought, but for him, she only seemed to fear it. Wanting to prolong the pain this little note had caused, he read it again. Once again, he cursed his fate and condemned his rival. Giving in, as usual, to the surge of his emotions, he was about to throw it away when he noticed the seal and stared at it intently: his anger seemed to fade, and he carefully tucked the note into his pocketbook, lost in thought for a while.

After many days of hopes and fears, the strength of his constitution overcame his illness, and he was well enough to write several letters, one of which he immediately sent off to prepare La Motte for his reception. The same policy which had prompted him to conceal his illness from La Motte, now urged him to say what he knew would not happen, that he should reach the abbey on the day after his servant. He repeated this injunction, that Adeline should be strictly guarded, and renewed his promises of reward for the future services of La Motte.

After many days filled with hopes and fears, his strong constitution overcame his illness, and he was well enough to write several letters, one of which he immediately sent to get La Motte ready for his arrival. The same reasoning that had led him to hide his illness from La Motte now pushed him to say something he knew wouldn't happen: that he would arrive at the abbey the day after his servant. He reiterated his instruction for Adeline to be kept under strict guard and renewed his promises of rewards for La Motte's future services.

La Motte, to whom each succeeding day had brought new surprise and perplexity concerning the absence of the Marquis, received this notice with uneasiness; for he had begun to hope that the Marquis had altered his intentions concerning Adeline, being either engaged in some new adventure, or obliged to visit his estates in some distant province: he would have been willing thus to have got rid of an affair, which was to reflect so much dishonour on himself.

La Motte, who found each passing day filled with new surprises and confusion about the Marquis's absence, received this news with unease; he had started to hope that the Marquis had changed his mind about Adeline, possibly caught up in some new adventure or forced to visit his properties in a faraway region. He would have preferred to sidestep a situation that would bring him so much dishonor.

This hope was now vanished, and he directed Madame to prepare for the reception of the Marquis. Adeline passed these days in a state of suspense which was now cheered by hope and now darkened by despair. The delay, so much exceeding her expectation, seemed to prove that the illness of the Marquis was dangerous; and when she looked forward to the consequences of his recovery, she could not be sorry that it was so. So odious was the idea of him to her mind, that she would not suffer her lips to pronounce his name, nor make the inquiry of Annette, which was of such consequence to her peace.

This hope had now vanished, and he told Madame to get ready for the visit of the Marquis. Adeline spent these days in a state of suspense, sometimes uplifted by hope and other times clouded by despair. The delay, far longer than she had anticipated, seemed to indicate that the Marquis's illness was serious; and when she thought about the potential outcomes of his recovery, she couldn’t help but feel relieved that it was happening this way. The very thought of him filled her with disgust, so much so that she wouldn't allow herself to say his name or ask Annette the question that mattered so much to her peace.

It was about a week after the receipt of the Marquis's letter that Adeline one day saw from her window a party of horsemen enter the avenue, and knew them to be the Marquis and his attendants. She retired from the window, in a state of mind not to be described, and sinking into a chair, was for some time scarcely conscious of the objects around her. When she had recovered from the first terror which his appearance excited, she again tottered to the window; the party was not in sight, but she heard the trampling of horses, and knew that the Marquis had wound round to the great gate of the abbey. She addressed herself to Heaven for support and protection; and her mind being now somewhat composed, sat down to wait the event.

About a week after receiving the Marquis's letter, Adeline looked out her window and saw a group of horsemen entering the avenue. She recognized them as the Marquis and his companions. She stepped away from the window, overwhelmed by emotions she couldn't describe, and sank into a chair, hardly aware of her surroundings for a while. Once she got past the initial shock of seeing him, she moved back to the window; the group was out of sight, but she could hear the sound of horses and knew the Marquis had gone around to the main gate of the abbey. She turned to Heaven for support and protection, and feeling a bit calmer, she sat down to wait for what would happen next.

La Motte received the Marquis with expressions of surprise at his long absence; and the latter, merely saying he had been detained by illness, proceeded to inquire for Adeline. He was told she was in her chamber, from whence she might be summoned if he wished to see her. The Marquis hesitated, and at length excused himself, but desired she might be strictly watched. Perhaps, my Lord, said La Motte smiling, Adeline's obstinacy has been too powerful for your passion? you seem less interested concerning her than formerly.

La Motte greeted the Marquis with surprise at how long he had been gone; the Marquis simply said he had been held up by illness and then asked about Adeline. He was told she was in her room and could be called if he wanted to see her. The Marquis hesitated and eventually declined, but requested that she be closely monitored. “Maybe, my Lord,” La Motte said with a smile, “Adeline's stubbornness has been too strong for your feelings? You seem less interested in her than you did before.”

O! by no means, replied the Marquis; she interests me if possible, more than ever; so much, indeed, that I cannot have her too closely guarded; and I therefore beg, La Motte, that you will suffer nobody to attend her but when you can observe them yourself. Is the room where she is confined sufficiently secure? La Motte assured him it was; but at the same time expressed his wish that she was removed to the villa. If by any means, said he, she should contrive to escape, I know what I must expect from your displeasure; and this reflection keeps my mind in continual anxiety.

“Oh, definitely not,” replied the Marquis; “she intrigues me, if anything, even more than before; so much so that I can’t have her too closely monitored. I ask you, La Motte, to allow no one to be near her unless you can keep an eye on them yourself. Is the room where she is held secure enough?” La Motte assured him that it was, but he expressed his wish that she be moved to the villa. “If she manages to escape in any way,” he said, “I know what I’ll face from your anger, and that thought keeps me perpetually anxious.”

This removal cannot be at present, said the Marquis; she is safer here, and you do wrong to disturb yourself with any apprehension of her escape, if her chamber is so secure as you represent it.

"This removal can't happen right now," said the Marquis. "She's safer here, and you’re wrong to worry about her escaping if her room is as secure as you say it is."

I can have no motive for deceiving you, my Lord, in this point.

I have no reason to mislead you, my Lord, on this matter.

I do not suspect you of any, said the Marquis; guard her carefully, and trust me she will not escape. I can rely upon my valet, and if you wish it he shall remain here. La Motte thought there could be no occasion for him, and it was agreed that the man should go home.

“I don’t suspect you of anything,” said the Marquis. “Take good care of her, and trust me, she won’t get away. I can count on my valet, and if you want, he can stay here.” La Motte thought there was no need for him, and they agreed that the man would go home.

The Marquis, after remaining about half an hour in conversation with La Motte, left the abbey; and Adeline saw him depart with a mixture of surprise and thankfulness that almost overcame her. She had waited in momentary expectation of being summoned to appear, and had been endeavouring to arm herself with resolution to support his presence. She had listened to every voice that sounded from below; and at every step that crossed the passage her heart had palpitated with dread, lest it should be La Motte coming to lead her to the Marquis. This state of suffering had been prolonged almost beyond her power of enduring it, when she heard voices under her window, and rising, saw the Marquis ride away. After giving way to the joy and thankfulness that swelled her heart, she endeavoured to account for this circumstance, which, considering what had passed, was certainly very strange. It appeared, indeed, wholly inexplicable; and after much fruitless inquiry, she quitted the subject, endeavouring to persuade herself that it could only portend good.

The Marquis, after spending about half an hour talking with La Motte, left the abbey; and Adeline watched him go with a mix of surprise and gratitude that nearly overwhelmed her. She had been waiting, expecting to be called to appear, and had been trying to gather the courage to face him. She listened closely to every sound from below, and with each step that echoed in the hallway, her heart raced with fear, hoping it wouldn’t be La Motte coming to take her to the Marquis. This feeling of anxiety had stretched on almost past her limits when she heard voices outside her window, and rising up, she saw the Marquis ride away. After letting the joy and thankfulness in her heart take over, she tried to understand why this had happened, which, considering everything that transpired, was certainly odd. It seemed completely unclear; and after pondering it fruitlessly, she moved on from the thought, trying to convince herself that it could only mean something good.

The time of La Motte's usual visitation now drew near, and Adeline expected it in the trembling hope of hearing that the Marquis had ceased his persecution; but he was, as usual, sullen and silent, and it was not till he was about to quit the room that Adeline had the courage to inquire when the Marquis was expected again. La Motte, opening the door to depart, replied, on the following day; and Adeline, whom fear and delicacy embarrassed, saw she could obtain no intelligence of Theodore but by a direct question; she looked earnestly, as if she would have spoke, and he stopped; but she blushed and was still silent, till upon his again attempting to leave the room she faintly called him back.

The time for La Motte's usual visit was approaching, and Adeline awaited it with a mix of hope and anxiety, wishing to hear that the Marquis had stopped his harassment. However, he was, as always, moody and quiet, and it wasn't until he was about to leave the room that Adeline found the courage to ask when the Marquis would come again. La Motte, opening the door to leave, replied that it would be the next day. Adeline, feeling both anxious and shy, realized she could only find out about Theodore by asking directly. She looked at him intently, as if she wanted to speak, and he paused; but she blushed and remained quiet. Just as he was about to exit the room again, she softly called him back.

I would ask, said she, after that unfortunate chevalier who has incurred the resentment of the Marquis, by endeavouring to serve me: Has the Marquis mentioned him?

I would like to ask, she said, about that unfortunate knight who has gotten on the Marquis's bad side by trying to help me: Has the Marquis said anything about him?

He has, replied La Motte; and your indifference towards the Marquis is now fully explained.

He has, replied La Motte; and your lack of interest in the Marquis is now completely understood.

Since I must feel resentment towards those who injure me, said Adeline, I may surely be allowed to be grateful towards those who serve me. Had the Marquis deserved my esteem, he would probably have possessed it.

Since I have to feel resentment towards those who hurt me, said Adeline, I should definitely be allowed to feel grateful towards those who help me. If the Marquis had deserved my respect, he probably would have had it.

Well, well, said La Motte, this young hero, who it seems has been brave enough to lift his arm against his Colonel, is taken care of, and I doubt not will soon be sensible of the value of his quixotism.—Indignation, grief, and fear, struggled in the bosom of Adeline; she disdained to give La Motte an opportunity of again pronouncing the name of Theodore; yet the uncertainty under which she laboured, urged her to inquire whether the Marquis had heard of him since he left Caux. Yes, said La Motte, he has been safely carried to his regiment, where he is confined till the Marquis can attend to appear against him.

Well, well, said La Motte, this young hero, who apparently has been brave enough to stand up to his Colonel, is being looked after, and I’m sure he will soon realize the foolishness of his actions. Indignation, grief, and fear battled inside Adeline; she refused to give La Motte another chance to mention Theodore's name; yet the uncertainty she felt pushed her to ask whether the Marquis had heard from him since he left Caux. Yes, said La Motte, he has been safely taken to his regiment, where he is being held until the Marquis can come to testify against him.

Adeline had neither power nor inclination to inquire further; and La Motte quitting the chamber, she was left to the misery he had renewed. Though this information contained no new circumstance of misfortune, (for she now heard confirmed what she had always expected,) a weight of new sorrow seemed to fall upon her heart, and she perceived that she had unconsciously cherished a latent hope of Theodore's escape before he reached the place of his destination. All hope was now, however, gone; he was suffering the miseries of a prison, and the tortures of apprehension both for his own life and her safety. She pictured to herself the dark damp dungeon where he lay, loaded with chains and pale with sickness and grief; she heard him, in a voice that thrilled her heart, call upon her name, and raise his eyes to heaven in silent supplication: she saw the anguish of his countenance, the tears that fell slowly on his cheek; and remembering at the same time, the generous conduct that had brought him to this abyss of misery, and that it was for her sake he suffered, grief resolved itself into despair, her tears ceased to flow, and she sunk silently into a state of dreadful torpor.

Adeline had no power or desire to ask more questions; and as La Motte left the room, she was left to the misery he had just brought back. Although this news didn’t reveal anything new, since she was hearing confirmed what she had always feared, a wave of new sorrow seemed to weigh down her heart. She realized that she had unconsciously held onto a hidden hope that Theodore might escape before reaching his destination. Now, though, all hope was gone; he was enduring the pains of a prison and the anxiety for both his life and her safety. She imagined the dark, damp cell where he lay, burdened with chains and pale from sickness and grief; she heard him, in a voice that pierced her heart, call out her name and raise his eyes to heaven in silent prayer. She saw the anguish on his face, the tears that fell slowly down his cheek; and remembering the noble actions that had led him to this pit of despair, and knowing it was for her sake he was suffering, her grief turned into despair, her tears stopped flowing, and she sank silently into a state of dreadful numbness.

On the morrow the Marquis arrived, and departed as before. Several days then elapsed, and he did not appear; till one evening, as La Motte and his wife were in their usual sitting-room, he entered, and conversed for some time upon general subjects, from which, however, he by degrees fell into a reverie, and after a pause of silence he rose and drew La Motte to the window. I would speak to you alone, said he, if you are at leisure; if not, another time will do. La Motte assuring him he was perfectly so, would have conducted him to another room, but the Marquis proposed a walk in the forest. They went out together; and when they had reached a solitary glade, where the spreading branches of the beech and oak deepened the shades of twilight and threw a solemn obscurity around, the Marquis turned to La Motte and addressed him:

The next day, the Marquis came and left just like before. A few days went by without him showing up, until one evening when La Motte and his wife were in their usual sitting room. He arrived, talked for a while about general topics, but gradually fell into a daydream. After a moment of silence, he got up and pulled La Motte over to the window. "I’d like to talk to you privately,” he said, “if you have the time; if not, we can do it another time.” La Motte assured him he had plenty of time and tried to lead him to another room, but the Marquis suggested a walk in the forest. They went out together, and when they reached a quiet clearing where the wide branches of the beech and oak trees deepened the twilight shadows and created a solemn atmosphere, the Marquis turned to La Motte and spoke to him:

Your condition, La Motte, is unhappy; this abbey is a melancholy residence for a man like you fond of society, and like you also qualified to adorn it. La Motte bowed. I wish it was in my power to restore you to the world, continued the Marquis; perhaps, if I knew the particulars of the affair which has driven you from it, I might perceive that my interest could effectually serve you:—I think I have heard you hint it was an affair of honour? La Motte was silent. I mean not to distress you, however; nor is it common curiosity that prompts this inquiry, but a sincere desire to befriend you. You have already informed me of some particulars of your misfortunes; I think the liberality of your temper led you into expenses which you afterwards endeavoured to retrieve by gaming?

Your situation, La Motte, is unfortunate; this abbey is a sad place for someone like you who enjoys company and is more than capable of enhancing it. La Motte bowed. I wish I could help bring you back to society, the Marquis continued; maybe if I understood the details of the situation that drove you away, I could find a way to genuinely assist you:—I believe you mentioned it was related to a matter of honor? La Motte remained silent. I don't mean to distress you, though; this isn’t just idle curiosity driving my questions, but a real wish to help you. You've already shared some details about your troubles; I think your generous nature led you to spend more than you could afford, and you later tried to recover those losses through gambling?

Yes, my Lord, said La Motte, 'tis true that I dissipated the greater part of an affluent fortune in luxurious indulgencies, and that I afterwards took unworthy means to recover it: but I wish to be spared upon this subject. I would, if possible, lose the remembrance of a transaction which must for ever stain my character, and the rigorous effect of which, I fear, it is not in your power, my Lord, to soften.

Yes, my Lord, said La Motte, it's true that I wasted most of a sizable fortune on lavish pleasures, and that I later resorted to unseemly methods to get it back: but I would prefer not to discuss this topic. If possible, I'd like to forget about an event that will always tarnish my reputation, and the harsh consequences of which, I fear, are beyond your ability, my Lord, to mitigate.

You may be mistaken on this point, replied the Marquis; my interest at court is by no means inconsiderable. Fear not from me any severity of censure; I am not at all inclined to judge harshly of the faults of others: I well know how to allow for the emergency of circumstances; and I think La Motte, you have hitherto found me your friend.

You might be wrong about this, replied the Marquis; my influence at court is definitely not small. Don't worry about me being harsh; I'm not the type to judge others too harshly for their mistakes. I understand that circumstances can be complicated, and I believe, La Motte, you've seen that I've been your friend up to now.

I have, my Lord.

I have, my Lord.

And when you recollect, that I have forgiven a certain transaction of late date——

And when you remember that I've recently forgiven a certain incident—

It is true, my Lord; and allow me to say, I have a just sense of your generosity. The transaction you allude to is by far the worst of my life; and what I have to relate cannot therefore lower me in your opinion. When I had dissipated the greatest part of my property in habits of voluptuous pleasure, I had recourse to gaming to supply the means of continuing them. A run of good luck for some time enabled me to do this; and encouraging my most sanguine expectations, I continued in the same career of success.

It’s true, my Lord; and let me say, I fully appreciate your generosity. The situation you're referring to is the worst of my life, and what I have to share won’t change how you see me. After I squandered most of my wealth on indulgent pleasures, I turned to gambling to keep them going. A streak of good luck for a while helped me do this, and fueling my most optimistic hopes, I kept on the same path of success.

Soon after this, a sudden turn of fortune destroyed my hopes, and reduced me to the most desperate extremity. In one night my money was lowered to the sum of two hundred louis. These I resolved to stake also, and with them my life; for it was my resolution not to survive their loss. Never shall I forget the horrors of that moment on which hung my fate, nor the deadly anguish that seized my heart when my last stake was gone. I stood for some time in a state of stupefaction, till, roused to a sense of my misfortune, my passion made me pour forth execrations on my more fortunate rivals, and act all the phrensy of despair. During this paroxysm of madness, a gentleman, who had been a silent observer of all that passed, approached me.—You are unfortunate, Sir, said he.—I need not be informed of that. Sir, I replied.

Soon after this, a sudden change in luck shattered my hopes and left me in a desperate situation. In one night, my money was reduced to two hundred louis. I decided to bet that as well, along with my life; I was resolved not to live if I lost it all. I will never forget the horror of that moment that determined my fate, nor the crushing anguish that gripped my heart when my last bet was lost. I stood there for a while in shock, and when I finally realized my misfortune, my anger made me curse my luckier competitors and act out in a frenzy of despair. During this fit of madness, a gentleman who had been quietly watching everything approached me. "You’re having a rough time, sir," he said. "I don’t need you to tell me that," I replied.

You have perhaps been ill used? resumed he.—Yes, Sir, I am ruined, and therefore it may be said I am ill used.

You might have been treated badly? he continued. —Yes, Sir, I'm ruined, so I guess you could say I've been treated badly.

Do you know the people you have played with?

Do you know the people you've played with?

No; but I have met them in the first circles.

No, but I've met them in the elite circles.

Then I am probably mistaken, said he, and walked away. His last words roused me, and raised a hope that my money had not been fairly lost. Wishing for further information, I went in search of the gentleman, but he had left the rooms. I however stifled my transports, returned to the table where I had lost my money, placed myself behind the chair of one of the persons who had won it, and closely watched the game. For some time I saw nothing that could confirm my suspicions, but was at length convinced they were just.

Then I must be wrong, he said, and walked away. His last words stirred something in me and sparked a hope that my money hadn’t really been lost for good. Wanting more information, I searched for the guy, but he had already left the room. I managed to hold back my excitement, returned to the table where I lost my money, placed myself behind the chair of one of the winners, and closely observed the game. For a while, I didn’t see anything that confirmed my suspicions, but eventually, I became sure they were right.

When the game was ended I called one of my adversaries out of the room, and telling him what I had observed, threatened instantly to expose him if he did not restore my property. The man was for some time as positive as myself; and assuming the bully, threatened me with chastisement for my scandalous assertions. I was not, however, in a state of mind to be frightened; and his manner served only to exasperate my temper, already sufficiently inflamed by misfortune. After retorting his threats, I was about to return to the apartment we had left, and expose what had passed, when, with an insidious smile and a softened voice, he begged I would favour him with a few moments' attention, and allow him to speak with the gentleman his partner. To the latter part of his request I hesitated, but in the mean time the gentleman himself entered the room. His partner related to him, in few words, what had passed between us, and the terror that appeared in his countenance sufficiently declared his consciousness of guilt.

When the game was over, I called one of my opponents out of the room and told him what I had noticed, threatening to expose him immediately if he didn’t return my belongings. He was as stubborn as I was for a while and, trying to act tough, threatened to punish me for my outrageous claims. However, I wasn’t in a mindset to be intimidated, and his attitude only made me more angry, already fueled by my bad luck. After firing back at his threats, I was about to go back to the room we had left and reveal what had happened when, with a sneaky smile and a softer tone, he asked me to give him a few moments’ attention and let him speak with the gentleman who was his partner. I was hesitant about the second part of his request, but at that moment, the gentleman himself walked into the room. His partner quickly explained to him what had transpired between us, and the fear that showed on his face clearly revealed his guilt.

They then drew aside, and remained a few minutes in conversation together, after which they approached me with an offer, as they phrased it, of a compromise. I declared, however, against any thing of this kind, and swore nothing less than the whole sum I had lost should content me.—Is it not possible, Monsieur, that you may be offered something as advantageous as the whole?—I did not understand their meaning; but after they had continued for some time to give distant hints of the same sort, they proceeded to explain.

They then stepped aside and talked for a few minutes before coming back to me with what they called a compromise offer. I told them that I wouldn't accept anything less than the full amount I had lost. —Is it possible, sir, that you could receive something as beneficial as the whole sum?—I didn't get what they meant, but after they hinted at it for a while, they began to explain.

Perceiving their characters wholly in my power, they wished to secure my interest to their party, and therefore informing me that they belonged to an association of persons who lived upon the folly and inexperience of others, they offered me a share in their concern. My fortunes were desperate; and the proposal now made me would not only produce an immediate supply, but enable me to return to those scenes of dissipated pleasure to which passion had at first, and long habit afterwards, attached me. I closed with the offer, and thus sunk from dissipation into infamy.

Seeing that their fates were completely in my hands, they wanted to win me over to their side. They told me they were part of a group that thrived on the foolishness and naivety of others and offered me a stake in their operation. My situation was hopeless, and their proposal would not only provide immediate support but also allow me to return to the scenes of indulgence I had once been passionate about, and which long habit had drawn me back to. I accepted their offer and thus fell from a life of excess into disgrace.

La Motte paused, as if the recollection of these times filled him with remorse. The Marquis understood his feelings. You judge too rigorously of yourself, said he; there are few persons, let their appearance of honesty be what it may, who in such circumstances would have acted better than you have done. Had I been in your situation, I know not how I might have acted. That rigid virtue which shall condemn you, may dignify itself with the appellation of wisdom, but I wish not to possess it; let it still reside where it generally is to be found, in the cold bosoms of those who, wanting feeling to be men, dignify themselves with the title of philosophers. But pray proceed.

La Motte stopped, as if remembering those times filled him with regret. The Marquis understood his feelings. "You're too hard on yourself," he said. "There are very few people, no matter how honest they seem, who would have handled things better than you did in your situation. If I were in your shoes, I'm not sure how I would have acted. That strict virtue that criticizes you may call itself wisdom, but I don’t want it; let it stay with those who lack the compassion to be human, who elevate themselves with the title of philosophers. But please, go on."

Our success was for some time unlimited, for we held the wheel of fortune, and trusted not to her caprice. Thoughtless and voluptuous by nature, my expenses fully kept pace with my income. An unlucky discovery of the practices of our party was at length made by a young nobleman, which obliged us to act for some time with the utmost circumspection. It would be tedious to relate the particulars, which made us at length so suspected, that the distant civility and cold reserve of our acquaintance rendered the frequenting public assemblies both painful and unprofitable. We turned our thoughts to other modes of obtaining money; and a swindling transaction, in which I engaged to a very large amount, soon compelled me to leave Paris. You know the rest my Lord.

Our success was limitless for a while because we were in control of our fate and didn't rely on luck. Naturally careless and indulgent, my spending matched my income perfectly. Eventually, a young nobleman uncovered our group's activities, forcing us to be extremely cautious for some time. Detailing everything that led to our suspicion would be tedious; it got to the point where the distant politeness and icy withdrawal of our acquaintances made attending public events both uncomfortable and unproductive. We started considering other ways to make money, and a shady deal I got involved in for a significant amount soon forced me to leave Paris. You know the rest, my Lord.

La Motte was now silent, and the Marquis continued for some time musing. You perceive, my Lord, at length resumed La Motte, you perceive that my case is hopeless.

La Motte was now silent, and the Marquis continued for some time reflecting. You see, my Lord, La Motte eventually said, you see that my situation is hopeless.

It is bad indeed, but not entirely hopeless. From my soul I pity you: yet, if you should return to the world, and incur the danger of prosecution, I think my interest with the minister might save you from any severe punishment. You seem, however, to have lost your relish for society, and perhaps do not wish to return to it.

It’s definitely bad, but not completely hopeless. I genuinely feel for you: however, if you decide to go back to the world and risk getting prosecuted, I believe my connection with the minister might help keep you from facing any serious punishment. That said, it seems like you’ve lost your taste for socializing, and maybe you don’t actually want to go back.

Oh! my Lord can you doubt this?—But I am overcome with the excess of your goodness; would to heaven it were in my power to prove the gratitude it inspires!

Oh! My Lord, can you really doubt this?—But I am overwhelmed by your incredible kindness; I wish to heaven that I could show you the gratitude it inspires!

Talk not of goodness, said the Marquis; I will not pretend that my desire of serving you is unalloyed by any degree of self-interest: I will not affect to be more than man, and trust me those who do are less. It is in your power to testify your gratitude, and bind me to your interest for ever. He paused. Name but the means, cried La Motte,—name but the means, and if they are within the compass of possibility they shall be executed. The Marquis was still silent. Do you doubt my sincerity, my Lord, that you are yet silent? Do you fear to repose a confidence in the man whom you have already loaded with obligation? who lives by your mercy, and almost by your means! The Marquis looked earnestly at him, but did not speak. I have not deserved this of you, my Lord; speak, I entreat you.

"Don't talk about goodness," said the Marquis. "I won't pretend that my desire to help you is completely free of self-interest. I won’t act like I'm more than human, and trust me, those who do are less. It's in your power to show your gratitude and bind me to your interests forever." He paused. "Just name the means," La Motte urged, "just name the means, and if they're possible, I'll make them happen." The Marquis remained silent. "Do you doubt my sincerity, my Lord, that you're still silent? Are you afraid to trust the man you’ve already burdened with obligations? The one who lives by your mercy and almost by your means!" The Marquis looked intently at him but didn’t say anything. "I don’t deserve this from you, my Lord; please speak, I beg you."

There are certain prejudices attached to the human mind, said the Marquis in a slow and solemn voice, which it requires all our wisdom to keep from interfering with our happiness; certain set notions, acquired in infancy, and cherished involuntarily by age, which grow up and assume a gloss so plausible, that few minds, in what is called a civilized country, can afterwards overcome them. Truth is often perverted by education. While the refined Europeans boast a standard of honour and a sublimity of virtue which often leads them from pleasure to misery, and from nature to error, the simple uninformed American follows the impulse of his heart, and obeys the inspiration of wisdom. The Marquis paused, and La Motte continued to listen in eager expectation.

There are certain biases in the human mind, the Marquis said in a slow and serious tone, that require all our wisdom to prevent them from interfering with our happiness; certain ideas formed in childhood and unwittingly embraced in adulthood, which grow and take on such a convincing appearance that few people, in what we call a civilized country, can later rise above them. Education often distorts the truth. While refined Europeans take pride in a standard of honor and an elevated sense of virtue that often leads them from happiness to sorrow, and from nature to mistake, the straightforward, uninformed American follows his heart and heeds the call of wisdom. The Marquis paused, and La Motte continued to listen with keen anticipation.

Nature, uncontaminated by false refinement, resumed the Marquis, every where acts alike in the great occurrences of life. The Indian discovers his friend to be perfidious, and he kills him; the wild Asiatic does the same: the Turk, when ambition fires or revenge provokes, gratifies his passion at the expense of life, and does not call it murder. Even the polished Italian, distracted by jealousy, or tempted by a strong circumstance of advantage, draws his stiletto, and accomplishes his purpose. It is the first proof of a superior mind to liberate itself from prejudices of country or of education. You are silent, La Motte: are you not of my opinion?

Nature, untainted by false sophistication, the Marquis continued, behaves similarly in the major events of life. The Native American finds out his friend is treacherous, and he kills him; the wild Asian does the same. The Turk, when ambition ignites or revenge stirs, satisfies his passion at the cost of another's life, and doesn’t consider it murder. Even the refined Italian, consumed by jealousy or tempted by a significant opportunity, pulls out his stiletto and achieves his goal. It takes a superior mind to free itself from the biases of culture or education. You’re quiet, La Motte: don’t you agree with me?

I am attending, my Lord, to your reasoning.

I am listening to your reasoning, my Lord.

There are, I repeat it, said the Marquis, people of minds so weak, as to shrink from acts they have been accustomed to hold wrong, however advantageous; they never suffer themselves to be guided by circumstances, but fix for life upon a certain standard, from which they will on no account depart. Self-preservation is the great law of nature; when a reptile hurts us, or an animal of prey threatens us, we think no further, but endeavour to annihilate it. When my life, or what may be essential to my life, requires the sacrifice of another,—or even if some passion, wholly unconquerable, requires it,—I should be a madman to hesitate. La Motte, I think I may confide in you—there are ways of doing certain things—you understand me? There are times, and circumstances, and opportunities—you comprehend my meaning?

“There are, I’ll say it again,” said the Marquis, “people with such weak minds that they shy away from actions they’ve always considered wrong, no matter how beneficial they might be; they never let themselves be driven by circumstances, but stick to a specific standard for life that they refuse to change. Self-preservation is the fundamental law of nature; when a snake attacks us or a predator poses a threat, we don’t think twice—we just try to eliminate it. If my life, or something essential to my life, requires the sacrifice of another—or even if some totally irresistible passion demands it—I would be a fool to hesitate. La Motte, I believe I can trust you—there are ways of handling certain things—you get what I mean? There are moments, circumstances, and opportunities—you understand what I'm implying?”

Explain yourself, my Lord.

Explain yourself, my lord.

Kind services that—in short, there are services which excite all our gratitude, and which we can never think repaid. It is in your power to place me in such a situation.

Kind services that—in short, there are services that inspire all our gratitude, and which we can never feel fully repaid for. It is in your hands to put me in such a position.

Indeed! my Lord, name the means.

Indeed! My Lord, name the ways.

I have already named them. This abbey well suits the purpose; it is shut up from the eye of observation; any transaction may be concealed within its walls; the hour of midnight may witness the deed, and the morn shall not dawn to disclose it; these woods tell no tales. Ah! La Motte am I right in trusting this business with you? may I believe you are desirous of serving me, and of preserving yourself? The Marquis paused, and looked steadfastly at La Motte, whose countenance was almost concealed by the gloom of evening.

I’ve already named them. This abbey is perfect for our needs; it’s hidden away from view, so anything can be kept secret within its walls. The midnight hour can see the act happen, and the morning won’t reveal it; these woods keep silent. Ah! La Motte, can I really trust you with this? Can I count on you to help me and to take care of yourself? The Marquis paused and stared intently at La Motte, whose face was nearly hidden by the evening shadows.

My Lord, you may trust me in any thing; explain yourself more fully.

My Lord, you can trust me with anything; please explain yourself in more detail.

What security will you give me of your faithfulness?

What guarantee can you provide of your loyalty?

My life, my Lord; is it not already in your power? The Marquis hesitated, and then said, To-morrow about this time I shall return to the abbey, and will then explain my meaning, if indeed you shall not already have understood it. You in the mean time will consider your own powers of resolution, and be prepared either to adopt the purpose I shall suggest, or to declare you will not. La Motte made some confused reply. Farewell till to-morrow, said the Marquis; remember that freedom and affluence are now before you. He moved towards the abbey, and, mounting his horse, rode off with his attendants. La Motte walked slowly home, musing on the late conversation.

My life, my Lord; isn’t it already in your hands? The Marquis hesitated and then said, Tomorrow around this time, I’ll return to the abbey and will explain what I mean, if you haven’t already figured it out. In the meantime, think about your own ability to decide, and be ready either to accept the plan I’ll suggest or to say you won’t. La Motte gave some unclear response. Farewell until tomorrow, said the Marquis; remember that freedom and wealth are now within your reach. He walked towards the abbey, got on his horse, and rode off with his attendants. La Motte walked home slowly, reflecting on their recent conversation.







CHAPTER XV

Danger, with its giant limbs
What human eye can gaze steadily?
Who prowls in circles, a ghastly figure!
Howling in the midnight storm!——
And with him, a thousand phantoms joined,
What pushes the mind to do cursed actions!
On whom that ravenous group of Fate
Who drinks the blood of Sorrow wait;
Who, Fear! can see this terrifying procession,
And don’t look as crazily wild as you do!
COLLINS.

The Marquis was punctual to the hour. La Motte received him at the gate; but he declined entering, and said he preferred a walk in the forest. Thither, therefore, La Motte attended him. After some general conversation, Well, said the Marquis, have you considered what I said, and are you prepared to decide?

The Marquis arrived right on time. La Motte greeted him at the gate, but he said he preferred to take a walk in the forest instead of going inside. So, La Motte went with him. After some casual conversation, the Marquis asked, "Well, have you thought about what I mentioned, and are you ready to make a decision?"

I have, my Lord, and will quickly decide, when you shall further explain yourself: till then I can form no resolution. The Marquis appeared dissatisfied, and was a moment silent. Is it then possible, he at length resumed, that you do not understand? This ignorance is surely affected. La Motte, I expect sincerity. Tell me, therefore, is it necessary I should say more?

I have, my Lord, and will quickly decide when you explain yourself further: until then, I can't make a decision. The Marquis looked unhappy and was silent for a moment. Is it really possible, he finally said, that you don’t understand? This ignorance must be put on. La Motte, I expect honesty. So, tell me, do I need to say more?

It is, my Lord, said La Motte immediately. If you fear to confide in me freely, how can I fully accomplish your purpose?

"It is, my Lord," La Motte said right away. "If you're afraid to share with me openly, how can I fully achieve your goal?"

Before I proceed further, said the Marquis, let me administer some oath which shall bind you to secrecy. But this is scarcely necessary; for, could I even doubt your word of honour, the remembrance of a certain transaction would point out to you the necessity of being as silent yourself as you must wish me to be. There was now a pause of silence, during which both the Marquis and La Motte betrayed some confusion. I think, La Motte, said he, I have given you sufficient proof that I can be grateful: the services you have already rendered me with respect to Adeline have not been unrewarded.

Before I go any further, said the Marquis, let me make you take an oath to keep this secret. But that's probably unnecessary; because if I even doubted your word, the memory of a certain event would remind you that you need to be just as quiet as you expect me to be. There was a moment of silence, during which both the Marquis and La Motte showed some embarrassment. I believe, La Motte, said he, I've shown you enough proof that I can be thankful: the help you've given me regarding Adeline has not gone unacknowledged.

True, my Lord; I am ever willing to acknowledge this; and am sorry it has not been in my power to serve you more effectually. Your further views respecting her I am ready to assist.

True, my Lord; I’m always willing to admit this; and I regret that I haven’t been able to help you more effectively. I’m ready to assist with your further plans regarding her.

I thank you.—Adeline——the Marquis hesitated—Adeline, rejoined La Motte, eager to anticipate his wishes, has beauty worthy of your pursuit: she has inspired a passion of which she ought to be proud, and at any rate she shall soon be yours. Her charms are worthy of——

I thank you.—Adeline——the Marquis hesitated—Adeline, La Motte replied, keen to anticipate his wishes, has beauty that deserves your attention: she has sparked a passion that she should take pride in, and in any case, she will soon be yours. Her charms are worthy of——

Yes, yes, interrupted the Marquis; but—he paused. But they have given you too much trouble in the pursuit, said La Motte; and to be sure, my Lord, it must be confessed they have; but this trouble is all over—you may now consider her as your own.

Yes, yes, the Marquis interrupted; but—he paused. But they've caused you too much trouble in the pursuit, said La Motte; and indeed, my Lord, it has to be admitted they have; but that trouble is all in the past—you can now think of her as your own.

I would do so, said the Marquis, fixing an eye of earnest regard upon La Motte—I would do so.

I would do that, said the Marquis, looking intently at La Motte—I would do that.

Name your hour, my Lord; you shall not be interrupted. Beauty such as Adeline's—

Name your hour, my Lord; you won’t be disturbed. Beauty like Adeline’s—

Watch her closely, interrupted the Marquis, and on no account suffer her to leave her apartment. Where is she now?

Watch her closely, the Marquis interrupted, and under no circumstances let her leave her room. Where is she now?

Confined in her chamber.

Trapped in her room.

Very well. But I am impatient.

Very well. But I’m really impatient.

Name your time, my Lord—to-morrow night.

Name your time, my Lord—tomorrow night.

To-morrow night, said the Marquis, to-morrow night. Do you understand me now?

Tomorrow night, said the Marquis, tomorrow night. Do you understand me now?

Yes, my Lord, this night if you wish it so. But had you not better dismiss your servants, and remain yourself in the forest? You know the door that opens upon the woods from the west tower. Come thither about twelve—I will be there to conduct you to her chamber. Remember then, my Lord, that to-night—

Yes, my Lord, tonight if that's what you want. But wouldn’t it be better to send your servants away and stay in the forest yourself? You know the door that leads to the woods from the west tower. Come there around midnight—I’ll be there to take you to her room. Just remember, my Lord, that tonight—

Adeline dies! interrupted the Marquis in a low voice scarcely human. Do you understand me now?

"Adeline is dead!" the Marquis interrupted in a voice that was barely human. "Do you understand me now?"

——La Motte shrunk aghast—My Lord!

La Motte shrank in shock—My Lord!

La Motte! said the Marquis.—There was a silence of several minutes, in which La Motte endeavoured to recover himself. Let me ask, my Lord, the meaning of this? said he, when he had breath to speak. Why should you wish the death of Adeline—of Adeline, whom so lately you loved?

La Motte! said the Marquis. There was a silence of several minutes while La Motte tried to compose himself. Let me ask, my Lord, what does this mean? he finally managed to say. Why would you want Adeline dead—Adeline, whom you so recently loved?

Make no inquiries for my motive, said the Marquis; but it is as certain as that I live that she you name must die. This is sufficient. The surprise of La Motte equalled his horror. The means are various, resumed the Marquis. I could have wished that no blood might be spilt; and there are drugs sure and speedy in their effect, but they cannot be soon or safely procured. I also wish it over—it must be done quickly—this night.

"Don’t ask about my reasons," said the Marquis; "but it's as certain as I am alive that the person you mentioned has to die. That’s all you need to know." La Motte's shock matched his horror. "There are different ways to do it," the Marquis continued. "I would’ve preferred no bloodshed; there are pills that work fast and effectively, but they can’t be obtained quickly or safely. I also want this done—I need it finished tonight."

This night, my Lord!

Tonight, my Lord!

Aye, this night, La Motte; if it is to be, why not soon? Have you no convenient drug at hand?

Sure, tonight, La Motte; if it's going to happen, why wait? Don’t you have any convenient medication ready?

None, my Lord.

No, my Lord.

I feared to trust a third person, or I should have been provided, said the Marquis. As it is, take this poniard! use it as occasion offers, but be resolute. La Motte received the poniard with a trembling hand, and continued to gaze upon it for some time, scarcely knowing what he did. Put it up, said the Marquis, and endeavour to recollect yourself. La Motte obeyed, but continued to muse in silence.

I was afraid to trust anyone else, or I would have been prepared, said the Marquis. For now, take this dagger! Use it when the situation calls for it, but stay strong. La Motte took the dagger with a shaking hand and stared at it for a while, hardly aware of what he was doing. "Put it away," said the Marquis, "and try to get a grip on yourself." La Motte complied but remained lost in thought.

He saw himself entangled in the web which his own crimes had woven. Being in the power of the Marquis, he knew he must either consent to the commission of a deed, from the enormity of which, depraved as he was, he shrunk in horror, or sacrifice fortune, freedom, probably life itself, to the refusal. He had been led on by slow gradations from folly to vice, till he now saw before him an abyss of guilt which startled even the conscience that so long had slumbered. The means of retreating were desperate—to proceed was equally so.

He found himself caught in a web that his own wrongdoings had spun. With the Marquis in control, he realized he had to either agree to perform an act that terrifed him, even with his twisted morals, or risk losing his wealth, freedom, and possibly his life by refusing. He had gradually moved from foolishness to wickedness, and now faced a terrifying chasm of guilt that even his long-dormant conscience couldn't ignore. The way out was desperate, and moving forward was just as risky.

When he considered the innocence and the helplessness of Adeline, her orphan state, her former affectionate conduct, and her confidence in his protection, his heart melted with compassion for the distress he had already occasioned her, and shrunk in terror from the deed he was urged to commit. But when, on the other hand, he contemplated the destruction that threatened him from the vengeance of the Marquis, and then considered the advantages that were offered him of favour, freedom, and probably fortune,—terror and temptation contributed to overcome the pleadings of humanity, and silence the voice of conscience. In this state of tumultuous uncertainty he continued for some time silent, until the voice of the Marquis roused him to a conviction of the necessity of at least appearing to acquiesce in his designs.

When he thought about Adeline's innocence and helplessness, her status as an orphan, her previous affectionate behavior, and her trust in his protection, he felt a wave of compassion for the pain he had already caused her, and he recoiled in fear from the action he was being pressured to take. But then, when he considered the destruction that awaited him from the Marquis's vengeance, along with the benefits of favor, freedom, and possibly wealth that were being offered to him, fear and temptation overwhelmed his sense of humanity and silenced his conscience. In this chaotic state of uncertainty, he remained silent for a while until the Marquis's voice shook him into the realization that he at least needed to pretend to agree with his plans.

Do you hesitate? said the Marquis.—No, my Lord, my resolution is fixed—I will obey you. But methinks it would be better to avoid bloodshed. Strange secrets have been revealed by——

Do you hesitate? said the Marquis. —No, my Lord, I’m set on my decision—I will obey you. But I think it would be better to avoid bloodshed. Strange secrets have been revealed by——

Aye, but how avoid it? interrupted the Marquis.—Poison I will not venture to procure. I have given you one sure instrument of death. You also may find it dangerous to inquire for a drug. La Motte perceived that he could not purchase poison without incurring a discovery much greater than that he wished to avoid. You are right, my Lord, and I will follow your orders implicitly. The Marquis now proceeded, in broken sentences, to give further directions concerning this dreadful scheme.

Yeah, but how can we avoid it? interrupted the Marquis. — I won’t risk getting poison. I've given you one sure way to die. It might also be risky for you to look for a drug. La Motte realized that he couldn't buy poison without drawing attention that was far worse than what he wanted to avoid. You’re right, my Lord, and I will follow your orders completely. The Marquis then continued, in short phrases, to give further instructions about this terrible plan.

In her sleep, said he, at midnight; the family will then be at rest. Afterwards they planned a story which was to account for her disappearance, and by which it was to seem that she had sought an escape in consequence of her aversion to the addresses of the Marquis. The doors of her chamber and of the west tower were to be left open to corroborate this account, and many other circumstances were to be contrived to confirm the suspicion. They further consulted how the Marquis was to be informed of the event; and it was agreed that he should come as usual to the abbey on the following day.—To-night then, said the Marquis, I may rely upon your resolution?

In her sleep, he said, at midnight; the family will then be at peace. Afterward, they came up with a story that would explain her disappearance, making it seem like she had tried to escape because she couldn't stand the advances of the Marquis. The doors to her room and the west tower were to be left open to support this story, and many other details would be arranged to strengthen the suspicion. They also discussed how the Marquis would be informed about what happened, and they decided he should come to the abbey as usual the next day.—So tonight, then, said the Marquis, can I count on your decision?

You may, my Lord.

You may, my Lord.

Farewell, then. When we meet again——

Farewell for now. When we meet again——

When we meet again said La Motte, it will be done. He followed the Marquis to the abbey; and having seen him mount his horse and wished him a good night, he retired to his chamber, where he shut himself up.

When we meet again, La Motte said, it will be done. He followed the Marquis to the abbey; after watching him get on his horse and wishing him goodnight, he went to his room and shut himself in.

Adeline, meanwhile, in the solitude of her prison gave way to the despair which her condition inspired. She tried to arrange her thoughts, and to argue herself into some degree of resignation; but reflection, by representing the past, and reason, by anticipating the future, brought before her mind the full picture, of her misfortunes, and she sunk in despondency. Of Theodore, who, by a conduct so noble, had testified his attachment and involved himself in ruin, she thought with a degree of anguish infinitely superior to any she had felt upon any other occasion.

Adeline, in the isolation of her prison, succumbed to the despair that her situation brought on. She attempted to organize her thoughts and convince herself to be somewhat accepting of her fate; however, reflecting on the past and reasoning about the future only painted a complete picture of her misfortunes, plunging her into deep sadness. She thought of Theodore, whose noble actions had shown his love for her and had led him to ruin, with a level of anguish far greater than anything she had experienced before.

That the very exertions which had deserved all her gratitude, and awakened all her tenderness, should be the cause of his destruction, was a circumstance so much beyond the ordinary bounds of misery, that her fortitude sunk at once before it. The idea of Theodore suffering—Theodore dying—was for ever present to her imagination; and frequently excluding the sense of her own danger, made her conscious only of his. Sometimes the hope he had given her of being able to vindicate his conduct, or at least to obtain a pardon, would return; but it was like the faint beam of an April morn, transient and cheerless. She knew that the Marquis, stung with jealousy and exasperated to revenge, would pursue him with unrelenting malice.

That the very efforts that deserved all her gratitude and sparked all her affection would lead to his downfall was a situation so far beyond normal misery that her strength gave way instantly. The thought of Theodore suffering—Theodore dying—was constantly in her mind, often making her forget her own danger and focus only on his. Sometimes the hope he had given her of being able to clear his name, or at least get a pardon, would return; but it felt like a faint ray of an April morning, fleeting and cold. She understood that the Marquis, fueled by jealousy and eager for revenge, would chase him with relentless hatred.

Against such an enemy what could Theodore oppose? Conscious rectitude would not avail him to ward off the blow which disappointed passion and powerful pride directed. Her distress was considerably heightened by reflecting that no intelligence of him could reach her at the abbey, and that she must remain she knew not how long in the most dreadful suspense concerning his fate. From the abbey she saw no possibility of escaping. She was a prisoner in a chamber inclosed at every avenue; she had no opportunity of conversing with any person who could afford her even a chance of relief; and she saw herself condemned to await in passive silence the impending destiny, infinitely more dreadful to her imagination than death itself.

Against such an enemy, what could Theodore do? Simply having a clear conscience wouldn’t protect him from the blow struck by disappointment and strong pride. Her distress grew even more intense when she realized that no news of him could reach her at the abbey, and she had to endure an unknown amount of terrible suspense about his fate. From the abbey, she saw no way to escape. She was trapped in a room sealed off at every entrance; she had no chance to talk to anyone who could even offer her a glimmer of hope; and she found herself resigned to waiting in silent passivity for an uncertain future, which was far more horrifying to her imagination than death itself.

Thus circumstanced, she yielded to the pressure of her misfortunes, and would sit for hours motionless and given up to thought. Theodore! she would frequently exclaim, you cannot hear my voice, you cannot fly to help me; yourself a prisoner and in chains. The picture was too horrid: the swelling anguish of her heart would subdue her utterance—tears bathed her cheeks—and she became insensible to every thing but the misery of Theodore.

Thus affected, she gave in to the weight of her troubles and would sit for hours, motionless and lost in thought. Theodore! she would often cry out, you can’t hear me, you can’t come to my aid; you’re a prisoner yourself and in chains. The image was too terrible: the intense pain in her heart would choke her words—tears streamed down her cheeks—and she became oblivious to everything except for Theodore's suffering.

On this evening her mind had been remarkably tranquil; and as she watched from her window, with a still and melancholy pleasure, the setting sun, the fading splendour of the western horizon, and the gradual approach of twilight, her thoughts bore her back to the time when in happier circumstances she had watched the same appearances. She recollected also the evening of her temporary escape from the abbey, when from this same window she had viewed the declining sun—how anxiously she had awaited the fall of twilight—how much she had endeavoured to anticipate the events of her future life—with what trembling fear she had descended from the tower and ventured into the forest. These reflections produced others that filled her heart with anguish and her eyes with tears.

On that evening, her mind was surprisingly calm; as she looked out from her window, with a quiet and sad pleasure, at the setting sun, the fading beauty of the western horizon, and the slow arrival of twilight, her thoughts took her back to a time when she had watched these same scenes under happier circumstances. She also remembered the evening she had briefly escaped from the abbey, when she had watched the sun go down from this same window—how anxiously she had waited for twilight to fall—how much she had tried to imagine what her future would look like—how nervous she had been when she descended from the tower and ventured into the forest. These thoughts led to others that filled her heart with sorrow and her eyes with tears.

While she was lost in her melancholy reverie she saw the Marquis mount his horse and depart from the gate. The sight of him revived in all its force a sense of the misery he inflicted on her beloved Theodore, and a consciousness of the evils which more immediately threatened herself. She withdrew from the window in an agony of tears, which continuing for a considerable time, her frame was at length quite exhausted, and she retired early to rest.

While she was caught up in her sad thoughts, she saw the Marquis get on his horse and leave through the gate. Seeing him brought back all the pain he caused her beloved Theodore and reminded her of the dangers that were directly threatening her. She stepped away from the window, overwhelmed with tears, and after crying for a long time, she finally became completely worn out and went to bed early.

La Motte remained in his chamber till supper obliged him to descend. At table his wild and haggard countenance, which, in spite of all his endeavours, betrayed the disorder of his mind, and his long and frequent fits of abstraction, surprised as well as alarmed Madame La Motte. When Peter left the room she tenderly inquired what had disturbed him, and he with a distorted smile tried to be gay; but the effort was beyond his art, and he quickly relapsed into silence; or when Madame La Motte spoke, and he strove to conceal the absence of his thoughts, he answered so entirely from the purpose that his abstraction became still more apparent. Observing this, Madame La Motte appeared to take no notice of his present temper; and they continued to sit in uninterrupted silence till the hour of rest, when they retired to their chamber.

La Motte stayed in his room until supper forced him to come down. At the table, his wild and worn expression, which, despite all his efforts, revealed his troubled mind, along with his long and frequent moments of distraction, surprised and worried Madame La Motte. When Peter left the room, she gently asked what was bothering him, and he forced a smile to seem cheerful; but the attempt was beyond him, and he quickly fell silent. Even when Madame La Motte spoke and he tried to hide his absent-mindedness, his responses were so off-topic that his distraction became even more obvious. Noticing this, Madame La Motte chose not to acknowledge his mood, and they sat in uninterrupted silence until bedtime, when they went to their room.

La Motte lay in a state of disturbed watchfulness for some time, and his frequent starts awoke Madame, who however, being pacified by some trifling excuse, soon went to sleep again. This agitation continued till near midnight, when recollecting that the time was now passing in idle reflection which ought to be devoted to action, he stole silently from his bed, wrapped himself in his night-gown, and taking the lamp which burned nightly in his chamber, passed up the spiral staircase. As he went he frequently looked back, and often started and listened to the hollow sighings of the blast.

La Motte lay in a state of restless alertness for a while, and his frequent jumps woke Madame, who, after being calmed by some minor excuse, soon fell asleep again. This agitation continued until close to midnight when he remembered that the time spent in idle thoughts should be used for taking action. He quietly got out of bed, wrapped himself in his nightgown, and took the lamp that burned in his room every night as he made his way up the spiral staircase. As he went, he often looked back and frequently flinched and listened to the hollow sounds of the wind.

His hand shook so violently when he attempted to unlock the door of Adeline's chamber, that he was obliged to set the lamp on the ground, and apply both his hands. The noise he made with the key induced him to suppose he must have awakened her; but when he opened the door, and perceived the stillness that reigned within, he was convinced she was asleep. When he approached the bed he heard her gently breathe, and soon after sigh—and he stopped: but silence returning he again advanced, and then heard her sing in her deep. As he listened he distinguished some notes of a melancholy little air, which in her happier days she had often sung to him. The low and mournful accent in which she now uttered them expressed too well the tone of her mind.

His hand shook so badly when he tried to unlock Adeline's room that he had to put the lamp down and use both hands. The noise he made with the key made him think he must have woken her up; but when he opened the door and saw the stillness inside, he was sure she was asleep. As he got closer to the bed, he heard her breathing softly, and then she sighed—and he paused. But when silence returned, he moved closer again and heard her singing softly. As he listened, he recognized a few notes from a sad little tune she used to sing to him in her happier days. The low and mournful way she sang those notes revealed too clearly the state of her mind.

La Motte now stepped hastily towards the bed, when breathing a deep sigh she was again silent. He undrew the curtain and saw her lying in a profound sleep, her cheek, yet wet with tears, resting upon her arm. He stood a moment looking at her; and as he viewed her innocent and lovely countenance, pale in grief, the light of the lamp, which shone strong upon her eyes, awoke her, and perceiving a man, she uttered a scream. Her recollection returning, she knew him to be La Motte; and it instantly occurring to her that the Marquis was at hand, she raised herself in bed, and implored pity and protection. La Motte stood looking eagerly at her, but without replying.

La Motte quickly approached the bed, and after taking a deep breath, she fell silent again. He pulled back the curtain and saw her deep in sleep, her tear-streaked cheek resting on her arm. He stood there for a moment, gazing at her innocent and beautiful face, pale from sorrow. The lamp’s light, bright against her eyes, stirred her awake, and upon seeing a man, she screamed. As her memory returned, she recognized La Motte, and realizing that the Marquis was near, she sat up in bed and pleaded for compassion and safety. La Motte watched her intently, but he didn’t respond.

The wildness of his looks and the gloomy silence he preserved increased her alarm, and with tears of terror she renewed her supplication. You once saved me from destruction, cried she; O save me now! have pity upon me—I have no protector but you.

The wildness of his looks and the heavy silence he kept added to her fear, and with tears of terror, she pleaded again. You once saved me from disaster, she cried; oh, save me now! Have mercy on me—I have no one to protect me but you.

What is it you fear? said La Motte in a tone scarcely articulate.—O save me—save me from the Marquis!

What is it that you’re afraid of? said La Motte in a barely coherent tone. —Oh, save me—save me from the Marquis!

Rise then, said he, and dress yourself quickly: I shall be back again in a few minutes. He lighted a candle that stood on the table, and left the chamber; Adeline immediately arose and endeavoured to dress; but her thoughts were so bewildered that she scarcely knew what she did, and her whole frame so violently agitated, that it was with the utmost difficulty she preserved herself from fainting. She threw her clothes hastily on, and then sat down to await the return of La Motte. A considerable time elapsed, yet he did not appear; and having in vain endeavoured to compose her spirits, the pain of suspense became at length so insupportable, that she opened the door of her chamber, and went to the top of the staircase to listen. She thought she heard voices below; but considering that if the Marquis was there, her appearance could only increase her danger, she checked the step she had almost involuntarily taken to descend. Still she listened, and still thought she distinguished voices. Soon after, she heard a door shut, and then footsteps, and she hastened back to her chamber.

"Get up," he said, "and get dressed quickly. I’ll be back in a few minutes." He lit a candle from the table and left the room. Adeline immediately got up and tried to get dressed, but her mind was so scattered that she barely knew what she was doing, and she felt so shaken that it was incredibly hard for her to keep from fainting. She hurriedly put on her clothes and then sat down to wait for La Motte's return. A long time passed, yet he didn’t come back; after trying in vain to calm herself, the pain of waiting became so unbearable that she opened her room door and went to the top of the stairs to listen. She thought she heard voices below, but realizing that if the Marquis was there, showing herself would only put her in more danger, she stopped herself from going down. Still, she listened and thought she could make out voices. Soon after, she heard a door close and then footsteps, and she quickly hurried back to her room.

Near a quarter of an hour had elapsed and La Motte did not appear; when again she thought she heard a murmur of voices below and also passing steps: and at length, her anxiety not suffering her to remain in her room, she moved through the passage that communicated with the spiral staircase; but all was now still. In a few moments, however, a light flashed across the hall, and La Motte appeared at the door of the vaulted room. He looked up, and seeing Adeline in the gallery, beckoned her to descend.

About fifteen minutes had passed and La Motte still hadn’t shown up; then she thought she heard some voices and footsteps below. Finally, her anxiety made it impossible for her to stay in her room, so she moved through the corridor that connected to the spiral staircase, but everything was quiet now. After a few moments, though, a light flashed across the hall, and La Motte appeared at the door of the vaulted room. He looked up, saw Adeline in the gallery, and signaled for her to come down.

She hesitated, and looked towards her chamber; but La Motte now approached the stairs, and with faltering steps she went to meet him. I fear the Marquis may see me, said she, whispering; where is he? La Motte took her hand and led her on, assuring her she had nothing to fear from the Marquis. The wildness of his looks, however, and the trembling of his hand, seemed to contradict this assurance, and she inquired whether he was leading her. To the forest, said La Motte, that you may escape from the abbey—a horse waits for you without: I can save you by no other means. New terror seized her. She could scarcely believe that La Motte, who had hitherto conspired with the Marquis, and had so closely confined her, should now himself undertake her escape; and she at this moment felt a dreadful presentiment which it was impossible to account for, that he was leading her out to murder her in the forest. Again shrinking back, she supplicated his mercy. He assured her he meant only to protect her, and desired she would not waste time.

She hesitated and glanced toward her room, but La Motte was already coming down the stairs, so she hesitantly went to meet him. "I'm afraid the Marquis might see me," she whispered. "Where is he?" La Motte took her hand and led her on, reassuring her that she had nothing to fear from the Marquis. However, the wild look in his eyes and the trembling of his hand seemed to contradict his words, and she asked if he was really leading her somewhere. "To the forest," La Motte said, "so you can escape the abbey—a horse is waiting for you outside. I can save you in no other way." A new wave of fear washed over her. She could hardly believe that La Motte, who had conspired with the Marquis and had kept her locked up, was now trying to help her escape; and at that moment, she felt a dreadful instinct that she couldn't explain—that he was leading her out to kill her in the forest. Shrinking back again, she begged him for mercy. He assured her that he only intended to protect her and urged her not to waste time.

There was something in his manner that spoke sincerity, and she suffered him to conduct her to a side door that opened into the forest, where she could just distinguish through the gloom a man on horseback. This brought to her remembrance the night in which she had quitted the tomb, when, trusting to the person who appeared, she had been carried to the Marquis's villa. La Motte called, and was answered by Peter, whose voice somewhat reassured Adeline.

There was something about his demeanor that conveyed honesty, and she allowed him to lead her to a side door that opened into the forest, where she could barely make out a man on horseback in the darkness. This reminded her of the night she left the tomb, when she had relied on the person she met and was taken to the Marquis's villa. La Motte called out and was answered by Peter, whose voice gave Adeline a bit of comfort.

He then told her that the Marquis would return to the abbey on the following morning and that this could be her only opportunity of escaping his designs; that she might rely upon his (La Motte's) word, that Peter had orders to carry her wherever she choose; but as he knew the Marquis would be indefatigable in search of her, he advised her by all means to leave the kingdom, which she might do with Peter, who was a native of Savoy, and would convey her to the house of his sister. There she might remain till La Motte himself, who did not now think it would be safe to continue much longer in France, should join her. He entreated her, whatever might happen, never to mention the events which had passed at the abbey. To save you, Adeline, I have risked my life; do not increase my danger and your own by any unnecessary discoveries. We may never meet again, but I hope you will be happy; and remember, when you think of me, that I am not quite so bad as I have been tempted to be.

He then told her that the Marquis would return to the abbey the next morning and that this might be her only chance to escape his plans. She could trust his (La Motte's) word that Peter had instructions to take her wherever she wanted; however, since he knew the Marquis would be relentless in searching for her, he strongly advised her to leave the kingdom. She could go with Peter, who was from Savoy and would take her to his sister's house. There, she could stay until La Motte himself, who didn’t think it would be safe to remain in France much longer, could join her. He urged her, no matter what happened, to never mention the events that took place at the abbey. To save you, Adeline, I have risked my life; please don’t put me or yourself in more danger by revealing unnecessary information. We may never see each other again, but I hope you find happiness; and remember, when you think of me, that I’m not as bad as I’ve been tempted to be.

Having said this, he gave her some money, which he told her would be necessary to defray the expenses of her journey. Adeline could no longer doubt his sincerity, and her transports of joy and gratitude would scarcely permit her to thank him. She wished to have bid Madame La Motte farewell, and indeed earnestly requested it; but he again told her she had no time to lose; and having wrapped her in a large cloak, he lifted her upon the horse. She bade him adieu with tears of gratitude, and Peter set off as fast as the darkness would permit.

Having said that, he gave her some money, explaining that it would be needed to cover her travel expenses. Adeline could no longer doubt his sincerity, and her overwhelming joy and gratitude barely allowed her to thank him. She wanted to say goodbye to Madame La Motte and earnestly asked to do so; but he told her again that she had to hurry. After wrapping her in a large cloak, he helped her onto the horse. She said goodbye with tears of gratitude, and Peter took off as quickly as the darkness would allow.

When they were got some way,—I am glad with all my heart, Mam'selle, said he, to see you again. Who would have thought, after all, that my master himself would have bid me take you away! Well, to be sure, strange things come to pass; but I hope we shall have better luck this time. Adeline, not choosing to reproach him with the treachery of which she feared he had been formerly guilty, thanked him for his good wishes, and said she hoped they should be more fortunate: but Peter, in his usual strain of eloquence, proceeded to undeceive her in this point, and to acquaint her with every circumstance which his memory, and it was naturally a strong one could furnish.

When they had traveled a bit, he said, “I’m so happy to see you again, Mam'selle. Who would have thought that my master himself would ask me to bring you along! It’s funny how things turn out; but I hope we’ll have better luck this time.” Adeline, not wanting to blame him for the betrayal she feared he had been guilty of before, thanked him for his kind words and said she hoped they'd be more successful. But Peter, in his usual style of speaking, went on to clarify things for her and to share every detail his strong memory could recall.

Peter expressed such an artless interest in her welfare, and such a concern for her disappointment, that she could no longer doubt his faithfulness; and this conviction not only strengthened her confidence in the present undertaking, but made her listen to his conversation with kindness and pleasure. I should never have staid at the abbey till this time, said he, if I could have got away; but my master frighted me so much about the Marquis, and I had not money enough to carry me into my own country, so that I was forced to stay. It's well we have got some solid louis d'ors now; for I question, Ma'mselle, whether the people on the road would have taken those trinkets you formerly talked of for money.

Peter showed such a genuine interest in her well-being and such concern for her disappointment that she could no longer doubt his loyalty; this belief not only boosted her confidence in their current project but also made her enjoy his conversation with warmth and happiness. "I would never have stayed at the abbey this long," he said, "if I could have left. But my master scared me so much about the Marquis, and I didn’t have enough money to get back to my country, so I had to stay. We’re lucky to have some solid louis d'ors now; because I wonder, Ma'mselle, if the people on the road would have considered those trinkets you mentioned as real money."

Possibly not, said Adeline: I am thankful to Monsieur La Motte that we have more certain means of procuring conveniences. What route shall you take when we leave the forest, Peter?—Peter mentioned very correctly a great part of the road to Lyons; And then, said he, we can easily get to Savoy, and that will be nothing. My sister, God bless her! I hope, is living; I have not seen her many a year: but if she is not all the people will be glad to see me, and you will easily get a lodging, Ma'mselle, and every thing you want.

“Maybe not,” Adeline said. “I’m thankful to Monsieur La Motte that we have better ways to get what we need. What route will you take when we leave the forest, Peter?” Peter accurately mentioned a large part of the road to Lyons. “And then,” he said, “we can easily get to Savoy, and that won’t be a problem. My sister, God bless her! I hope she’s alive; I haven’t seen her in years. But if she isn’t, everyone will be happy to see me, and you will easily find a place to stay, Ma'mselle, and get everything you need.”

Adeline resolved to go with him to Savoy. La Motte, who knew the character and designs of the Marquis, had advised her to leave the kingdom, and had told her, what her fears would have suggested, that the Marquis would be indefatigable in search of her. His motive for this advice must be a desire of serving her; why else, when she was already in his power, should he remove her to another place, and even furnish her with money for the expenses of a journey?

Adeline decided to go with him to Savoy. La Motte, who understood the nature and intentions of the Marquis, advised her to leave the kingdom and warned her, as her fears had suggested, that the Marquis would tirelessly look for her. His reason for giving this advice must be a desire to help her; why else, when she was already in his control, would he move her to another location and even provide her with money for travel expenses?

At Leloncourt, where Peter said he was well known, she would be most likely to meet with protection and comfort, even should his sister be dead; and its distance and solitary situation pleased her. These reflections would have pointed out to her the prudence of proceeding to Savoy, had she been less destitute of resources in France; in her present situation they proved it to be necessary.

At Leloncourt, where Peter claimed he was popular, she would probably find protection and comfort, even if his sister was no longer alive; plus, she liked its distance and secluded location. These thoughts would have suggested that she should head to Savoy if she had more resources in France; given her current situation, it made it essential.

She inquired further concerning the route they were to take, and whether Peter was sufficiently acquainted with the road. When once I get to Thiers, I know it well enough, said Peter; for I have gone it many a time in my younger days, and any body will tell us the way there. They travelled for several hours in darkness and silence; and it was not till they emerged from the forest that Adeline saw the morning light streak the eastern clouds. The sight cheered and revived her; and as she travelled silently along, her mind revolved the events of the past night, and meditated plans for the future. The present kindness of La Motte appeared so very different from his former conduct, that it astonished and perplexed her; and she could only account for it by attributing it to one of those sudden impulses of humanity which sometimes operate even upon the most depraved hearts.

She asked more about the route they were taking and whether Peter knew the road well enough. "Once I get to Thiers, I know it well," Peter said, "because I've traveled it many times in my younger days, and anyone can tell us the way." They traveled for several hours in darkness and silence, and it wasn't until they came out of the forest that Adeline saw the morning light streaking the eastern clouds. The sight lifted her spirits and energized her; as she moved quietly along, she reflected on the events of the past night and thought about plans for the future. La Motte's current kindness seemed so different from his past behavior that it confused and surprised her; she could only explain it by thinking it was one of those sudden bursts of humanity that can occasionally affect even the most corrupt hearts.

But when she recollected his former words—that he was not master of himself—she could scarcely believe that mere pity could induce him to break the bonds which had hitherto so strongly held him; and then, considering the altered conduct of the Marquis, she was inclined to think that she owed her liberty to some change in his sentiments towards her: yet the advice La Motte had given her to quit the kingdom, and the money with which he had supplied her for that purpose, seemed to contradict this opinion, and involved her again in doubt.

But when she remembered his earlier words—that he wasn't in control of himself—she could hardly believe that just pity could make him break the ties that had held him so tightly until now; and then, thinking about the Marquis's changed behavior, she started to think that her freedom was due to some shift in his feelings towards her. Yet, the advice La Motte had given her to leave the country, along with the money he'd provided for that purpose, seemed to contradict this idea and left her feeling uncertain once more.

Peter now got directions to Thiers, which place they reached without any accident, and there stopped to refresh themselves. As soon as Peter thought the horse sufficiently rested, they again set forward, and from the rich plains of the Lyonnois, Adeline for the first time caught a view of the distant Alps, whose majestic heads, seeming to prop the vault of heaven, filled her mind with sublime emotions.

Peter got directions to Thiers, and they arrived there without any issues, stopping to take a break. Once Peter felt the horse was rested enough, they headed out again. From the fertile plains of Lyon, Adeline saw the distant Alps for the first time. Their majestic peaks, looking like they held up the sky, filled her with awe.

In a few hours they reached the vale in which stands the city of Lyons, whose beautiful environs, studded with villas and rich with cultivation, withdrew Adeline from the melancholy contemplation of her own circumstances, and her more painful anxiety for Theodore.

In a few hours, they arrived in the valley where the city of Lyons is located, surrounded by beautiful countryside filled with villas and rich farmland. This scenery distracted Adeline from her sad thoughts about her own situation and her deeper worries for Theodore.

When they reached that busy city, her first care was to inquire concerning the passage of the Rhone; but she forbore to make these inquiries of the people of the inn, considering that if the Marquis should trace her thither, they might enable him to pursue her route. She, therefore, sent Peter to the quays to hire a boat, while she herself took a slight repast, it being her intention to embark immediately. Peter presently returned, having engaged a boat and men to take them up the Rhone to the nearest part of Savoy, from whence they were to proceed by land to the village of Leloncourt.

When they arrived in the busy city, her first priority was to ask about getting across the Rhone. However, she decided not to ask the inn people, thinking that if the Marquis found out she was there, they might help him follow her trail. So, she sent Peter to the docks to rent a boat while she had a light meal, planning to leave right after. Peter soon came back, having secured a boat and crew to take them up the Rhone to the closest part of Savoy, from where they would travel by land to the village of Leloncourt.

Having taken some refreshment, she ordered him to conduct her to the vessel. A new and striking scene presented itself to Adeline, who looked with surprise upon the river, gay with vessels, and the quay crowded with busy faces, and felt the contrast which the cheerful objects around bore to herself—to her, an orphan, desolate, helpless, and flying from persecution and her country. She spoke with the master of the boat; and having sent Peter back to the inn for the horse, (La Motte's gift to Peter in lieu of some arrears of wages,) they embarked.

Having had a snack, she told him to take her to the boat. A new and impressive scene unfolded before Adeline, who looked in surprise at the river, alive with boats, and the dock filled with bustling people. She felt the contrast between the cheerful surroundings and her own situation—as an orphan, alone, vulnerable, and fleeing from danger and her homeland. She talked with the boat's captain; then, after sending Peter back to the inn for the horse (La Motte had given it to Peter to settle some unpaid wages), they boarded the boat.

As they slowly passed up the Rhone, whose steep banks, crowned with mountains, exhibited the most various, wild, and romantic scenery, Adeline sat in pensive reverie. The novelty of the scene through which she floated, now frowning with savage grandeur, and now smiling in fertility and gay with towns and villages, soothed her mind, and her sorrow gradually softened into a gentle and not unpleasing melancholy. She had seated herself at the head of the boat, where she watched its sides cleave the swift stream, and listened to the dashing of the waters.

As they slowly floated up the Rhone, with its steep banks topped by mountains showcasing a range of wild and romantic views, Adeline sat in deep thought. The newness of the scenery around her, sometimes harsh and grand, at other times lush and lively with towns and villages, calmed her mind, and her sadness slowly shifted into a gentle and somewhat pleasant melancholy. She had positioned herself at the front of the boat, where she observed its sides cutting through the fast-flowing water and listened to the splash of the waves.

The boat, slowly opposing the current, passed along for some hours, and at length the veil of evening was stretched over the landscape. The weather was fine, and Adeline, regardless of the dews that now fell, remained in the open air, observing the objects darken round her, the gay tints of the horizon fade away, and the stars gradually appear trembling upon the lucid mirror of the waters. The scene was now sunk in deep shadow, and the silence of the hour was broken only by the measured dashing of the oars, and now and then by the voice of Peter speaking to the boatmen. Adeline sat lost in thought—the forlornness of her circumstances came heightened to her imagination.

The boat, slowly fighting against the current, drifted along for a few hours, and eventually, evening fell over the landscape. The weather was nice, and Adeline, ignoring the dewdrops falling around her, stayed outside, watching the surroundings grow darker, the bright colors of the horizon fade, and the stars gradually twinkle on the clear surface of the water. The scene was now cloaked in deep shadow, and the silence of the hour was broken only by the rhythmic splash of the oars and occasionally by Peter’s voice calling to the boatmen. Adeline sat deep in thought—the loneliness of her situation felt even more intense to her mind.

She saw herself surrounded by the darkness and stillness of night, in a strange place, far distant from any friends, going she scarcely knew whither, under the guidance of strangers, and pursued, perhaps, by an inveterate enemy. She pictured to herself the rage of the Marquis now that he had discovered her flight; and though she knew it very unlikely he should follow her by water, for which reason she had chosen that manner of travelling, she trembled at the portrait her fancy drew. Her thoughts then wandered to the plan she should adopt after reaching Savoy; and much as her experience had prejudiced her against the manners of a convent, she saw no place more likely to afford her a proper asylum. At length she retired to the little cabin for a few hours repose.

She found herself surrounded by the darkness and quiet of night, in a strange place far away from any friends, heading somewhere she barely knew, guided by strangers, and maybe chased by a relentless enemy. She imagined the Marquis’s fury now that he had realized she had escaped; and even though she knew it was unlikely he would pursue her by water, which was why she had chosen that mode of travel, she was still scared by the picture her mind created. Her thoughts then drifted to the plan she would make after reaching Savoy; and although her experiences had made her wary of convent life, she saw no place more likely to provide her with a safe refuge. Finally, she went to the small cabin for a few hours of rest.

She awoke with the dawn: and her mind being too much disturbed to sleep again, she rose and watched the gradual approach of day. As she mused, she expressed the feelings of the moment in the following:

She woke up with the dawn, and her mind was too restless to go back to sleep, so she got up and watched the day slowly arrive. As she reflected, she put her feelings into words like this:

POEM
Morning's bright eyes finally open,
And awaken the blush of the rose,
That all night long weighed down by dew,
And covered in cool shade its colors,
Reclined and forlorn, the lazy head,
And sadly looked for its parent's bed;
The trembling flower draws warmth from her rays.
And, sweetly blushing, it comes back to life through its tears.
Morning's bright eyes finally open,
And dry the tears that weigh down the rose;
But can their beauty hold back the sigh,
Or wipe the tear from Sorrow's eye?
Can all their shining light give
A glimmer of peace for Sorrow's heart?
Ah! no; their fires weigh heavily on her fading spirit——
Eve's thoughtful shadows comfort her gentle worry even more!

When Adeline left the abbey, La Motte had remained for some time at the gate, listening to the steps of the horse that carried her, till the sound was lost in distance: he then turned into the hall with a lightness of heart to which he had long been a stranger. The satisfaction of having thus preserved her, as he hoped, from the designs of the Marquis, overcame for a while all sense of the danger in which this step must involve him. But when he returned entirely to his own situation, the terrors of the Marquis's resentment struck their full force upon his mind, and he considered how he might best escape it.

When Adeline left the abbey, La Motte stayed at the gate for a while, listening to the sound of the horse carrying her away until it faded into the distance. He then walked into the hall with a sense of lightness he hadn't felt in a long time. The satisfaction of having hopefully protected her from the Marquis's plans momentarily overshadowed any awareness of the danger his actions could bring. But once he fully returned to his own situation, the fear of the Marquis's wrath hit him hard, and he began to think about how he could best avoid it.

It was now past midnight—the Marquis was expected early on the following day; and in this interval it at first appeared probable to him that he might quit the forest. There was only one horse; but he considered whether it would be best to set off immediately for Auboine, where a carriage might be procured to convey his family and his moveables from the abbey, or quietly await the arrival of the Marquis, and endeavour to impose upon him by a forged story of Adeline's escape.

It was now past midnight—the Marquis was expected early the next day; and during this time, it seemed likely to him that he could leave the forest. There was only one horse, but he thought about whether it would be better to head straight to Auboine, where he could get a carriage to take his family and belongings from the abbey, or to wait for the Marquis's arrival and try to trick him with a made-up story about Adeline's escape.

The time which must elapse before a carriage could reach the abbey would leave him scarcely sufficient to escape from the forest; what money he had remaining from the Marquis's bounty would not carry him far; and when it was expended he must probably be at a loss for subsistence, should he not before then be detected. By remaining at the abbey it would appear that he was unconscious of deserving the Marquis's resentment; and though he could not expect to impress a belief upon him that his orders had been executed, he might make it appear that Peter only had been accessary to the escape of Adeline; an account which would seem the more probable, from Peter's having been formerly detected in a similar scheme. He believed, also, that if the Marquis should threaten to deliver him into the hands of justice he might save himself by a menace of disclosing the crime he had commissioned him to perpetrate.

The time it would take for a carriage to reach the abbey would barely allow him enough time to get out of the forest; the money he had left from the Marquis's generosity wouldn't last him long, and once it was gone, he would likely struggle for basic needs unless he was caught first. By staying at the abbey, it would seem like he had no idea he deserved the Marquis's anger; and while he couldn't expect to convince the Marquis that he had followed his orders, he could suggest that Peter was solely responsible for Adeline's escape, a story that would seem more believable since Peter had previously been caught in a similar plot. He also thought that if the Marquis threatened to hand him over to the authorities, he could protect himself by hinting at revealing the crime he had been ordered to commit.

Thus arguing, La Motte resolved to remain at the abbey, and await the event of the Marquis's disappointment.

Thus arguing, La Motte decided to stay at the abbey and wait for the Marquis's disappointment.

When the Marquis did arrive, and was informed of Adeline's flight, the strong workings of his soul, which appeared in his countenance, for a while alarmed and terrified La Motte. He cursed himself and her in terms of such coarseness and vehemence, as La Motte was astonished to hear from a man whose manners were generally amiable, whatever might be the violence and criminality of his passions. To invent and express these terms seemed to give him not only relief, but delight; yet he appeared more shocked at the circumstance of her escape than exasperated at the carelessness of La Motte; and recollecting at length that he wasted time, he left the abbey, and dispatched several of his servants in pursuit of her.

When the Marquis arrived and learned about Adeline's escape, the intense emotions on his face momentarily alarmed and scared La Motte. He cursed himself and her with such crude and passionate language that La Motte was shocked to hear it from someone who usually had such pleasant manners, despite the intensity and wrongness of his feelings. Coming up with and saying those words seemed to give him not just relief but also some twisted pleasure; however, he seemed more disturbed by her escape than angry at La Motte's negligence. Finally remembering he was wasting time, he left the abbey and sent several of his servants to find her.

When he was gone, La Motte, believing that his story had succeeded, returned to the pleasure of considering that he had done his duty, and to the hope that Adeline was now beyond the reach of pursuit. This calm was of short continuance. In a few hours the Marquis returned, accompanied by the officers of justice. The affrighted La Motte, perceiving him approach, endeavoured to conceal himself, but was seized and carried to the Marquis, who drew him aside.

When he left, La Motte, thinking that his plan had worked, felt good about having done the right thing and hoped that Adeline was now safe from being found. This sense of calm didn’t last long. A few hours later, the Marquis came back, along with law enforcement officers. Terrified, La Motte tried to hide when he saw the Marquis approaching, but he was caught and taken to the Marquis, who pulled him aside.

I am not to be imposed upon, said he, by such a superficial story as you have invented; you know your life is in my hands; tell me instantly where you have secreted Adeline, or I will charge you with the crime you have committed against me; but upon your disclosing the place of her concealment I will dismiss the officers and, if you wish it, assist you to leave the kingdom. You have no time to hesitate, and may know that I will not be trifled with. La Motte attempted to appease the Marquis, and affirmed that Adeline was really fled he knew not whither. You will remember, my Lord, that your character is also in my power; and that, if you proceed to extremities, you will compel me to reveal in the face of day that you would have made me a murderer.

“I won’t be fooled by such a shallow story as the one you’ve made up,” he said. “You know your life is in my hands. Tell me right now where you’ve hidden Adeline, or I’ll accuse you of the crime you’ve committed against me. But if you tell me where she’s hidden, I’ll let the officers go and, if you want, help you escape the kingdom. You don’t have time to hesitate, and know that I won’t be messed with.” La Motte tried to calm the Marquis and insisted that Adeline had truly fled, though he didn’t know where. “You should remember, my Lord, that your reputation is also in my hands, and if you go too far, you’ll force me to reveal to everyone that you tried to make me a murderer.”

And who will believe you? said the Marquis. The crimes that banished you from society will be no testimony of your veracity, and that with which I now charge you will bring with it a sufficient presumption that your accusation is malicious. Officers, do your duty.

And who will believe you? said the Marquis. The crimes that got you kicked out of society won’t be proof of your truthfulness, and what I'm about to accuse you of will be enough to suggest that your accusation is spiteful. Officers, do your job.

They then entered the room and seized La Motte, whom terror now deprived of all power of resistance, could resistance have availed him; and in the perturbation of his mind he informed the Marquis that Adeline had taken the road to Lyons. This discovery, however, was made too late to serve himself; the Marquis seized the advantage it offered: but the charge had been given; and with the anguish of knowing that he had exposed Adeline to danger without benefiting himself, La Motte submitted in silence to his fate. Scarcely allowing him time to collect what little effects might easily be carried with him, the officers conveyed him from the abbey: but the Marquis, in consideration of the extreme distress of Madame La Motte, directed one of his servants to procure a carriage from Auboine, that she might follow her husband.

They then entered the room and grabbed La Motte, who was so terrified that he couldn't put up any fight, even if he could have. In his state of confusion, he told the Marquis that Adeline had headed towards Lyons. However, this information came too late to help him; the Marquis took advantage of the situation. But the order had already been given, and with the pain of knowing he had put Adeline in danger without any benefit to himself, La Motte quietly accepted his fate. The officers barely gave him time to gather what few belongings he could carry before taking him away from the abbey. However, considering Madame La Motte’s extreme distress, the Marquis instructed one of his servants to get a carriage from Auboine so she could follow her husband.

The Marquis in the mean time, now acquainted with the route Adeline had taken, sent forward his faithful valet to trace her to her place of concealment, and return immediately with intelligence to the villa.

The Marquis, now aware of the route Adeline had taken, sent his loyal valet ahead to find her hiding spot and return quickly with information to the villa.

Abandoned to despair, La Motte and his wife quitted the forest of Fontanville, which had for so many months afforded them an asylum, and embarked once more upon the tumultuous world, where justice would meet La Motte in the form of destruction. They had entered the forest as a refuge, rendered necessary by the former crimes of La Motte, and for sometime found in it the security they sought: but other offences, for even in that sequestered spot there happened to be temptation, soon succeeded; and his life, already sufficiently marked by the punishment of vice, now afforded him another instance of this great truth, "That where guilt is, there peace cannot enter."

Abandoned to despair, La Motte and his wife left the forest of Fontanville, which had sheltered them for many months, and ventured once again into the chaotic world, where justice would confront La Motte with destruction. They had entered the forest seeking refuge due to La Motte's past crimes, and for a while, they found the safety they needed there. However, new offenses occurred, as even in that secluded spot, temptation lurked; and his life, already heavily stained by the consequences of wrongdoing, now provided another example of the profound truth: "Where there is guilt, there can be no peace."







CHAPTER XVI

Hail terrible sights, that soothe the restless heart,
And invite the tired to deep rest!
BEATTIE.

Adeline meanwhile, and Peter, proceeded on their voyage without any accident, and landed in Savoy, where Peter placed her upon the horse, and himself walked beside her. When he came within sight of his native mountains, his extravagant joy burst forth into frequent exclamations, and he would often ask Adeline if she had ever seen such hills in France. No, no, said he, the hills there are very well for French hills, but they are not to be named on the same day with ours. Adeline, lost in admiration of the astonishing and tremendous scenery around her, assented very warmly to the truth of Peter's assertion, which encouraged him to expatiate more largely upon the advantages of his country; its disadvantages he totally forgot; and though he gave away his last sous to the children of the peasantry that ran barefooted by the side of the horse, he spoke of nothing but the happiness and content of the inhabitants.

Adeline and Peter continued their journey without any issues and arrived in Savoy, where Peter helped her onto the horse and walked alongside her. When he saw his homeland’s mountains, his overwhelming joy burst out in excited exclamations, and he frequently asked Adeline if she had ever seen such hills in France. "No, no," he said, "the hills there are fine for French hills, but they can’t compare to ours." Adeline, amazed by the stunning and breathtaking scenery around her, wholeheartedly agreed with Peter's point, which encouraged him to talk more about the benefits of his country. He completely overlooked its downsides, and even though he gave away his last coin to the barefoot children running alongside the horse, he only spoke of the happiness and contentment of the people living there.

His native village, indeed, was an exception to the general character of the country, and to the usual effects of an arbitrary government; it was flourishing, healthy, and happy; and these advantages it chiefly owed to the activity and attention of the benevolent clergyman whose cure it was.

His hometown was actually different from the typical character of the area and the usual outcomes of a strict government; it was thriving, healthy, and joyful; and it largely owed these benefits to the efforts and care of the kind-hearted clergyman who was in charge.

Adeline, who now began to feel the effects of long anxiety and fatigue, much wished to arrive at the end of her journey, and inquired impatiently of Peter concerning it. Her spirits thus weakened, the gloomy grandeur of the scenes which had so lately awakened emotions of delightful sublimity, now awed her into terror; she trembled at the sound of the torrents rolling among the cliffs and thundering in the vale below, and shrunk from the view of the precipices, which sometimes overhung the road and at others appeared beneath it. Fatigued as she was, she frequently dismounted to climb on foot the steep flinty road, which she feared to travel on horseback.

Adeline, who now began to feel the strain of prolonged anxiety and fatigue, was eager to reach the end of her journey and impatiently asked Peter about it. With her spirits so low, the dark beauty of the scenes that had previously filled her with wonder now filled her with fear; she flinched at the sound of the torrents crashing against the cliffs and echoing in the valley below, and recoiled at the sight of the cliffs that sometimes loomed over the road and at other times appeared below it. Despite her exhaustion, she often got off her horse to tackle the steep, rocky path on foot, which she was afraid to navigate while riding.

The day was closing when they drew near a small village at the foot of the Savoy Alps; and the sun, in all his evening splendour, now sinking behind their summits, threw a farewell gleam athwart the landscape so soft and glowing as drew from Adeline, languid as she was, an exclamation of rapture.

The day was coming to an end as they approached a small village at the base of the Savoy Alps; and the sun, in all its evening glory, was now setting behind the peaks, casting a final glow across the landscape that was so soft and radiant it made Adeline, though weary, exclaim with delight.

The romantic situation of the village next attracted her notice. It stood at the foot of several stupendous mountains, which formed a chain round a lake at some little distance, and the woods that swept from their summits almost embosomed the village. The lake, unruffled by the lightest air, reflected the vermeil tints of the horizon with the sublime on its borders, darkening every instant with the falling twilight.

The romantic setting of the village next caught her attention. It was located at the base of several huge mountains, which surrounded a lake a bit farther away, and the woods that extended from their peaks almost enveloped the village. The lake, calm even in the slightest breeze, mirrored the reddish hues of the horizon, with the sublime landscape on its edges growing darker with the approaching twilight.

When Peter perceived the village, he burst into a shout of joy. Thank God, said he, we are near home; there is my dear native place: it looks just as it did twenty years ago: and there are the same old trees growing round our cottage yonder, and the huge rock that rises above it. My poor father died there, Ma'mselle. Pray Heaven my sister be alive! it is a long while since I saw her. Adeline listened with a melancholy pleasure to these artless expressions of Peter, who in retracing the scenes of his former days seemed to live them over again. As they approached the village, he continued to point out various objects of his remembrance. And there too is the good pastor's chateau; look, Ma'mselle, that white house with the smoke curling, that stands on the edge of the lake yonder. I wonder whether he is alive yet: he was not old when I left the place, and as much beloved as ever man was; but death spares nobody!

When Peter saw the village, he shouted with joy. Thank God, he said, we are almost home; there’s my beloved hometown: it looks just like it did twenty years ago. And there are the same old trees around our cottage over there, and the big rock that towers above it. My poor father died there, Ma'mselle. I hope my sister is alive! It’s been a long time since I saw her. Adeline listened with a sad pleasure to Peter's genuine expressions, as he recalled the scenes of his past and seemed to relive them. As they got closer to the village, he kept pointing out different things he remembered. And there’s the good pastor's chateau; look, Ma'mselle, that white house with the smoke curling, sitting on the edge of the lake over there. I wonder if he’s still alive: he wasn’t old when I left, and he was loved as much as anyone could be; but death doesn’t spare anyone!





They had by this time reached the village, which was extremely neat, though it did not promise much accommodation. Peter had hardly advanced ten steps before he was accosted by some of his old acquaintance, who shook hands, and seemed not to know how to part with him. He inquired for his sister, and was told she was alive and well. As they passed on, so many of his old friends flocked round him, that Adeline became quite weary of the delay. Many whom he had left in the vigour of life were now tottering under the infirmities of age, while their sons and daughters, whom he had known only in the playfulness of infancy, were grown from his remembrance, and in the pride of youth. At length they approached the cottage, and were met by his sister, who having heard of his arrival, came and welcomed him with unfeigned joy.

They had by this time reached the village, which was very tidy, though it didn’t offer much in terms of accommodation. Peter had barely taken ten steps before some of his old acquaintances approached him, shook his hand, and seemed unsure how to say goodbye. He asked about his sister and was told she was alive and well. As they continued, so many of his old friends surrounded him that Adeline grew quite impatient with the delay. Many whom he had left in the prime of life were now struggling with the weaknesses of old age, while their sons and daughters, whom he had known only as playful children, had grown up and were now full of youthful pride. Finally, they reached the cottage, and his sister, having heard of his arrival, came out to greet him with genuine happiness.

On seeing Adeline, she seemed surprised, but assisted her to alight; and conducting her into a small but neat cottage, received her with a warmth of ready kindness which would have graced a better situation. Adeline desired to speak with her alone, for the room was now crowded with Peter's friends; and then acquainting her with such particulars of her circumstances as it was necessary to communicate, desired to know if she could be accommodated with lodging in the cottage. Yes, Ma'mselle, said the good woman, such as it is, you are heartily welcome: I am only sorry it is not better. But you seem ill Ma'mselle; what shall I get you?

When Adeline arrived, the woman seemed surprised but helped her get down. She then led her into a small but tidy cottage, welcoming her with a warmth and kindness that would have suited a much better place. Adeline wanted to speak with her privately since the room was now filled with Peter's friends. After sharing some details about her situation that she thought were necessary, she asked if there was any way she could stay in the cottage. "Yes, Miss," the kind woman replied, "as it is, you are more than welcome here; I just wish it were better. But you look unwell, Miss; what can I get for you?"

Adeline, who had been long struggling with fatigue and indisposition, now yielded to their pressure. She said she was indeed ill; but hoped that rest would restore her, and desired a bed might be immediately prepared. The good woman went out to obey her, and soon returning showed her to a little cabin, where she retired to a bed whose cleanliness was its only recommendation.

Adeline, who had long been battling tiredness and feeling unwell, finally gave in to their demands. She admitted that she was indeed sick but hoped that some rest would help her recover, and asked for a bed to be set up right away. The kind woman went out to do what she requested and quickly returned to lead her to a small cabin, where she settled into a bed that was clean, which was its only positive feature.

But notwithstanding her fatigue, she could not sleep; and her mind, in spite of all her efforts, returned to the scenes that were passed, or presented gloomy and imperfect visions of the future.

But despite her exhaustion, she couldn’t sleep; and her mind, no matter how hard she tried, kept drifting back to the past or showing dark and unclear images of the future.

The difference between her own condition and that of other persons, educated as she had been, struck her forcibly, and she wept. They, said she, have friends and relations, all striving to save them not only from what may hurt, but what may displease them; watching not only for their present safety, but for their future advantage, and preventing them even from injuring themselves. But during my whole life I have never known a friend; have been in general surrounded by enemies, and very seldom exempt from some circumstance either of danger or calamity. Yet surely I am not born to be for ever wretched; the time will come when——She began to think she might one time be happy; but recollecting the desperate situation of Theodore,—No, said she, I can never hope even for peace!

The difference between her situation and that of others, given her education, hit her hard, and she cried. They, she thought, have friends and family all trying to protect them not just from harm but from discomfort; they’re looking out for both their current safety and their future success, even preventing them from self-inflicted pain. But throughout my life, I’ve never known a friend; I’ve mostly been surrounded by enemies, and I’m rarely free from some form of danger or trouble. Yet surely I’m not meant to be miserable forever; a time will come when—She started to think maybe she could be happy one day; but then remembering Theodore’s dire situation—No, she said, I can never even hope for peace!

Early the following morning the good woman of the house came to inquire how she had rested; and found she had slept little, and was much worse than on the preceding night. The uneasiness of her mind contributed to heighten the feverish symptoms that attended her, and in the course of the day her disorder began to assume a serious aspect. She observed its progress with composure, resigning herself to the will of God, and feeling little to regret in life. Her kind hostess did every thing in her power to relieve her, and there was neither physician nor apothecary in the village, so that nature was deprived of none of her advantages. Notwithstanding this, the disorder rapidly increased, and on the third day from its first attack she became delirious, after which she sunk into a state of stupefaction.

Early the next morning, the kind woman of the house came to check on how she had slept and found that she hadn't rested much and felt worse than the night before. The anxiety in her mind made her feverish symptoms worse, and throughout the day, her condition started to look serious. She observed its progression calmly, accepting whatever God had planned, feeling little regret about her life. Her thoughtful hostess did everything possible to help her, and there was no doctor or pharmacist in the village, so nature had its way. Despite this, her illness quickly worsened, and by the third day after it began, she became delirious and then slipped into a state of stupor.

How long she remained in this deplorable condition she knew not; but on recovering her senses she found herself in an apartment very different from any she remembered. It was spacious and almost beautiful, the bed and every thing around being in one style of elegant simplicity. For some minutes she lay in a trance of surprise, endeavouring to recollect her scattered ideas of the past, and almost fearing to move lest the pleasing vision should vanish from her eyes.

How long she stayed in this terrible state, she didn't know; but when she regained her senses, she discovered she was in a room very different from anything she remembered. It was spacious and quite beautiful, with the bed and everything around it designed in an elegant, simple style. For a few minutes, she lay there in a daze of surprise, trying to piece together her scattered memories of the past, almost afraid to move in case this pleasant vision disappeared from her sight.

At length she ventured to raise herself, when she presently heard a soft voice speaking near her, and the bed curtain on one side was gently undrawn by a beautiful girl. As she leaned forward over the bed, and with a smile of mingled tenderness and joy inquired of her patient how she did. Adeline gazed in silent admiration upon the most interesting female countenance she had ever seen, in which the expression of sweetness, united with lively sense and refinement, was chastened by simplicity.

At last, she dared to sit up when she soon heard a soft voice speaking nearby, and the bed curtain on one side was gently pulled back by a beautiful girl. As she leaned forward over the bed and, with a smile of both tenderness and joy, asked her how she was doing, Adeline looked on in silent admiration at the most captivating female face she had ever seen, where the expression of sweetness combined with vibrant intelligence and refinement was tempered by simplicity.

Adeline at length recollected herself sufficiently to thank her kind inquirer, and begged to know to whom she was obliged, and where she was? The lovely girl pressed her hand, 'Tis we who are obliged, said she. Oh! how I rejoice to find that you have recovered your recollection! She said no more, but flew to the door of the apartment, and disappeared. In a few minutes she returned with an elderly lady, who approaching the bed with an air of tender interest, asked concerning the state of Adeline; to which the latter replied as well as the agitation of her spirits would permit, and repeated her desire of knowing to whom she was so greatly obliged. You shall know that hereafter, said the lady; at present be assured that you are with those who will think their care much overpaid by your recovery; submit, therefore, to every thing that may conduce to it, and consent to be kept as quiet as possible.

Adeline finally collected her thoughts enough to thank her kind questioner and asked who she owed her gratitude to and where she was. The beautiful girl squeezed her hand and said, "We are the ones who are grateful. Oh, how I’m so happy to see that you’ve regained your strength!" She didn’t say anything else but quickly went to the door of the room and vanished. A few minutes later, she came back with an older woman who approached the bed with genuine concern and asked about Adeline's condition. Adeline responded as best as her shaken emotions would allow and reiterated her wish to know who she was so thankful to. "You’ll find out later," the lady replied. "For now, just know that you’re with people who feel that their efforts will be more than worth it if you get better. So please, cooperate with everything that will help that happen and try to stay as calm as possible."

Adeline gratefully smiled and bowed her head in silent assent. The lady now quitted the room for a medicine; having given which to Adeline, the curtain was closed and she was left to repose. But her thoughts were too busy to suffer her to profit by the opportunity:—she contemplated the past and viewed the present; and when she compared them, the contrast struck her with astonishment: the whole appeared like one of those sudden transitions so frequent in dreams, in which we pass from grief and despair, we know not how, to comfort and delight.

Adeline smiled gratefully and nodded her head in agreement. The lady then left the room to get some medicine; after giving it to Adeline, she closed the curtain and left her to rest. But her mind was too active for her to take advantage of the opportunity: she reflected on the past and considered the present; and when she compared the two, the contrast amazed her: it felt like one of those abrupt changes that often happen in dreams, where we move from sorrow and despair, we don't know how, to comfort and joy.

Yet she looked forward to the future with a trembling anxiety that threatened to retard her recovery, and which when she remembered the words of her generous benefactress, she endeavoured to suppress. Had she better known the disposition of the persons in whose house she now was, her anxiety, as far as it regarded herself, must in a great measure have been done away; for La Luc, its owner, was one of those rare characters to whom misfortune seldom looks in vain, and whose native goodness, confirmed by principle, is uniform and unassuming in its acts. The following little picture of his domestic life, his family, and his manners, will more fully illustrate his character. It was drawn from the life, and its exactness will, it is hoped, compensate for its length.

Yet she looked forward to the future with a nervous anxiety that threatened to slow her recovery, and whenever she recalled her generous benefactress's words, she tried to push it down. If she had known better the personalities of the people in whose home she now found herself, her worry about her own situation would have mostly disappeared; for La Luc, the owner, was one of those rare individuals whom misfortune hardly touches, and whose inherent goodness, backed by principles, is consistent and humble in its actions. The following brief snapshot of his home life, family, and character will better illustrate who he is. It was drawn from real life, and its accuracy will, hopefully, make up for its length.

THE FAMILY OF LA LUC.
But half of humanity, like Handel's fool, destroys,
Through anger and ignorance, the burden of happiness;
Wild passions roll unpredictably
Through nature's greatest tool, the soul:—
While sensible men, with Handel's better talent,
Adjust the taste and align the will;
Teach their feelings to flow like his notes,
Neither raised too high nor ever sunk too low;
Until every virtue is measured and refined,
As befits the concert of the master mind,
Melts into its familiar sounds and flows along
The accompanying music of the moral song.
CAWTHORNE.

In the village of Leloncourt, celebrated for its picturesque situation at the foot of the Savoy Alps, lived Arnaud La Luc, a clergyman descended from an ancient family of France, whose decayed fortunes occasioned them to seek a retreat in Switzerland, in an age when the violence of civil commotion seldom spared the conquered. He was minister of the village, and equally loved for the piety and benevolence of the Christian, as respected for the dignity and elevation of the philosopher. His was the philosophy of nature, directed by common sense. He despised the jargon of the modern schools, and the brilliant absurdities of systems which dazzled without enlightening, and guided without convincing their disciples.

In the village of Leloncourt, known for its beautiful location at the base of the Savoy Alps, lived Arnaud La Luc, a clergyman from an old French family whose fallen fortunes led them to find refuge in Switzerland during a time when civil unrest rarely spared the defeated. He served as the minister of the village, loved for his piety and kindness as a Christian, and respected for his dignity and insight as a philosopher. His philosophy focused on nature, guided by common sense. He looked down on the language of modern schools and the flashy nonsense of theories that dazzled without enlightening and led without convincing their followers.

His mind was penetrating; his views extensive; and his systems, like his religion, were simple, rational, and sublime. The people of his parish looked up to him as to a father; for while his precepts directed their minds, his example touched their hearts.

His mind was sharp; his ideas were broad; and his beliefs, like his faith, were straightforward, logical, and uplifting. The people in his parish looked up to him like a father; because while his teachings guided their thoughts, his actions resonated with their emotions.

In early youth La Luc lost a wife whom he tenderly loved. This event threw a tincture of soft and interesting melancholy over his character, which remained when time had mellowed the remembrance that occasioned it. Philosophy had strengthened, not hardened, his heart; it enabled him to resist the pressure of affliction, rather than to overcome it.

In his early years, La Luc lost a wife he truly loved. This experience added a layer of gentle and intriguing sadness to his character, which lingered even as time softened the memory of it. Philosophy had strengthened his heart without hardening it; it helped him endure the weight of his grief rather than completely overcome it.

Calamity taught him to feel with peculiar sympathy the distresses of others. His income from the parish was small, and what remained from the divided and reduced estates of his ancestors did not much increase it; but though he could not always relieve the necessities of the indigent, his tender pity and holy conversation seldom failed in administering consolation to the mental sufferer. On these occasions the sweet and exquisite emotions of his heart have often induced him to say, that could the voluptuary be once sensible of these feelings, he would never after forego the luxury of doing good. Ignorance of true pleasure, he would say, more frequently than temptation to that which is false, leads to vice.

Calamity made him deeply sympathetic to the struggles of others. His income from the parish was small, and what he got from the divided and diminished estates of his ancestors didn’t add much to it; but even though he couldn't always help those in need, his deep compassion and spiritual conversations often provided comfort to those who were suffering mentally. During these moments, the sweet and profound feelings in his heart often led him to say that if a pleasure-seeker could ever experience these emotions, they would never want to give up the joy of doing good. He believed that ignorance of true pleasure, rather than the temptation of false pleasures, more often leads to wrongdoing.

La Luc had one son and a daughter, who were too young when their mother died to lament their loss. He loved them with peculiar tenderness, as the children of her whom he never ceased to deplore; and it was for some time his sole amusement to observe the gradual unfolding of their infant minds, and to bend them to virtue. His was the deep and silent sorrow of the heart: his complaints he never obtruded upon others, and very seldom did he even mention his wife. His grief was too sacred for the eye of the vulgar. Often he retired to the deep solitude of the mountains, and amid their solemn and tremendous scenery would brood over the remembrance of times past, and resign himself to the luxury of grief. On his return from these little excursions he was always more placid and contented. A sweet tranquillity, which arose almost to happiness, was diffused over his mind, and his manners were more than usually benevolent. As he gazed on his children, and fondly kissed them, a tear would sometimes steal into his eye: but it was a tear of tender regret, unmingled with the darker qualities of sorrow, and was most precious to his heart.

La Luc had a son and a daughter, who were too young to truly understand the loss of their mother when she passed away. He loved them with a unique tenderness, as they were the children of the woman he could never stop mourning. For a while, his only joy came from watching their minds grow and guiding them toward being good people. He carried a deep and quiet sadness in his heart; he rarely burdened others with his pain and seldom spoke of his wife. His grief felt too sacred to share with the world. Often, he would retreat to the quiet of the mountains, where the powerful scenery allowed him to reflect on the past and indulge in his sorrow. After these retreats, he always returned feeling calmer and more at peace. A gentle tranquility, almost resembling happiness, filled his mind, and he became unusually kind. As he looked at his children and gently kissed them, a tear would sometimes slip down his cheek, but it was a tear of sweet regret, free from the deeper shadows of sadness, and it was incredibly precious to him.

On the death of his wife he received into his house a maiden sister, a sensible, worthy woman, who was deeply interested in the happiness of her brother. Her affectionate attention and judicious conduct anticipated the effect of time in softening the poignancy of his distress; and her unremitted care of his children, while it proved the goodness of her own heart, attracted her more closely to his.

After his wife's death, he welcomed his sister into his home. She was a sensible and kind woman who genuinely cared about her brother's happiness. Her loving support and wise approach helped ease the intensity of his grief faster than time could. Her constant care for his children not only showed her kind nature but also drew her closer to him.

It was with inexpressible pleasure that he traced in the infant features of Clara the resemblance of her mother. The same gentleness of manner and the same sweetness of disposition soon displayed themselves; and as she grew up, her actions frequently reminded him so strongly of his lost wife as to fix him in reveries, which absorbed all his soul.

It was with overwhelming joy that he noticed in the baby features of Clara the likeness to her mother. The same kindness and the same charming nature quickly showed themselves; and as she grew older, her actions often reminded him so deeply of his late wife that he would often get lost in thoughts that consumed him completely.

Engaged in the duties of his parish, the education of his children, and in philosophic research, his years passed in tranquillity. The tender melancholy with which affliction had tinctured his mind, was by long indulgence become dear to him, and he would not have relinquished it for the brightest dream of airy happiness. When any passing incident disturbed him, he retired for consolation to the idea of her he so faithfully loved, and yielding to a gentle, and what the world would call a romantic, sadness, gradually reassumed his composure. This was the secret luxury to which he withdrew from temporary disappointment—the solitary enjoyment which dissipated the cloud of care, and blunted the sting of vexation—which elevated his mind above this world, and opened to his view the sublimity of another.

Engaged in his parish duties, raising his kids, and exploring philosophical ideas, his years went by peacefully. The soft sadness that grief had added to his thoughts had, over time, become something he cherished, and he wouldn't trade it for any bright fantasy of pure happiness. Whenever a random event upset him, he would find comfort in thinking about the woman he loved so deeply, and surrendering to a gentle, what many would call a romantic, sadness, he would slowly regain his calm. This was the quiet luxury he turned to in times of disappointment—the solitary pleasure that eased his worries and dulled his frustrations—which lifted his spirit above this world and revealed to him the greatness of another.

The spot he now inhabited, the surrounding scenery, the romantic beauties of the neighbouring walks, were dear to La Luc, for they had once been loved by Clara; they had been the scenes of her tenderness, and of his happiness.

The place he lived in now, the view around him, and the beautiful trails nearby were precious to La Luc since Clara had once cherished them; they had been the backdrop of her affection and his joy.

His chateau stood on the borders of a small lake that was almost environed by mountains of stupendous height, which, shooting into a variety of grotesque forms, composed a scenery singularly solemn and sublime. Dark woods intermingled with bold projections of rock, sometimes barren and sometimes covered with the purple bloom of wild flowers, impended over the lake, and were seen in the clear mirror of its waters. The wild and alpine heights which rose above, were either crowned with perpetual snows, or exhibited tremendous crags and masses of solid rock, whose appearance was continually changing as the rays of light were variously reflected on their surface, and whose summits were often wrapt in impenetrable mists. Some cottages and hamlets, scattered on the margin of the lake or seated in picturesque points of view on the rocks above, were the only objects that reminded the beholder of humanity.

His chateau was located beside a small lake that was almost surrounded by towering mountains, which took on all sorts of bizarre shapes, creating a landscape that was both striking and majestic. Dark forests mixed with rugged rock formations, sometimes bare and other times covered with purple wildflowers, loomed over the lake and were reflected in its clear waters. The wild, alpine peaks rising above were either capped with permanent snow or showcased massive cliffs and solid rock structures, their appearances constantly shifting as light bounced off them, with their summits often shrouded in thick mist. A few cottages and small villages scattered along the lake's edge or perched in scenic spots on the rocks above were the only reminders of humanity.

On the side of the lake, nearly opposite to the chateau, the mountains receded, and a long chain of Alps was seen stretching in perspective. Their innumerable tints and shades, some veiled in blue mists, some tinged with rich purple, and others glittering in partial light, gave luxurious and magical colouring to the scene.

On the side of the lake, almost directly across from the chateau, the mountains faded into the background, revealing a long line of the Alps stretching into the distance. Their countless hues and shades, some shrouded in blue mist, some touched with deep purple, and others sparkling in the partial light, added a rich and enchanting color to the scene.

The chateau was not large, but it was convenient, and was characterized by an air of elegant simplicity and good order. The entrance was a small hall, which opening by a glass door into the garden, afforded a view of the lake, with the magnificent scenery exhibited on its borders. On the left of the hall was La Luc's study, where he usually passed his mornings; and adjoining was a small room fitted up with chemical apparatus, astronomical instruments, and other implements of science. On the right hand was the family parlour, and behind it a room which belonged exclusively to Madame La Luc. Here were deposited various medicines and botanical distillations, together with the apparatus for preparing them. From this room the whole village was liberally supplied with medicinal comfort; for it was the pride of Madame to believe herself skilful in relieving the disorders of her neighbours.

The chateau wasn't big, but it was practical and had a vibe of elegant simplicity and neatness. The entrance was a small hall that opened through a glass door into the garden, offering a view of the lake along with the beautiful scenery around it. To the left of the hall was La Luc's study, where he usually spent his mornings, and next to it was a small room equipped with chemical tools, astronomical instruments, and other scientific equipment. On the right side was the family parlor, and behind it was a room that belonged solely to Madame La Luc. This room contained various medicines and botanical extracts, along with the equipment to prepare them. From this room, the entire village was generously provided with medical aid, as Madame took pride in thinking she was skilled at helping her neighbors with their ailments.

Behind the chateau rose a tuft of pines, and in front a gentle declivity, covered with verdure and flowers, extended to the lake, whose waters flowed even with the grass, and gave freshness to the acacias that waved over its surface. Flowering shrubs, intermingled with mountain-ash, cypress, and ever-green oak, marked the boundary of the garden.

Behind the chateau, there was a cluster of pines, and in front, a gentle slope, covered with greenery and flowers, led down to the lake, whose waters flowed right up to the grass and added a refreshing touch to the acacias that swayed over it. Flowering shrubs, mixed with mountain ash, cypress, and evergreen oak, defined the edge of the garden.

At the return of spring it was Clara's care to direct the young shoots of the plants, to nurse the budding flowers, and to shelter them with the luxuriant branches of the shrubs from the cold blasts that descended from the mountains. In summer she usually rose with the sun, and visited her favourite flowers while the dew yet hung glittering on their leaves. The freshness of early day, with the glowing colouring which then touched the scenery, gave a pure and exquisite delight to her innocent heart. Born amid scenes of grandeur and sublimity, she had quickly imbibed a taste for their charms, which taste was heightened by the influence of a warm imagination. To view the sun rising above the Alps, tinging their snowy heads with light, and suddenly darting his rays over the whole face of nature—to see the fiery splendour of the clouds reflected in the lake below, and the roseate tints first steal upon the rocks above—were among the earliest pleasures of which Clara was susceptible. From being delighted with the observance of nature, she grew pleased with seeing her finely imitated, and soon displayed a taste for poetry and painting. When she was about sixteen she often selected from her father's library those of the Italian poets most celebrated for picturesque beauty, and would spend the first hours of morning in reading them under the shade of the acacias that bordered the lake. Here too she would often attempt rude sketches of the surrounding scenery; and at length by repeated efforts, assisted by some instruction from her brother she succeeded so well as to produce twelve drawings in crayon, which were judged worthy of decorating the parlour of the chateau.

As spring returned, Clara made it her mission to guide the young plant shoots, nurture the budding flowers, and protect them with the lush branches of the shrubs from the chilly winds coming down from the mountains. In summer, she typically woke with the sun and visited her favorite flowers while the dew still sparkled on their leaves. The freshness of the early morning, combined with the warm colors that lit up the landscape, brought pure and exquisite joy to her innocent heart. Growing up surrounded by stunning and majestic scenery, she quickly developed an appreciation for their beauty, a passion fueled by her vivid imagination. Watching the sun rise above the Alps, lighting up their snowy peaks, and casting rays across the whole natural landscape—seeing the brilliant colors of the clouds reflected in the lake below, and the rosy hues gently touching the rocks above—were among Clara's earliest delights. Her appreciation for nature later grew into a fondness for its artistic representation, leading her to develop an interest in poetry and painting. By the time she turned sixteen, she often chose works from her father's library, particularly the Italian poets known for their vivid imagery, and would spend her mornings reading them under the shade of the acacia trees by the lake. Here, she often attempted rough sketches of the beautiful scenery around her, and after numerous attempts, with some help from her brother, she achieved enough skill to create twelve crayon drawings that were deemed worthy to decorate the parlor of the chateau.

Young La Luc played the flute, and she listened to him with exquisite delight, particularly when he stood on the margin of the lake, under her beloved acacias. Her voice was sweet and flexible, though not strong, and she soon learned to modulate it to the instrument. She knew nothing of the intricacies of execution; her airs were simple, and her style equally so; but she soon gave them a touching expression, inspired by the sensibility of her heart, which seldom left those of her hearers unaffected.

Young La Luc played the flute, and she listened to him with pure delight, especially when he was by the lake, under her favorite acacias. Her voice was sweet and flexible, though not very strong, and she quickly learned to adapt it to the music. She had no knowledge of the complexities of playing; her tunes were simple, and her style the same; but she soon infused them with a heartfelt emotion that rarely left her listeners unmoved.

It was the happiness of La Luc to see his children happy; and in one of his excursions to Geneva, whither he went to visit some relations of his late wife, he bought Clara a lute. She received it with more gratitude than she could express; and having learned one air, she hastened to her favourite acacias, and played it again and again till she forgot every thing besides. Her little domestic duties, her books, her drawing, even the hour which her father dedicated to her improvement, when she met her brother in the library, and with him partook of knowledge, even this hour passed unheeded by. La Luc suffered it to pass. Madame was displeased that her niece neglected her domestic duties, and wished to reprove her, but La Luc begged she would be silent. Let experience teach her her error, said he, precept seldom brings conviction to young minds.

La Luc was happy to see his children happy; during one of his trips to Geneva, where he went to visit some relatives of his late wife, he bought Clara a lute. She accepted it with more gratitude than she could express, and after learning one piece, she rushed to her favorite acacias and played it repeatedly until she forgot everything else. Her little chores, her books, her drawing, and even the hour her father dedicated to her learning—when she met her brother in the library and shared knowledge—these moments all passed unnoticed. La Luc allowed it to happen. Madame was unhappy that her niece was neglecting her chores and wanted to scold her, but La Luc asked her to hold back. "Let experience teach her her mistake," he said; "advice rarely convinces young minds."

Madame objected that experience was a slow teacher. It is a sure one, replied La Luc, and is not unfrequently the quickest of all teachers: when it cannot lead us into serious evil, it is well to trust to it.

Madame disagreed, saying that experience is a slow teacher. "It's a reliable one," La Luc responded, "and often the fastest teacher of all. When it can't lead us into serious trouble, it's best to rely on it."

The second day passed with Clara as the first, and the third as the second. She could now play several tunes; she came to her father and repeated what she had learnt.

The second day went by with Clara like the first, and the third like the second. She could now play several songs; she went to her father and showed him what she had learned.

At supper the cream was not dressed, and there was no fruit on the table. La Luc inquired the reason; Clara recollected it, and blushed. She observed that her brother was absent, but nothing was said. Toward the conclusion of the repast he appeared; his countenance expressed unusual satisfaction, but he seated himself in silence. Clara inquired what had detained him from supper, and learnt that he had been to a sick family in the neighbourhood with the weekly allowance which her father gave them. La Luc had intrusted the care of this family to his daughter, and it was her duty to have carried them their little allowance on the preceding day, but she had forgotten every thing but music.

At dinner, the cream wasn’t prepared, and there was no fruit on the table. La Luc asked why, and Clara remembered it and blushed. She noticed her brother was missing, but no one mentioned it. Toward the end of the meal, he showed up; his face reflected unusual happiness, but he sat down in silence. Clara asked what had kept him from dinner and found out he had been visiting a sick family in the neighborhood with the weekly allowance their father provided. La Luc had assigned the responsibility of this family to his daughter, and it was her job to take them their small allowance the day before, but she had completely forgotten about it, focusing only on music.

How did you find the woman? said La Luc to his son. Worse, Sir, he replied; for her medicines had not been regularly given and the children had had little or no food to-day.

How did you find the woman? La Luc asked his son. Not good, Sir, he replied; because her medicines hadn't been given regularly and the children had little or no food today.

Clara was shocked. No food to-day! said she to herself; and I have been playing all day on my lute, under the acacias by the lake! Her father did not seem to observe her emotion, but turned to his son. I left her better, said the latter; the medicines I carried eased her pain, and I had the pleasure to see her children make a joyful supper.

Clara was shocked. No food today! she thought to herself; and I have been playing all day on my lute, under the acacias by the lake! Her father didn’t seem to notice her distress, but turned to his son. I left her in better spirits, said the latter; the medicines I brought eased her pain, and I was pleased to see her children having a joyful supper.

Clara, perhaps, for the first time in her life, envied him his pleasure; her heart was full, and she sat silent. No food to-day! thought she.

Clara, maybe for the first time in her life, envied him for his happiness; her heart was heavy, and she sat in silence. No food today! she thought.

She retired pensively to her chamber. The sweet serenity with which she usually went to rest was vanished, for she could no longer reflect on the past day with satisfaction.

She quietly went to her room. The calmness she usually felt at bedtime was gone, as she could no longer look back on the day with contentment.

What a pity, said she, that what is so pleasing should be the cause of so much pain! This lute is my delight, and my torment! This reflection occasioned her much internal debate; but before she could come to any resolution upon the point in question, she fell asleep.

What a shame, she said, that something so enjoyable can bring so much suffering! This lute is my joy and my pain! This thought caused her a lot of inner conflict; but before she could come to any decision about it, she fell asleep.

She awoke very early the next morning, and impatiently watched the progress of the dawn. The sun at length appearing, she arose, and determined to make all the atonement in her power for her former neglect, hastened to the cottage.

She woke up very early the next morning and impatiently watched the dawn break. When the sun finally appeared, she got up and decided to do everything she could to make up for her past neglect, so she hurried to the cottage.

Here she remained a considerable time, and when she returned to the chateau, her countenance had recovered all its usual serenity. She resolved, however, not to touch her lute that day.

Here she stayed for quite a while, and when she came back to the chateau, her face had regained its usual calmness. However, she decided not to play her lute that day.

Till the hour of breakfast she busied herself in binding up the flowers and pruning the shoots that were too luxuriant, and she at length found herself, she scarcely knew how, beneath her beloved acacias by the side of the lake. Ah! said she with a sigh, how sweetly would the song I learned yesterday sound now over the waters! But she remembered her determination, and checked the step she was involuntarily taking towards the chateau.

Till breakfast time, she kept herself occupied tying up the flowers and trimming the overgrown shoots. Eventually, she found herself—she hardly knew how—underneath her beloved acacias by the lake. Ah, she said with a sigh, how beautifully the song I learned yesterday would sound over the water right now! But she remembered her resolution and stopped herself from walking toward the chateau.

She attended her father in the library at the usual hour, and learned from his discourse with her brother on what had been read the two preceding days, that she had lost much entertaining knowledge. She requested her father would inform her to what this conversation alluded; but he calmly replied, that she had preferred another amusement at the time when the subject was discussed, and must therefore content herself with ignorance. You would reap the rewards of study from the amusements of idleness, said he; learn to be reasonable—do not expect to unite inconsistencies.

She joined her father in the library at the usual time and learned from his conversation with her brother about what they had read over the past two days that she had missed out on a lot of interesting information. She asked her father to explain what this conversation was about, but he calmly responded that she had chosen to do something else when the topic was discussed and would have to accept being in the dark. "You can't benefit from studying if you’re busy being idle," he said; "learn to be sensible—don’t expect to combine opposites."

Clara felt the justness of this rebuke, and remembered her lute. What mischief has it occasioned! sighed she. Yes, I am determined not to touch it at all this day. I will prove that I am able to control my inclinations when I see it is necessary so to do. Thus resolving, she applied herself to study with more than usual assiduity.

Clara recognized the fairness of this criticism and thought about her lute. What trouble has it caused! she sighed. Yes, I’ve decided not to play it at all today. I want to show that I can control my desires when it’s important to do so. With that in mind, she focused on her studies with more effort than usual.

She adhered to her resolution, and towards the close of the day went into the garden to amuse herself. The evening was still and uncommonly beautiful. Nothing was heard but the faint shivering of the leaves, which returned but at intervals, making silence more solemn, and the distant murmurs of the torrents that rolled among the cliffs. As she stood by the lake, and watched the sun slowly sinking below the Alps, whose summits were tinged with gold and purple; as she saw the last rays of light gleam upon the waters, whose surface was not curled by the slightest air, she sighed, oh! how enchanting would be the sound of my lute at this moment, on this spot, and when every thing is so still around me!

She stuck to her resolution, and towards the end of the day, she went into the garden to entertain herself. The evening was calm and unusually beautiful. The only sounds were the gentle rustling of the leaves, which came and went, making the silence feel even more profound, and the distant murmurs of the streams flowing among the cliffs. As she stood by the lake, watching the sun slowly sink below the Alps, whose peaks were glowing with gold and purple; as she saw the last rays of light sparkle on the waters, whose surface was completely still, she sighed, oh! how enchanting would be the sound of my lute right now, in this spot, with everything so quiet around me!

The temptation was too powerful for the resolution of Clara: she ran to the chateau, returned with the instrument to her dear acacias, and beneath their shade continued to play till the surrounding objects faded in darkness from her sight. But the moon rose, and shedding a trembling lustre on the lake, made the scene more captivating than ever.

The temptation was too strong for Clara to resist: she ran to the chateau, came back with the instrument to her beloved acacias, and under their shade kept playing until everything around her faded into darkness. But then the moon rose, casting a soft glow on the lake, making the scene more enchanting than ever.

It was impossible to quit so delightful a spot; Clara repeated her favourite airs again and again. The beauty of the hour awakened all her genius; she never played with such expression before, and she listened with increasing rapture to the tones as they languished over the waters and died away on the distant air. She was perfectly enchanted—no! nothing was ever so delightful as to play on the lute beneath her acacias, on the margin of the lake, by moonlight!

It was impossible to leave such a wonderful place; Clara played her favorite tunes over and over. The beauty of the moment brought out all her talent; she had never played with such feeling before, and she listened with growing delight as the sounds floated over the water and faded into the distance. She was completely spellbound—nothing was ever as delightful as playing the lute under her acacias, by the edge of the lake, in the moonlight!

When she returned to the chateau, supper was over. La Luc had observed Clara, and would not suffer her to be interrupted.

When she got back to the chateau, dinner was finished. La Luc had noticed Clara and wouldn’t let anyone interrupt her.

When the enthusiasm of the hour was passed, she recollected that she had broken her resolution, and the reflection gave her pain. I prided myself on controlling my inclinations, said she, and I have weakly yielded to their direction. But what evil have I incurred by indulging them this evening? I have neglected no duty, for I had none to perform. Of what then have I to accuse myself? It would have been absurd to have kept my resolution, and denied myself a pleasure when there appeared no reason for this self-denial.

When the excitement of the moment faded, she remembered that she had broken her promise to herself, and that thought upset her. “I take pride in controlling my desires,” she said, “but I’ve weakly given in to them. But what harm have I done by enjoying myself this evening? I haven’t neglected any responsibilities, since there were none to handle. So what should I feel guilty about? It would have been ridiculous to stick to my promise and deny myself a pleasure when there was no good reason to do so.”

She paused, not quite satisfied with this reasoning. Suddenly resuming her inquiry, But how, said she, am I certain that I should have resisted my inclinations if there had been a reason for opposing them? If the poor family whom I neglected yesterday had been unsupplied to-day, I fear I should again have forgotten them while I played on my lute on the banks of the lake.

She paused, not entirely convinced by her reasoning. Suddenly picking up her questioning again, she said, "But how can I be sure I would have resisted my impulses if there had actually been a reason to oppose them? If the struggling family I ignored yesterday had been in need today, I’m afraid I would have forgotten about them again while I played my lute by the lake."

She then recollected all that her father had at different times said on the subject of self-command, and she felt some pain.

She then remembered everything her father had said at different times about self-control, and it caused her some pain.

No, said she, if I do not consider that to preserve a resolution, which I have once solemnly formed, is a sufficient reason to control my inclinations, I fear no other motive would long restrain me. I seriously determined not to touch my lute this whole day, and I have broken my resolution. To-morrow perhaps I may be tempted to neglect some duty, for I have discovered that I cannot rely on my own prudence. Since I cannot conquer temptation, I will fly from it.

No, she said, if I don't believe that sticking to a decision I made seriously is a good enough reason to hold back my desires, then I doubt anything else would keep me in check for long. I had made up my mind not to play my lute at all today, and I've already broken that promise. Tomorrow, I might be tempted to skip some responsibility, because I realize I can't trust my own judgment. Since I can't resist temptation, I'll just avoid it.

On the following morning she brought her lute to La Luc, and begged he would receive it again, and at least keep it till she had taught her inclinations to submit to control.

On the next morning, she brought her lute to La Luc and asked him to take it back and at least hold onto it until she had trained her desires to be under control.

The heart of La Luc swelled as she spoke. No, Clara, said he, it is unnecessary that I should receive your lute; the sacrifice you would make proves you worthy of my confidence. Take back the instrument; since you have sufficient resolution to resign it when it leads you from duty, I doubt not that you will be able to control its influence now that it is restored to you.

The heart of La Luc swelled as she spoke. No, Clara, he said, you don't need to give me your lute; the sacrifice you're willing to make shows that you deserve my trust. Keep the instrument; since you have the strength to give it up when it distracts you from your responsibilities, I have no doubt that you can manage its influence now that it’s back in your hands.

Clara felt a degree of pleasure and pride at these words, such as she had never before experienced; but she thought, that to deserve the commendation they bestowed, it was necessary to complete the sacrifice she had begun. In the virtuous enthusiasm of the moment the delights of music were forgotten in those of aspiring to well-earned praise; and when she refused the lute thus offered, she was conscious only of exquisite sensations. Dear Sir, said she, tears of pleasure, swelling in her eyes, allow me to deserve the praises you bestow, and then I shall indeed be happy.

Clara felt a mix of happiness and pride at these words, unlike anything she had felt before; but she believed that to truly earn the praise they gave her, she needed to finish the sacrifice she had started. In the passionate enthusiasm of the moment, the joys of music faded away in favor of striving for deserving recognition; and when she declined the lute that was offered, she felt only intense emotions. "Dear Sir," she said, tears of joy welling in her eyes, "please let me earn the praise you give, and then I will truly be happy."

La Luc thought she had never resembled her mother so much as at this instant, and tenderly kissing her, he for some moments wept in silence. When he was able to speak, You do already deserve my praises, said he, and I restore your lute as a reward for the conduct which excites them. This scene called back recollections too tender for the heart of La Luc, and giving Clara the instrument, he abruptly quitted the room.

La Luc thought she had never looked so much like her mother as she did at that moment, and softly kissing her, he cried in silence for a little while. When he was able to speak, he said, "You already deserve my praise," and he returned her lute as a reward for the behavior that inspired it. This scene brought back memories that were too emotional for La Luc, and handing Clara the instrument, he suddenly left the room.

La Luc's son, a youth of much promise, was designed by his father for the church, and had received from him an excellent education, which, however, it was thought necessary he should finish at an university. That of Geneva was fixed upon by La Luc. His scheme had been to make his son not a scholar only; he was ambitious that he should also be enviable as a man. From early infancy he had accustomed him to hardihood and endurance, and as he advanced in youth, he encouraged him in manly exercises, and acquainted him with the useful arts as well as with abstract science.

La Luc's son, a promising young man, was intended by his father for the church and had received an excellent education. However, it was deemed necessary for him to complete his studies at a university. La Luc chose the University of Geneva. His plan was to make his son not just knowledgeable, but also someone to be admired. From a young age, he had trained him to be tough and resilient, and as he grew older, he encouraged him to engage in physical activities and learn practical skills alongside abstract concepts.

He was high-spirited and ardent in his temper, but his heart was generous and affectionate. He looked forward to Geneva, and to the new world it would disclose, with the sanguine expectations of youth; and in the delight of these expectations was absorbed the regret he would otherways have felt at a separation from his family.

He was upbeat and passionate, but his heart was kind and loving. He eagerly anticipated Geneva and the new experiences it would bring, filled with the hopeful outlook of youth; in the excitement of those expectations, he pushed aside any sadness he might have felt about being away from his family.

A brother of the late Madame La Luc, who was by birth an Englishman, resided at Geneva with his family. To have been related to his wife was a sufficient claim upon the heart of La Luc, and he had therefore always kept up an intercourse with Mr. Audley, though the difference in their characters and manner of thinking would never permit this association to advance into friendship. La Luc now wrote to him, signifying an intention of sending his son to Geneva, and recommending him to his care. To this letter Mr. Audley returned a friendly answer; and a short time after, an acquaintance of La Luc's being called to Geneva, he determined that his son should accompany him. The separation was painful to La Luc, and almost insupportable to Clara. Madame was grieved, and took care that he should have a sufficient quantity of medicines put up in his travelling trunk; she was also at some pains to point out their virtues, and the different complaints for which they were requisite; but she was careful to deliver her lecture during the absence of her brother.

A brother of the late Madame La Luc, who was originally from England, lived in Geneva with his family. Being connected to his wife was enough for La Luc to feel a bond, so he had always maintained a connection with Mr. Audley, even though their differing personalities and ways of thinking prevented this relationship from developing into friendship. La Luc wrote to him, explaining that he planned to send his son to Geneva and requesting that Mr. Audley look after him. Mr. Audley replied with a friendly message, and shortly after, an acquaintance of La Luc's was headed to Geneva, prompting La Luc to decide that his son should go along. The separation was difficult for La Luc and nearly unbearable for Clara. Madame was upset and made sure that a good supply of medicines was packed in his travel trunk; she also took the time to explain their uses and the various ailments they were meant to treat, but she was careful to give her talk while her brother was out of the room.

La Luc, with his daughter, accompanied his son on horseback to the next town, which was about eight miles from Leloncourt; and there again enforcing all the advice he had formerly given him respecting his conduct and pursuits, and again yielding to the tender weakness of the father, he bade him farewell. Clara wept, and felt more sorrow at this parting than the occasion could justify; but this was almost the first time she had known grief, and she artlessly yielded to its influence.

La Luc, along with his daughter, rode with his son on horseback to the next town, which was about eight miles from Leloncourt. Once there, he reinforced all the advice he had previously given him about his behavior and goals, and again, giving in to the emotional weakness of a father, he said goodbye. Clara cried and felt more sadness at this farewell than the situation warranted; but this was nearly the first time she had experienced grief, and she naturally succumbed to its impact.

La Luc and Clara travelled pensively back, and the day was closing when they came within view of the lake, and soon after of the chateau. Never had it appeared gloomy till now; but now Clara wandered forlornly through every deserted apartment where she had been accustomed to see her brother, and recollected a thousand little circumstances which, had he been present, she would have thought immaterial, but on which imagination now stamped a value. The garden, the scenes around, all wore a melancholy aspect, and it was long ere they resumed their natural character and Clara recovered her vivacity.

La Luc and Clara traveled back thoughtfully, and the day was ending when they finally saw the lake, and soon after, the chateau. It had never looked gloomy until now; but now Clara roamed sadly through every empty room where she used to see her brother, recalling countless little moments that, had he been there, she would have considered unimportant, but which now her imagination gave significance. The garden and the surrounding scenes all had a sad look, and it took a long time before they returned to their usual charm and Clara regained her energy.

Near four years had elapsed since this separation, when one evening, as Madame La Luc and her niece were sitting at work together in the parlour, a good woman in the neighbourhood desired to be admitted. She came to ask for some medicines, and the advice of Madame La Luc. Here is a sad accident happened at our house, Madame, said she; I am sure my heart aches for the poor young creature.—Madame La Luc desired she would explain herself, and the woman proceeded to say that her brother Peter, whom she had not seen for so many years, was arrived, and had brought a young lady to her cottage, who she verily believed was dying. She described her disorder, and acquainted Madame with what particulars of her mournful story Peter had related, failing not to exaggerate such as her compassion for the unhappy stranger and her love of the marvellous prompted.

Almost four years had passed since this separation when one evening, as Madame La Luc and her niece were working together in the living room, a kind woman from the neighborhood asked to come in. She came to request some medicine and advice from Madame La Luc. “There’s been a terrible accident at our house, Madame,” she said; “I truly feel for the poor young lady.” Madame La Luc asked her to explain further, and the woman went on to say that her brother Peter, whom she hadn’t seen in years, had arrived and brought a young woman to her cottage, who she genuinely believed was dying. She described her illness and shared the details of the sad story Peter had told her, not hesitating to embellish what her compassion for the unfortunate stranger and her love for the extraordinary inspired.

The account appeared a very extraordinary one to Madame; but pity for the forlorn condition of the young sufferer induced her to inquire further into the affair. Do let me go to her, Madame, said Clara, who had been listening with ready compassion to the poor woman's narrative: Do suffer me to go—she must want comforts, and I wish much to see how she is. Madame asked some further questions concerning her disorder, and then, taking off her spectacles, she rose from her chair, and said she would go herself. Clara desired to accompany her. They put on their hats and followed the good woman to the cottage, where, in a very small close room, on a miserable bed, lay Adeline, pale, emaciated, and unconscious of all around her. Madame turned to the woman, and asked how long she had been in this way, while Clara went up to the bed, and taking the almost lifeless hand that lay on the quilt, looked anxiously in her face. She observes nothing, said she, poor creature! I wish she was at the chateau, she would be better accommodated, and I could nurse her there. The woman told Madame La Luc that the young lady had lain in that state for several hours. Madame examined her pulse, and shook her head. This room is very close, said she.—Very close indeed, cried Clara eagerly; surely she would be better at the chateau, if she could be moved.

The situation seemed really extraordinary to Madame, but feeling sorry for the poor condition of the young woman pushed her to ask more about what was happening. "Please let me go to her, Madame," said Clara, who had been listening with sympathy to the woman's story. "I really want to go—she must need comfort, and I want to see how she is." Madame asked a few more questions about the woman's illness, then took off her glasses, stood up from her chair, and said she would go herself. Clara wanted to join her. They put on their hats and followed the kind woman to the cottage, where in a very small, stuffy room, on a shabby bed, lay Adeline, pale, thin, and unaware of everything around her. Madame turned to the woman and asked how long Adeline had been in this condition, while Clara approached the bed, took the almost lifeless hand resting on the quilt, and looked worriedly at her face. "She doesn't notice anything," Clara said, "poor thing! I wish she were at the chateau; she would be better taken care of there, and I could nurse her." The woman told Madame La Luc that the young lady had been in that state for several hours. Madame checked her pulse and shook her head. "This room is very stuffy," she said. "It is indeed stuffy," Clara exclaimed eagerly; "I'm sure she would be better at the chateau if she could be moved."

We will see about that, said her aunt. In the mean time let me speak to Peter; it is some years since I saw him. She went to the outer room, and the woman ran out of the cottage to look for him. When she was gone, This is a miserable habitation for the poor stranger, said Clara; she will never be well here: do, Madame, let her be carried to our house; I am sure my father would wish it. Besides, there is something in her features, even inanimate as they now are, that prejudices me in her favour.

"We'll see about that," said her aunt. "In the meantime, let me talk to Peter; it’s been years since I last saw him." She went to the outer room, and the woman rushed out of the cottage to find him. When she was gone, Clara said, "This is a terrible place for the poor stranger. She will never get better here. Please, Madame, let’s take her to our house; I’m sure my father would want that. Besides, there’s something about her features, even though they look lifeless right now, that makes me feel sympathetic toward her."

Shall I never persuade you to give up that romantic notion of judging people by their faces? said her aunt. What sort of a face she has is of very little consequence—her condition is lamentable, and I am desirous of altering it; but I wish first to ask Peter a few questions concerning her.

“Will I ever be able to convince you to let go of that romantic idea of judging people by their appearances?” said her aunt. “What her face looks like doesn't really matter—her situation is unfortunate, and I want to change that; but first, I’d like to ask Peter a few questions about her.”

Thank you, my dear aunt, said Clara; she will be removed then. Madame La Luc was going to reply; but Peter now entered, and expressing great joy at seeing her again, inquired how Monsieur La Luc and Clara did. Clara immediately welcomed honest Peter to his native place, and he returned her salutation with many expressions of surprise at finding her so much grown. Though I have so often dandled you in my arms, Ma'mselle, I should never have known you again: Young twigs shoot fast, as they say.

“Thank you, my dear aunt,” Clara said; “she will be taken away then.” Madame La Luc was about to respond, but Peter came in, expressing great joy at seeing her again and asked how Monsieur La Luc and Clara were. Clara immediately welcomed honest Peter back to his hometown, and he greeted her with many exclamations of surprise at how much she had “grown.” “Even though I’ve held you in my arms so many times, Mademoiselle, I would never have recognized you: Young twigs grow quickly, as they say.”

Madame La Luc now inquired into the particulars of Adeline's story; and heard as much as Peter knew of it, being only that his late master found her in a very distressed situation, and that he had himself brought her from the abbey to save her from a French Marquis. The simplicity of Peter's manner would not suffer her to question his veracity, though some of the circumstances he related excited all her surprise and awakened all her pity. Tears frequently stood in Clara's eyes during the course of his narrative; and when he concluded, she said, Dear Madame, I am sure when my father learns the history of this unhappy young woman he will not refuse to be a parent to her, and I will be her sister.

Madame La Luc now asked for the details of Adeline's story and heard everything that Peter knew about it. He only mentioned that his late master found her in a terrible situation and that he brought her from the abbey to save her from a French Marquis. Peter's straightforward manner made it hard for her to doubt his honesty, although some of the things he shared surprised her and stirred her compassion. Clara often had tears in her eyes while he spoke, and when he finished, she said, “Dear Madame, I’m sure that when my father hears the story of this unfortunate young woman, he won’t hesitate to take her in as his own, and I will be her sister.”

She deserves it all, said Peter, for she is very good indeed. He then proceeded in a strain of praise which was very unusual with him.—I will go home and consult with my brother about her, said Madame La Luc, rising: she certainly ought to be removed to a more airy room. The chateau is so near, that I think she may be carried thither without much risk.

She deserves it all, Peter said, because she's really great. He then went on to praise her in a way that was quite unusual for him. “I’ll go home and talk to my brother about her,” Madame La Luc said as she stood up. “She definitely needs to be moved to a room with better air. The chateau is so close that I think we can take her there without much risk.”

Heaven bless you! Madam, cried Peter, rubbing his hands, for your goodness to my poor young lady.

Heaven bless you! Madam, Peter exclaimed, rubbing his hands, for your kindness to my poor young lady.

La Luc had just returned from his evening walk when they reached the chateau. Madame told him where she had been, and related the history of Adeline and her present condition.—By all means have her removed hither, said La Luc, whose eyes bore testimony to the tenderness of his heart: she can be better attended to here than in Susan's cottage.

La Luc had just come back from his evening walk when they got to the chateau. Madame explained where she had been and shared the story of Adeline and her current situation. "Definitely bring her here," said La Luc, his eyes reflecting the kindness in his heart. "She'll receive better care here than in Susan's cottage."

I knew you would say so, my dear father, said Clara: I will go and order the green bed to be prepared for her.

I knew you would say that, my dear father, Clara said: I will go and have the green bed set up for her.

Be patient, niece, said Madame La Luc; there is no occasion for such haste: some things are to be considered first; but you are young and romantic.—La Luc smiled.—The evening is now closed, resumed Madame; it will therefore be dangerous to remove her before morning. Early to-morrow a room shall be got ready, and she shall be brought here; in the mean time I will go and make up a medicine which I hope may be of service to her.—Clara reluctantly assented to this delay, and Madame La Luc retired to her closet.

"Be patient, my niece," said Madame La Luc. "There’s no need to rush. We should think things through first; but you’re young and romantic." La Luc smiled. "It’s now evening," Madame continued, "so it would be risky to move her before morning. Tomorrow, we’ll prepare a room for her, and she’ll be brought here. In the meantime, I’ll go prepare a medicine that I hope will help her." Clara reluctantly agreed to the delay, and Madame La Luc went to her room.

On the following morning Adeline, wrapped in blankets and sheltered as much as possible from the air, was brought to the chateau, where the good La Luc desired she might have every attention paid her, and where Clara watched over her with unceasing anxiety and tenderness. She remained in a state of torpor during the greater part of the day, but towards evening she breathed more freely; and Clara, who still watched by her bed, had at length the pleasure of perceiving that her senses were restored. It was at this moment that she found herself in the situation from which we have digressed to give this account of the venerable La Luc and his family. The reader will find that his virtues and his friendship to Adeline deserved this notice.

On the next morning, Adeline, wrapped in blankets and shielded as much as possible from the air, was taken to the chateau, where the kind La Luc wanted to ensure she received all the care she needed, and where Clara kept a constant watch over her with worry and affection. She remained mostly in a daze for most of the day, but by evening, she began to breathe more easily; and Clara, still by her bedside, finally felt the joy of noticing that her senses were coming back. It was at this moment that she found herself in the situation from which we have strayed to share this account of the esteemed La Luc and his family. The reader will see that his qualities and his friendship with Adeline deserve this acknowledgment.







CHAPTER XVII

Still Fancy, unkind to herself,
Awakens to grief the softened mind.
And points the injured friend.
COLLINS.

Adeline, assisted by a fine constitution, and the kind attentions of her new friends, was in a little more than a week so much recovered as to leave her chamber. She was introduced to La Luc, whom she met with tears of gratitude, and thanked for his goodness in a manner so warm, yet so artless, as interested him still more in her favour. During the progress of her recovery, the sweetness of her behaviour had entirely won the heart of Clara, and greatly interested that of her aunt, whose reports of Adeline, together with the praises bestowed by Clara, had excited both esteem and curiosity in the breast of La Luc; and he now met her with an expression of benignity which spoke peace and comfort to her heart. She had acquainted Madame La Luc with such particulars of her story as Peter, either through ignorance or inattention, had not communicated, suppressing only, through a false delicacy perhaps, an acknowledgment of her attachment to Theodore. These circumstances were repeated to La Luc, who, ever sensible to the sufferings of others, was particularly interested by the singular misfortunes of Adeline.

Adeline, with the help of her strong health and the kind support of her new friends, had recovered enough in just over a week to leave her room. She met La Luc, where she expressed her gratitude with tears and thanked him for his kindness in a way that was so heartfelt yet so genuine that it endeared her to him even more. Throughout her recovery, her sweet nature completely captured Clara’s heart and piqued her aunt's interest, whose updates about Adeline, along with Clara’s praise, sparked both admiration and curiosity in La Luc. When they finally met, La Luc greeted her with a warm expression that brought her comfort and peace. She had shared certain details of her story with Madame La Luc that Peter had either ignored or overlooked, holding back only, perhaps out of misplaced modesty, any mention of her feelings for Theodore. These details were later shared with La Luc, who, always empathetic to the pain of others, felt particularly moved by Adeline's unusual hardships.

Near a fortnight had elapsed since her removal to the chateau, when one morning La Luc desired to speak with her alone. She followed him into his study, and then in a manner the most delicate he told her, that as he found she was so unfortunate in her father, he desired she would henceforth consider him as her parent, and his house as her home. You and Clara shall be equally my daughters, continued he; I am rich in having such children. The strong emotions of surprise and gratitude for some time kept Adeline silent. Do not thank me, said La Luc; I know all you would say, and I know also that I am but doing my duty: I thank God that my duty and my pleasures are generally in unison. Adeline wiped away the tears which his goodness had excited, and was going to speak; but La Luc pressed her hand, and turning away to conceal his emotion, walked out of the room.

It was almost two weeks since she had moved to the chateau when one morning, La Luc asked to speak with her privately. She followed him into his study, and in the gentlest way, he told her that since her father was such a disappointment, he wanted her to think of him as her father and his house as her home. "You and Clara will both be like daughters to me," he continued; "I'm fortunate to have such children." The strong feelings of surprise and gratitude left Adeline speechless for a moment. "Don’t thank me," La Luc said; "I know what you want to say, and I also know that I’m only doing my duty. I thank God that my duty and my happiness usually go hand in hand." Adeline wiped away the tears his kindness had brought forth and was about to speak; however, La Luc squeezed her hand and, turning away to hide his own emotions, walked out of the room.

Adeline was now considered as a part of the family; and in the parental kindness of La Luc, the sisterly affection of Clara, and the steady and uniform regard of Madame, she would have been happy as she was thankful, had not unceasing anxiety for the fate of Theodore, of whom in this solitude she was less likely than ever to hear, corroded her heart, and embittered every moment of reflection. Even when sleep obliterated for awhile the memory of the past, his image frequently arose to her fancy, accompanied by all the exaggerations of terror. She saw him in chains, and struggling in the grasp of ruffians, or saw him led, amidst the dreadful preparations for execution, into the field: she saw the agony of his look, and heard him repeat her name in frantic accents, till the horrors of the scene overcame her and she awoke.

Adeline was now seen as part of the family; and with the parental kindness of La Luc, the sisterly love of Clara, and the constant and caring affection of Madame, she could have been as happy as she was grateful, if it weren't for the constant worry about Theodore, from whom she was less likely than ever to hear in this solitude. This anxiety weighed on her heart and soured every moment of her thoughts. Even when sleep momentarily erased the memories of the past, his image often came to her mind, filled with all sorts of frightening exaggerations. She imagined him in chains, struggling against captors, or being led into the execution field amid terrifying preparations. She could see the agony in his expression and hear him calling her name in desperate tones until the horrors of the scene overwhelmed her, causing her to wake up.

A similarity of taste and character attached her to Clara; yet the misery that preyed upon her heart was of a nature too delicate to be spoken of, and she never mentioned Theodore even to her friend. Her illness had yet left her weak and languid, and the perpetual anxiety of her mind contributed to prolong this state. She endeavoured by strong and almost continual efforts to abstract her thoughts from their mournful subject, and was often successful. La Luc had an excellent library, and the instruction it offered at once gratified her love of knowledge, and withdrew her mind from painful recollections. His conversation too afforded her another refuge from misery.

A similarity in taste and personality connected her to Clara; however, the sadness weighing on her heart was too personal to share, and she never brought up Theodore even with her friend. Her illness had left her feeling weak and drained, and her constant worry only made this worse. She worked hard, almost constantly, to distract herself from her sorrowful thoughts, and often succeeded. La Luc had a great library, and the knowledge it offered satisfied her thirst for learning while helping her escape painful memories. His conversations also provided her with another way to find relief from her unhappiness.

But her chief amusement was to wander among the sublime scenery of the adjacent country, sometimes with Clara, though often with no other companion than a book. There were indeed times when the conversation of her friend imposed a painful restraint, and, when, given up to reflection, she would ramble alone through scenes whose solitary grandeur assisted and soothed the melancholy of her heart. Here she would retrace all the conduct of her beloved Theodore, and endeavour to recollect his exact countenance, his air and manner. Now she would weep at the remembrance, and then, suddenly considering that he had perhaps already suffered an ignominious death for her sake, even in consequence of the very action which had proved his love, a dreadful despair would seize her, and, arresting her tears, would threaten to bear down every barrier that fortitude and reason could oppose.

But her main enjoyment was wandering through the beautiful landscapes of the nearby countryside, sometimes with Clara, but often alone with just a book. There were indeed moments when her friend's conversation felt like a painful burden, and when lost in thought, she would stroll through places whose solitary grandeur helped to ease her sadness. Here, she would reflect on everything her beloved Theodore had done, trying to remember his exact face, his demeanor, and his mannerisms. At times, she would cry at the memories, and then, suddenly realizing that he might already have faced a disgraceful death because of her, due to the very action that showed his love, a terrible despair would overwhelm her, stopping her tears and threatening to break down every wall that her strength and reason had built.

Fearing longer to trust her own thoughts, she would hurry home, and by a desperate effort would try to lose, in the conversation of La Luc, the remembrance of the past. Her melancholy, when he observed it, La Luc attributed to a sense of the cruel treatment she had received from her father; a circumstance which, by exciting his compassion, endeared her more strongly to his heart; while that love of rational conversation, which in her calmer hours so frequently appeared, opened to him a new source of amusement in the cultivation of a mind eager for knowledge, and susceptible of all the energies of genius. She found a melancholy pleasure in listening to the soft tones of Clara's lute, and would often soothe her mind by attempting to repeat the airs she heard.

Afraid to trust her own thoughts any longer, she would rush home and, in a desperate effort, try to forget the past in La Luc's conversation. When La Luc noticed her sadness, he thought it was due to the cruel treatment she had suffered from her father. This realization, stirring his compassion, made her even more dear to him. Meanwhile, her love for meaningful conversation, which often emerged during her calmer moments, became a new source of enjoyment for him as he nurtured a mind eager for knowledge and full of creative potential. She found a bittersweet pleasure in listening to the gentle sounds of Clara's lute and frequently calmed her mind by trying to replicate the melodies she heard.

The gentleness of her manners, partaking so much of that pensive character which marked La Luc's, was soothing to his heart, and tinctured his behaviour with a degree of tenderness that imparted comfort to her, and gradually won her entire confidence and affection. She saw with extreme concern the declining state of his health, and united her efforts with those of the family to amuse and revive him.

The gentleness of her manners, which shared a thoughtful quality similar to La Luc's, was calming to him and added a touch of tenderness to his behavior that brought her comfort and slowly earned her complete trust and affection. She was very worried about how his health was deteriorating and joined her efforts with the family’s to lift his spirits and help him recover.

The pleasing society of which she partook, and the quietness of the country, at length restored her mind to a state of tolerable composure. She was now acquainted with all the wild walks of the neighbouring mountains; and never tired of viewing their astonishing scenery, she often indulged herself in traversing alone their unfrequented paths, where now and then a peasant from a neighbouring village was all that interrupted the profound solitude. She generally took with her a book, that if she perceived her thought inclined to fix on the one object of her grief, she might force them to a subject less dangerous to her peace. She had become a tolerable proficient in English while at the convent where she received her education, and the instruction of La Luc, who was well acquainted with the language, now served to perfect her. He was partial to the English; he admired their character, and the constitution of their laws, and his library contained a collection of their best authors, particularly of their philosophers and poets. Adeline found that no species of writing had power so effectually to withdraw her mind from the contemplation of its own misery as the higher kinds of poetry, and in these her taste soon taught her to distinguish the superiority of the English from that of the French. The genius of the language, more perhaps than the genius of the people, if indeed the distinction may be allowed, occasioned this.

The pleasant company she enjoyed and the tranquility of the countryside eventually helped her regain a sense of calm. She now knew all the scenic trails in the nearby mountains, and never grew tired of admiring their breathtaking views. Often, she wandered alone along the less-traveled paths, where sometimes a peasant from a nearby village was the only interruption in the deep solitude. She usually brought a book with her, so that if she felt her thoughts drifting back to her sorrow, she could redirect them to a topic less harmful to her peace of mind. She had become fairly skilled in English during her education at the convent, and La Luc, who was well-versed in the language, helped her perfect it. He was fond of the English; he admired their character and the structure of their laws, and his library was filled with works by their finest writers, especially philosophers and poets. Adeline discovered that no form of writing could divert her mind from focusing on her grief as effectively as high-quality poetry, and she quickly learned to appreciate the superiority of English poetry over French. This was likely due more to the brilliance of the language than that of the people, if such a distinction can be made.

She frequently took a volume of Shakespeare or of Milton, and, having gained some wild eminence, would seat herself beneath the pines, whose low murmurs soothed her heart, and conspired with the visions of the poet to lull her to forgetfulness of grief.

She often grabbed a book by Shakespeare or Milton and, after reaching some high spot, would sit under the pines, whose gentle whispers calmed her heart and teamed up with the poet's visions to help her forget her sorrow.

One evening, when Clara was engaged at home, Adeline wandered alone to a favourite spot among the rocks that bordered the lake. It was an eminence which commanded an entire view of the lake, and of the stupendous mountains that environed it. A few ragged thorns grew from the precipice beneath, which descended perpendicularly to the water's edge; and above rose a thick wood of larch, pine, and fir, intermingled with some chesnut and mountain ash. The evening was fine, and the air so still that it scarcely waved the light leaves of the trees around, or rippled the broad expanse of the waters below. Adeline gazed on the scene with a kind of still rapture, and watched the sun sinking amid a crimson glow, which tinted the bosom of the lake and the snowy heads of the distant Alps. The delight which the scenery inspired:

One evening, when Clara was busy at home, Adeline strolled alone to her favorite spot among the rocks by the lake. It was a raised area that offered a full view of the lake and the massive mountains surrounding it. A few rough thorns grew from the steep drop below, which went straight down to the water's edge; and above was a dense forest of larch, pine, and fir, mixed with some chestnut and mountain ash trees. The evening was beautiful, and the air was so still that it barely stirred the light leaves of the trees or disturbed the calm surface of the water below. Adeline took in the landscape with a kind of quiet awe and watched the sun set in a crimson glow that colored the lake's surface and the snowy peaks of the distant Alps. The beauty of the scene filled her with delight:

Calming each burst of passion into tranquility,
All except the swellings of the softened heart,
That awakens, without disturbing, the calm mind;

was now heightened by the tones of a French horn, and, looking on the lake, she perceived at some distance a pleasure-boat. As it was a spectacle rather uncommon in this solitude, she concluded the boat contained a party of foreigners come to view the wonderful scenery of the country, or perhaps of Genevois, who choose to amuse themselves on a lake as grand, though much less extensive, than their own; and the latter conjecture was probably just.

was now heightened by the sounds of a French horn, and, looking at the lake, she noticed a pleasure boat in the distance. Since this was a rather unusual sight in this solitude, she figured the boat held a group of foreigners there to take in the beautiful scenery of the country, or maybe locals from Geneva who decided to have some fun on a lake that was impressive, though much smaller than their own; and the latter assumption was likely correct.

As she listened to the mellow and enchanting tones of the horn, which gradually sunk away in distance, the scene appeared more lovely than before; and finding it impossible to forbear attempting to paint in language what was so beautiful in reality, she composed the following:

As she listened to the smooth and captivating sounds of the horn, which gradually faded into the distance, the scene looked even more beautiful than before; and unable to resist the urge to describe in words what was so stunning in real life, she wrote the following:

Verses
How smooth the lake stretches its wide body!
Where smiles softly light up the summer sky:
How enormous the rocks that lie on its surface!
How wild the scenes along its winding shores are!
Now down the western slope, the sun slowly sinks,
And paints the tufted woods with a yellow glow;
While here the mountain shadows, wide and gray,
Sweep over the clear surface of the waters.
Notice how his brilliance shines with a hint of light.
Those shattered battlements! that on the edge
From that bold cliff, it came into view.
From over the woods that spread darkly below.
In the gentle glow of reflected light,
The rugged rock, the woods that top its steep slope,
The lit battlement and darker tower,
On the gentle wave in delicate, peaceful slumber.
But, look! the sun remembers his intense light,
And cold and dim, the watery images disappear;
While over that cliff, whose sharp edges are eroding,
A gentle evening puts on her light purple veil!
How lovely is that sad sound of the horn!
That drifts along the slowly receding wave,
And up the distant mountains carried,
Returns a dying message from Echo's cave!
Hello! Mysterious figures of calm, expressive Eve!
Your thoughtful charms are captivating my heart,
Let all the beautifully tuned emotions thrive,
And let all her most beautiful dreams be shared.

La Luc observing how much Adeline was charmed with the features of the country, and desirous of amusing her melancholy, which, notwithstanding her efforts, was often too apparent, wished to show her other scenes than those to which her walks were circumscribed. He proposed a party on horseback to take a nearer view of the Glaciers; to attempt their ascent was a difficulty and fatigue to which neither La Luc, in his present state of health, nor Adeline were equal. She had not been accustomed to ride single, and the mountainous road they were to pass made the experiment rather dangerous; but she concealed her fears, and they were not sufficient to make her wish to forego an enjoyment such as was now offered her.

La Luc noticed how captivated Adeline was by the beauty of the countryside, and wanting to lift her spirits, which were often too evident despite her efforts, he wanted to show her other sights beyond the limited paths she usually walked. He suggested a horseback trip to get a closer look at the Glaciers; climbing them was a challenge neither La Luc, given his current health, nor Adeline could handle. She wasn't used to riding alone, and the rocky path they would have to take made the idea a bit risky; however, she hid her worries, and they weren't enough to make her pass up the enjoyment that was now being offered to her.

The following day was fixed for this excursion. La Luc and his party arose at an early hour, and having taken a slight breakfast, they set out towards the Glacier of Montanvert, which lay at a few leagues distance. Peter carried a small basket of provisions; and it was their plan to dine on some pleasant spot in the open air.

The next day was set for this trip. La Luc and his group got up early, had a light breakfast, and headed out towards the Glacier of Montanvert, which was a few leagues away. Peter carried a small basket of supplies, and they planned to have lunch in a nice spot outdoors.

It is unnecessary to describe the high enthusiasm of Adeline, the more complacent pleasure of La Luc, and the transports of Clara, as the scenes of this romantic country shifted to their eyes. Now frowning in dark and gloomy grandeur, it exhibited only tremendous rocks and cataracts rolling from the heights into some deep and narrow valley, along which their united waters roared and foamed, and burst away to regions inaccessible to mortal foot: and now the scene arose less fiercely wild:

It isn’t necessary to describe Adeline’s excitement, La Luc’s smug satisfaction, and Clara’s joy as the landscapes of this romantic country unfolded before them. At one moment, the scenery was dark and dramatically grand, showcasing only massive rocks and waterfalls crashing down into a deep, narrow valley, where their combined waters roared and foamed, rushing away to places no human could reach. Then, the scene became less harsh and wild:

The grandeur of forests and the decoration of fields

were intermingled with the ruder features of nature; and while the snow froze on the summit of the mountain, the vine blushed at its foot.

were mixed with the rougher aspects of nature; and while the snow froze at the top of the mountain, the vine blushed at its base.

Engaged in interesting conversation, and by the admiration which the country excited, they travelled on till noon, when they looked round for a pleasant spot where they might rest and take refreshment. At some little distance they perceived the ruins of a fabric which had once been a castle; it stood almost on a point of rock that overhung a deep valley; and its broken turrets rising from among the woods that embosomed it, heightened the picturesque beauty of the object.

Engrossed in an interesting conversation and captivated by the beauty of the countryside, they traveled until noon, when they searched for a nice spot to relax and grab a bite to eat. A short distance away, they noticed the ruins of what had once been a castle; it was perched on a rocky outcrop overlooking a deep valley, and its crumbling turrets rising amidst the surrounding woods added to the picturesque charm of the scene.

The edifice invited curiosity, and the shades repose—La Luc and his party advanced.

The building piqued their curiosity, and the shadows rested—La Luc and his group moved forward.

Deeply struck with awe, they noted the fallen dome,
Where beauty once flourished, the warrior stood out:
They saw the castle's crumbling towers.
The loose stone wobbling over the shaking shadow.

They seated themselves on the grass under the shade of some high trees near the ruins. An opening in the woods afforded a view of the distant Alps—the deep silence of solitude reigned. For some time they were lost in meditation. Adeline felt a sweet complacency, such as she had long been a stranger to. Looking at La Luc, she perceived a tear stealing down his cheek, while the elevation of his mind was strongly expressed on his countenance. He turned on Clara his eyes, which were now filled with tenderness, and made an effort to recover himself.

They sat down on the grass under the shade of some tall trees near the ruins. A gap in the woods gave a view of the distant Alps—an intense silence of solitude filled the air. For a while, they were lost in thought. Adeline felt a gentle sense of satisfaction that she hadn't experienced in a long time. Looking at La Luc, she noticed a tear rolling down his cheek, while the depth of his emotions was clearly reflected in his face. He turned his gaze to Clara, his eyes now filled with tenderness, and made an effort to compose himself.

The stillness and total seclusion of this scene, said Adeline, those stupendous mountains, the gloomy grandeur of these woods, together with that monument of faded glory on which the hand of time is so emphatically impressed, diffuse a sacred enthusiasm over the mind, and awaken sensations truly sublime.

The calm and complete isolation of this place, Adeline said, those enormous mountains, the dark majesty of these woods, along with that reminder of past glory that time has so strongly marked, create a sacred excitement in the mind and bring forth feelings that are genuinely uplifting.

La Luc was going to speak; but Peter coming forward, desired to know whether he had not better open the wallet, as he fancied his honour and the young ladies must be main hungry, jogging on so far up hill and down before dinner. They acknowledged the truth of honest Peter's suspicion, and accepted his hint.

La Luc was about to speak; but Peter stepped forward and asked whether he should open the wallet, as he thought his honor and the young ladies must be really hungry after traveling so far uphill and downhill before dinner. They agreed with Peter's honest suspicion and took his suggestion.

Refreshments were spread on the grass; and having seated themselves under the canopy of waving woods, surrounded by the sweets of wild flowers, they inhaled the pure breeze of the Alps, which might be called spirit of air, and partook of a repast which these circumstances rendered delicious.

Refreshments were laid out on the grass, and after settling down beneath the swaying trees, surrounded by the fragrance of wildflowers, they breathed in the fresh air of the Alps, which could be described as a refreshing spirit of air, and enjoyed a meal that was made delightful by the setting.

When they arose to depart,—I am unwilling, said Clara, to quit this charming spot. How delightful would it be to pass one's life beneath these shades with the friends who are dear to one!—La Luc smiled at the romantic simplicity of the idea: but Adeline sighed deeply to the image of felicity and of Theodore which it recalled, and turned away to conceal her tears.

When they got up to leave, Clara said, "I really don't want to leave this lovely place. How wonderful it would be to spend my life here under these trees with friends who are so dear to me!" La Luc smiled at the romantic simplicity of this idea, but Adeline let out a deep sigh at the thought of happiness and Theodore it reminded her of, and turned away to hide her tears.

They now mounted their horses, and soon after arrived at the foot of Montanvert. The emotions of Adeline, as she contemplated in various points of view the astonishing objects around her, surpassed all expression; and the feelings of the whole party were too strong to admit of conversation. The profound stillness which reigned in these regions of solitude inspired awe, and heightened the sublimity of the scenery to an exquisite degree.

They got on their horses and soon reached the base of Montanvert. Adeline's emotions, as she viewed the amazing sights around her from different angles, were beyond words; the feelings of the entire group were too intense for conversation. The deep silence in this secluded area evoked a sense of awe and made the beauty of the scenery even more striking.

It seems, said Adeline, as if we were walking over the ruins of the world, and were the only persons who had survived the wreck. I can scarcely persuade myself that we are not left alone on the globe.

"It feels," Adeline said, "like we're walking over the ruins of the world, and we're the only ones who survived the disaster. I can hardly convince myself that we aren't completely alone on this planet."

The view of these objects, said La Luc, lift the soul to their Great Author, and we contemplate with a feeling almost too vast for humanity—the sublimity of his nature in the grandeur of his works.—La Luc raised his eyes, filled with tears, to heaven, and was for some moments lost in silent adoration.

The sight of these things, La Luc said, lifts the soul to their Great Creator, and we reflect on a feeling that's almost too big for us to handle—the greatness of his essence in the magnificence of his creations. La Luc looked up, tears in his eyes, towards the sky, and spent a few moments in quiet worship.

They quitted these scenes with extreme reluctance; but the hour of the day, and the appearance of the clouds, which seemed gathering for a storm, made them hasten their departure. Could she have been sheltered from its fury, Adeline almost wished to have witnessed the tremendous effect of a thunder storm in these regions.

They left these sights with great reluctance; however, the time of day and the look of the clouds, which seemed to be gathering for a storm, made them rush their departure. If she could have been protected from its wrath, Adeline almost wished to see the amazing impact of a thunderstorm in this area.

They returned to Leloncourt by a different route, and the shade of the overhanging precipices was deepened by the gloom of the atmosphere. It was evening when they came within view of the lake, which the travelers rejoiced to see, for the storm so long threatened was now fast approaching; the thunder murmured among the Alps; and the dark vapours that rolled heavily along their sides heightened their dreadful sublimity. La Luc would have quickened his pace, but the road winding down the steep side of a mountain made caution necessary. The darkening air and the lightnings that now flashed along the horizon terrified Clara, but she withheld the expression of her fear in consideration of her father. A peal of thunder, which seemed to shake the earth to its foundations, and was reverberated in tremendous echoes from the cliffs, burst over their heads. Clara's horse took fright at the sound, and setting off, hurried her with amazing velocity down the mountain towards the lake, which washed its foot. The agony of La Luc, who viewed her progress in the horrible expectation of seeing her dashed down the precipice that bordered the road, is not to be described.

They took a different route back to Leloncourt, and the shade from the overhanging cliffs was intensified by the gloom in the air. It was evening when they finally spotted the lake, which the travelers were relieved to see, as the long-anticipated storm was now approaching quickly; thunder rumbled among the Alps, and the dark clouds rolling heavily along the mountains increased their terrifying beauty. La Luc would have hurried, but the winding road down the steep mountainside required caution. The darkening sky and the flashes of lightning along the horizon scared Clara, but she held back her fear for her father’s sake. A thunderclap, which felt like it shook the earth beneath them, echoed dramatically off the cliffs above them. Clara's horse startled at the sound and took off, rushing her down the mountain towards the lake below at an incredible speed. The anguish La Luc felt as he watched her speed away, horrified at the thought of her falling off the cliff beside the path, is beyond description.

Clara kept her seat, but terror had almost deprived her of sense. Her efforts to preserve herself were mechanical, for she scarcely knew what she did. The horse, however, carried her safely almost to the foot of the mountain, but was making towards the lake, when a gentleman who travelled along the road caught the bridle as the animal endeavoured to pass. The sudden stopping of the horse threw Clara to the ground, and, impatient of restraint, the animal burst from the hand of the stranger, and plunged into the lake. The violence of the fall deprived her of recollection; but while the stranger endeavoured to support her, his servant ran to fetch water.

Clara stayed in her seat, but fear had nearly taken away her ability to think. Her attempts to hold on were automatic, as she barely knew what she was doing. The horse, however, brought her safely almost to the bottom of the mountain, but was heading towards the lake when a man walking along the road grabbed the reins as the animal tried to move past. The horse's sudden stop threw Clara to the ground, and, unable to be restrained, it broke free from the stranger's grip and jumped into the lake. The impact of the fall caused her to lose consciousness, but while the stranger tried to help her, his servant hurried to get water.

She soon recovered, and unclosing her eyes found herself in the arms of a chevalier, who appeared to support her with difficulty. The compassion expressed in his countenance while he inquired how she did, revived her spirits; and she was endeavouring to thank him for his kindness, when La Luc and Adeline came up. The terror impressed on her father's features was perceived by Clara; languid as she was, she tried to raise herself, and said with a faint smile, which betrayed instead of disguising her sufferings, Dear Sir, I am not hurt. Her pale countenance and the blood that trickled down her cheek contradicted her words. But La Luc, to whom terror had suggested the utmost possible evil, now rejoiced to hear her speak; he recalled some presence of mind, and while Adeline applied her salts, he chafed her temples.

She quickly recovered and, opening her eyes, found herself in the arms of a knight who seemed to be supporting her with difficulty. The compassion on his face as he asked how she was doing lifted her spirits; she was trying to thank him for his kindness when La Luc and Adeline arrived. Clara noticed the fear etched on her father's face; despite feeling weak, she attempted to sit up and said with a faint smile that revealed rather than hid her pain, "Dear Sir, I'm not hurt." Her pale face and the blood dripping down her cheek contradicted her words. But La Luc, who had feared the worst, was relieved to hear her speak; he regained some composure, and while Adeline handed her salts, he rubbed her temples.

When she revived, she told him how much she was obliged to the stranger. La Luc endeavoured to express his gratitude; but the former interrupting him, begged he might be spared the pain of receiving thanks for having followed only an impulse of common humanity.

When she came to, she told him how grateful she was to the stranger. La Luc tried to express his thanks, but she interrupted him and asked to be spared the discomfort of receiving thanks for just following a basic instinct of humanity.

They were now not far from Leloncourt; but the evening was almost shut in, and the thunder murmured deeply among the hills. La Luc was distressed how to convey Clara home.

They were now close to Leloncourt, but evening was nearly upon them, and the thunder rumbled low among the hills. La Luc was worried about how to get Clara home.

In endeavouring to raise her from the ground, the stranger betrayed such evident symptoms of pain, that La Luc inquired concerning it. The sudden jerk which the horse had given the arm of the chevalier, in escaping from his hold, had violently sprained his shoulder, and rendered his arm almost useless. The pain was exquisite; and La Luc, whose fears for his daughter were now subsiding, was shocked at the circumstance, and pressed the stranger to accompany him to the village, where relief might be obtained. He accepted the invitation; and Clara, being at length placed on a horse led by her father, was conducted to the chateau.

In trying to lift her off the ground, the stranger showed clear signs of pain, which made La Luc ask about it. The sudden jerk from the horse pulling away had severely sprained the chevalier's shoulder, making his arm nearly useless. The pain was intense; and La Luc, whose worries about his daughter were starting to ease, felt sympathy for the stranger and urged him to come with him to the village, where they could find help. He accepted the invitation, and Clara, finally placed on a horse being led by her father, was taken to the chateau.

When Madame, who had been looking out for La Luc some time, perceived the cavalcade approaching, she was alarmed, and her apprehensions were confirmed when she saw the situation of her niece. Clara was carried into the house, and La Luc would have sent for a surgeon, but there was none within several leagues of the village, neither were there any of the physical profession within the same distance. Clara was assisted to her chamber by Adeline, and Madame La Luc undertook to examine the wounds. The result restored peace to the family, for though she was much bruised, she had escaped material injury; a slight contusion on the forehead had occasioned the bloodshed which at first alarmed La Luc. Madame undertook to restore her niece in a few days with the assistance of a balsam composed by herself, on the virtues of which she descanted with great eloquence, till La Luc interrupted her by reminding her of the condition of her patient.

When Madame, who had been waiting for La Luc for a while, saw the group coming, she got worried, and her fears were confirmed when she noticed her niece's state. Clara was brought into the house, and La Luc would have called for a doctor, but there wasn’t one for many miles, and there were no medical professionals nearby either. Adeline helped Clara to her room, and Madame La Luc took it upon herself to examine the wounds. The outcome brought relief to the family because, although she was seriously bruised, she had escaped major injury; a small bruise on her forehead had caused the bleeding that had initially shocked La Luc. Madame promised to help her niece recover in a few days with a balm she had made herself, about which she spoke very passionately, until La Luc interrupted her to remind her about the condition of her patient.

Madame having bathed Clara's bruises, and given her a cordial of incomparable efficacy, left her; and Adeline watched in the chamber of her friend till she retired to her own for the night.

Madame had tended to Clara's bruises and given her a highly effective tonic before leaving. Adeline stayed in her friend's room until she went to her own for the night.

La Luc, whose spirits had suffered much perturbation, was now tranquillized by the report his sister made of Clara. He introduced the stranger; and having mentioned the accident he had met with, desired that he might have immediate assistance. Madame hastened to her closet; and it is perhaps difficult to determine whether she felt most concern for the sufferings of her guest, or pleasure at the opportunity thus offered of displaying her medical skill. However this might be, she quitted the room with great alacrity, and very quickly returned with a phial containing her inestimable balsam; and having given the necessary directions for the application of it, she left the stranger to the care of his servant.

La Luc, whose spirits had been quite troubled, felt reassured by the update his sister gave about Clara. He introduced the stranger and, after mentioning the accident he had encountered, requested immediate assistance. Madame quickly went to her closet; it’s hard to say whether she was more concerned about her guest’s suffering or excited about the chance to show off her medical skills. Regardless, she left the room eagerly and returned shortly with a vial of her valuable balm. After giving the necessary instructions for its use, she left the stranger in the care of his servant.

La Luc insisted that the chevalier, M. Verneuil, should not leave the chateau that night, and he very readily submitted to be detained. His manners during the evening were as frank and engaging as the hospitality and gratitude of La Luc were sincere, and they soon entered into interesting conversation. M. Verneuil conversed like a man who had seen much, and thought more; and if he discovered any prejudice in his opinions, it was evidently the prejudice of a mind which, seeing objects through the medium of his own goodness, tinges them with the hue of its predominant quality. La Luc was much pleased, for in his retired situation he had not often an opportunity of receiving the pleasure which results from a communion of intelligent minds. He found that M. Verneuil had travelled. La Luc having asked some questions relative to England, they fell into discourse concerning the national characters of the French and English.

La Luc insisted that the chevalier, M. Verneuil, should not leave the chateau that night, and he readily agreed to stay. His demeanor throughout the evening was as open and charming as La Luc's hospitality and gratitude were genuine, and they quickly engaged in an interesting conversation. M. Verneuil spoke like someone who had experienced a lot and thought deeply; and if he had any biases in his views, they were clearly the biases of a person who, viewing the world through the lens of his own goodness, colors it with the tone of his predominant qualities. La Luc was very pleased, as in his quiet life he didn't often get the chance to enjoy the pleasure that comes from sharing thoughts with intelligent minds. He discovered that M. Verneuil had traveled. After La Luc asked a few questions about England, they began discussing the national characteristics of the French and English.

If it is the privilege of wisdom, said M. Verneuil, to look beyond happiness, I own I had rather be without it. When we observe the English, their laws, writings, and conversations, and at the same time mark their countenances, manners, and the frequency of suicide among them, we are apt to believe that wisdom and happiness are incompatible. If, on the other hand, we turn to their neighbours, the French, and see[1] their wretched policy, their sparkling but sophistical discourse, frivolous occupations, and, withal, their gay animated air, we shall be compelled to acknowledge that happiness and folly too often dwell together.

If it’s the privilege of wisdom, M. Verneuil said, to look beyond happiness, I’d rather not have it. When we observe the English— their laws, writings, and conversations— and also notice their expressions, behaviors, and the high rate of suicide among them, it’s easy to think that wisdom and happiness don’t mix. On the other hand, if we look at their neighbors, the French, and see their miserable politics, their flashy but misleading talk, trivial pursuits, and still their lively and cheerful attitude, we have to admit that happiness and foolishness often go hand in hand.

It is the end of wisdom, said La Luc, to attain happiness, and I can hardly dignify that conduct or course of thinking which tends to misery with the name of wisdom. By this rule, perhaps, the folly, as we term it, of the French deserves, since its effect is happiness, to be called wisdom. That airy thoughtlessness, which alike to contemn reflection and anticipation, produces all the effect of it without reducing its subjects to the mortification of philosophy. But in truth wisdom is an exertion of mind to subdue folly; and as the happiness of the French is less the consequence of mind than of constitution, it deserves not the honours of wisdom.

It is the end of wisdom, said La Luc, to achieve happiness, and I can hardly recognize the behavior or way of thinking that leads to misery as wisdom. By this logic, perhaps the foolishness, as we call it, of the French deserves, since its result is happiness, to be labeled as wisdom. That lighthearted carelessness, which both disregards reflection and future thinking, creates all the effects of it without subjecting its people to the burdens of philosophy. But in reality, wisdom is a mental effort to conquer foolishness; and since the happiness of the French is more about their nature than their mindset, it doesn’t deserve the title of wisdom.

Discoursing on the variety of opinions that are daily formed on the same conduct, La Luc observed how much that which is commonly called opinion is the result of passion and temper.

Discussing the range of opinions that are formed daily about the same behavior, La Luc noted how much what is often called opinion is influenced by emotion and personality.

True, said M. Vernueil, there is a tone of thought, as there is a key note in music, that leads all its weaker affections. Thus, where the powers of judging may be equal, the disposition to judge is different; and the actions of men are but too often arraigned by whim and caprice, by partial vanity, and the humour of the moment.

Sure, said M. Vernueil, there’s a tone of thought, just like a key note in music, that influences all its lesser feelings. So, even when people have the same ability to judge, their willingness to judge varies; and people’s actions are often criticized by whim and fancy, by self-importance, and by the mood of the moment.

Here La Luc took occasion to reprobate the conduct of those writers, who, by showing the dark side only of human nature, and by dwelling on the evils only which are incident to humanity, have sought to degrade man in his own eyes, and to make him discontented with life. What should we say of a painter, continued La Luc, who collected in his piece objects of a black hue only, who presents you with a black man, a black horse, a black dog, &c. &c., and tells you that his is a picture of nature, and that nature is black?—'Tis true, you would reply, the objects you exhibit do exist in nature, but they form a very small part of her works. You say that nature is black, and, to prove it, you have collected on your canvass all the animals of this hue that exist. But you have forgot to paint the green earth, the blue sky, the white man, and objects of all those various hues with which creation abounds, and of which black is a very inconsiderable part.

Here La Luc took the opportunity to criticize the behavior of certain writers who, by only showing the negative aspects of human nature and focusing solely on the problems that come with being human, have tried to make people feel inferior and dissatisfied with life. What would we think of a painter, La Luc continued, who only includes dark-colored objects in his artwork, presenting a black man, a black horse, a black dog, etc., and claims that this is a true depiction of nature and that nature is black?—You would answer, it’s true that the objects you show do exist in nature, but they make up a very small part of what nature has to offer. You say that nature is black, and to prove it, you've painted all the animals of that color that exist. But you’ve forgotten to include the green earth, the blue sky, the white man, and all the other various colors that abound in creation, of which black is only a tiny fraction.

The countenance of M. Verneuil lightened with peculiar animation during the discourse of La Luc.—To think well of his nature, said he, is necessary to the dignity and the happiness of man. There is a decent pride which becomes every mind, and is congenial to virtue. That consciousness of innate dignity, which shows him the glory of his nature, will be his best protection from the meanness of vice. Where this consciousness is wanting, continued M. Verneuil, there can be no sense of moral honour, and consequently none of the higher principles of action. What can be expected of him who says it is his nature to be mean and selfish? Or who can doubt that he who thinks thus, thinks from the experience of his own heart, from the tendency of his own inclinations? Let it always be remembered, that he who would persuade men to be good, ought to show them that they are great.

The expression on M. Verneuil’s face lit up with a unique enthusiasm during La Luc’s speech. “To believe in the goodness of our nature,” he said, “is essential for the dignity and happiness of humanity. There is a healthy pride that suits every mind and aligns with virtue. This awareness of inherent dignity, which reveals the greatness of our nature, will serve as our best defense against the lows of vice. Where this awareness is absent,” M. Verneuil continued, “there can be no sense of moral honor, and thus no higher principles of action. What can you expect from someone who claims it’s in their nature to be petty and selfish? And who can doubt that someone who thinks this way is reflecting on their own experiences and tendencies? Always remember that anyone aiming to inspire goodness in others must first show them their greatness.”

You speak, said La Luc, with the honest enthusiasm of a virtuous mind; and in obeying the impulse of your heart, you utter the truths of philosophy: and, trust me, a bad heart and a truly philosophic head have never yet been united in the same individual. Vicious inclinations not only corrupt the heart, but the understanding, and thus lead to false reasoning. Virtue only is on the side of truth.

You speak, La Luc said, with the genuine enthusiasm of a virtuous mind; and by following your heart, you express the truths of philosophy. Believe me, a bad heart and a truly philosophical mind have never been found in the same person. Corrupt inclinations not only damage the heart, but also the understanding, leading to false reasoning. Only virtue is aligned with truth.

La Luc and his guest, mutually pleased with each other, entered upon the discussion of subjects so interesting to them both, that it was late before they parted for the night.

La Luc and his guest, both happy with each other, started discussing topics that were so engaging for them both that it was late before they said goodnight.



[1]It must be remembered that this was said in the seventeenth century.

[1]It's important to keep in mind that this was said in the seventeenth century.







CHAPTER XVIII

It was a scene that provided a comforting relief.
In memory, with a gentle, thoughtful sadness.
VIRGIL'S TOMB.
Let my place be the breezy hill that borders the down,
All I want is a green grassy field,
With a violet scattered here and there,
And many evenings the sun will shine softly on my grave.
THE PERFORMER.

Repose had so much restored Clara, that when Adeline, anxious to know how she did, went early in the morning to her chamber, she found her already risen, and ready to attend the family at breakfast. Monsieur Verneuil appeared also; but his looks betrayed a want of rest, and indeed he had suffered during the night a degree of anguish from his arm which it was an effort of some resolution to endure in silence. It was now swelled and somewhat inflamed, and this might in some degree be attributed to the effect of Madame La Luc's balsam, the restorative qualities of which for once had failed. The whole family sympathized with his sufferings, and Madame at the request of M. Verneuil, abandoned her balsam, and substituted an emollient fomentation.

Repose had done wonders for Clara, so when Adeline, eager to check on her, went to her room early in the morning, she found Clara already up and ready to join the family for breakfast. Monsieur Verneuil was also there, but his appearance showed that he hadn’t slept well, as he had endured a lot of pain from his arm during the night, which he was trying to bear in silence. It was now swollen and slightly inflamed, and this might partly be due to the effects of Madame La Luc's balsam, which for once hadn’t worked as it should. The whole family felt for his pain, and at M. Verneuil's request, Madame gave up her balsam and switched to a soothing compress.

From an application of this, he in a short time found an abatement of the pain, and returned to the breakfast table with greater composure. The happiness which La Luc felt at seeing his daughter in safety was very apparent; but the warmth of his gratitude towards her preserver he found it difficult to express. Clara spoke the genuine emotions of her heart with artless but modest energy, and testified sincere concern for the sufferings which she had occasioned M. Verneuil.

From this experience, he soon felt a decrease in pain and returned to the breakfast table with more calmness. La Luc's happiness at seeing his daughter safe was obvious; however, he struggled to find the right words to express his deep gratitude to her savior. Clara spoke her true feelings with genuine yet humble passion and showed real concern for the suffering she had caused M. Verneuil.

The pleasure received from the company of his guest, and the consideration of the essential services he had rendered him, co-operated with the natural hospitality of La Luc, and he pressed M. Verneuil to remain some time at the chateau.—I can never repay the services you have done me, said La Luc; yet I seek to increase my obligations to you by requesting you will prolong your visit, and thus allow me an opportunity of cultivating your acquaintance.

The enjoyment he got from having his guest around, along with the appreciation for the important help he had given him, combined with La Luc's natural hospitality, led him to urge M. Verneuil to stay a while at the chateau. "I can never repay the help you've given me," La Luc said, "but I want to increase my debt to you by asking you to extend your visit, which would give me a chance to get to know you better."

M. Verneuil, who at the time he met La Luc was travelling from Geneva to a distant part of Savoy, merely for the purpose of viewing the country, being now delighted with his host and with every thing around him, willingly accepted the invitation. In this circumstance prudence concurred with inclination, for to have pursued his journey on horseback, in his present situation, would have been dangerous, if not impracticable.

M. Verneuil, who was traveling from Geneva to a far-off part of Savoy just to see the sights when he met La Luc, was now so pleased with his host and everything around him that he happily accepted the invitation. In this case, being cautious went hand in hand with his desire, as continuing his journey on horseback in his current situation would have been risky, if not impossible.

The morning was spent in conversation, in which M. Verneuil displayed a mind enriched with taste, enlightened by science, and enlarged by observation. The situation of the chateau and the features of the surrounding scenery charmed him, and in the evening he found himself able to walk with La Luc and explore the beauties of this romantic region. As they passed through the village, the salutations of the peasants, in whom love and respect were equally blended, and their eager inquiries after Clara, bore testimony to the character of La Luc; while his countenance expressed a serene satisfaction, arising from the consciousness of deserving and possessing their love.—I live surrounded by my children, said he, turning to M. Verneuil, who had noticed their eagerness; for such I consider my parishioners. In discharging the duties of my office, I am repaid not only by my own conscience, but by their gratitude. There is a luxury in observing their simple and honest love, which I would not exchange for any thing the world calls blessings.

The morning was spent chatting, during which M. Verneuil showed a mind full of taste, brightened by knowledge, and expanded by observation. He was enchanted by the location of the chateau and the beauty of the surrounding landscape, and in the evening, he was able to stroll with La Luc and explore the wonders of this picturesque area. As they walked through the village, the friendly greetings from the villagers, who mixed love and respect, along with their eager questions about Clara, reflected La Luc's character; meanwhile, his face showed a calm happiness stemming from knowing he deserved and had their love. “I live surrounded by my children,” he said to M. Verneuil, who had noticed their enthusiasm, “for I consider my parishioners my family. In fulfilling my duties, I am rewarded not only by my own conscience but also by their gratitude. There’s a certain joy in witnessing their simple and genuine love that I wouldn’t trade for anything the world calls blessings.”

Yet the world, Sir, would call the pleasures of which you speak romantic, said M. Verneuil; for to be sensible of this pure and exquisite delight requires a heart untainted with the vicious pleasures of society—pleasures that deaden its finest feelings and poison the source of its truest enjoyments.—They pursued their way along the borders of the lake, sometimes under the shade of hanging woods, and sometimes over hillocks of turf, where the scene opened in all its wild magnificence. M. Verneuil often stopped in raptures to observe and point out the singular beauties it exhibited, while La Luc, pleased with the delight his friend expressed, surveyed with more than usual satisfaction the objects which had so often charmed him before. But there was a tender melancholy in the tone of his voice and his countenance, which arose from the recollection of having often traced those scenes, and partaken of the pleasure they inspired, with her who had long since bade them an eternal farewell.

Yet the world, Sir, would call the pleasures you speak of romantic, said M. Verneuil; for to truly appreciate this pure and exquisite delight requires a heart untouched by the corrupt pleasures of society—pleasures that dull its finest feelings and poison the source of its truest joys. They made their way along the edges of the lake, sometimes under the shade of overhanging trees, and sometimes over grassy hills, where the scene unfolded in all its wild beauty. M. Verneuil often paused in awe to observe and point out the unique beauties it displayed, while La Luc, happy with his friend's delight, looked at the familiar sights with more than usual appreciation. But there was a soft sadness in his voice and expression, stemming from the memory of having often explored those scenes and enjoyed their beauty with her who had long ago said goodbye forever.

They presently quitted the lake, and, winding up a steep ascent between the woods, came after a hour's walk to a green summit, which appeared, among the savage rocks that environed it, like the blossom on the thorn. It was a spot formed for solitary delight, inspiring that soothing tenderness so dear to the feeling mind, and which calls back to memory the images of past regret, softened by distance and endeared by frequent recollection. Wild shrubs grew from the crevices of the rocks beneath, and the high trees of pine and cedar that waved above, afforded a melancholy and romantic shade. The silence of the scene was interrupted only by the breeze as it rolled over the woods, and by the solitary notes of the birds that inhabited the cliffs.

They eventually left the lake and, climbing a steep path through the woods, arrived after an hour's walk at a green peak that stood out among the rough rocks surrounding it, like a flower on a thornbush. It was a place made for solitary enjoyment, evoking a gentle tenderness that is so cherished by sensitive souls, reminding them of past regrets, softened by time and made dearer by repeated memories. Wild shrubs grew from the cracks in the rocks below, and the tall pine and cedar trees swaying above provided a melancholic and romantic shade. The silence of the scene was only broken by the breeze moving through the trees and the lonely calls of the birds living on the cliffs.

From this point the eye commanded an entire view of those majestic and sublime Alps whose aspect fills the soul with emotions of indescribable awe, and seems to lift it to a nobler nature. The village and the chateau of La Luc appeared in the bosom of the mountains, a peaceful retreat from the storms that gathered on their tops. All the faculties of M. Verneuil were absorbed in admiration, and he was for some time quite silent; at length, bursting into a rhapsody, he turned, and would have addressed La Luc, when he perceived him at a distance leaning against a rustic urn, over which drooped in beautiful luxuriance the weeping willow.

From this point, the view of the majestic and stunning Alps was breathtaking, filling the soul with indescribable awe and seeming to elevate it to a higher state. The village and chateau of La Luc nestled in the mountains offered a peaceful refuge from the storms that loomed above. M. Verneuil was completely absorbed in admiration and remained silent for some time; finally, he burst into a rhapsody and turned to speak to La Luc, only to notice him in the distance, leaning against a rustic urn that was beautifully draped with a weeping willow.

As he approached, La Luc quitted his position, and advanced to meet him, while M. Verneuil inquired upon what occasion the urn had been erected. La Luc, unable to answer, pointed to it, and walked silently away, and M. Verneuil approaching the urn, read the following inscription:

As he got closer, La Luc left his spot and moved to meet him, while M. Verneuil asked why the urn had been put up. La Luc, unable to reply, pointed to it and walked away in silence. M. Verneuil then walked up to the urn and read the following inscription:

TO
THE MEMORY OF CLARA LA LUC,
THIS URN

IS ERECTED ON THE SPOT WHICH SHE
LOVED, IN TESTIMONY OF
THE AFFECTION OF

A HUSBAND.

M. Verneuil now comprehended the whole, and, feeling for his friend, was hurt that he had noticed this monument of his grief. He rejoined La Luc, who was standing on the point of the eminence contemplating the landscape below with an air more placid, and touched with the sweetness of piety and resignation. He perceived that M. Verneuil was somewhat disconcerted, and he sought to remove his uneasiness. You will consider it, said he, as a mark of my esteem that I have brought you to this spot: it is never profaned by the presence of the unfeeling; they would deride the faithfulness of an attachment which has so long survived its object, and which, in their own breasts, would quickly have been lost amidst the dissipation of general society. I have cherished in my heart the remembrance of a woman whose virtues claimed all my love: I have cherished it as a treasure to which I could withdraw from temporary cares and vexations, in the certainty of finding a soothing, though melancholy comfort.

M. Verneuil now understood everything and, feeling for his friend, was hurt that he had noticed this reminder of his grief. He joined La Luc, who was standing on the edge of the hill, gazing at the landscape below with a calm demeanor, touched by a sense of piety and acceptance. He could see that M. Verneuil was a bit unsettled, and he tried to ease his discomfort. "You should see it as a sign of my respect that I brought you here," he said. "This place is never tainted by the presence of the insensitive; they would mock the loyalty of an attachment that has lasted so long past its end, something that would have quickly faded from their own hearts amidst the distractions of society. I have kept in my heart the memory of a woman whose virtues deserved all my love: I have held onto it like a treasure to escape from temporary troubles and annoyances, knowing it would bring a comforting, albeit sad, peace."

La Luc paused. M. Verneuil expressed the sympathy he felt, but he knew the sacredness of sorrow, and soon relapsed into silence. One of the brightest hopes of a future state, resumed La Luc, is, that we shall meet again those whom we have loved upon earth. And perhaps our happiness may be permitted to consist very much in the society of our friends, purified from the frailties of mortality, with the finer affections more sweetly attuned, and with the faculties of mind infinitely more elevated and enlarged. We shall then be enabled to comprehend subjects which are too vast for human conception; to comprehend, perhaps, the sublimity of that Deity who first called us into being. These views of futurity, my friend, elevate us above the evils of this world, and seem to communicate to us a portion of the nature we contemplate.

La Luc paused. M. Verneuil showed his sympathy, but he respected the sacredness of sorrow and soon fell silent. One of the brightest hopes for the future, La Luc continued, is that we will be reunited with those we loved on earth. And maybe our happiness will come largely from being with our friends, free from the weaknesses of mortality, with our deeper feelings more harmoniously aligned, and with our minds vastly expanded and elevated. We will be able to understand concepts that are too grand for human understanding; to perhaps grasp the greatness of the Deity who first brought us into existence. These perspectives on the future, my friend, lift us above the troubles of this world and seem to share with us a bit of the nature we aspire to understand.

Call them not the illusions of a visionary brain, proceeded La Luc: I trust in their reality. Of this I am certain, that whether they are illusions or not, a faith in them ought to be cherished for the comfort it brings to the heart, and reverenced for the dignity it imparts to the mind. Such feelings make a happy and an important part of our belief in a future existence: they give energy to virtue, and stability to principle.

Call them not the fantasies of a dreaming mind, said La Luc: I believe in their reality. I'm certain of this: whether they are fantasies or not, having faith in them should be valued for the comfort it provides to the heart, and respected for the dignity it adds to the mind. These feelings are a vital and joyful part of our belief in an afterlife: they energize virtue and strengthen principles.

This, said M. Verneuil, is what I have often felt, and what every ingenuous mind must acknowledge.

This, M. Verneuil said, is what I've often felt, and what any open-minded person has to admit.

La Luc and M. Verneuil continued in conversation till the sun had left the scene. The mountains, darkened by twilight, assumed a sublimer aspect, while the tops of some of the highest Alps were yet illuminated by the sun's rays, and formed a striking contrast to the shadowy obscurity of the world below. As they descended through the woods, and traversed the margin of the lake, the stillness and solemnity of the hour diffused a pensive sweetness over their minds, and sunk them into silence.

La Luc and Mr. Verneuil kept talking until the sun had set. The mountains, now shrouded in twilight, looked even more majestic, while the peaks of some of the highest Alps were still lit by the sun’s rays, creating a striking contrast with the darkening world below. As they made their way down through the woods and along the edge of the lake, the stillness and solemnity of the hour filled their minds with a reflective sweetness, leading them into silence.

They found supper spread, as was usual, in the hall, of which the windows opened upon a garden, where the flowers might be said to yield their fragrance in gratitude to the refreshing dews. The windows were embowered with eglantine and other sweet shrubs, which hung in wild luxuriance around, and formed a beautiful and simple decoration. Clara and Adeline loved to pass their evenings in this hall, where they had acquired the first rudiments of astronomy, and from which they had a wide view of the heavens. La Luc pointed out to them the planets and the fixed stars, explained their laws, and from thence taking occasion to mingle moral with scientific instruction, would often ascend towards that great First Cause, whose nature soars beyond the grasp of human comprehension.

They found dinner set up, as usual, in the hall, where the windows opened onto a garden filled with flowers that seemed to share their fragrance in gratitude for the refreshing dew. The windows were surrounded by wild roses and other sweet-smelling bushes, creating a beautiful and simple decoration. Clara and Adeline enjoyed spending their evenings in this hall, where they had learned the basics of astronomy and had a wide view of the night sky. La Luc pointed out the planets and fixed stars, explained their movements, and often used these lessons to mix moral teachings with scientific knowledge, occasionally elevating the conversation towards that great First Cause, whose nature is beyond human understanding.

No study, he would sometimes say, so much enlarges the mind, or impresses it with so sublime an idea of the Deity, as that of astronomy. When the imagination launches into the regions of space, and contemplates the innumerable worlds which are scattered through it, we are lost in astonishment and awe. This globe appears as a mass of atoms in the immensity of the universe, and man a mere insect. Yet how wonderful! that man, whose frame is so diminutive in the scale of being, should have powers which spurn the narrow boundaries of time and place, soar beyond the sphere of his existence, penetrate the secret laws of nature, and calculate their progressive effects.

No study, he would sometimes say, expands the mind or gives such a grand concept of the divine as astronomy. When the imagination ventures into space and considers the countless worlds scattered throughout it, we find ourselves in a state of awe and wonder. This planet seems like a collection of atoms in the vastness of the universe, and humanity appears as a tiny insect. Yet how amazing it is! That a being so small on the scale of existence can possess abilities that go beyond the limits of time and space, rise above their own reality, uncover the hidden laws of nature, and understand their unfolding effects.

O! how expressively does this prove the spirituality of our being! Let the materialist consider it, and blush that he has ever doubted.

O! how clearly does this show the spirituality of our existence! Let the materialist reflect on it and feel ashamed that he ever had doubts.

In this hall the whole family now met at supper; and during the remainder of the evening the conversation turned upon general subjects, in which Clara joined in modest and judicious remark. La Luc had taught her to familiarize her mind to reasoning, and had accustomed her to deliver her sentiments freely: she spoke them with a simplicity extremely engaging, and which convinced her hearers that the love of knowledge, not the vanity of talking, induced her to converse. M. Verneuil evidently endeavoured to draw forth her sentiments; and Clara, interested by the subjects he introduced, a stranger to affectation, and pleased with the opinions he expressed, answered them with frankness and animation. They retired mutually pleased with each other.

In this hall, the whole family gathered for dinner; and for the rest of the evening, the conversation focused on general topics, where Clara contributed with thoughtful and modest remarks. La Luc had encouraged her to engage in reasoning and to express her thoughts freely: she shared them with a charm that captivated her listeners, making it clear that her love for knowledge, not just a desire to be heard, motivated her conversations. M. Verneuil clearly tried to elicit her thoughts; and Clara, intrigued by the topics he brought up, unaffected and enjoying his opinions, responded with openness and enthusiasm. They parted ways feeling pleased with one another.

M. Verneuil was about six-and-thirty; his figure manly, his countenance frank and engaging. A quick penetrating eye, whose fire was softened by benevolence, disclosed the chief traits of his character; he was quick to discern, but generous to excuse, the follies of mankind; and while no one more sensibly felt an injury, none more readily accepted the concession of an enemy.

M. Verneuil was around thirty-six; he had a strong build and a friendly, engaging face. His sharp, keen eyes, softened by kindness, revealed the main aspects of his character; he was quick to notice things but generous in forgiving people's mistakes. While he was deeply affected by any wrongdoing, he was also quick to accept an apology from an adversary.

He was by birth a Frenchman. A fortune lately devolved to him, had enabled him to execute the plan which his active and inquisitive mind had suggested, of viewing the most remarkable parts of the continent. He was peculiarly susceptible of the beautiful and sublime in nature. To such a taste, Switzerland and the adjacent country was, of all others, the most interesting; and he found the scenery it exhibited infinitely surpassing all that his glowing imagination had painted; he saw with the eye of a painter, and felt with the rapture of a poet.

He was born a Frenchman. A recent fortune allowed him to pursue his plan, which his curious and active mind had proposed, to explore the most remarkable parts of the continent. He was particularly sensitive to the beauty and grandeur of nature. For someone with such a taste, Switzerland and the surrounding region were the most captivating of all; he found the scenery far more breathtaking than anything his vivid imagination had crafted. He observed with a painter's eye and felt with a poet's passion.

In the habitation of La Luc he met with the hospitality, the frankness, and the simplicity so characteristic of the country; in his venerable host he saw the strength of philosophy united with the finest tenderness of humanity—a philosophy which taught him to correct his feelings, not to annihilate them; in Clara, the bloom of beauty with the most perfect simplicity of heart; and in Adeline, all the charms of elegance and grace, with a genius deserving of the highest culture. In this family picture the goodness of Madame La Luc was not unperceived or forgotten. The cheerfulness and harmony that reigned within the chateau was delightful; but the philanthropy which, flowing from the heart of the pastor, was diffused through the whole village, and united the inhabitants in the sweet and firm bonds of social compact, was divine. The beauty of its situation conspired with these circumstances to make Leloncourt seem almost a paradise. M. Verneuil sighed that he must soon quit it. I ought to seek no further, said he, for here wisdom and happiness dwell together.

In La Luc's home, he experienced the hospitality, openness, and simplicity typical of the region. His wise host combined the strength of philosophy with genuine kindness—a philosophy that taught him to refine his emotions rather than suppress them. Clara embodied beauty and pure-hearted simplicity, while Adeline displayed all the charm of elegance and grace, with a talent worthy of the highest education. The kindness of Madame La Luc was also recognized and remembered in this family portrait. The cheerful and harmonious atmosphere of the chateau was delightful, but the warmth that flowed from the pastor's heart and spread throughout the village, bringing the residents together in sweet, strong social ties, was truly divine. The stunning setting added to these elements, making Leloncourt feel almost like paradise. M. Verneuil sighed at the thought of leaving soon. “I shouldn't look any further,” he said, “because here, wisdom and happiness coexist.”

The admiration was reciprocal: La Luc and his family found themselves much interested in M. Verneuil, and looked forward to the time of his departure with regret. So warmly they pressed him to prolong his visit, and so powerfully his own inclinations seconded theirs, that he accepted the invitation. La Luc admitted no circumstance which might contribute to the amusement of his guest, who having in a few days recovered the use of his arm, they made several excursions among the mountains. Adeline and Clara, whom the care of Madame had restored to her usual health, were generally of the party.

The admiration was mutual: La Luc and his family were very interested in M. Verneuil and looked forward to his departure with sadness. They insisted so strongly that he extend his visit, and his own desires aligned with theirs so perfectly, that he accepted the invitation. La Luc ensured there was nothing that could detract from his guest's enjoyment, and after a few days, when M. Verneuil had regained the use of his arm, they took several trips into the mountains. Adeline and Clara, who were back to their usual health thanks to Madame's care, usually joined them on these outings.

After spending a week at the chateau, M. Verneuil bade adieu to La Luc and his family. They parted with mutual regret; and the former promised that when he returned to Geneva, he would take Leloncourt in his way. As he said this, Adeline, who had for some time observed with much alarm La Luc's declining health, looked mournfully on his languid countenance, and uttered a secret prayer that he might live to receive the visit of M. Verneuil.

After spending a week at the chateau, Mr. Verneuil said goodbye to La Luc and his family. They parted with a shared sense of sadness, and he promised that when he returned to Geneva, he would stop by Leloncourt. As he said this, Adeline, who had been worried for a while about La Luc's declining health, looked sadly at his weak face and silently prayed that he would live long enough to receive Mr. Verneuil's visit.

Madame was the only person who did not lament his departure; she saw that the efforts of her brother to entertain his guest were more than his present state of health would admit of, and she rejoiced in the quiet that would now return to him.

Madame was the only one who didn’t mourn his leaving; she noticed that her brother’s attempts to keep his guest entertained were more than his health could handle, and she was glad that peace would now return to him.

But this quiet brought La Luc no respite from illness; the fatigue he had suffered in his late excursions seemed to have increased his disorder, which in a short time assumed the aspect of a consumption. Yielding to the solicitations of his family, he went to Geneva for advice, and was there recommended to try the air of Nice.

But this calm didn’t give La Luc any relief from his illness; the exhaustion he experienced during his recent trips seemed to have worsened his condition, which soon looked like tuberculosis. Giving in to his family’s pleas, he went to Geneva for advice, where he was recommended to try the climate of Nice.

The journey thither, however, was of considerable length; and believing his life to be very precarious, he hesitated whether to go. He was also unwilling to leave the duty of his parish unperformed for so long a period as his health might require; but this was an objection which would not have withheld him from Nice, had his faith in the climate been equal to that of his physicians.

The journey there, however, was quite long; and believing his life to be very uncertain, he hesitated about whether to go. He also didn't want to leave his parish duties unattended for as long as his health might need; but this was an issue that wouldn't have stopped him from going to Nice if he had as much faith in the climate as his doctors did.

His parishioners felt the life of their pastor to be of the utmost consequence to them: it was a general cause, and they testified at once his worth, and their sense of it, by going in a body to solicit him to leave them. He was much affected by this instance of their attachment. Such a proof of regard, joined with the entreaties of his own family, and a consideration that for their sakes it was a duty to endeavour to prolong his life, was too powerful to be withstood, and he determined to set out for Italy.

His parishioners believed their pastor's life was incredibly important to them: it represented a shared concern, and they immediately showed both his value and their feelings about it by collectively asking him to leave them. He was deeply moved by this display of their affection. This demonstration of care, along with the pleas from his own family, and the thought that he had a responsibility to try to extend his life for their sake, was too overwhelming to resist, so he decided to travel to Italy.

It was settled that Clara and Adeline, whose health La Luc thought required change of air and scene, should accompany him, attended by the faithful Peter.

It was decided that Clara and Adeline, whose health La Luc believed needed a change of air and scenery, would go with him, accompanied by the loyal Peter.

On the morning of his departure, a large body of his parishioners assembled round the door to bid him farewell. It was an affecting scene;—they might meet no more. At length, wiping the tears from his eyes, La Luc said, Let us trust in God, my friends; he has power to heal all disorders both of body and mind. We shall meet again, if not in this world, I hope in a better;—let our conduct be such as to ensure that better.

On the morning of his departure, a large group of his parishioners gathered around the door to say goodbye. It was an emotional scene; they might not see each other again. Finally, wiping the tears from his eyes, La Luc said, “Let’s trust in God, my friends; He has the power to heal all ailments of both body and mind. We will meet again, if not in this world, then I hope in a better one; let our actions be such that we ensure that better.”

The sobs of his people prevented any reply. There was scarcely a dry eye in the village; for there was scarcely an inhabitant of it that was not now assembled in the presence of La Luc. He shook hands with them all; Farewell, my friends, said he, we shall meet again.—God grant we may! said they, with one voice of fervent petition.

The cries of his people stopped any response. Almost everyone in the village had tears in their eyes; just about every resident was now gathered around La Luc. He shook hands with each of them; "Goodbye, my friends," he said, "we'll meet again." "God willing, we will!" they replied in a heartfelt chorus.

Having mounted his horse, and Clara and Adeline being ready, they took a last leave of Madame La Luc, and quitted the chateau. The people unwilling to leave La Luc, the greater part of them accompanied him to some distance from the village. As he moved slowly on, he cast a last lingering look at his little home, where he had spent so many peaceful years, and which he now gazed on perhaps for the last time, and tears rose to his eyes; but he checked them. Every scene of the adjacent country called up, as he passed, some tender remembrance. He looked towards the spot consecrated to the memory of his deceased wife; the dewy vapours of the morning veiled it. La Luc felt the disappointment more deeply, perhaps, than reason could justify; but those who know from experience how much the imagination loves to dwell on any object, however remotely connected with that of our tenderness, will feel with him. This was an object round which the affections of La Luc had settled themselves; it was a memorial to the eye, and the view of it awakened more forcibly in the memory every tender idea that could associate with the primary subject of his regard. In such cases fancy gives to the illusions of strong affection the stamp of reality, and they are cherished by the heart with romantic fondness.

After getting on his horse, and with Clara and Adeline ready, they said their final goodbyes to Madame La Luc and left the chateau. The villagers, reluctant to part with La Luc, accompanied him a good distance from the village. As he traveled slowly, he took a last lingering look at his small home, where he had spent so many peaceful years, and which he now might be seeing for the last time, causing tears to well up in his eyes; but he held them back. Every scene in the surrounding countryside evoked a tender memory as he passed. He glanced toward the spot dedicated to the memory of his late wife, shrouded by the morning mist. La Luc felt the disappointment more acutely than reason might warrant; yet those who know from experience how much the imagination clings to anything connected to our emotions will empathize with him. This was a place where La Luc had poured his affections; it served as a visual reminder, and seeing it brought back every tender thought linked to the one he loved. In such moments, the imagination transforms the illusions of deep affection into a sense of reality, and these feelings are cherished by the heart with romantic fondness.

His people accompanied him for near a mile from the village, and could scarcely then be prevailed on to leave him: at length he once more bade them farewell, and went on his way, followed by their prayers and blessings.

His people walked with him for almost a mile from the village and could barely be convinced to leave him. Finally, he said goodbye to them once more and continued on his way, accompanied by their prayers and blessings.

La Luc and his little party travelled slowly on, sunk in pensive silence—a silence too pleasingly sad to be soon relinquished, and which they indulged without fear of interruption. The solitary grandeur of the scenes through which they passed, and the soothing murmur of the pines that waved above, aided this soft luxury of meditation.

La Luc and his small group traveled slowly, lost in thoughtful silence— a silence that was so beautifully melancholic that it was hard to let go of, and they enjoyed it without worrying about being interrupted. The solitary beauty of the landscapes they moved through, along with the gentle rustling of the pines overhead, enhanced this comforting moment of reflection.

They proceeded by easy stages; and after travelling for some days among the romantic mountains and green valleys of Piedmont, they entered the rich country of Nice. The gay and luxuriant views which now opened upon the travellers as they wound among the hills, appeared like scenes of fairy enchantment, or those produced by the lonely visions of the poets. While the spiral summits of the mountains exhibited the snowy severity of winter, the pine, the cypress, the olive, and the myrtle shaded their sides with the green tints of spring, and groves of orange, lemon, and citron, spread over their feet the full glow of autumn. As they advanced, the scenery became still more diversified; and at length, between the receding heights, Adeline caught a glimpse of the distant waters of the Mediterranean fading into the blue and cloudless horizon. She had never till now seen the ocean; and this transient view of it roused her imagination, and made her watch impatiently for a nearer prospect.

They traveled at a slow pace, and after spending several days wandering through the beautiful mountains and lush valleys of Piedmont, they arrived in the prosperous region of Nice. The vibrant and lush views that unfolded before the travelers as they navigated the hills felt like scenes from a fairy tale or the dreams of poets. While the towering mountain peaks displayed the starkness of winter, the slopes were adorned with the greenery of spring from the pine, cypress, olive, and myrtle trees, and orchards of oranges, lemons, and citrons bathed the ground in the warmth of autumn. As they moved forward, the scenery grew even more varied, and ultimately, between the receding hills, Adeline caught sight of the distant waters of the Mediterranean blending into the clear blue horizon. She had never seen the ocean before, and this fleeting glimpse stirred her imagination and made her eagerly anticipate a closer view.

It was towards the close of day when the travellers, winding round an abrupt projection of that range of Alps which crowns the amphitheatre that environs Nice, looked down upon the green hills that stretch to the shores, on the city, and its ancient castle, and on the wide waters of the Mediterranean; with the mountains of Corsica in the furthest distance. Such a sweep of sea and land, so varied with the gay, the magnificent, and the awful, would have fixed any eye in admiration. For Adeline and Clara novelty and enthusiasm added their charms to the prospect. The soft and salubrious air seemed to welcome La Luc to this smiling region, and the serene atmosphere to promise invariable summer. They at length descended upon the little plain where stands the city of Nice, and which was the most extensive piece of level ground they had passed since they entered the country. Here, in the bosom of the mountains, sheltered from the north and the east, where the western gales alone seemed to breathe, all the blooms of spring and the riches of autumn were united. Trees of myrtle bordered the road, which wound among groves of orange, lemon, and bergamot, whose delicious fragrance came to the sense mingled with the breath of roses and carnations that blossomed in their shade. The gently swelling hills that rose from the plain were covered with vines, and crowned with cypresses, olives, and date trees; beyond, there appeared the sweep of lofty mountains whence the travellers had descended, and whence rose the little river Paglion, swollen by the snows that melt on their summits, and which, after meandering through the plain, washes the walls of Nice, where it falls into the Mediterranean. In this blooming region Adeline observed that the countenances of the peasants, meagre and discontented, formed a melancholy contrast to the face of the country; and she lamented again the effects of an arbitrary government, where the bounties of nature, which were designed for all, are monopolized by a few, and the many are suffered to starve, tantalized by surrounding plenty.

It was towards the end of the day when the travelers, winding around a sudden outcrop of the Alps that encircle Nice, looked down at the green hills stretching to the coast, the city, its ancient castle, and the wide waters of the Mediterranean, with the mountains of Corsica in the far distance. Such a stunning view of sea and land, filled with beauty, grandeur, and even danger, would have captivated anyone. For Adeline and Clara, the novelty and excitement added to the charm of the scene. The soft, healthy air seemed to welcome La Luc to this cheerful region, while the clear sky promised endless summer. Eventually, they descended to the small plain where the city of Nice stands, which was the most extensive flat area they had encountered since entering the region. Here, nestled among the mountains, sheltered from the north and east, where only the western winds blew, all the blooms of spring and the richness of autumn came together. Myrtle trees lined the road, winding through groves of orange, lemon, and bergamot, whose delightful scents mixed with the fragrance of roses and carnations blooming in their shade. The gently rolling hills rising from the plain were covered in vines and topped with cypresses, olive trees, and date palms; in the background, the tall mountains from which the travelers had descended appeared, home to the little river Paglion, swollen by melting snow from their peaks, which meandered through the plain and washed the walls of Nice as it flowed into the Mediterranean. In this flourishing area, Adeline noticed that the faces of the peasants, thin and dissatisfied, provided a sad contrast to the beauty of the landscape; she once again lamented the impacts of an oppressive government, where the gifts of nature meant for everyone are controlled by a few, leaving the majority to suffer while surrounded by abundance.

The city lost much of its enchantment on a nearer approach; its narrow streets and shabby houses but ill answered the expectation which a distant view of its ramparts and its harbour, gay with vessels, seemed to authorize. The appearance of the inn at which La Luc now alighted did not contribute to soften his disappointment: but if he was surprised to find such indifferent accommodation at the inn of a town celebrated as the resort of valetudinarians, he was still more so when he learned the difficulty of procuring furnished lodgings.

The city lost a lot of its charm when seen up close; its narrow streets and run-down houses didn’t match the expectations set by a distant view of its fortifications and the lively harbor filled with ships. The look of the inn where La Luc now arrived didn’t help ease his disappointment: while he was surprised to find such poor accommodations at the inn of a town famous for being a retreat for invalids, he was even more shocked when he discovered how hard it was to find furnished rentals.

After much search, he procured apartments in a small but pleasant house situated a little way out of the town; it had a garden, and a terrace which overlooked the sea, and was distinguished by an air of neatness very unusual in the houses of Nice. He agreed to board with the family, whose table likewise accommodated a gentleman and lady, their lodgers; and thus he became a temporary inhabitant of this charming climate.

After a lot of searching, he found an apartment in a small but nice house located a bit outside of town; it had a garden and a terrace that looked out over the sea, and it was marked by a level of cleanliness that's quite rare in the houses of Nice. He arranged to have meals with the family, who also hosted a gentleman and lady as lodgers; and so he became a temporary resident of this lovely climate.

On the following morning Adeline rose at an early hour, eager to indulge the new and sublime emotion with which a view of the ocean inspired her, and walked with Clara toward the hills that afforded a more extensive prospect. They pursued their way for some time between high embowering banks, till they arrived at an eminence, whence:

On the next morning, Adeline woke up early, excited to embrace the new and incredible feelings that seeing the ocean sparked in her, and walked with Clara toward the hills that offered a broader view. They made their way for a while between tall, lush banks until they reached a high point, from where:

Heaven, earth, ocean, smiled!

They sat down on a point of rock overshadowed by lofty palm-trees, to contemplate at leisure the magnificent scene. The sun was just emerged from the sea, over which his rays shed a flood of light, and darted a thousand brilliant tints on the vapours that ascend the horizon, and floated there in light clouds, leaving the bosom of the waters below clear as crystal, except where the white surges were seen to beat upon the rocks; and discovering the distant sails of the fishing-boats, and the far distant highlands of Corsica tinted with ethereal blue. Clara, after some time, drew forth her pencil, but threw it aside in despair. Adeline, as they returned home through a romantic glen, when her senses were no longer absorbed in the contemplation of this grand scenery, and when its images floated on her memory only in softened colours, repeated the following lines:

They sat down on a rocky point shaded by tall palm trees to enjoy the incredible view. The sun had just risen from the sea, casting a bright light and reflecting a thousand vibrant colors on the mist rising on the horizon, which floated in light clouds, leaving the water below clear as crystal, except where the white waves crashed against the rocks. They could also see the distant sails of fishing boats and the faraway highlands of Corsica painted in a soft blue. After a while, Clara took out her pencil but then tossed it aside in frustration. As they walked home through a beautiful valley, when Adeline's mind was no longer consumed by the stunning scenery, and its images lingered in her memory only in soft hues, she recited the following lines:

SUNRISE: A POEM
Often let me roam, at dawn,
Through the cool valley covered with swaying trees,
Enjoy the rich scent of blooming May,
And listen to the sound of the distant floods;
Or relax by the clear stream's bank,
Where does the violet sleep in the dewy shade,
Where blooming lilies release their fragrant sweets,
And the wild musk-rose weeps along the pathway:
Or climb the eastern cliff, whose lofty peak
Looms harshly over the blue and foggy sea;
Watch the beautiful colors of morning spread through the sky,
And light up the crystal plain with a rosy glow.
Oh! Who can express the joy of the soul?
When the sun first appears over the waves,
And all the oceans of the world, as they move,
And the vast sky opens up in bright light!
So the early hours of life offer charming smiles to humanity,
With great health, joy, and the tricks of imagination!

La Luc in his walks met with some sensible and agreeable companions, who like himself came to Nice in search of health. Of these he soon formed a small but pleasant society, among whom was a Frenchman, whose mild manners, marked with a deep and interesting melancholy, had particularly attracted La Luc. He very seldom mentioned himself, or any circumstance that might lead to a knowledge of his family, but on other subjects conversed with frankness and much intelligence. La Luc had frequently invited him to his lodgings, but he had always declined the invitation; and this in a manner so gentle as to disarm displeasure, and convince La Luc that his refusal was the consequence of a certain dejection of mind which made him reluctant to meet other strangers.

La Luc, during his walks, met some smart and pleasant companions who, like him, had come to Nice for their health. He quickly formed a small but enjoyable group, which included a Frenchman whose gentle demeanor, combined with a deep and intriguing sadness, particularly caught La Luc's attention. He rarely talked about himself or anything that might reveal details about his family, but he was open and insightful on other topics. La Luc often invited him to his place, but he always politely declined; his manner was so gentle that it eased any disappointment and made La Luc believe that his refusal stemmed from a certain sadness that made him hesitant to interact with new people.

The description which La Luc had given of this foreigner had excited the curiosity of Clara; and the sympathy which the unfortunate feel for each other called forth the commiseration of Adeline; for that he was unfortunate she could not doubt. On their return from an evening walk La Luc pointed out the chevalier, and quickened his pace to overtake him. Adeline was for a moment impelled to follow; but delicacy checked her steps, she knew how painful the presence of a stranger often is to a wounded mind, and forbore to intrude herself on his notice for the sake of only satisfying an idle curiosity. She turned therefore into another path: but the delicacy which now prevented the meeting, accident in a few days defeated, and La Luc introduced the stranger. Adeline received him with a soft smile, but endeavoured to restrain the expression of pity which her features had involuntarily assumed; she wished him not to know that she observed he was unhappy.

The description La Luc gave of this foreigner piqued Clara's curiosity, and the sympathy that those who are suffering feel for each other drew Adeline’s compassion; there was no doubt in her mind that he was unfortunate. On their way back from an evening walk, La Luc pointed out the chevalier and quickened his pace to catch up with him. Adeline felt a momentary urge to follow, but her sense of propriety held her back; she understood how painful the presence of a stranger can be for a troubled mind and didn't want to intrude just to satisfy her fleeting curiosity. So, she took a different path. However, the sense of propriety that prevented them from meeting was soon overcome by chance, and La Luc introduced the stranger. Adeline greeted him with a gentle smile but tried to hide the pity that her features had involuntarily shown; she didn’t want him to feel that she noticed his unhappiness.

After this interview he no longer rejected the invitations of La Luc, but made him frequent visits, and often accompanied Adeline and Clara in their rambles. The mild and sensible conversation of the former seemed to soothe his mind, and in her presence he frequently conversed with a degree of animation which La Luc till then had not observed in him. Adeline too derived from the similarity of their taste, and his intelligent conversation, a degree of satisfaction which contributed, with the compassion his dejection inspired, to win her confidence, and she conversed with an easy frankness rather unusual to her.

After this interview, he stopped refusing La Luc’s invitations and began visiting him regularly, often joining Adeline and Clara on their walks. The gentle and thoughtful conversations with Adeline seemed to calm his mind, and in her presence, he often spoke with a vitality that La Luc hadn’t noticed in him before. Adeline also found satisfaction in their shared interests and his insightful talk, which, combined with her sympathy for his sadness, helped build her trust in him, allowing her to speak with an openness that was quite rare for her.

His visits soon became more frequent. He walked with La Luc and his family; he attended them on their little excursions to view those magnificent remains of Roman antiquity which enrich the neighbourhood of Nice. When the ladies sat at home and worked, he enlivened the hours by reading to them, and they had the pleasure to observe his spirits somewhat relieved from the heavy melancholy that had oppressed him.

His visits quickly became more regular. He strolled with La Luc and his family, joining them on their little trips to see the stunning remnants of Roman history that enhance the Nice area. When the ladies stayed home to work, he brightened their time by reading to them, and they enjoyed noticing that his mood had lifted a bit from the deep sadness that had weighed him down.

M. Amand was passionately fond of music. Clara had not forgot to bring her beloved lute: he would sometimes strike the chords in the most sweet and mournful symphonies, but never could be prevailed on to play. When Adeline or Clara played, he would sit in deep reverie, and lost to every object around him, except when he fixed his eyes in mournful gaze on Adeline, and a sigh would sometimes escape him.

M. Amand was deeply passionate about music. Clara hadn't forgotten to bring her beloved lute: he would occasionally strum the chords in the most beautiful and sorrowful melodies, but he could never be convinced to play. Whenever Adeline or Clara played, he would sit in a deep trance, oblivious to everything around him, except when he directed his sad gaze toward Adeline, and a sigh would occasionally escape him.

One evening, Adeline having excused herself from accompanying La Luc and Clara in a visit to a neighbouring family, she retired to the terrace of the garden which overlooked the sea; and as she viewed the tranquil splendour of the setting sun, and his glories reflected on the polished surface of the waves, she touched the strings of the lute in softest harmony, her voice accompanying it with words which she had one day written after having read that rich effusion of Shakespeare's genius, "A Midsummer Night's Dream."

One evening, Adeline, having opted out of joining La Luc and Clara on a visit to a nearby family, went to the garden terrace that overlooked the sea. As she took in the peaceful beauty of the setting sun and its glow reflected on the smooth waves, she played the lute gently, accompanying it with words she had written one day after reading Shakespeare's "A Midsummer Night's Dream."

TITANIA TO HER PARTNER.
Oh! Fly with me through the distant skies.
To the islands that sparkle in the western ocean!
For fun summer parties there,
And places her wreath on every slope.
As I move through the clear green sea
We glide lightly on the waves,
The nymphs will cheerfully greet me,
Deep within their coral caves below.
Often on their sandy shores,
When dusk ushers in the refreshing hours,
I come with all my cheerful friends.
To entice them from their sea-green hideaways.
And they really enjoy watching our sports,
And to wash in the ocean's embrace;
And whenever we start the dance again,
They pull music from the wave.
Let's quickly go to that beautiful place,
Where gay Jamaica showcases its scene,
Lifts the blue mountain—wild—sublime!
And smooths her valleys of bright green.
Where seated high, in the splendor of shade,
The power of plants reigns,
Spreading wide over hills and meadows,
Shrubs of every kind—fruit of every color:
She takes the sunbeam's bright glow,
To paint her flowers of mixed colors;
And over the grape, the purple spreads,
Breaking through the green leaves to see.
There are myrtle arches and a citron orchard,
Over the canopy, our dance;
And there the sea breeze enjoys to wander,
When trembles the day's farewell.
And when the fake moon disappears,
Before the pursuing morning rises,
Often, without fear, we play our games.
By the glow of the fire-worm's eyes.
And suck the sweet reeds that swell
In tufted plumes of silver-white;
Or break through the cocoa's creamy shell,
To enjoy the sweet taste of pleasure!
And when the rumbling thunder hits,
And lightning flashes through the darkness,
We take refuge in the trunk of the cedar,
And enjoy the wonderful fragrance!
But mainly, we love under the palm tree,
Or green plantain's spreading leaf,
To listen, during the peaceful midnight,
Sweet Philomela shares her grief.
To the mortal spirit, such a sweet sound,
Such joyful hours have never been experienced!
O fly with me in my open skies,
And I will make them all yours!

Adeline ceased to sing—when she immediately heard repeated in a low voice:

Adeline stopped singing—when she suddenly heard a soft voice repeat:

To a mortal being, such a sweet sound,
Such blissful hours have never been experienced!

and turning her eyes whence it came, she saw M. Amand. She blushed and laid down the lute, which he instantly took up, and with a tremulous hand drew forth tones

and turning her eyes to see where it came from, she saw M. Amand. She blushed and set down the lute, which he immediately picked up and, with a trembling hand, produced sounds.





That could create a soul,
Under the shadow of death:

In a melodious voice, that trembled with sensibility, he sang the following

In a melodic voice that quivered with emotion, he sang the following

SONNET
How sweet is Love's first gentle touch,
When crowned with flowers, he smiles gently!
His blue eyes filled with tearful tricks,
Where beams of gentle bliss shine:
Hope guides him on his lighthearted journey,
And faith and imagination still charm—
Faith quickly got caught up in her struggles——
Fancy, whose magic is said to create
The fair deceiver's self-deception—
How sweet is the gentle touch of first love!
Never would that heart he asks to mourn
From sorrow's gentle charms, stray——
Never—until the God rejoicing in his craft,
Unending frowns and wings the poisoned arrow.

Monsieur Amand paused: he seemed much oppressed, and at length, bursting into tears, laid down the instrument and walked abruptly away to the further end of the terrace. Adeline, without seeming to observe his agitation, arose and leaned upon the wall, below which a group of fishermen were busily employed in drawing a net. In a few moments he returned with a composed and softened countenance. Forgive this abrupt conduct, said he; I know not how to apologize for it but by owning its cause. When I tell you, Madame, that my tears flow to the memory of a lady who strongly resembled you, and who is lost to me for ever, you will know how to pity me.—His voice faltered, and he paused. Adeline was silent. The lute he resumed, was her favourite instrument, and when you touched it with such a melancholy expression, I saw her very image before me. But, alas! why do I distress you with a knowledge of my sorrows! she is gone, and never to return! And you, Adeline,—you——He checked his speech; and Adeline turning on him a look of mournful regard, observed a wildness in his eyes which alarmed her. These recollections are too painful, said she in a gentle voice: let us return to the house; M. La Luc is probably come home. O no! replied M. Amand;—No—this breeze refreshes me. How often at this hour have I talked with her, as I now talk with you!—such were the soft tones of her voice—such the ineffable expression of her countenance.—Adeline interrupted him. Let me beg of you to consider your health—this dewy air cannot be good for invalids. He stood with his hands clasped, and seemed not to hear her. She took up the lute to go, and passed her fingers lightly over the chords. The sounds recalled his scattered senses: he raised his eyes, and fixed them in long unsettled gaze upon hers. Must I leave you here? said she smiling, and standing in an attitude to depart—I entreat you to play again the air I heard just now, said M. Amand in a hurried voice.—Certainly; and she immediately began to play. He leaned against a palm tree in an attitude of deep attention, and as the sounds languished on the air, his features gradually lost their wild expression, and he melted into tears. He continued to weep silently till the song concluded, and it was some time before he recovered voice enough to say, Adeline, I cannot thank you for this goodness: my mind has recovered its bias; you have soothed a broken heart. Increase the kindness you have shown me, by promising never to mention what you have witnessed this evening, and I will endeavour never again to wound your sensibility by a similar offence.—Adeline gave the required promise; and M. Amand, pressing her hand, with a melancholy smile hurried from the garden, and she saw him no more that night.

Monsieur Amand paused, looking deeply troubled, and finally, bursting into tears, he set down the instrument and abruptly walked to the far end of the terrace. Adeline, pretending not to notice his distress, got up and leaned against the wall, just above a group of fishermen who were busy pulling in a net. A few moments later, he returned with a calmer, softer expression. "I apologize for my sudden behavior," he said. "I can only explain it by admitting its cause. When I tell you, Madame, that my tears are for a lady who closely resembled you and who is lost to me forever, you’ll understand why I deserve your pity." His voice trailed off, and he paused. Adeline remained silent. The lute he picked up again was her favorite instrument, and when you played it with such a sad expression, I could see her very image before me. But why am I troubling you with my sorrows! She’s gone and will never return! And you, Adeline—you— He stopped short; Adeline looked at him with a sorrowful gaze and noticed a wildness in his eyes that worried her. "These memories are too painful," she said gently. "Let’s go back inside; M. La Luc has probably returned." "Oh no!" replied M. Amand. "No—this breeze is refreshing. How often at this hour have I talked with her, just as I am now with you!—such were the sweet tones of her voice—such the indescribable expression on her face." Adeline interrupted him. "Please think about your health—this damp air isn’t good for someone who’s not well." He stood with his hands clasped, seemingly not hearing her. She picked up the lute to leave and lightly strummed the strings. The sound brought his scattered thoughts back to him; he raised his eyes and held a long, intense gaze on hers. "Must I leave you here?" she said, smiling, in a departing stance. "I beg you to play that melody I just heard," M. Amand said hurriedly. "Of course," she replied and immediately started to play. He leaned against a palm tree, deeply focused, and as the music lingered in the air, the wild look on his face gradually faded, and he broke down in tears. He continued to weep silently until the song finished, and it took him a while to find his voice again to say, "Adeline, I cannot thank you for your kindness: you’ve helped calm my troubled mind; you’ve soothed my broken heart. Please increase the kindness you’ve shown me by promising never to mention what you witnessed this evening, and I will try not to hurt you like this again." Adeline gave him the promised assurance, and M. Amand, squeezing her hand with a sad smile, hurried out of the garden, and she didn’t see him again that night.

La Luc had been near a fortnight at Nice, and his health, instead of amending seemed rather to decline, yet he wished to make a longer experiment of the climate. The air which failed to restore her venerable friend revived Adeline, and the variety and novelty of the surrounding scenes amused her mind, though, since they could not obliterate the memory of past, or suppress the pang of present affection, they were ineffectual to dissipate the sick languor of melancholy. Company, by compelling her to withdraw her attention from the subject of her sorrow, afforded her a transient relief, but the violence of the exertion generally left her more depressed. It was in the stillness of solitude, in the tranquil observance of beautiful nature, that her mind recovered its tone, and, indulging the pensive inclination now become habitual to it, was soothed and fortified. Of all the grand objects which nature had exhibited, the ocean inspired her with the most sublime admiration. She loved to wander alone on its shores; and when she could escape so long from the duties or forms of society, she would sit for hours on the beach watching the rolling waves, and listening to their dying murmur, till her softened fancy recalled long-lost scenes, and restored the image of Theodore; when tears of despondency too often followed those of pity and regret. But these visions of memory, painful as they were, no longer excited that phrensy of grief they formerly awakened in Savoy; the sharpness of misery was passed, though its heavy influence was not perhaps less powerful. To these solitary indulgences generally succeeded calmness, and what Adeline endeavoured to believe was resignation.

La Luc had been in Nice for almost two weeks, and instead of getting better, his health seemed to be getting worse. Still, he wanted to give the climate a longer chance. The air that didn't help her elderly friend did lift Adeline's spirits, and the variety and novelty of the places around her entertained her mind. However, since they couldn't erase her memories of the past or lessen her current heartbreak, they failed to shake off her melancholic state. Being around people, which forced her to take her mind off her sorrow, provided only temporary relief, but the intensity of that effort usually left her feeling more down. It was in the silence of solitude, in the peaceful observation of beautiful nature, that her mind regained its balance. Embracing the reflective mood that had become a habit, she found solace and strength. Of all the majestic sights nature offered, the ocean filled her with the deepest awe. She enjoyed wandering alone along its shores, and when she could escape for a while from the obligations or structure of society, she would sit for hours on the beach, watching the waves roll in and listening to their fading whispers. That time allowed her to revisit long-lost memories and brought back the image of Theodore, often leading to tears of despair that followed those of compassion and regret. Yet, these painful memories no longer stirred the intense grief they once did in Savoy; the sharpness of her misery had faded, though its heavy presence was still quite powerful. Typically, these moments of solitude were followed by a sense of calm, which Adeline tried to convince herself was resignation.

She usually rose early, and walked down to the shore to enjoy, in the cool and silent hours of the morning, the cheering beauty of nature, and inhale the pure sea-breeze. Every object then smiled in fresh and lively colours. The blue sea, the brilliant sky, the distant fishing-boats with their white sails, and the voices of the fishermen borne at intervals on the air, were circumstances which reanimated her spirits; and in one of her rambles, yielding to that taste for poetry which had seldom forsaken her, she repeated the following lines:—

She usually got up early and walked down to the shore to enjoy the refreshing beauty of nature and breathe in the fresh sea breeze during the cool, quiet morning hours. Everything looked vibrant and colorful. The blue ocean, the bright sky, the distant fishing boats with their white sails, and the sounds of the fishermen echoing in the air lifted her spirits. While wandering, inspired by her love for poetry that she rarely outgrew, she recited the following lines:—

Morning at the beach
What print of fairy feet is this?
On Neptune's smooth, yellow sands?
What midnight party's lively dance,
Under the moon's gentle light
Has blessed these shores?—What lively groups
Have you chased the waves without being held back by fear?
Whoever they were, they ran away from morning,
For now, all quiet and lonely,
These tide-ruined sands appear—
Come back, sweet spirits! Brighten the scene!
The call goes unanswered!—Until the hour of moonlight
Once more spread its gentle influence,
Titania or her fairy friends,
Emerge from India's spicy forests.
Then, when the dark hour comes back,
When silence rules over the air and the ground,
And every star in the sky shines bright,
They come to celebrate their joy;
In a playful circle, skip across the ground,
Let the voice of music triumph over silence,
Until magic echoes answer back—
So their celebration rituals begin.
O fairy forms so shy from human sight,
Your secret path revealed only to poets;
Oh! guide me to the stream, or a quiet valley,
Retiring far away, with winding woods overgrown.
Wherever you most enjoy ruling;
If in some secluded spot of the forest,
There, lead my eager feet.
To the refreshing edge of the fountain,
Where, resting in the midnight dew,
Lie there, young buds of spring in every color,
Releasing their sweet scent into the air;
To fold their soft leaves from danger,
And their relaxed heads warm in the moonlight,
Titania's caring touch is bright.
There, to the night birds' sorrowful song
You love to sing your sweet carols,
With oat straw and countryside tunes;
And protect her hideout with a powerful spell,
Who, when your playful antics are over,
Often lulls you in the lily's cell,
Sweet flower! You go perfectly with your dreams,
And protects you from the rising sun.
When not to fly to India’s heights
After sunset and the moon,
In honeyed buds, you love to lie,
While the bright light of noon reigns supreme;
Nor leave the space where peace surrounds.
Until night brings on the dew and darkness.
Even now, your enchanting scenes catch my eye!
I see the earth open up, the palace come into view,
The tall dome rises, and long rows of light
Shine among the dense, sheltering woods,
And a glance reflected off the shimmering waters!
As soft lutes play, the wide doors open,
And fairy shapes, in beautiful, otherworldly colors,
Move forward with a playful stride and cheerful eyes,
Their hair adorned with pearls, their clothes embellished with gold;
They searched for pearls in the salty waves of Neptune.
And gold was brought from India's deepest caves.
So your bright visions reveal themselves to my eyes,
Oh, playful joys, sweet illusion, welcome!
But ah! at the first light of morning, you fade away again!
From the enthusiastic eyes of youth, life’s vibrant scenery,
And shapes dressed in bright summer colors,
Dissolve immediately in the light of truth's bright day!

During several days succeeding that on which M. Amand had disclosed the cause of his melancholy, he did not visit La Luc. At length Adeline met him in one of her solitary rambles on the shore. He was pale, and dejected, and seemed much agitated when he observed her; she therefore endeavoured to avoid him, but he advanced with quickened steps and accosted her. He said it was his intention to leave Nice in a few days. I have found no benefit from the climate, added M. Amand; alas! what climate can relieve the sickness of the heart! I go to lose in the varieties of new scenes the remembrance of past happiness; yet the effort is vain; I am every where equally restless and unhappy. Adeline tried to encourage him to hope much from time and change of place. Time will blunt the sharpest edge of sorrow, said she; I know it from experience. Yet while she spoke, the tears in her eyes contradicted the assertions of her lips.—You have been unhappy, Adeline!—Yes—I knew it from the first. The smile of pity which you gave me, assured me that you knew what it was to suffer. The desponding air with which he spoke renewed her apprehension of a scene similar to the one she had lately witnessed, and she changed the subject; but he soon returned to it. You bid me hope much from time!—My wife!—My dear wife!——his tongue faltered—It is now many months since I lost her—yet the moment of her death seems but as yesterday. Adeline faintly smiled. You can scarcely judge of the effect of time, yet you have much to hope for. He shook his head. But I am again intruding my misfortunes on your notice; forgive this perpetual egotism. There is a comfort in the pity of the good, such as nothing else can impart; this must plead my excuse; may you, Adeline, never want it! Ah! those tears——Adeline hastily dried them. M. Amand forbore to press the subject, and immediately began to converse on indifferent topics. They returned towards the chateau; but La Luc being from home, M. Amand took leave at the door. Adeline retired to her chamber, oppressed by her own sorrows, and those of her amiable friend.

During the several days after M. Amand shared the reason for his sadness, he didn’t visit La Luc. Finally, Adeline ran into him while taking one of her solitary walks along the shore. He looked pale and downcast, and seemed very agitated when he saw her; she therefore tried to avoid him, but he quickly approached her and spoke. He said he planned to leave Nice in a few days. “I haven’t found any relief from the climate,” M. Amand added, “alas! what climate can cure a broken heart? I’m going to distract myself with new places, hoping to forget my past happiness; yet, that effort is pointless; I feel just as restless and unhappy everywhere.” Adeline tried to uplift his spirits, encouraging him to have faith in time and a change of scenery. “Time will dull the sharpest pain,” she said, “I know this from experience.” Yet, as she spoke, the tears in her eyes contradicted her words. “You have been unhappy, Adeline!” “Yes—I sensed it from the start. The look of pity you gave me told me that you understood suffering.” His despondent tone renewed her fear of a situation similar to one she had recently witnessed, and she tried to change the subject, but he soon returned to it. “You tell me to hope from time!—My wife!—My dear wife!”—his voice faltered—“It’s been many months since I lost her, yet it feels like just yesterday.” Adeline offered a faint smile. “You can’t truly judge the effect of time yet, but you have a lot to look forward to.” He shook his head. “But I’m again forcing my troubles on you; forgive this constant self-centeredness. There is a comfort in the kindness of the good, unlike anything else; let that excuse me; may you, Adeline, never be without it!” Ah! those tears—Adeline quickly wiped them away. M. Amand decided not to press the topic and quickly started talking about more neutral subjects. They headed back to the chateau, but since La Luc was out, M. Amand took his leave at the door. Adeline went to her room, weighed down by her own sorrows and those of her kind friend.

Near three weeks had now elapsed at Nice, during which the disorder of La Luc seemed rather to increase than abate, when his physician very honestly confessed the little hope he entertained from the climate, and advised him to try the effect of a sea voyage, adding that if the experiment failed, even the air of Montpellier appeared to him more likely to afford relief than that of Nice. La Luc received this disinterested advice with a mixture of gratitude and disappointment. The circumstances which had made him reluctant to quit Savoy, rendered him yet more so to protract his absence and increase his expenses; but the ties of affection that bound him to his family, and the love of life, which so seldom leaves us, again prevailed over inferior considerations; and he determined to coast the Mediterranean as far as Languedoc, where if the voyage did not answer his expectation he would land and proceed to Montpellier.

Almost three weeks had passed in Nice, during which La Luc's condition seemed to worsen rather than improve, when his doctor frankly admitted that he had little hope for recovery from the climate and suggested a sea voyage. He added that if that didn’t work out, even the air in Montpellier seemed more promising than Nice. La Luc took this selfless advice with a mix of gratitude and disappointment. The reasons that made him hesitant to leave Savoy made him even more reluctant to extend his absence and incur more expenses. However, the bonds of love he had for his family and the instinctive will to live, which typically never leaves us, ultimately won out over lesser concerns. He decided to sail along the Mediterranean as far as Languedoc, where if the voyage didn’t meet his expectations, he would disembark and head to Montpellier.

When M. Amand learned that La Luc designed to quit Nice in a few days, he determined not to leave it before him. During this interval he had not sufficient resolution to deny himself the frequent conversation of Adeline, though her presence, by reminding him of his lost wife, gave him more pain than comfort. He was the second son of a French gentleman of family, and had been married about a year to a lady to whom he had long been attached, when she died in her lying-in. The infant soon followed its mother, and left the disconsolate father abandoned to grief, which had preyed so heavily on his health, that his physician thought it necessary to send him to Nice. From the air of Nice, however, he had derived no benefit; and he now determined to travel further into Italy, though he no longer felt any interest in those charming scenes which in happier days and with her whom he never ceased to lament, would have afforded him the highest degree of mental luxury—now he sought only to escape from himself, or rather from the image of her who had once constituted his truest happiness.

When M. Amand found out that La Luc planned to leave Nice in a few days, he decided he wouldn't leave before him. During this time, he didn’t have the strength to avoid frequent conversations with Adeline, even though her presence reminded him of his late wife and caused him more pain than comfort. He was the second son of a French gentleman and had been married for about a year to a woman he had loved for a long time, when she died during childbirth. The baby soon followed its mother, leaving the heartbroken father alone in his grief, which had affected his health so severely that his doctor thought he should go to Nice. However, he didn’t find any benefit from the air in Nice, and he now decided to travel further into Italy, even though he no longer felt any interest in the beautiful scenes that, in happier times with her—who he could never stop mourning—would have brought him immense joy. Now, he was only trying to escape from himself, or rather from the image of her who had once been his greatest source of happiness.

La Luc having laid his plan, hired a small vessel, and in a few days embarked, with a sick hope, bidding adieu to the shores of Italy and the towering Alps, and seeking on a new element the health which had hitherto mocked his pursuit.

La Luc had made his plans, hired a small boat, and in a few days set off with a faint hope, saying goodbye to the shores of Italy and the towering Alps, seeking health in a new environment that had so far eluded him.

M. Amand took a melancholy leave of his new friends, whom he attended to the sea-side. When he assisted Adeline on board, his heart was too full to suffer him to say farewell; but he stood long on the beach pursuing with his eyes her course over the waters, and waving his hand, till tears dimmed his sight. The breeze wafted the vessel gently from the coast, and Adeline saw herself surrounded by the undulating waves of the ocean. The shore appeared to recede, its mountains to lessen, the gay colours of its landscape to melt into each other, and in a short time the figure of M. Amand was seen no more: the town of Nice, with its castle and harbour next faded away in distance, and the purple tint of the mountains was at length all that remained on the verge of the horizon. She sighed as she gazed, and her eyes filled with tears. So vanished my prospect of happiness, said she; and my future view is like the waste of waters that surround me. Her heart was full, and she retired from observation to a remote part of the deck, where she indulged her tears as she watched the vessel cut its way through the liquid glass. The water was so transparent that she saw the sun-beams playing at a considerable depth, and fish of various colours glance athwart the current. Innumerable marine plants spread their vigorous leaves on the rocks below, and the richness of their verdure formed a beautiful contrast to the glowing scarlet of the coral that branched beside them.

M. Amand said a sorrowful goodbye to his new friends as he accompanied them to the seaside. When he helped Adeline onto the boat, he was too emotional to say farewell; instead, he stood on the beach for a long time, watching her sail away and waving until tears blurred his vision. The breeze gently carried the vessel away from the shore, and Adeline found herself surrounded by the rolling waves of the ocean. The coastline seemed to pull away, its mountains shrinking, and the vibrant colors of the landscape blending together. Soon, M. Amand's figure was no longer visible; the town of Nice, with its castle and harbor, faded into the distance, leaving only the purple hue of the mountains on the edge of the horizon. She sighed as she looked out and her eyes filled with tears. "So my chance for happiness has disappeared," she thought; "my future looks like the endless waters that surround me." With a heavy heart, she moved away to a secluded spot on the deck, where she let her tears fall as she watched the ship slice through the shimmering water. The water was so clear that she could see the sunbeams dancing at a considerable depth, and vividly colored fish darting through the current. Countless marine plants spread their lush leaves on the rocks below, and the richness of their green contrasted beautifully with the bright red of the coral branching nearby.

The distant coast at length entirely disappeared. Adeline gazed with an emotion the most sublime, on the boundless expanse of waters that spread on all sides: she seemed as if launched into a new world: the grandeur and immensity of the view astonished and overpowered her: for a moment she doubted the truth of the compass, and believed it to be almost impossible for the vessel to find its way over the pathless waters to any shore. And when she considered that a plank alone separated her from death, a sensation of unmixed terror superseded that of sublimity, and she hastily turned her eyes from the prospect, and her thoughts from the subject.

The distant coast eventually vanished completely. Adeline stared with the most profound emotion at the endless stretch of water all around her: it felt like she had been thrown into a new world. The grandeur and vastness of the scene amazed and overwhelmed her: for a moment, she questioned the reliability of the compass, thinking it couldn’t possibly guide the ship through the endless waters to any land. And when she realized that only a plank stood between her and death, pure terror replaced the feeling of awe, and she quickly turned her gaze away from the view and shifted her thoughts elsewhere.







CHAPTER XIX

Is there a heart that music can't touch?
Oh no! How is that tough heart so lost!
Is there anyone who has never experienced the magical moments?
Born from solitude and sadness?
He doesn't need to court inspiration—he is its disdain.
BEATTIE.

Towards evening the captain, to avoid the danger of encountering a Barbary corsair steered for the French coast, and Adeline distinguished in the gleam of the setting sun the shores of Provence, feathered with wood and green with pasturage. La Luc, languid and ill, had retired to the cabin, whither Clara attended him. The pilot at the helm guiding the tall vessel through the sounding waters, and one solitary sailor leaning with crossed arms against the mast, and now and then singing parts of a mournful ditty, were all of the crew, except Adeline, that remained upon deck—and Adeline silently watched the declining sun, which threw a saffron glow upon the waves and on the sails gently swelling in the breeze that was now dying away. The sun at length sunk below the ocean, and twilight stole over the scene, leaving the shadowy shores yet visible, and touching with a solemn tint the waters that stretched wide around. She sketched the picture, but it was with a faint pencil.

Towards evening, the captain, to avoid the risk of running into a Barbary corsair, headed for the French coast, and Adeline saw the shores of Provence coming into view in the glow of the setting sun, lush with woods and green pastures. La Luc, feeling weak and unwell, had gone to the cabin, where Clara was taking care of him. The pilot at the helm was guiding the tall ship through the deep waters, while one lone sailor leaned against the mast, arms crossed, occasionally singing parts of a sad song. Aside from Adeline, they were the only ones still on deck, and she quietly watched the setting sun as it cast a golden glow on the waves and the sails billowing lightly in the soft breeze that was fading away. Eventually, the sun sank below the ocean, and twilight draped over the scene, leaving the shadowy shores still visible and giving the waters that stretched far around them a solemn hue. She captured the moment, but it was with a faint touch.

NIGHT
Over the dark surface of the ocean's wave
Night stretches out her dark wings,
And thoughtful reflection, and silence brings,
Save when the distant waters wash;
Or when the sailor's solitary voice
Swells softly in the passing breeze,
Or when the screeching seagulls hover
Over the tall mast and full sail.
Bounding the gray shine of the deep,
Where imagined shapes stimulate the mind,
Darkness covers the shores, on their rough, steep edges.
The wind carries the sighs of a sad spirit.
Its voice is sweet in the air,
At evening's sad end,
When the calm wave flows silently!
Sweet, sweet is the peace carried by its soothing sounds!
Blessed be your shadows, O Night! and blessed the song
Your gentle winds carry the breath of distant shores!

As the shadows thickened, the scene sunk into deeper repose. Even the sailor's song had ceased; no sound was heard but that of the waters dashing beneath the vessel, and their fainter murmur on the pebbly coast. Adeline's mind was in unison with the tranquillity of the hour; lulled by the waves, she resigned herself to a still melancholy and sat lost in reverie. The present moment brought to her recollection her voyage up the Rhone, when seeking refuge from the terrors of the Marquis de Montalt, she so anxiously endeavoured to anticipate her future destiny. She then, as now, had watched the fall of evening and the fading prospect, and she remembered what a desolate feeling had accompanied the impression which those objects made. She had then no friends—no asylum—no certainty of escaping the pursuit of her enemy. Now she had found affectionate friends—a secure retreat—and was delivered from the terrors she then suffered—but still she was unhappy. The remembrance of Theodore—of Theodore who had loved her so truly, who had encountered and suffered so much for her sake, and of whose fate she was now as ignorant as when she traversed the Rhone, was an incessant pang to her heart. She seemed to be more remote than ever from the possibility of hearing of him. Sometimes a faint hope crossed her that he had escaped the malice of his persecutor; but when she considered the inveteracy and power of the latter, and the heinous light in which the law regards an assault upon a superior officer, even this poor hope vanished, and left her to tears and anguish, such as this reverie, which began with a sensation of only gentle melancholy, now led to. She continued to muse till the moon arose from the bosom of the ocean, and shed her trembling lustre upon the waves, diffusing peace, and making silence more solemn; beaming a soft light on the white sails, and throwing upon the waters the tall shadow of the vessel which now seemed to glide along unopposed by any current. Her tears had somewhat relieved the anguish of her mind, and she again reposed in placid melancholy, when a strain of such tender and entrancing sweetness stole on the silence of the hour, that it seemed more like celestial than mortal music—so soft, so soothing, it sunk upon her ear, that it recalled her from misery to hope and love. She wept again—but these were tears which she would not have exchanged for mirth and joy. She looked round, but perceived neither ship nor boat; and as the undulating sounds swelled on the distant air, she thought they came from the shore. Sometimes the breeze wafted them away, and again returned them in tones of the most languishing softness. The links of the air thus broken, it was music rather than melody that she caught, till, the pilot gradually steering nearer the coast, she distinguished the notes of a song familiar to her ear. She endeavoured to recollect where she had heard it, but in vain; yet her heart beat almost unconsciously with a something resembling hope. Still she listened, till the breeze again stole the sounds. With regret she now perceived that the vessel was moving from them, and at length they trembled faintly on the waves, sunk away at distance, and were heard no more. She remained upon deck a considerable time, unwilling to relinquish the expectation of hearing them again, and their sweetness still vibrating on her fancy, and at length retired to the cabin oppressed by a degree of disappointment which the occasion did not appear to justify.

As the shadows grew darker, the scene settled into a deeper calm. Even the sailor's song had stopped; the only sound was the water crashing against the boat and its softer murmur on the rocky shore. Adeline's thoughts matched the peacefulness of the hour; lulled by the waves, she surrendered herself to a quiet sadness and sat lost in thought. The moment reminded her of her journey up the Rhone, when she had desperately tried to escape the threats from the Marquis de Montalt and worried about her future. Back then, just like now, she had watched the evening fall and the fading view, and she remembered the lonely feeling that came with those sights. She had no friends, no safe hiding place, and no certainty of escaping her enemy's pursuit. Now, she had found caring friends, a safe haven, and was free from the fears she once faced—but she was still unhappy. The memory of Theodore—of Theodore who had loved her so deeply, who had faced so much for her, and whose fate was now as unknown to her as it had been when she traveled the Rhone—caused her constant heartache. It felt like she was further than ever from the chance of hearing about him. Sometimes, a flicker of hope crossed her mind that he had escaped his tormentor; but when she considered the relentless nature and power of that tormentor, as well as the severe consequences of assaulting a superior officer, even that tiny hope faded, leaving her in tears and anguish—feelings that this reverie, which started with a gentle sadness, now escalated to. She continued to reflect until the moon rose from the sea, casting its shimmering light on the waves, creating an atmosphere of peace that made the silence feel even more profound; it illuminated the white sails and cast the tall shadow of the boat, which now appeared to glide effortlessly without any current. Her tears had eased some of her mental torment, and she returned to a calm sadness when a melody of such tender and captivating beauty broke the silence of the hour that it felt more divine than earthly—so soft, so soothing, it settled in her ears, pulling her back from despair to hope and love. She cried again—but these tears were ones she wouldn't trade for happiness and joy. She looked around but saw no ship or boat; as the waves carried the undulating sounds from afar, she thought they came from the shore. Sometimes the breeze would carry them away, only to return them in the most languishingly soft tones. The fragments of sound in the air became music rather than melody until, as the pilot steered closer to the coast, she recognized the notes of a song that was familiar to her. She tried to remember where she had heard it, but without success; yet her heart beat almost automatically with a feeling that resembled hope. She kept listening until the breeze gently carried the sounds away. With regret, she realized the boat was drifting away from the music, and it eventually faded softly on the waves, disappearing into the distance. She stayed on deck for quite a while, reluctant to give up the chance of hearing it again, with the sweet sounds still echoing in her mind, before finally retreating to the cabin, weighed down by a disappointment that seemed unjustifiable given the circumstances.

La Luc grew better during the voyage, his spirits revived, and when the vessel entered that part of the Mediterranean called the Gulf of Lyons, he was sufficiently animated to enjoy from the deck the noble prospect which the sweeping shores of Provence, terminating in the far distant ones of Languedoc, exhibited. Adeline and Clara, who anxiously watched his looks, rejoiced in their amendment; and the fond wishes of the latter already anticipated his perfect recovery. The expectations of Adeline had been too often checked by disappointment permit her now to indulge an equal degree of hope with that of her friend, yet she confided much in the effect of this voyage.

La Luc was getting better during the trip; his spirits lifted, and when the ship reached the part of the Mediterranean known as the Gulf of Lyons, he was lively enough to enjoy the stunning view of the sweeping shores of Provence, stretching to the distant shores of Languedoc. Adeline and Clara, who carefully watched his face, were thrilled by his improvement, and Clara was already hopeful for his complete recovery. Adeline's hopes had often been dashed by disappointment, so she couldn't fully share the same optimism as her friend, but she had a lot of faith in the positive effects of this journey.

La Luc amused himself at intervals with discoursing, and pointing out the situations of considerable ports on the coast, and the mouths of the rivers that, after wandering through Provence, disembogue themselves into the Mediterranean. The Rhone, however, was the only one of much consequence which he passed. On this object, though it was so distant that fancy perhaps, rather than the sense, beheld it, Clara gazed with peculiar pleasure, for it came from the banks of Savoy; and the wave which she thought she perceived, had washed the feet of her dear native mountains. The time passed with mingled pleasure and improvement as La Luc described to his attentive pupils the manners and commerce of the different inhabitants of the coast, and the natural history of the country: or as he traced in imagination the remote wanderings of rivers to their source, and delineated the characteristic beauties of their scenery.

La Luc entertained himself at times by talking and pointing out the locations of major ports along the coast, and the river mouths that flow through Provence into the Mediterranean. The Rhone was the only significant one he mentioned. Although it was far away, Clara looked at it with special delight, as it came from the banks of Savoy, and the wave she thought she saw had touched the feet of her beloved native mountains. Time passed with a mix of enjoyment and learning as La Luc described to his engaged students the customs and trade of the coastal residents, as well as the natural history of the area; or as he imagined the distant journeys of rivers to their sources and outlined the unique beauty of their landscapes.

After a pleasant voyage of a few days, the shores of Provence receded, and that of Languedoc, which had long bounded the distance, became the grand object of the scene, and the sailors drew near their port. They landed in the afternoon at a small town, situated at the foot of a woody eminence, on the right overlooking the sea, and on the left the rich plains of Languedoc gay with the purple vine. La Luc determined to defer his journey till the following day, and was directed to a small inn at the extremity of the town, where the accommodation, such as it was, he endeavoured to be contented with.

After a pleasant few days at sea, the shores of Provence faded away, and Languedoc, which had been visible in the distance for a long time, became the main focus of the view as the sailors approached their port. They arrived in the afternoon at a small town located at the base of a wooded hill, with the sea on the right and the lush, vine-covered plains of Languedoc on the left. La Luc decided to postpone his journey until the next day and was directed to a small inn at the edge of the town, where he tried to make do with the available accommodations.

In the evening, the beauty of the hour and the desire of exploring new scenes, invited Adeline to walk. La Lac was fatigued, and did not go out, and Clara remained with him. Adeline took her way to the woods that rose from the margin of the sea, and climbed the wild eminence on which they hung. Often as she went she turned her eyes to catch between the dark foliage the blue waters of the bay, the white sail that flitted by, and the trembling gleam of the setting sun. When she reached the summit, and looked down over the dark tops of the woods on the wide and various prospect, she was seized with a kind of still rapture impossible to be expressed, and stood unconscious of the flight of time, till the sun had left the scene, and twilight threw its solemn shade upon the mountains. The sea alone reflected the fading splendour of the west; its tranquil surface was partially disturbed by the low wind that crept in tremulous lines along the waters, whence rising to the woods, it shivered their light leaves, and died away. Adeline, resigning herself to the luxury of sweet and tender emotions, repeated the following lines:—

In the evening, the beauty of the moment and the urge to explore new places inspired Adeline to go for a walk. La Lac was tired and stayed inside, while Clara remained with him. Adeline made her way to the woods that rose from the edge of the sea and climbed the wild hill where they were situated. As she walked, she frequently glanced to catch glimpses of the blue waters of the bay through the dark foliage, the white sail that drifted by, and the shimmering glow of the setting sun. When she reached the top and looked down over the dark treetops at the vast and varied view, she was overcome by a sort of quiet ecstasy that couldn’t be put into words. She lost track of time until the sun had disappeared and twilight cast its solemn shade over the mountains. The sea alone mirrored the fading brilliance of the west; its calm surface was slightly disturbed by the gentle breeze that moved in soft waves across the water, making its way to the woods, rustling their delicate leaves before fading away. Adeline, surrendering to the luxury of sweet and tender feelings, recited the following lines:—

Sunset
Softly over the mountain's purple peak
Meek Twilight casts her gray shadows;
From grassy woodlands and low valleys,
Light's magical colors fade away.
Yet still, in the growing darkness,
Shining glow of the western waves,
That wave over Neptune's coral caves,
A patch of light in the evening sky.
On this solitary peak, let me take a break,
And look at the forms, dear Fancy,
Until on the ocean's darkened surface
The evening stars shimmer brightly;
Or the moon's bright circle shows up,
Casting her beam of light broadly,
Far over the gently rolling tide,
That looks like the yellow sands are scolding.
No sounds break the silence now,
Save of the dying wave below,
Or a sailor's song carried on the wind,
Or an oar striking slowly at a distance.
So sweet! So peaceful! May my evening light
Prepare for this world—and rise in the days to come!

Adeline quitted the heights, and followed a narrow path that wound to the beach below: her mind was now particularly sensible to fine impressions, and the sweet notes of the nightingale amid the stillness of the woods again awakened her enthusiasm.

Adeline left the heights and followed a narrow path that led to the beach below. Her mind was now particularly open to beautiful impressions, and the sweet songs of the nightingale in the quiet of the woods reignited her enthusiasm.

To the Nightingale
Child of the sad song!
Oh, please keep that gentle melody going!
Her extended shadow when Evening casts,
From mountain cliffs and green forests,
And sailing slowly on silent wings,
The shining West is visible;
I love to wander over pathless hills,
Or follow the winding valley in the distance,
And pause, sweet Bird! to hear your song
As moonlight floats on the thin clouds,
Until over the mountain's dewy peak
Pale Midnight sneaks in to wake the dead.
Far across the sky's bright blue,
Carried by the gentle breezes of spring, you arrive,
With blossoms, and flowers, and pleasant dew,
From places where Summer delights to wander;
Oh! Welcome to your long-lost home!
"Child of the sad song!"
Who loves the quiet forest clearing
To grieve quietly among the branches,
When Twilight casts her thoughtful shadow,
Once again, I greet your sweet voice!
O pour again the liquid note
That perishes in the evening breeze!
For Fancy enjoys the familiar sound;
Her sorrows are expressed in sad tones.
She loves to hear your music drift.
At midnight's quietest hour,
And think about friends who are gone forever,
On joys crossed by disappointment,
And weep again for Love's enchanting power!
Then Memory brings forth the magical smile,
The passionate voice, the teary eye,
That won't deceive the trusting heart,
And wakes again the hopeless sigh.
Her skill brings the vibrant colors to life
Of scenes that Time had instructed to fade away;
She encourages the softened emotions to thrive—
The Passions again urge their influence.
Yet over the long-regretted scene
Your song brings out the beauty of sorrow;
A tranquil, sad charm,
More rare than all the joy it brings,
Then hello, sweet Bird, and hello to your thoughtful tear!
To Taste, to Style, and to Virtue, cherished!

The spreading dusk at length reminded Adeline of her distance from the inn, and that she had her way to find through a wild and lonely wood: she bade adieu to the syren that had so long detained her, and pursued the path with quick steps. Having followed it for some time, she became bewildered among the thickets, and the increasing darkness did not allow her to judge of the direction she was in. Her apprehensions heightened her difficulties: she thought she distinguished the voices of men at some little distance, and she increased her speed till she found herself on the sea-sands over which the woods impended. Her breath was now exhausted—she paused a moment to recover herself, and fearfully listened: but instead of the voices of men, she heard faintly swelling in the breeze the notes of mournful music.—Her heart, ever sensible to the impressions of melody, melted with the tones, and her fears were for a moment lulled in sweet enchantment. Surprise was soon mingled with delight when, as the sound advanced, she distinguished the tone of that instrument, and the melody of that well-known air, she had heard a few preceding evenings from the shores of Provence. But she had no time for conjecture—footsteps approached, and she renewed her speed. She was now emerged from the darkness of the woods, and the moon, which shone bright, exhibited along the level sands the town and port in the distance. The steps that had followed now came up with her, and she perceived two men; but they passed in conversation without noticing her, and as they passed she was certain she recollected the voice of him who was then speaking. Its tones were so familiar to her ear, that she was surprised at the imperfect memory which did not suffer her to be assured by whom they were uttered. Another step now followed, and a rude voice called to her to stop. As she hastily turned her eyes she saw imperfectly by the moonlight a man in sailor's habit pursuing, while he renewed the call. Impelled by terror, she fled along the sands; but her steps were short and trembling—those of her pursuer strong and quick.

The falling dusk finally reminded Adeline how far she was from the inn and that she needed to navigate through a wild and lonely forest. She said goodbye to the siren that had kept her there for so long and hurried down the path. After walking for a while, she got lost in the thickets, and the deepening darkness made it hard to tell which way to go. Her fears made everything seem worse: she thought she heard men's voices not too far away, so she picked up her pace until she found herself on the beach, with the woods looming above her. She was out of breath and paused for a moment to catch her breath, listening anxiously. But instead of men's voices, she faintly heard the sounds of sad music carried by the breeze. Her heart, always responsive to music, softened at the melody, and her fears were briefly calmed by the sweet enchantment. Soon, surprise mixed with delight as the sound got closer, and she recognized the instrument and the familiar tune she had heard a few evenings before from the shores of Provence. However, she had no time to think—footsteps were approaching, prompting her to quicken her pace. She was now out of the dark woods, and the bright moon lit up the sandy beach, revealing the town and port in the distance. The footsteps that had been trailing her caught up, and she noticed two men; they walked past talking, unaware of her presence. As they passed, she was sure she recognized the voice of the one speaking. The tones were so familiar to her that she was taken aback by her inability to remember who it was. Another figure quickly followed, and a rough voice shouted for her to stop. As she turned, she barely saw a man in sailor's clothes chasing her under the moonlight as he called out again. Driven by fear, she ran along the beach, but her steps were shaky and short, while her pursuer's strides were strong and quick.

She had just strength sufficient to reach the men who had before passed her, and to implore their protection, when her pursuer came up with them, but suddenly turned into the woods on the left, and disappeared.

She had just enough strength to get to the men who had passed her earlier and to beg for their protection when her pursuer caught up with them, but suddenly veered into the woods on the left and vanished.

She had no breath to answer the inquiries of the strangers who supported her, till a sudden exclamation, and the sound of her own name, drew her eyes attentively upon the person who uttered them, and in the rays which shone strong from his features she distinguished M. Verneuil! Mutual satisfaction and explanation ensued; and when he learned that La Luc and his daughter were at the inn, he felt an increased pleasure in conducting her thither. He said that he had accidentally met with an old friend in Savoy, whom he now introduced by the name of Mauron, and who had prevailed on him to change his route and accompany him to the shores of the Mediterranean. They had embarked from the coast of Provence only a few preceding days, and had that evening landed in Languedoc on the estate of M. Mauron. Adeline had now no doubt that it was the flute of M. Verneuil, and which had so often delighted her at Leloncourt, that she had heard on the sea.

She was too out of breath to respond to the questions from the strangers who were helping her until a sudden shout and the sound of her name caught her attention, making her focus on the person who spoke. In the bright light shining from his face, she recognized M. Verneuil! They exchanged mutual satisfaction and explanations; and when he found out that La Luc and his daughter were at the inn, he felt even happier to take her there. He mentioned that he had run into an old friend in Savoy, whom he now introduced as Mauron, and who had convinced him to change his plans and travel with him to the Mediterranean coast. They had set sail from the Provence coast just a few days earlier and had landed that evening in Languedoc on M. Mauron's estate. Adeline was now sure it was M. Verneuil's flute, the one that had often delighted her at Leloncourt, that she had heard while at sea.

When they reached the inn, they found La Luc under great anxiety for Adeline, in search of whom he had sent several people. Anxiety yielded to surprise and pleasure, when he perceived her with M. Verneuil, whose eyes beamed with unusual animation on seeing Clara. After mutual congratulations, M. Verneuil observed, and lamented, the very indifferent accommodation which the inn afforded his friends, and M. Mauron immediately invited them to his chateau with a warmth of hospitality that overcame every scruple which delicacy or pride could oppose. The woods that Adeline had traversed formed a part of his domain, which extended almost to the inn; but he insisted that his carriage should take his guests to the chateau, and departed to give orders for their reception. The presence of M. Verneuil, and the kindness of his friend, gave to La Luc an unusual flow of spirits; he conversed with a degree of vigour and liveliness to which he had long been unaccustomed, and the smile of satisfaction that Clara gave to Adeline expressed how much she thought he was already benefited by the voyage. Adeline answered her look with a smile of less confidence, for she attributed his present animation to a more temporary cause.

When they arrived at the inn, they found La Luc very anxious about Adeline, for whom he had sent several people to search. His anxiety changed to surprise and happiness when he saw her with M. Verneuil, whose eyes sparkled with excitement at seeing Clara. After they congratulated each other, M. Verneuil noted and regretted the poor accommodations the inn provided for his friends, and M. Mauron immediately invited them to his chateau with such warmth that it overcame any reservations that politeness or pride might have caused. The woods that Adeline had crossed were part of his land, which stretched nearly to the inn, but he insisted that his carriage take his guests to the chateau and went off to arrange for their arrival. The presence of M. Verneuil and the kindness of his friend brought an unusual sense of joy to La Luc; he talked with a level of energy and liveliness that he hadn't experienced in a long time, and the satisfied smile Clara gave to Adeline showed how much she believed he was already benefiting from the trip. Adeline responded to her look with a smile that was less certain, as she thought his current cheerfulness might be due to something more temporary.

About half an hour after the departure of M. Mauron, a boy who served as waiter brought a message from a chevalier then at the inn, requesting permission to speak with Adeline. The man who had pursued her along the sands instantly occurred to her, and she scarcely doubted that the stranger was some person belonging to the Marquis de Montalt, perhaps the Marquis himself, though that he should have discovered her accidentally, in so obscure a place, and so immediately upon her arrival, seemed very improbable. With trembling lips and a countenance pale as death she inquired the name of the chevalier. The boy was not acquainted with it. La Luc asked what sort of a person he was; but the boy, who understood little of the art of describing, gave such a confused account of him, that Adeline could only learn he was not large, but of a middle stature. This circumstance, however, convincing her it was not the Marquis de Montalt who desired to see her, she asked whether it would be agreeable to La Luc to have the stranger admitted. La Luc said, By all means; and the waiter withdrew. Adeline sat in trembling expectation till the door opened, and Louis de la Motte entered the room. He advanced with an embarrassed and melancholy air, though his countenance had been enlightened with a momentary pleasure when he first beheld Adeline—Adeline, who was still the idol of his heart. After the first salutations were over, all apprehensions of the Marquis being now dissipated, she inquired when Louis had seen Monsieur and Madame La Motte.

About half an hour after M. Mauron left, a boy who worked as a waiter brought a message from a chevalier at the inn, asking to speak with Adeline. She immediately thought of the man who had chased her along the sands and had no doubt that the stranger was connected to the Marquis de Montalt, maybe even the Marquis himself. However, it seemed unlikely that he would find her by chance in such an obscure place and so soon after her arrival. With trembling lips and a pale face, she asked for the name of the chevalier, but the boy didn’t know it. La Luc asked what the person was like, but the boy, who wasn't very good at describing things, gave such a muddled description that Adeline could only gather he was of average height. This convinced her that it wasn’t the Marquis de Montalt who wanted to see her, so she asked La Luc if he would mind letting the stranger in. La Luc said, “Of course,” and the waiter left. Adeline sat there, anxious, until the door opened and Louis de la Motte walked into the room. He came in with an awkward and sad look, although his face lit up briefly with pleasure when he first saw Adeline—Adeline, who was still the love of his life. Once the initial greetings were over, and her fears about the Marquis had faded, she asked Louis when he had last seen Monsieur and Madame La Motte.

I ought rather to ask you that question, said Louis in some confusion, for I believe you have seen them since I have; and the pleasure of meeting you thus is equalled by my surprise. I have not heard from my father for some time, owing probably to my regiment being removed to new quarters.

I should probably be asking you that question, Louis said, a bit awkwardly, since I think you’ve seen them more recently than I have; and the joy of running into you like this is matched by my surprise. I haven’t heard from my dad in a while, probably because my unit has been moved to a new location.

He looked as if he wished to be informed with whom Adeline now was; but as this was a subject upon which it was impossible she could speak in the presence of La Luc, she led the conversation to general topics, after having said that Monsieur and Madame La Motte were well when she left them. Louis spoke little, and often looked anxiously at Adeline, while his mind seemed labouring under strong oppression. She observed this, and recollecting the declaration he had made her on the morning of his departure from the abbey, she attributed his present embarrassment to the effect of a passion yet unsubdued, and did not appear to notice it. After he had sat near a quarter of an hour, under a struggle of feelings which he could neither conquer nor conceal, he rose to leave the room; and as he passed Adeline, said, in a low voice, Do permit me to speak with you alone for five minutes. She hesitated in some confusion, and then, saying there were none but friends present, begged he would be seated.—Excuse me, said he, in the same low accent; what I would say nearly concerns you, and you only. Do favour me with a few moments' attention. He said this with a look that surprised her; and having ordered candles in another room, she went thither.

He looked like he wanted to know who Adeline was with now; but since it was something she couldn't discuss in front of La Luc, she steered the conversation toward general topics after mentioning that Monsieur and Madame La Motte were doing well when she left them. Louis didn't say much and often glanced at Adeline with concern, as if he was carrying a heavy burden in his mind. She noticed this, and remembering the promise he had made her on the morning he left the abbey, she thought his current discomfort was due to feelings he hadn't yet overcome, so she chose not to acknowledge it. After sitting for about fifteen minutes, struggling with emotions he couldn't hide or control, he stood up to leave the room; and as he walked past Adeline, he said quietly, "Please let me speak to you alone for five minutes." She hesitated, feeling a bit flustered, and then, saying there were only friends present, urged him to sit down. "Excuse me," he replied in the same quiet tone, "what I need to say concerns you and you alone. Please, give me a few moments of your time." He said this with a look that caught her by surprise, and after asking for candles to be brought into another room, she followed him there.

Louis sat for some moments silent, and seemingly in great perturbation of mind. At length he said, I know not whether to rejoice or to lament at this unexpected meeting, though, if you are in safe hands, I ought certainly to rejoice, however hard the task that now falls to my lot. I am not ignorant of the dangers and persecutions you have suffered, and cannot forbear expressing my anxiety to know how you are now circumstanced. Are you indeed with friends?—I am, said Adeline; M. La Motte has informed you——No, replied Louis with a deep sigh, not my father.—He paused.—But I do indeed rejoice, resumed he, O! how sincerely rejoice! that you are in safety. Could you know, lovely Adeline, what I have suffered!—He checked himself.—I understood you had something of importance to say, Sir, said Adeline; you must excuse me if I remind you that I have not many moments to spare.

Louis sat in silence for a moment, clearly troubled. Finally, he said, "I’m not sure whether to be happy or sad about this unexpected meeting. But if you are in safe hands, I should definitely be happy, no matter how challenging the task ahead of me is. I know about the dangers and hardships you’ve faced, and I can’t help but worry about your current situation. Are you really with friends?" "I am," Adeline replied. "M. La Motte has told you—" "No," Louis said with a deep sigh, "not my father." He paused. "But I truly am happy—oh, how genuinely happy!—that you are safe. If you only knew what I’ve been through!" He stopped himself. "I understand you have something important to tell me, Sir," Adeline said. "Please forgive me for reminding you that I don’t have much time to spare."

It is indeed of importance, replied Louis; yet I know not how to mention it—how to soften——This task is too severe. Alas! my poor friend!

It really matters, Louis replied; but I don’t know how to bring it up—how to ease into it—This is too hard. Oh no! My poor friend!

Whom is it you speak of, Sir? said Adeline with quickness. Louis rose from his chair and walked about the room. I would prepare you for what I have to say, he resumed, but upon my soul I am not equal to it.

"Who are you talking about, Sir?" Adeline asked quickly. Louis stood up from his chair and started pacing the room. "I would try to get you ready for what I need to say," he continued, "but honestly, I just can't do it."

I entreat you to keep me no longer in suspense, said Adeline, who had a wild idea that it was Theodore he would speak of. Louis still hesitated. Is it—O! is it?—I conjure you tell me the worst at once, said she in a voice of agony. I can bear it,—indeed I can.

I urge you to stop keeping me in suspense, said Adeline, who had a wild thought that it was Theodore he was going to talk about. Louis still hesitated. Is it—oh! is it?—please, just tell me the worst right away, she said in a voice filled with pain. I can handle it—really, I can.

My unhappy friend! exclaimed Louis. O! Theodore!—Theodore! faintly articulated Adeline; he lives then!—He does, said Louis, but—He stopped.—But what? cried Adeline, trembling violently; if he is living, you cannot tell me worse than my fears suggest; I entreat you therefore not to hesitate.—Louis resumed his seat and, endeavouring to assume a collected air, said, He is living, Madame, but he is a prisoner; and—for why should I deceive you? I fear he has little to hope in this world.

My unhappy friend! Louis exclaimed. Oh! Theodore!—Theodore! Adeline said faintly; he’s alive then!—He is, said Louis, but—He stopped. But what? Adeline cried, shaking violently; if he’s alive, you can’t tell me anything worse than what I fear; I urge you not to hesitate. Louis sat down again, trying to look composed, and said, He’s alive, madam, but he’s a prisoner; and—why should I lie to you? I’m afraid he has very little hope in this world.

I have long feared so, Sir, said Adeline in a voice of forced composure; you have something more terrible than this to relate, and I again entreat you will explain yourself.

“I’ve been worried about this for a while, Sir,” Adeline said with an effort to sound calm; “you have something even more horrifying to tell me, and I’m asking you again to clarify what you mean.”

He has every thing to apprehend from the Marquis de Montalt, said Louis. Alas! why do I say to apprehend? His judgment is already fixed—he is condemned to die.

He has everything to fear from the Marquis de Montalt, Louis said. Oh no! Why do I say to fear? His fate is already decided—he is sentenced to die.

At this confirmation of her fears, a death-like paleness diffused itself over the countenance of Adeline; she sat motionless, and attempted to sigh, but seemed almost suffocated. Terrified at her situation, and expecting to see her faint, Louis would have supported her, but with her hand she waved him from her, and was unable to speak. He now called for assistance, and La Luc and Clara, with M. Verneuil, informed of Adeline's indisposition, were quickly by her side.

At this confirmation of her fears, a ghostly pallor spread across Adeline's face; she sat still and tried to sigh, but it seemed like she could hardly breathe. Terrified by her condition and fearing she might faint, Louis would have helped her, but she waved him away with her hand and couldn’t speak. He then called for help, and La Luc, Clara, and M. Verneuil, having heard about Adeline's distress, quickly came to her side.

At the sound of their voices she looked up, and seemed to recollect herself, when uttering a heavy sigh she burst into tears. La Luc, rejoiced to see her weep, encouraged her tears, which after some time relieved her; and when she was able to speak, she desired to go back to La Luc's parlour. Louis attended her thither; when she was better he would have withdrawn, but La Luc begged he would stay.

At the sound of their voices, she looked up and seemed to gather herself. With a heavy sigh, she broke down in tears. La Luc, happy to see her crying, encouraged her to let it out, and after a while, it provided her some relief. Once she was able to speak, she asked to return to La Luc's parlor. Louis accompanied her there; when she started to feel better, he thought about leaving, but La Luc asked him to stay.

You are perhaps a relation of this young lady, Sir, said he, and may have brought news of her father?—Not so, Sir, replied Louis, hesitating—This gentleman, said Adeline, who had now recollected her dissipated thoughts, is the son of the M. La Motte whom you may have heard me mention.—Louis seemed shocked to be declared the son of a man that had once acted so unworthily towards Adeline, who, instantly perceiving the pain her words occasioned, endeavoured to soften their effect by saying that La Motte had saved her from imminent danger, and had afforded her an asylum for many months.—Adeline sat in a state of dreadful solicitude to know the particulars of Theodore's situation, yet could not acquire courage to renew the subject in the presence of La Luc; she ventured, however, to ask Louis if his own regiment was quartered in the town.

"You might be related to this young lady, Sir," he said, "and possibly have news about her father?" "Not really, Sir," Louis replied, hesitating. "This gentleman," Adeline said, now regaining her composure, "is the son of M. La Motte, whom you might have heard me mention." Louis looked shocked to be identified as the son of a man who had once treated Adeline so poorly. Sensing the pain her words caused him, Adeline tried to soften the impact by mentioning that La Motte had saved her from imminent danger and provided her a safe place for many months. Adeline was filled with anxiety to learn about Theodore's situation but couldn't muster the courage to bring it up in La Luc's presence. She did, however, take a chance and asked Louis if his own regiment was stationed in the town.

He replied that his regiment lay at Vaceau, a French town on the frontiers of Spain; that he had just crossed a part of the Gulf of Lyons, and was on his way to Savoy, whither he should set out early in the morning.

He replied that his regiment was stationed in Vaceau, a French town near the Spanish border; that he had just crossed a section of the Gulf of Lyons, and was on his way to Savoy, where he would head out early in the morning.

We are lately come from thence, said Adeline; may I ask to what part of Savoy you are going?—-To Leloncourt, he replied.—To Leloncourt! said Adeline, in some surprise.—I am a stranger to the country, resumed Louis; but I go to serve my friend. You seem to know Leloncourt.—I do indeed, said Adeline.—You probably know then that M. La Luc lives there, and will guess the motive of my journey?

We just came from there, said Adeline; may I ask which part of Savoy you’re heading to? —To Leloncourt, he replied. —To Leloncourt! said Adeline, a bit surprised. —I’m not familiar with the area, continued Louis; but I’m going to help my friend. You seem to know Leloncourt. —I do, said Adeline. —You probably know that M. La Luc lives there and can guess why I'm making this trip?

O Heavens! is it possible? exclaimed Adeline—is it possible that Theodore Peyrou is a relation of M. La Luc?

O Heavens! Is it possible? exclaimed Adeline—Is it possible that Theodore Peyrou is related to M. La Luc?

Theodore! what of my son? asked La Luc in surprise and apprehension—Your son! said Adeline, in a trembling voice—your son!—The astonishment and anguish depicted on her countenance increased the apprehensions of this unfortunate father, and he renewed his question. But Adeline was totally unable to answer him; and the distress of Louis, on thus unexpectedly discovering the father of his unhappy friend, and knowing that it was his task to disclose the fate of his son, deprived him for some time of all power of utterance; and La Luc and Clara, whose fears were every instant heightened by this dreadful silence, continued to repeat their questions.

Theodore! What about my son? asked La Luc, surprised and anxious. —Your son! said Adeline in a shaking voice. —Your son! The shock and pain on her face deepened the worries of this unfortunate father, prompting him to ask again. But Adeline couldn’t respond at all, and the distress of Louis, realizing he had to reveal the fate of his friend’s father, left him speechless for a while. La Luc and Clara, growing more anxious with every moment of this terrible silence, kept repeating their questions.

At length a sense of the approaching sufferings of the good La Luc overcoming every other feeling, Adeline recovered strength of mind sufficient to try to soften the intelligence Louis had to communicate, and to conduct Clara to another room. Here she collected resolution to tell her, and with much tender consideration, the circumstances of her brother's situation, concealing only her knowledge of his sentence being already pronounced. This relation necessarily included the mention of their attachment, and in the friend of her heart Clara discovered the innocent cause of her brother's destruction. Adeline also learned the occasion of that circumstance which had contributed to keep her ignorant of Theodore's relationship to La Luc; she was told the former had taken the name of Peyrou, with an estate which had been left him about a year before by a relation of his mother's upon that condition. Theodore had been designed for the church, but his disposition inclined him to a more active life than the clerical habit would admit of; and on his accession to this estate he had entered into the service of the French king.

At last, overwhelmed by the impending suffering of the good La Luc, Adeline gathered her strength and decided to soften the news Louis had to share, as she led Clara to another room. Here, she found the courage to explain, with great sensitivity, her brother's situation, only withholding the fact that his sentence had already been passed. This account necessarily included their bond, and in her dear friend Clara, she recognized the innocent reason for her brother’s downfall. Adeline also learned about the circumstances that had kept her unaware of Theodore's connection to La Luc; she was informed that he had taken the name Peyrou after inheriting an estate from a relative of his mother a year earlier under that condition. Theodore was meant for the church, but his nature drove him towards a more active life than a clerical one would allow, and upon inheriting this estate, he joined the service of the French king.

In the few and interrupted interviews which had been allowed them at Caux, Theodore had mentioned his family to Adeline only in general terms; and thus, when they were so suddenly separated, had, without designing it, left her in ignorance of his father's name and place of residence.

In the brief and sporadic interviews they had at Caux, Theodore only talked about his family with Adeline in vague terms; so when they were abruptly parted, he unintentionally left her unaware of his father's name and where he lived.

The sacredness and delicacy of Adeline's grief, which had never permitted her to mention the subject of it even to Clara, had since contributed to deceive her.

The sacredness and sensitivity of Adeline's grief, which had never allowed her to bring it up even with Clara, had since led to her being misled.

The distress of Clara, on learning the situation of her brother, could endure no restraint; Adeline, who had commanded her feelings so as to impart this intelligence with tolerable composure, only by a strong effort of mind, was now almost overwhelmed by her own and Clara's accumulated suffering. While they wept forth the anguish of their hearts; a scene if possible, more affecting passed between La Luc and Louis; who perceived it was necessary to inform him, though cautiously and by degrees, of the full extent of his calamity. He, therefore, told La Luc, that though Theodore had been first tried for the offence of having quitted his post, he was now condemned on a charge of assault made upon his general officer the Marquis de Montalt, who had brought witnesses to prove that his life had been endangered by the circumstance; and who, having pursued the prosecution with the most bitter rancour, had at length obtained the sentence which the law could not withhold, but which every other officer in the regiment deplored.

The distress Clara felt upon learning about her brother's situation could no longer be contained; Adeline, who had managed her emotions to share this news with a fair amount of composure, was now nearly overwhelmed by both her own feelings and Clara's combined pain. As they cried out the anguish in their hearts, an even more moving scene unfolded between La Luc and Louis. Louis realized he needed to inform La Luc, but he did so carefully and gradually, about the full extent of the tragedy. He therefore explained to La Luc that, although Theodore had initially been tried for abandoning his post, he was now convicted of assault against his commanding officer, the Marquis de Montalt, who had brought witnesses to testify that his life had been endangered by Theodore’s actions. The Marquis, having relentlessly pursued the case with deep bitterness, ultimately secured the sentence that the law could not deny, though every other officer in the regiment lamented it.

Louis added, that the sentence was to be executed in less than a fortnight, and that Theodore being very unhappy at receiving no answers to the letters he had sent his father, wishing to see him once more, and knowing that there was now no time to be lost, had requested him to go to Leloncourt and acquaint his father with his situation.

Louis added that the sentence was to be carried out in less than two weeks, and that Theodore, feeling very unhappy about not receiving any replies to the letters he had sent his father, wanted to see him one last time. Knowing there was no time to waste, he had asked Louis to go to Leloncourt and inform his father about his situation.

La Luc received the account of his son's condition with a distress that admitted neither of tears nor complaint. He asked where Theodore was; and desiring to be conducted to him, he thanked Louis for all his kindness, and ordered post horses immediately.

La Luc received the news about his son’s condition with a distress that allowed for neither tears nor complaints. He asked where Theodore was and, wanting to be taken to him, thanked Louis for all his kindness and ordered post horses right away.

A carriage was soon ready; and this unhappy father, after taking a mournful leave of M. Verneuil, and sending a compliment to M. Mauron, attended by his family set out for the prison of his son. The journey was a silent one; each individual of the party endeavoured, in consideration of each other, to suppress the expression of grief, but was unable to do more. La Luc appeared calm and complacent; he seemed frequently to be engaged in prayer; but a struggle for resignation and composure was sometimes visible upon his countenance, notwithstanding the efforts of his mind.

A carriage was soon ready, and this heartbroken father, after saying a sorrowful goodbye to M. Verneuil and sending regards to M. Mauron, left for his son's prison with his family. The journey was quiet; each person tried, out of respect for the others, to hide their grief, but they could only do so much. La Luc looked calm and at ease; he often seemed to be praying, but at times, the effort to stay composed and accept the situation showed on his face, despite his mental struggles.







CHAPTER XX

And poisoned with shame, the arrow of Death.
SEWARD.

We now return to the Marquis de Montalt, who having seen La Motte safely lodged in the prison of D——y, and learning the trial would not come on immediately, had returned to his villa on the borders of the forest, where he expected to hear news of Adeline. It had been his intention to follow his servants to Lyons; but he now determined to wait a few days for letters, and he had little doubt that Adeline, since her flight had been so quickly pursued, would be overtaken, and probably before she could reach that city. In this expectation he had been miserably disappointed; for his servants informed him, that though they traced her thither, they had neither been able to follow her route beyond, nor to discover her at Lyons. This escape she probably owed to having embarked on the Rhone, for it does not appear that the Marquis's people thought of seeking her on the course of that river.

We now return to the Marquis de Montalt, who, after making sure La Motte was safely locked up in the prison of D——y and learning that the trial wouldn't start right away, had gone back to his villa near the forest, where he hoped to get news about Adeline. He had planned to follow his servants to Lyons, but he decided to wait a few days for letters. He was fairly certain that Adeline, since her escape had been chased so quickly, would be caught, likely before she even reached that city. However, he was sadly disappointed; his servants told him that while they tracked her to Lyons, they couldn't follow her any further or find her there. She likely owed her getaway to having taken a boat on the Rhone, as the Marquis's people didn’t seem to consider looking for her along that river.

His presence was soon after required at Vaceau, where the court-martial was then sitting; thither therefore he went, with passions still more exasperated by his late disappointment, and procured the condemnation of Theodore. The sentence was universally lamented, for Theodore was much beloved in his regiment; and the occasion of the Marquis's personal resentment towards him being known, every heart was interested in his cause.

His presence was soon needed at Vaceau, where the court-martial was meeting; so he went there, his emotions even more heightened by his recent disappointment, and secured the condemnation of Theodore. The sentence was widely mourned, as Theodore was well-liked in his regiment; and since the reason for the Marquis's personal anger toward him was known, everyone cared about his situation.

Louis de La Motte happening at this time to be stationed in the same town, heard an imperfect account of his story; and being convinced that the prisoner was the young chevalier whom he had formerly seen with the Marquis at the abbey, he was induced partly from compassion, and partly with a hope of hearing of his parents, to visit him. The compassionate sympathy which Louis expressed, and the zeal with which he tendered his services, affected Theodore, and excited in him a warm return of friendship; Louis made him frequent visits, did every thing that kindness could suggest to alleviate his sufferings, and a mutual esteem and confidence ensued.

Louis de La Motte, who happened to be stationed in the same town at that time, heard a vague version of the story. Believing that the prisoner was the young knight he had previously seen with the Marquis at the abbey, he felt compelled to visit him, partly out of compassion and partly hoping to find out about his parents. Louis's caring nature and the eagerness he showed to help moved Theodore and sparked a strong friendship in return. Louis visited him often and did everything kindness could suggest to ease his suffering, leading to a mutual respect and trust between them.

Theodore at length communicated the chief subject of his concern to Louis; who discovered with inexpressible grief that it was Adeline whom the Marquis had thus cruelly persecuted, and Adeline for whose sake the generous Theodore was about to suffer. He soon perceived also that Theodore was his favoured rival; but he generously suppressed the jealous pang this discovery occasioned, and determined that no prejudice of passion should withdraw him from the duties of humanity and friendship. He eagerly inquired where Adeline then resided. She is yet, I fear, in the power of the Marquis, said Theodore, sighing deeply. O God!—these chains!—and he threw an agonizing glance upon them. Louis sat silent and thoughtful; at length starting from his reverie, he said he would go to the Marquis, and immediately quitted the prison. The Marquis, was, however, already set off for Paris, where he had been summoned to appear at the approaching trial of La Motte; and Louis, yet ignorant of the late transactions at the abbey, returned to the prison; where he endeavoured to forget that Theodore was the favoured rival of his love, and to remember him only as the defender of Adeline. So earnestly he pressed his offers of service, that Theodore, whom the silence of his father equally surprised and afflicted, and who was very anxious to see him once again, accepted his proposal of going himself to Savoy. My letters I strongly suspect to have been intercepted by the Marquis, said Theodore; if so, my poor father will have the whole weight of this calamity to sustain at once, unless I avail myself of your kindness, and I shall neither see him nor hear from him before I die. Louis! there are moments when my fortitude shrinks from the conflict, and my senses threaten to desert me.

Theodore finally shared the main concern weighing on him with Louis, who quickly realized with deep sorrow that it was Adeline whom the Marquis had cruelly persecuted—and it was for her that the noble Theodore was about to suffer. He soon recognized that Theodore was his favored rival, but he nobly pushed aside the jealous feelings this realization stirred up and decided that no emotional bias would prevent him from fulfilling his responsibilities of kindness and friendship. He eagerly asked where Adeline was staying. “I’m afraid she is still in the Marquis’s power,” Theodore said, sighing deeply. “Oh God!—these chains!” he exclaimed, casting a pained glance at them. Louis sat quietly, deep in thought; after a moment, he snapped out of his reverie and declared he would go to the Marquis, then immediately left the prison. However, the Marquis had already left for Paris, where he had been called to appear at the upcoming trial of La Motte. Still unaware of the recent events at the abbey, Louis returned to the prison, trying to disregard the fact that Theodore was the favored rival for his love and instead remember him as Adeline’s defender. He offered his help so earnestly that Theodore, taken aback and troubled by his father’s silence, and who was very eager to see him again, accepted his offer to go to Savoy himself. “I strongly suspect the Marquis has intercepted my letters,” Theodore said. “If that’s the case, my poor father will bear the full weight of this disaster alone unless I can take advantage of your kindness, and I won’t see or hear from him again before I die. Louis! There are moments when my courage falters, and I feel like I might lose my senses.”

No time was to be lost; the warrant for his execution had already received the king's signature, and Louis immediately set forward for Savoy. The letters of Theodore had indeed been intercepted by order of the Marquis, who, in the hope of discovering the asylum of Adeline, had opened and afterwards destroyed them.

No time could be wasted; the warrant for his execution had already been signed by the king, and Louis immediately headed for Savoy. Theodore's letters had been intercepted by the Marquis, who, hoping to find out where Adeline was hiding, had opened and then destroyed them.

But to return to La Luc, who now drew near Vaceau, and whom his family observed to be greatly changed in his looks since he had heard the late calamitous intelligence; he uttered no complaint; but it was too obvious that his disorder had made a rapid progress. Louis, who during the journey proved the goodness of his disposition by the delicate attentions he paid this unhappy party, concealed his observation of the decline of La Luc, and to support Adeline's spirits, endeavoured to convince her that her apprehensions on this subject were groundless. Her spirits did indeed require support, for she was now within a few miles of the town that contained Theodore; and while her increasing perturbation almost overcame her, she yet tried to appear composed. When the carriage entered the town, she cast a timid and anxious glance from the window in search of the prison; but having passed through several streets without perceiving any building which corresponded with her idea of that she looked for, the coach stopped at the inn. The frequent changes in La Luc's countenance betrayed the violent agitation of his mind; and when he attempted to alight, feeble and exhausted, he was compelled to accept the support of Louis, to whom he faintly said as he passed to the parlour, I am indeed sick at heart, but I trust the pain will not be long. Louis pressed his hand without speaking, and hastened back for Adeline and Clara, who were already in the passage. La Luc wiped the tears from his eyes (they were the first he had shed) as they entered the room. I would go immediately to my poor boy, said he to Louis; yours, Sir, is a mournful office—be so good as to conduct me to him. He rose to go, but, feeble and overcome with grief, again sat down. Adeline and Clara united in entreating that he would compose himself, and take some refreshment; and Louis urging the necessity of preparing Theodore for the interview, prevailed with him to delay it till his son should be informed of his arrival, and immediately quitted the inn for the prison of his friend. When he was gone, La Luc, as a duty he owed those he loved, tried to take some support; but the convulsions of his throat would not suffer him to swallow the wine he held to his parched lips, and he was now so much disordered, that he desired to retire to his chamber, where alone, and in prayer, he passed the dreadful interval of Louis's absence.

But to return to La Luc, who was now approaching Vaceau, and whose family noticed a significant change in his appearance since he heard the tragic news; he made no complaints, but it was clear that his condition was worsening rapidly. Louis, who during the journey showed his kindness through thoughtful gestures towards this distressed family, kept his concerns about La Luc’s decline to himself and tried to reassure Adeline that her worries were unfounded. She indeed needed encouragement, as she was now only a few miles from the town where Theodore was held; her growing anxiety nearly overwhelmed her, yet she attempted to stay composed. As the carriage entered the town, she glanced nervously out the window looking for the prison, but after passing several streets without recognizing the building she expected, the coach stopped at the inn. The frequent changes in La Luc's expression betrayed the turmoil in his mind; when he tried to get out, weak and drained, he had to lean on Louis for support. As he moved to the parlor, he faintly said, "I am truly heartsick, but I hope the pain won’t last long." Louis squeezed his hand without saying anything and quickly went to fetch Adeline and Clara, who were already in the hallway. La Luc wiped the tears from his eyes (the first he had shed) as they entered the room. "I want to go to my poor boy right away," he told Louis; "your job, Sir, is a sad one—please take me to him." He stood to leave, but weakened by grief, he sat down again. Adeline and Clara urged him to calm down and have something to eat; Louis insisted on the importance of getting Theodore ready for their meeting and convinced him to postpone it until his son was informed of his arrival. He then left the inn for his friend's prison. Once he was gone, La Luc, feeling it was his duty to those he loved, tried to muster some strength, but the spasms in his throat prevented him from swallowing the wine he brought to his dry lips. He was in such distress that he asked to be excused to his room, where he spent the agonizing time of Louis's absence alone in prayer.

Clara on the bosom of Adeline, who sat in calm but deep distress, yielded to the violence of her grief. I shall lose my dear father too, said she; I see it; I shall lose my father and my brother together. Adeline wept with her friend for some time in silence; and then attempted to persuade her that La Luc was not so ill as she apprehended.

Clara, resting against Adeline, who was calm yet deeply troubled, gave in to her overwhelming sorrow. “I’m going to lose my dear father too,” she said. “I can feel it; I’ll lose both my father and my brother.” Adeline cried with her friend quietly for a while, and then tried to convince her that La Luc wasn't as sick as she feared.

Do not mislead me with hope, she replied that will not survive the shock of this calamity—I saw it from the first. Adeline knowing that La Luc's distress would be heightened by the observance of his daughter's, and that indulgence would only increase its poignancy, endeavoured to rouse her to an exertion of fortitude by urging the necessity of commanding her emotion in the presence of her father. This is possible, added she, however painful may be the effort. You must know, my dear, that my grief is not inferior to your own, yet I have hitherto been enabled to support my sufferings in silence; for M. La Luc I do, indeed, love and reverence as a parent.

"Don’t fill me with false hope," she replied, "that won’t withstand the shock of this disaster—I knew it from the start." Adeline, aware that La Luc's distress would be worsened by witnessing his daughter's feelings, and that giving in to that grief would only make it hurt more, tried to encourage her to summon her strength by stressing the need to control her emotions in front of her father. "It’s possible," she added, "no matter how hard it may be. You have to understand, my dear, that my grief is just as deep as yours, yet I’ve managed to bear my suffering in silence; I truly love and respect M. La Luc as a parent."

Louis meanwhile reached the prison of Theodore, who received him with an air of mingled surprise and impatience. What brings you back so soon? said he, have you heard news of my father? Louis now gradually unfolded the circumstances of their meetings and La Luc's arrival at Vaceau. A various emotion agitated the countenance of Theodore on receiving this intelligence. My poor father! said he, he has then followed his son to this ignominious place! Little did I think when last we parted he would meet me in a prison under condemnation! This reflection roused an impetuosity of grief which deprived him for some time of speech? But where is he? said Theodore, recovering himself; now he is come I shrink from the interview I have so much wished for. The sight of his distress will be dreadful to me. Louis! when I am gone, comfort my poor father. His voice was again interrupted by sobs; and Louis, who had been fearful of acquainting him at the same time of the arrival of La Luc and the discovery of Adeline, now judged it proper to administer the cordial of this latter intelligence.

Louis arrived at Theodore's prison, where Theodore greeted him with a mix of surprise and impatience. "What brings you back so soon?" he asked. "Have you heard news of my father?" Louis slowly explained the circumstances of their meetings and La Luc's arrival at Vaceau. A wave of emotion crossed Theodore's face as he took in the news. "My poor father!" he exclaimed. "He has followed his son to this shameful place! I never thought when we last parted that he would meet me in a prison under sentence!" This thought overwhelmed him with a surge of grief that left him speechless for a moment. "But where is he?" Theodore asked, regaining his composure. "Now that he's here, I'm afraid of the meeting I've longed for. Seeing his distress will be unbearable for me. Louis! When I'm gone, comfort my poor father." His voice broke again with sobs, and Louis, who had hesitated to tell him about La Luc's arrival and the discovery of Adeline at the same time, now thought it best to share the latter news.

The glooms of a prison and of calamity vanished for a transient moment; those who had seen Theodore would have believed this to be the instant which gave him life and liberty. When his first emotions subsided, I will not repine, said he, since I know that Adeline is preserved, and that I shall once more see my father, I will endeavour to die with resignation. He inquired if La Luc was then in the prison, and was told he was at the inn with Clara and Adeline. Adeline! Is Adeline there too?—This is beyond my hopes. Yet why do I rejoice? I must never see her more: this is no place for Adeline. Again he relapsed into an agony of distress—and again repeated a thousand questions concerning Adeline, till he was reminded by Louis that his father was impatient to see him—when, shocked that he had so long detained his friend, he entreated him to conduct La Luc to the prison, and endeavoured to recollect fortitude for the approaching interview.

The darkness of prison and despair faded for a brief moment; those who had seen Theodore would have thought this was the moment that brought him life and freedom. Once his initial emotions settled, he said, "I won’t complain, since I know Adeline is safe, and I will see my father again. I’ll try to accept my fate." He asked if La Luc was in prison and was told he was at the inn with Clara and Adeline. "Adeline! Is she really there too?—This is beyond my expectations. But why am I happy? I can’t see her again: this isn’t a place for Adeline." He fell back into deep distress and bombarded Louis with questions about Adeline until Louis reminded him that his father was eager to see him. Realizing he had kept his friend waiting too long, he urged Louis to bring La Luc to the prison and tried to gather his strength for the upcoming meeting.

When Louis returned to the inn, La Luc was still in his chamber; and Clara quitting the room to call him, Adeline seized with trembling impatience the opportunity to inquire more particularly concerning Theodore, than she chose to do in the presence of his unhappy sister. Louis represented him to be much more tranquil than he really was. Adeline was somewhat soothed by the account; and her tears, hitherto restrained, flowed silently and fast till La Luc appeared. His countenance had recovered its serenity, but was impressed with a deep and steady sorrow, which excited in the beholder a mingled emotion of pity and reverence. How is my son, Sir? said he as he entered the room. We will go to him immediately.

When Louis came back to the inn, La Luc was still in his room; and while Clara went to get him, Adeline took the chance to ask more about Theodore than she felt comfortable doing in front of his distressed sister. Louis portrayed him as being much calmer than he really was. Adeline felt a bit comforted by this description, and her tears, which she had been holding back, began to flow silently and quickly until La Luc showed up. His face had regained its calmness but carried a deep, steady sadness that evoked a mix of pity and respect in those who saw him. “How is my son, Sir?” he asked as he entered the room. “We will go to him right away.”

Clara renewed the entreaties that had been already rejected, to accompany her father, who persisted in a refusal. To-morrow you shall see him, added he; but our first meeting must be alone. Stay with your friend, my dear; she has need of consolation. When La Luc was gone, Adeline, unable longer to struggle against the force of grief, retired to her chamber and her bed.

Clara kept asking to go with her father, but he still refused. "Tomorrow you can see him," he said, "but our first meeting has to be just the two of us. Stay with your friend, my dear; she needs comfort." When La Luc left, Adeline, unable to fight her sorrow any longer, went to her room and got into bed.

La Luc walked silently towards the prison, resting on the arm of Louis. It was now night: a dim lamp that hung above showed them the gates, and Louis rang a bell: La Luc, almost overcome with agitation, leaned against the postern till the porter appeared. He inquired for Theodore, and followed the man; but when he reached the second courtyard he seemed ready to faint, and again stopped. Louis desired the porter would fetch some water; but La Luc, recovering his voice, said he should soon be better, and would not suffer him to go. In a few minutes he was able to follow Louis, who led him through several dark passages, and up a flight of steps to a door which, being unbarred, disclosed to him the prison of his son. He was seated at a small table, on which stood a lamp that threw a feeble light across the place, sufficient only to show its desolation and wretchedness. When he perceived La Luc he sprung from his chair, and in the next moment was in his arms. My father! said he in a tremulous voice. My son! exclaimed La Luc; and they were for some time silent, and locked in each other's embrace. At length Theodore led him to the only chair the room afforded, and seating himself with Louis at the foot of the bed, had leisure to observe the ravages which illness and calamity had made on the features of his parent. La Luc made several efforts to speak; but, unable to articulate, laid his hand upon his breast and sighed deeply. Fearful of the consequence of so affecting a scene on his shattered frame, Louis endeavoured to call off his attention from the immediate object of his distress, and interrupted the silence; but La Luc shuddering, and complaining he was very cold, sunk back in his chair. His condition roused Theodore from the stupor of despair; and while he flew to support his father, Louis ran out for other assistance.—I shall soon be better, Theodore, said La Luc, unclosing his eyes, the faintness is already going off. I have not been well of late; and this sad meeting!—Unable any longer to command himself, Theodore wrung his hand, and the distress which had long struggled for utterance burst in convulsive throbs from his breast. La Lac gradually revived, and exerted himself to calm the transports of his son; but the fortitude of the latter had now entirely forsaken him, and he could only utter exclamation and complaint. Ah! little did I think we should ever meet under circumstances so dreadful as the present! But I have not deserved them, my father! the motives of my conduct have still been just.

La Luc walked quietly toward the prison, resting on Louis's arm. It was now night; a dim lamp hanging above illuminated the gates, and Louis rang a bell. La Luc, almost overwhelmed with anxiety, leaned against the door until the porter appeared. He asked for Theodore and followed the man, but when he reached the second courtyard, he seemed about to faint and stopped again. Louis asked the porter to bring some water, but La Luc, regaining his voice, said he would be fine soon and wouldn’t let him go. In a few minutes, he was able to follow Louis, who led him through several dark hallways and up a flight of steps to a door that, when unbarred, revealed the prison where his son was. Theodore was seated at a small table, on which stood a lamp that cast a weak light, enough to show the desolation and misery of the place. When he saw La Luc, he jumped from his chair and was in his father's arms the next moment. "My father!" he said in a shaky voice. "My son!" La Luc exclaimed, and they remained silent for a while, holding each other tightly. Finally, Theodore led his father to the only chair in the room, and as he sat down with Louis at the foot of the bed, he had a moment to notice the toll that illness and hardship had taken on his father's face. La Luc made several attempts to speak but, unable to articulate anything, placed his hand on his chest and sighed deeply. Concerned about the impact of such an emotional scene on La Luc's fragile state, Louis tried to divert his attention from his immediate pain and broke the silence. However, La Luc shuddered and complained of feeling very cold, sinking back into his chair. His condition snapped Theodore out of his despair, and while he rushed to support his father, Louis ran out to get more help. “I’ll be fine soon, Theodore,” La Luc said, opening his eyes. “The dizziness is already fading. I haven’t been well lately, and this sad meeting!” Unable to control himself any longer, Theodore clenched his father's hand, and the grief that had been building up burst forth in convulsive sobs. La Luc gradually became more aware and tried to calm his son's emotional outburst, but Theodore had completely lost his composure and could only express his distress and complaints. “Ah! I never thought we would meet again under such terrible circumstances! But I haven't deserved this, my father! My reasons for my actions have always been righteous.”

That is my supreme consolation, said La Luc, and ought to support you in this hour of trial. The Almighty God, who is the judge of hearts, will reward you hereafter. Trust in him, my son; I look to him with no feeble hope, but with a firm reliance on his justice! La Luc's voice faltered; he raised his eyes to heaven with an expression of meek devotion, while the tears of humanity fell slowly on his cheek.

That is my greatest comfort, said La Luc, and should help you during this tough time. The Almighty God, who knows our hearts, will reward you in the future. Trust in Him, my son; I place my hope in Him not weakly, but with strong faith in His justice! La Luc's voice shook; he raised his eyes to heaven with a look of humble devotion, while tears of compassion slowly rolled down his cheek.

Still more affected by his last words, Theodore turned from him, and paced the room with quick steps: the entrance of Louis was a very seasonable relief to La Luc, who, taking a cordial he had brought, was soon sufficiently restored to discourse on the subject most interesting to him. Theodore tried to attain a command of his feelings, and succeeded. He conversed with tolerable composure for above an hour, during which La Luc endeavoured to elevate, by religious hope, the mind of his son, and to enable him to meet with fortitude the awful hour that approached. But the appearance of resignation which Theodore attained always vanished when he reflected that he was going to leave his father a prey to grief, and his beloved Adeline for ever. When La Luc was about to depart he again mentioned her. Afflicting as an interview must be in our present circumstances, said he, I cannot bear the thought of quitting the world without seeing her once more; yet I know not how to ask her to encounter, for my sake, the misery of a parting scene. Tell her that my thoughts never, for a moment, leave her; that——La Luc interrupted, and assured him, that since he so much wished it, he should see her, though a meeting could serve only to heighten the mutual anguish of a final separation.

Still affected by his last words, Theodore turned away and paced the room with quick steps. The entrance of Louis brought much-needed relief to La Luc, who took a drink he had brought and soon felt ready to discuss the topic that mattered most to him. Theodore tried to get a handle on his emotions and managed to do so. He spoke with reasonable calm for over an hour, during which La Luc tried to uplift his son's spirits with religious hope, helping him face the terrible moment that was coming. But the sense of resignation Theodore managed to show always faded when he thought about leaving his father to suffer and saying goodbye to his beloved Adeline forever. As La Luc was about to leave, he brought her up again. "As hard as it is to meet under these circumstances," he said, "I can't bear the idea of leaving this world without seeing her one last time. But I don't know how to ask her to face the pain of a farewell for my sake. Tell her that my thoughts are always with her; that—" La Luc interrupted him and assured him that since he wanted it so much, he would see her, even though a meeting would only deepen the mutual sorrow of their final separation.

I know it—I know it too well, said Theodore; yet I cannot resolve to see her no more, and thus spare her the pain this interview must inflict. O my father! when I think of those whom I must soon leave for ever, my heart breaks. But I will, indeed, try to profit by your precept and example, and show that your paternal care has not been in vain. My good Louis, go with my father—he has need of support. How much I owe this generous friend, added Theodore, you well know, Sir.—I do, in truth, replied La Luc, and can never repay his kindness to you. He has contributed to support us all; but you require comfort more than myself—he shall remain with you—I will go alone.

I know it—I know it too well, said Theodore; yet I can’t bring myself to not see her again and spare her the pain this meeting will cause. Oh my father! When I think about those I will soon leave forever, my heart breaks. But I will truly try to follow your advice and example, and show that your fatherly care hasn’t been for nothing. My good Louis, go with my father—he needs support. How much I owe this generous friend, added Theodore, you know well, Sir.—I do, indeed, replied La Luc, and I can never repay his kindness to you. He has helped support us all; but you need comfort more than I do—he shall stay with you—I will go alone.

This Theodore would not suffer; and La Luc no longer opposing him, they affectionately embraced, and separated for the night.

This Theodore wouldn’t tolerate it; and with La Luc no longer resisting him, they hugged each other affectionately and said goodnight.

When they reached the inn, La Luc consulted with Louis on the possibility of addressing a petition to the sovereign time enough to save Theodore. His distance from Paris, and the short interval before the period fixed for this execution of the sentence, made this design difficult: but believing it was practicable, La Luc, incapable as he appeared of performing so long a journey, determined to attempt it. Louis, thinking that the undertaking would prove fatal to the father, without benefiting the son, endeavoured, though faintly, to dissuade him from it—but his resolution was fixed—If I sacrifice the small remains of my life in the service of my child, said he, I shall lose little: if I save him, I shall gain every thing. There is no time to be lost—I will set off immediately.

When they arrived at the inn, La Luc talked with Louis about the possibility of filing a petition to the king in time to save Theodore. The distance from Paris and the short time left before the execution made this plan difficult, but La Luc, believing it was doable, decided to give it a shot, despite seeming unable to manage such a long journey. Louis, worried that the attempt would be fatal for the father and wouldn't help the son, weakly tried to talk him out of it—but La Luc was resolute. "If I lose the little time I have left to help my child, it won't matter much; if I save him, I gain everything. There's no time to waste—I’ll leave right away."

He would have ordered post-horses, but Louis and Clara, who were now come from the bed-side of her friend, urged the necessity of his taking a few hours' repose: he was at length compelled to acknowledge himself unequal to the immediate exertion which parental anxiety prompted, and consented to seek rest.

He would have ordered post-horses, but Louis and Clara, who had just come from her friend's bedside, insisted that he needed to get a few hours of rest. Eventually, he had to admit that he wasn’t up for the immediate effort that his worry over his child required, and he agreed to take a break.

When he had retired to his chamber, Clara lamented the condition of her father.—He will not bear the journey, said she; he is greatly changed within these few days.—Louis was so entirely of her opinion, that he could not disguise it, even to flatter her with a hope. She added, what did not contribute to raise his spirits, that Adeline was so much indisposed by her grief for the situation of Theodore and the sufferings of La Luc that she dreaded the consequence.

When he went to his room, Clara worried about her father. "He won’t be able to handle the trip," she said; "he's changed so much in just a few days." Louis completely agreed with her, and he couldn’t hide it, even to try to give her some hope. She added, which didn’t help his mood, that Adeline was so upset about Theodore’s situation and La Luc’s suffering that she feared what might happen next.

It has been seen that the passion of young La Motte had suffered no abatement from time or absence; on the contrary, the persecution and the dangers which had pursued Adeline awakened all his tenderness, and drew her nearer to his heart. When he had discovered that Theodore loved her, and was beloved again, he experienced all the anguish of jealousy and disappointment; for, though she had forbidden him to hope, he found it too painful an effort to obey her, and had secretly cherished the flame which he ought to have stifled. His heart was, however, too noble to suffer his zeal for Theodore to abate because he was his favoured rival, and his mind too strong not to conceal the anguish this certainty occasioned. The attachment which Theodore had testified towards Adeline even endeared him to Louis, when he had recovered from the first shock of disappointment, and that conquest over jealousy which originated in principle, and was pursued with difficulty, became afterwards his pride and his glory. When, however, he again saw Adeline—saw her in the mild dignity of sorrow more interesting than ever—saw her, though sinking beneath its pressure, yet tender and solicitous to soften the afflictions of those around her—it was with the utmost difficulty he preserved his resolution, and forebore to express the sentiments she inspired. When he further considered that her acute sufferings arose from the strength of her affection, he more than ever wished himself the object of a heart capable of so tender a regard—and Thedore in prison and in chains was a momentary object of envy.

It’s clear that young La Motte's passion hadn’t faded with time or distance; instead, the trials and dangers Adeline faced only deepened his feelings for her. When he learned that Theodore loved her and that she loved him back, he felt intense jealousy and disappointment. Despite her asking him not to hope, it was too painful for him to let go of his feelings, and he secretly kept the flame alive that he should have snuffed out. However, his heart was too noble to let his rivalry with Theodore diminish his care for him, and he was strong enough to hide the pain this knowledge brought him. Theodore’s affection for Adeline even won him some respect from Louis after he got over the initial shock of disappointment; conquering his jealousy became a point of pride and honor for him. Yet, when he saw Adeline again—her gentle dignity in sorrow more captivating than ever—struggling but still caring for those around her, it became incredibly hard for him to hold back his feelings. The more he realized that her intense suffering stemmed from her deep love, the more he wished he could be the one who had her heart—and for a moment, he envied Theodore, imprisoned and in chains.

In the morning, when La Luc arose from short and disturbed slumbers, he found Louis, Clara, and Adeline, whom indisposition could not prevent from paying him this testimony of respect and affection, assembled in the parlour of the inn to see him depart. After a slight breakfast, during which his feelings permitted him to say little, he bade his friends a sad farewell, and stepped into the carriage, followed by their tears and prayers.—Adeline immediately retired to her chamber, which she was too ill to quit that day. In the evening Clara left her friend, and, conducted by Louis, went to visit her brother, whose emotions, on hearing of his father's departure, were various and strong.

In the morning, when La Luc got up from restless and interrupted sleep, he found Louis, Clara, and Adeline, who despite feeling unwell, gathered in the inn's parlor to see him off as a sign of respect and affection. After a light breakfast, during which he could barely speak due to his emotions, he said a sorrowful goodbye to his friends and got into the carriage, leaving them with their tears and prayers. Adeline immediately went to her room, too sick to leave that day. In the evening, Clara left her friend, and with Louis guiding her, went to visit her brother, whose feelings upon hearing of their father's departure were mixed and intense.







CHAPTER XXI

It's only when struck by deep-rooted horror
At some basic action, either completed, in progress, or yet to be completed,
That the retreating soul, filled with awareness and fear.
Pulls back into itself.
Mason.

We return now to Pierre de la Motte, who, after remaining some weeks in the prison of D——y, was removed to take his trial in the courts of Paris, whether the Marquis de Montalt followed to prosecute the charge. Madame de la Motte accompanied her husband to the prison of the Chatelet. His mind sunk under the weight of his misfortunes; nor could all the efforts of his wife rouse him from the torpidity of despair which a consideration of his circumstances occasioned. Should he be even acquitted of the charge brought against him by the Marquis, (which was very unlikely,) he was now in the scene of his former crimes, and the moment that should liberate him from the walls of his prison would probably deliver him again into the hands of offended justice.

We return now to Pierre de la Motte, who, after spending several weeks in the prison of D——y, was moved to stand trial in the courts of Paris, where the Marquis de Montalt followed to pursue the accusation. Madame de la Motte went with her husband to the prison of the Chatelet. His spirit was crushed under the weight of his troubles; nor could all his wife’s efforts shake him from the numbness of despair caused by his situation. Even if he were to be acquitted of the charges made against him by the Marquis (which was very unlikely), he was now back in the scene of his past crimes, and the moment he was freed from the walls of his prison would likely send him right back into the hands of vengeful justice.





The prosecution of the Marquis was too well founded, and its object of a nature too serious, not to justify the terror of La Motte. Soon after the latter had settled at the abbey of St. Clair, the small stock of money which the emergency of his circumstances had left him being nearly exhausted, his mind became corroded with the most cruel anxiety concerning the means of his future subsistence. As he was one evening riding alone in a remote part of the forest, musing on his distressed circumstances, and meditating plans to relieve the exigencies which he saw approaching, he perceived among the trees at some distance a chevalier on horseback, who was riding deliberately along, and seemed wholly unattended. A thought darted across the mind of La Motte, that he might be spared the evils which threatened him by robbing this stranger. His former practices had passed the boundary of honesty—fraud was in some degree familiar to him—and the thought was not dismissed. He hesitated——every moment of hesitation increased the power of temptation—the opportunity was such as might never occur again. He looked round, and as far as the trees opened saw no person but the chevalier, who seemed by his air to be a man of distinction. Summoning all his courage, La Motte rode forward and attacked him. The Marquis de Montalt, for it was he, was unarmed; but knowing that his attendants were not far off, he refused to yield. While they were struggling for victory, La Motte saw several horsemen enter the extremity of the avenue, and rendered desperate by opposition and delay, he drew from his pocket a pistol, (which an apprehension of banditti made him usually carry when he rode to a distance from the abbey) and fired at the Marquis, who staggered and fell senseless to the ground. La Motte had time to tear from his coat a brilliant star, some diamond rings from his fingers, and to rifle his pockets before his attendants came up. Instead of pursuing the robber, they all, in their first confusion, flew to assist their Lord, and La Motte escaped.

The prosecution of the Marquis was too justified and serious to not explain La Motte’s fear. Soon after La Motte settled at the abbey of St. Clair, the little money he had left from his urgent situation was nearly gone, and he became consumed by anxiety about how he would survive in the future. One evening, while riding alone in a remote part of the forest, lost in thought about his difficult situation and thinking of ways to deal with the coming struggles, he noticed a knight on horseback in the distance, riding calmly and seemingly alone. A thought crossed La Motte’s mind that he might escape his impending troubles by robbing this stranger. His past actions had already crossed the line into dishonesty—he was somewhat accustomed to deceit—and the idea lingered. He hesitated—each moment of hesitation only made the temptation stronger—this opportunity might never come again. He looked around, and as far as the trees allowed, he saw no one except for the knight, who appeared to be a man of high status. Gathering all his courage, La Motte rode forward and attacked him. It was the Marquis de Montalt, who was unarmed but knew his attendants were nearby, so he refused to give in. While they struggled for control, La Motte saw several horsemen enter the far end of the path. Desperate from the fight and the delay, he pulled a pistol from his pocket (something he usually carried because he feared bandits when riding far from the abbey) and shot at the Marquis, who staggered and collapsed, unconscious. La Motte had enough time to rip a shining star from the Marquis’s coat, grab some diamond rings off his fingers, and search his pockets before the attendants arrived. Instead of chasing after the robber, they all, in their initial confusion, rushed to help their Lord, allowing La Motte to escape.

He stopped before he reached the abbey at a little ruin, the tomb formerly mentioned, to examine his booty. It consisted of a purse containing seventy louis d'ors; of a diamond star, three rings of great value, and a miniature set with brilliants of the Marquis himself, which he had intended as a present for his favourite mistress. To La Motte, who but a few hours before had seen himself nearly destitute, the view of this treasure excited an almost ungovernable transport; but it was soon checked when he remembered the means he had employed to obtain it, and that he had paid for the wealth he contemplated, the price of blood. Naturally violent in his passions, this reflection sunk him from the summit of exultation to the abyss of despondency. He considered himself a murderer, and, startled as one awakened from a dream, would have given half the world, had it been his, to have been as poor, and comparatively as guiltless, as a few preceding hours had seen him. On examining the portrait he discovered the resemblance; and believing that his hand had deprived the original of life, he gazed upon the picture with unutterable anguish. To the horrors of remorse succeeded the perplexities of fear. Apprehensive of he knew not what, he lingered at the tomb, where he at length deposited his treasure, believing that if his offence should awaken justice, the abbey might be searched, and these jewels betray him. From Madame La Motte it was easy to conceal his increase of wealth; for as he had never made her acquainted with the exact state of his finances, she had not suspected the extreme poverty which menaced him; and as they continued to live as usual, she believed that their expenses were drawn from the usual supply. But it was not so easy to disguise the workings of remorse and horror: his manner became gloomy and reserved, and his frequent visits to the tomb, where he went partly to examine his treasure, but chiefly to indulge in the dreadful pleasure of contemplating the picture of the Marquis, excited curiosity. In the solitude of the forest, where no variety of objects occurred to renovate his ideas, the horrible one of having committed murder was ever present to him.—When the Marquis arrived at the abbey, the astonishment and terror of La Motte (for at first he scarce knew whether he held the shadow or the substance of a human form) were quickly succeeded by apprehension of the punishment due to the crime he had really committed. When his distress had prevailed on the Marquis to retire, he informed him that he was by birth a chevalier: he then touched upon such parts of his misfortunes as he thought would excite pity, expressed such abhorrence of his guilt, and voluntarily uttered such a solemn promise of returning the jewels he had yet in his possession, (for he had ventured to dispose only of a small part,) that the Marquis at length listened to him with some degree of compassion. This favourable sentiment, seconded by a selfish motive, induced the Marquis to compromise with La Motte. Of quick and inflammable passions, he had observed the beauty of Adeline with an eye of no common regard, and he resolved to spare the life of La Motte upon no other condition than the sacrifice of this unfortunate girl. La Motte had neither resolution nor virtue sufficient to reject the terms—the jewels were restored, and he consented to betray the innocent Adeline. But as he was too well acquainted with her heart to believe that she would easily be won to the practice of vice, and as he still felt a degree of pity and tenderness for her, he endeavoured to prevail on the Marquis to forbear precipitate measures, and to attempt gradually to undermine her principles by seducing her affections. He approved and adopted this plan: the failure of his first scheme induced him to employ the stratagems he afterwards pursued, and thus to multiply the misfortunes of Adeline.

He stopped before reaching the abbey at a little ruin, the tomb previously mentioned, to check his spoils. It included a purse with seventy louis d'ors, a diamond star, three valuable rings, and a miniature adorned with diamonds of the Marquis himself, which he intended as a gift for his favorite mistress. For La Motte, who just hours earlier had been nearly broke, the sight of this treasure sparked an overwhelming joy; but it quickly faded when he remembered the means he used to acquire it, and that he had paid for this wealth with the price of blood. Naturally passionate, this realization brought him from the peak of happiness to the depths of despair. He saw himself as a murderer and, startled like one awakened from a dream, would have given half of everything he had to be as poor and relatively guiltless as he had been just a few hours ago. While examining the portrait, he noticed the resemblance; believing his hand had robbed the original of life, he stared at the picture with indescribable anguish. The horrors of remorse were followed by the uncertainties of fear. Anxious about an unknown threat, he lingered at the tomb, where he eventually hid his treasure, thinking that if his crime led to justice, the abbey might be searched, and these jewels could expose him. It was easy to hide his newfound wealth from Madame La Motte, as he had never told her the true state of his finances; she had not suspected the extreme poverty he faced, and since they continued to live as usual, she believed their expenses came from their regular income. However, it was much harder to mask the signs of remorse and horror: he became gloomy and withdrawn, and his frequent visits to the tomb—where he went partly to check on his treasure, but mostly to indulge in the terrifying pleasure of looking at the Marquis's picture—aroused suspicion. In the solitude of the forest, where there was no variety to distract him, the horrifying thought of having committed murder was always on his mind. When the Marquis arrived at the abbey, La Motte was filled with astonishment and terror (at first, he barely knew whether he was looking at a shadow or a real person), quickly followed by anxiety over the punishment for the crime he had truly committed. Once his distress had persuaded the Marquis to leave, he revealed that he was of noble birth. He touched on aspects of his misfortunes that he thought would evoke pity, expressed his deep hatred for his guilt, and made a solemn promise to return the jewels he still had (since he had only dared to sell a small portion), which eventually caused the Marquis to listen to him with some compassion. This favorable sentiment, combined with a selfish motive, led the Marquis to strike a deal with La Motte. Quick-tempered and passionate, he had noticed Adeline’s beauty and decided to spare La Motte’s life only if he sacrificed this unfortunate girl. La Motte lacked the resolve and virtue to reject the offer—the jewels were returned, and he agreed to betray the innocent Adeline. But knowing her heart too well to think she would easily fall into vice, and still feeling some pity and tenderness for her, he tried to convince the Marquis to avoid hasty actions and to gradually erode her principles by winning her affections. The Marquis agreed and adopted this plan: the failure of his first scheme led him to use the strategies he later pursued, further compounding Adeline's misfortunes.

Such were the circumstances which had brought La Motte to his present deplorable situation. The day of trial was now come, and he was led from prison into the court, where the Marquis appeared as his accuser. When the charge was delivered, La Motte, as is usual, pleaded Not guilty, and the Advocate Nemours, who had undertaken to plead for him, afterwards endeavoured to make it appear that the accusation, on the part of the Marquis de Montalt, was false and malicious. To this purpose he mentioned the circumstance of the latter having attempted to persuade his client to the murder of Adeline: he further urged that the Marquis had lived in habits of intimacy with La Motte for several months immediately preceding his arrest, and that it was not till he had disappointed the designs of his accuser, by conveying beyond his reach the unhappy object of his vengeance, that the Marquis had thought proper to charge La Motte with the crime for which he stood indicted. Nemours urged the improbability of one man's keeping up a friendly intercourse with another from whom he had suffered the double injury of assault and robbery; yet it was certain that the Marquis had observed a frequent intercourse with La Motte for some months following the time specified for the commission of the crime. If the Marquis intended to prosecute, why was it not immediately after his discovery of La Motte? and if not then, what had influenced him to prosecute at so distant a period?

Such were the circumstances that had brought La Motte to his current terrible situation. The day of the trial had arrived, and he was led from prison into the courtroom, where the Marquis appeared as his accuser. When the charges were presented, La Motte, as is typical, pleaded not guilty, and the Advocate Nemours, who had taken on his defense, later tried to demonstrate that the accusation from the Marquis de Montalt was false and malicious. To support this, he mentioned the fact that the Marquis had attempted to persuade his client to murder Adeline. He further argued that the Marquis had been close with La Motte for several months right before his arrest, and it wasn’t until the Marquis had failed in his plans to harm La Motte by getting the unfortunate target of his vengeance out of reach that he decided to accuse La Motte of the crime he was charged with. Nemours pointed out the unlikelihood of one person maintaining a friendly relationship with someone from whom he had suffered the double injury of assault and robbery; yet, it was evident that the Marquis had kept up a frequent connection with La Motte for several months after the time the crime was supposed to have occurred. If the Marquis intended to press charges, why didn’t he do so right after realizing La Motte’s involvement? And if he didn’t then, what prompted him to prosecute so much later?

To this nothing was replied on the part of the Marquis; for, as his conduct on this point had been subservient to his designs on Adeline, he could not justify it but by exposing schemes which would betray the darkness of his character, and invalidate his cause. He, therefore, contented himself with producing several of his servants as witnesses of the assault and robbery, who swore without scruple to the person of La Motte, though not one of them had seen him otherwise than through the gloom of evening and riding off at full speed. On a cross-examination most of them contradicted each other; their evidence was of course rejected: but as the Marquis had yet two other witnesses to produce, whose arrival at Paris had been hourly expected, the event of the trial was postponed, and the court adjourned.

To this, the Marquis didn't respond because his actions regarding this matter were aligned with his plans for Adeline. He couldn't justify his behavior without revealing schemes that would show his true, shady character and undermine his case. So, he settled for presenting several of his servants as witnesses to the assault and robbery, who testified without hesitation about La Motte, even though none of them had seen him except in the dim light of evening while he was riding away at high speed. During cross-examination, most of them contradicted each other, so their testimony was dismissed. However, since the Marquis still had two other witnesses to present, whose arrival in Paris was awaited at any moment, the trial's outcome was postponed, and the court was adjourned.

La Motte was re-conducted to his prison under the same pressure of despondency with which he had quitted it. As he walked through one of the avenues he passed a man who stood by to let him proceed, and who regarded him with a fixed and earnest eye. La Motte thought he had seen him before; but the imperfect view he caught of his features through the darkness of the place made him uncertain as to this, and his mind was in too perturbed a state to suffer him to feel an interest on the subject. When he was gone, the stranger inquired of the keeper of the prison who La Motte was: on being told, and receiving answers to some further questions he put, he desired he might be admitted to speak with him. The request, as the man was only a debtor, was granted; but as the doors were now shut for the night, the interview was deferred till the morrow.

La Motte was taken back to his prison, feeling just as hopeless as when he left. As he walked through one of the hallways, he passed a man who stepped aside to let him go and looked at him with an intense gaze. La Motte felt he had seen him before, but the dim light made it hard to be sure, and his troubled mind didn't allow him to dwell on it. After he left, the stranger asked the prison guard who La Motte was. After getting some answers to his questions, he requested to speak with him. Since the man was just a debtor, the request was approved, but with the doors now closed for the night, the meeting was postponed until the next day.

La Motte found Madame in his room, where she had been waiting for some hours to hear the event of the trial. They now wished more earnestly than ever to see their son; but they were, as he had suspected, ignorant of his change of quarters, owing to the letters which he had as usual, addressed to them under an assumed name, remaining at the post-house of Auboine. This circumstance occasioned Madame La Motte to address her letters to the place of her son's late residence, and he had thus continued ignorant of his father's misfortunes and removal. Madame La Motte, surprised at receiving no answers to her letters, sent off another, containing an account of the trial as far as it had proceeded, and a request that her son would obtain leave of absence, and set out for Paris instantly. As she was still ignorant, of the failure of her letters, and, had it been otherwise, would not have known whither to have sent them, she directed this as usual.

La Motte found Madame in his room, where she had been waiting for several hours to hear the outcome of the trial. They were now more eager than ever to see their son, but they were, as he had suspected, unaware of his change of location, since the letters he had sent them were addressed under a fake name and were still sitting at the post-house in Auboine. This situation led Madame La Motte to send her letters to her son’s previous address, leaving him unaware of his father's troubles and move. Surprised by the lack of responses to her letters, Madame La Motte sent another one, updating him on the trial as far as it had progressed and asking him to get leave of absence and head to Paris immediately. Since she still didn’t know that her letters had failed to reach him, and wouldn’t have known where to send them even if she had, she addressed this one in the usual way.

Meanwhile his approaching fate was never absent for a moment from the mind of La Motte, which, feeble by nature, and still more enervated by habits of indulgence, refused to support him at this dreadful period.

Meanwhile, La Motte couldn't shake off the thought of his impending fate, which, by nature weak and even more weakened by a life of indulgence, failed to give him the strength he needed during this terrifying time.

While these scenes were passing at Paris, La Luc arrived there without any accident, after performing a journey, during which he had been supported almost entirely by the spirit of his resolution. He hastened to throw himself at the feet of the sovereign; and such was the excess of his feeling on presenting the petition which was to decide the fate of his son, that he could only look silently up, and then fainted. The king received the paper, and giving orders for the unhappy father to be taken care of, passed on. He was carried back to his hotel, where he awaited the event of this his final effort.

While these events were unfolding in Paris, La Luc arrived safely after a journey that he completed mostly thanks to his determination. He rushed to throw himself at the king's feet, and overwhelmed with emotion as he presented the petition that would determine his son's fate, he could only look up silently before fainting. The king took the document, ordered that the unfortunate father be assisted, and moved on. La Luc was taken back to his hotel, where he waited for the outcome of this last attempt.

Adeline, meanwhile, continued at Vaceau in a state of anxiety too powerful for her long-agitated frame, and the illness in consequence of this, confined her almost wholly to her chamber. Sometimes she ventured to flatter herself with a hope that the journey of La Luc would be successful: but these short and illusive intervals of comfort served only to heighten, by contrast, the despondency that succeeded; and in the alternate extremes of feeling she experienced a state more torturing than that produced either by the sharp sting of unexpected calamity, or the sullen pain of settled despair.

Adeline, on the other hand, remained at Vaceau, consumed by anxiety that was too intense for her already fragile state, which led to her being mostly confined to her room. Occasionally, she allowed herself to hope that La Luc's journey would be successful, but these fleeting moments of comfort only intensified the despair that followed. In the oscillation between these extreme emotions, she felt a turmoil that was more agonizing than the acute shock of sudden misfortune or the dull ache of prolonged hopelessness.

When she was well enough she came down to the parlour to converse with Louis, who brought her frequent accounts of Theodore, and who passed every moment he could snatch from the duty of his profession in endeavours to support and console his afflicted friends. Adeline and Theodore, both looked to him for the little comfort allotted them, for he brought them intelligence of each other, and whenever he appeared a transient melancholy kind of pleasure played round their hearts. He could not conceal from Theodore Adeline's indisposition, since it was necessary to account for her not indulging the earnest wish he repeatedly expressed to see her again. To Adeline he spoke chiefly of the fortitude and resignation of his friend, not however forgetting to mention the tender affection he constantly expressed for her. Accustomed to derive her sole consolation from the presence of Louis, and to observe his unwearied friendship towards him whom she so truly loved, she found her esteem for him ripen into gratitude, and her regard daily increase.

When she was feeling better, she came down to the living room to talk with Louis, who frequently gave her updates about Theodore. He spent every moment he could spare from his job trying to support and comfort his troubled friends. Adeline and Theodore both relied on him for the little comfort they could find, as he brought them news of each other. Whenever he showed up, a brief sense of melancholy joy spread through their hearts. He couldn't hide Adeline's illness from Theodore since he needed to explain why she couldn't indulge the strong desire he often expressed to see her again. To Adeline, he mostly talked about his friend's strength and patience, but he also made sure to mention the deep affection Theodore always showed for her. Accustomed to finding her only solace in Louis’s presence, and watching his unwavering friendship towards the man she loved so deeply, her respect for him grew into gratitude, and her feelings for him intensified each day.

The fortitude with which he had said Theodore supported his calamities was somewhat exaggerated. He could not forget those ties which bound him to life sufficiently to meet his fate with firmness; but though the paroxysms of grief were acute and frequent, he sought, and often attained in the presence of his friends, a manly composure. From the event of his father's journey he hoped little, yet that little was sufficient to keep his mind in the torture of suspense till the issue should appear.

The strength with which he claimed Theodore dealt with his troubles was a bit overblown. He couldn't shake off the connections that tied him to life enough to face his fate with confidence; however, even though his bouts of grief were intense and happened often, he tried, and usually managed, to maintain a composed demeanor around his friends. He didn't expect much from his father's trip, but the little hope he had was enough to keep his mind in torment as he waited for the outcome to unfold.

On the day preceding that fixed for the execution of the sentence, La Luc reached Vaceau. Adeline was at her chamber window when the carriage drew up to the inn; she saw him alight, and with feeble steps, supported by Peter, enter the house. From the languor of his air she drew no favourable omen, and, almost sinking under the violence of her emotion, she went to meet him. Clara was already with her father when Adeline entered the room. She approached him, but, dreading to receive from his lips a confirmation of the misfortune his countenance seemed to indicate, she looked expressively at him and sat down, unable to speak the question she would have asked. He held out his hand to her in silence, sunk back in his chair, and seemed to be fainting under oppression of heart. His manner confirmed all her fears; at this dreadful conviction her senses failed her, and she sat motionless and stupefied.

On the day before the execution was set, La Luc arrived in Vaceau. Adeline was at her window when the carriage pulled up to the inn; she saw him get out and, with unsteady steps, helped by Peter, enter the house. The weakness in his demeanor didn’t give her any hope, and almost overwhelmed by her emotions, she went to meet him. Clara was already with her father when Adeline entered the room. She approached him, but fearing that he would confirm the bad news his expression seemed to signal, she looked at him meaningfully and sat down, unable to ask the question she longed to. He silently reached out his hand to her, sank back into his chair, and appeared to be fainting from the weight on his heart. His behavior confirmed all her fears; faced with this terrible realization, her senses failed her, and she sat there, motionless and in shock.

La Luc and Clara were too much occupied by their own distress to observe her situation; after some time she breathed a heavy sigh, and burst into tears. Relieved by weeping, her spirits gradually returned, and she at length said to La Luc, It is unnecessary, Sir, to ask the success of your journey; yet, when you can bear to mention the subject, I wish—

La Luc and Clara were too caught up in their own troubles to notice her situation; after a while, she let out a heavy sigh and started to cry. Feeling better after crying, her spirits slowly came back, and she finally said to La Luc, "There's no need to ask about how your trip went; however, when you're able to talk about it, I wish—

La Luc waved his hand—Alas! said he, I have nothing to tell but what you already guess too well. My poor Theodore!—His voice was convulsed with sorrow, and some moments of unutterable anguish followed.

La Luc waved his hand—Alas! he said, I have nothing to share but what you already know all too well. My poor Theodore!—His voice shook with grief, and moments of indescribable agony followed.

Adeline was the first who recovered sufficient recollection to notice the extreme languor of La Luc, and attend to his support. She ordered him refreshments, and entreated he would retire to his bed and suffer her to send for a physician; adding, that the fatigue he had suffered made repose absolutely necessary. Would that I could find it, my dear child! said he; it is not in this world that I must look for it, but in a better, and that better, I trust, I shall soon attain. But where is our good friend, Louis La Motte? He must lead me to my son.—Grief again interrupted his utterance, and the entrance of Louis was a very seasonable relief to them all. Their tears explained the question he would have asked. La Luc immediately inquired for his son; and thanking Louis for all his kindness to him, desired to be conducted to the prison. Louis endeavoured to persuade him to defer his visit till the morning, and Adeline and Clara joined their entreaties with his, but La Luc determined to go that night.—His time is short, said he; a few hours and I shall see him no more, at least in this world; let me not neglect these precious moments. Adeline! I had promised my poor boy that he should see you once more; you are not now equal to the meeting; I will try to reconcile him to the disappointment: but if I fail, and you are better in the morning, I know you will exert yourself to sustain the interview.—Adeline looked impatient, and attempted to speak. La Luc rose to depart, but could only reach the door of the room, where, faint and feeble, he sat down in a chair. I must submit to necessity, said he; I find I am not able to go further to-night. Go to him, La Motte, and tell him I am somewhat disordered by my journey, but that I will be with him early in the morning. Do not flatter him with a hope; prepare him for the worst.—There was a pause of silence. La Luc at length recovering himself, desired Clara would order his bed to be got ready, and she willingly obeyed. When he withdrew, Adeline told Louis, what was indeed unnecessary, the event of La Luc's journey. I own, continued she, that I had sometimes suffered myself to hope, and I now feel this calamity with double force: I fear too that M. La Luc will sink under its pressure; he is much altered for the worse since he set out for Paris. Tell me your opinion sincerely.

Adeline was the first to regain enough awareness to notice La Luc's extreme fatigue and to help him. She ordered him some refreshments and insisted he go to bed, allowing her to call for a doctor. She added that he needed rest after all he had been through. "I wish I could find it, my dear child!" he replied. "I won't find it in this world but in a better one, and I hope to reach that better place soon. But where is our good friend, Louis La Motte? He must take me to my son." Grief interrupted his speech again, and Louis's arrival provided timely relief for everyone. Their tears conveyed the question he wanted to ask. La Luc quickly inquired about his son and, thanking Louis for his kindness, asked to be taken to the prison. Louis tried to persuade him to wait until morning, and Adeline and Clara joined in his pleas, but La Luc insisted on going that night. "His time is short," he said. "In a few hours, I won't see him again, at least not in this world; I can’t waste these precious moments. Adeline! I promised my poor boy he would see you again; you aren’t well enough for the meeting now. I’ll try to prepare him for the disappointment, but if I fail and you feel better in the morning, I know you'll push yourself to handle the meeting." Adeline looked restless and attempted to speak. La Luc stood to leave but barely made it to the door of the room before sitting down in a chair, faint and weak. "I must face reality," he said. "I see I can't go any further tonight. Go to him, La Motte, and tell him I'm a bit unwell from my journey but that I’ll be with him early in the morning. Don’t give him false hope; prepare him for the worst." There was a moment of silence. Once La Luc gathered himself, he asked Clara to get his bed ready, and she quickly agreed. After he left, Adeline told Louis, which was clearly unnecessary, about La Luc's journey. "I admit," she continued, "that I sometimes let myself hope, and now I feel this disaster even more intensely: I worry that M. La Luc won't withstand this. He has changed drastically for the worse since he left for Paris. Please, give me your honest opinion."

The change was so obvious that Louis could not deny it; but he endeavoured to soothe her apprehension by ascribing this alteration, in a great measure, to the temporary fatigue of travelling. Adeline declared her resolution of accompanying La Luc to take leave of Theodore in the morning. I know not how I shall support the interview, said she; but to see him once more is a duty I owe both to him and myself. The remembrance of having neglected to give him this last proof of affection would pursue me with incessant remorse.

The change was so obvious that Louis couldn’t deny it; but he tried to calm her worries by attributing this shift, in large part, to the temporary fatigue from traveling. Adeline stated that she was determined to go with La Luc to say goodbye to Theodore in the morning. “I don’t know how I’ll handle the meeting,” she said; “but seeing him one last time is a duty I owe to both him and myself. The thought of not giving him this final proof of affection would haunt me with relentless guilt.”

After some further conversation on this subject Louis withdrew to the prison, ruminating on the best means of imparting to his friend the fatal intelligence he had to communicate. Theodore received it with more composure than he had expected; but he asked with impatience why he did not see his father and Adeline; and on being informed that indisposition withheld them, his imagination seized on the worst possibility, and suggested that his father was dead. It was a considerable time before Louis could convince him of the contrary, and that Adeline was not dangerously ill: when, however, he was assured that he should see them in the morning, he became more tranquil. He desired his friend would not leave him that night. These are the last hours we can pass together, added he; I cannot sleep! Stay with me and lighten their heavy moments. I have need of comfort, Louis. Young as I am, and held by such strong attachments, I cannot quit the world with resignation. I know not how to credit those stories we hear of philosophic fortitude; wisdom cannot teach us cheerfully to resign a good, and life in my circumstances is surely such.

After some more conversation on this topic, Louis went back to the prison, thinking about the best way to share the tragic news he had to tell his friend. Theodore took it better than he had expected; however, he urgently asked why he couldn’t see his father and Adeline. When Louis told him that they were unwell, Theodore's mind jumped to the worst conclusion, suggesting that his father was dead. It took Louis a considerable amount of time to convince him otherwise and to explain that Adeline wasn't critically ill. Once he was assured that he would see them in the morning, Theodore started to feel more at ease. He asked his friend not to leave him that night. “These are the last hours we can spend together," he added. "I can't sleep! Stay with me and lighten these heavy moments. I need comfort, Louis. Even though I’m young and have strong attachments, I can’t leave this world with peace. I don’t know how to believe those stories we hear about philosophical strength; wisdom can’t teach us to willingly give up something good, and my life, in this situation, is definitely one of those good things.”

The night was passed in embarrassed conversation; sometimes interrupted by long fits of silence, and sometimes by the paroxysms of despair; and the morning of that day which was to lead Theodore to death, at length dawned through the grates of his prison.

The night went by in awkward conversation, occasionally broken by long stretches of silence and sometimes by outbursts of despair. Finally, the morning of the day that would bring Theodore to his death broke through the bars of his prison.

La Luc meanwhile passed a sleepless and dreadful night. He prayed for fortitude and resignation both for himself and Theodore; but the pangs of nature were powerful in his heart, and not to be subdued. The idea of his lamented wife, and of what she would have suffered had she lived to witness the ignominious death which awaited her son, frequently occurred to him.

La Luc, meanwhile, spent a sleepless and terrible night. He prayed for strength and acceptance for both himself and Theodore; but the pain in his heart was intense and couldn’t be ignored. He often thought about his beloved wife and what she would have endured if she had lived to see the disgraceful death that awaited her son.

It seemed as if a destiny had hung over the life of Theodore; for it is probable that the king might have granted the petition of the unhappy father, had it not happened that the Marquis de Montalt was present at court when the paper was presented. The appearance and singular distress of the petitioner had interested the monarch, and, instead of putting by the paper, he opened it. As he threw his eyes over it, observing that the criminal was of the Marquis de Montalt's regiment, he turned to him and inquired the nature of the offence for which the culprit was about to suffer. The answer was such as might have been expected from the Marquis, and the king was convinced that Theodore was not a proper object of mercy.

It felt like destiny was looming over Theodore's life; because it's likely that the king would have granted the plea of the distressed father if the Marquis de Montalt hadn't been at court when the request was submitted. The petitioner’s unusual appearance and deep sadness caught the king’s attention, and instead of dismissing the request, he opened the document. As he glanced through it and noticed that the accused was part of the Marquis de Montalt's regiment, he turned to him and asked about the nature of the crime for which the person was about to be punished. The response was what one would expect from the Marquis, and the king was convinced that Theodore was not worthy of mercy.

But to return to La Luc, who was called, according to his order, at a very early hour. Having passed some time in prayer, he went down to the parlour, where Louis, punctual to the moment, already waited to conduct him to the prison. He appeared calm and collected, but his countenance was impressed with a fixed despair that sensibly affected his young friend. While they waited for Adeline he spoke little, and seemed struggling to attain the fortitude necessary to support him through the approaching scene. Adeline not appearing, he at length sent to hasten her, and was told she had been ill, but was recovering. She had indeed passed a night of such agitation, that her frame had sunk under it, and she was now endeavouring to recover strength and composure sufficient to sustain her in this dreadful hour. Every moment that brought her nearer to it had increased her emotion, and the apprehension of being prevented seeing Theodore had alone enabled her to struggle against the united pressure of illness and grief.

But to return to La Luc, who was called, according to his schedule, at a very early hour. After spending some time in prayer, he went down to the parlor, where Louis, always punctual, was already waiting to take him to the prison. He appeared calm and collected, but his face showed a deep despair that clearly affected his young friend. As they waited for Adeline, he spoke little and seemed to be struggling to find the strength needed to support himself through the upcoming scene. When Adeline didn’t arrive, he eventually sent someone to hurry her along and was informed that she had been ill but was recovering. She had in fact spent a night so restless that her body had weakened, and she was now trying to regain enough strength and composure to face this terrible hour. With every moment that brought her closer to it, her emotions heightened, and the fear of being unable to see Theodore was the only thing that helped her withstand the combined weight of illness and grief.

She now, with Clara, joined La Luc, who advanced as they entered the room, and took a hand of each in silence. After some moments he proposed to go, and they stepped into a carriage which conveyed them to the gates of the prison. The crowd had already begun to assemble there, and a confused murmur arose as the carriage moved forward; it was a grievous sight to the friends of Theodore. Louis supported Adeline when she alighted, she was scarcely able to walk, and with trembling steps she followed La Luc, whom the keeper led towards that part of the prison where his son was confined. It was now eight o'clock, the sentence was not to be executed till twelve, but a guard of soldiers was already placed in the court; and as this unhappy party passed along the narrow avenues, they were met by several officers who had been to take a last farewell of Theodore. As they ascended the stairs that led to his apartment. La Luc's ear caught the clink of chains, and heard him walking above with a quick irregular step. The unhappy father, overcome by the moment which now pressed upon him, stopped, and was obliged to support himself by the bannister. Louis fearing the consequence of his grief might be fatal, shattered as his frame already was, would have gone for assistance, but he made a sign to him to stay, I am better, said La Luc; O God! support me through this hour!—and in a few minutes he was able to proceed.

She now joined Clara and La Luc, who moved forward as they entered the room and took each of their hands in silence. After a few moments, he suggested they leave, and they got into a carriage that took them to the prison gates. A crowd had begun to gather there, and a confused murmur arose as the carriage moved ahead; it was a painful sight for Theodore's friends. Louis helped Adeline as she got out; she could barely walk, and with trembling steps, she followed La Luc, who the guard led toward the part of the prison where his son was held. It was now eight o'clock, and the sentence wouldn’t be carried out until twelve, but a guard of soldiers was already stationed in the courtyard; as this unfortunate group walked through the narrow paths, they encountered several officers who had come to say a final goodbye to Theodore. As they climbed the stairs to his cell, La Luc heard the clinking of chains and sensed him walking above with an unsteady, quick pace. The devastated father, overwhelmed by the moment pressing upon him, paused and had to lean on the handrail for support. Louis, fearing that his grief could be fatal given his already fragile state, considered going for help, but La Luc signaled for him to stay. “I’m okay,” La Luc said; “Oh God! Support me through this hour!”—and in a few minutes, he was able to move on.

As the warder unlocked the door, the harsh grating of the key shocked Adeline, but in the next moment she was in the presence of Theodore, who sprung to meet her, and caught her in his arms before she sunk to the ground. As her head reclined on his shoulder, he again viewed that countenance so dear to him, which had so often lighted rapture in his heart, and which, though pale and inanimate as it now was, awakened him to momentary delight. When at length she unclosed her eyes, she fixed them in long and mournful gaze upon Theodore, who pressing her to his heart could answer her only with a smile of mingled tenderness and despair; the tears he endeavoured to restrain trembled in his eyes, and he forgot for a time every thing but Adeline. La Luc, who had seated himself at the foot of the bed, seemed unconscious of what passed around him, and entirely absorbed in his own grief; but Clara, as she clasped the hand of her brother and hung weeping on his arm, expressed aloud all the anguish of her heart, and at length recalled the attention of Adeline, who in a voice scarcely audible entreated she would spare her father. Her words roused Theodore, and supporting Adeline to a chair, he turned to La Luc. My dear child! said La Luc, grasping his hand and bursting into tears, my dear child! They wept together. After a long interval of silence, he said, I thought I could have supported this hour, but I am old and feeble. God knows my efforts for resignation, my faith in his goodness.

As the guard unlocked the door, the harsh sound of the key startled Adeline, but in an instant, she was in front of Theodore, who rushed to her and caught her in his arms before she fell to the ground. As her head rested on his shoulder, he looked at her beloved face, which had so often brought joy to his heart. Even though it was now pale and lifeless, it still brought him a flicker of happiness. When she finally opened her eyes, she gazed at Theodore with a long, sorrowful look. He held her tightly, responding only with a smile filled with both tenderness and despair; tears that he tried to hold back shimmered in his eyes, and for a moment, he forgot everything but Adeline. La Luc, who had sat down at the foot of the bed, seemed unaware of what was happening around him, completely lost in his grief. But Clara, clasping her brother’s hand and leaning on his arm in tears, voiced all the anguish in her heart, ultimately drawing Adeline’s attention. In a barely audible voice, Adeline pleaded for her to spare her father. Her words jolted Theodore back to reality, and after helping Adeline to a chair, he turned to La Luc. “My dear child!” La Luc said, taking his hand and bursting into tears, “my dear child!” They wept together. After a long pause, he said, “I thought I could handle this hour, but I am old and weak. God knows my efforts to accept this, my faith in His goodness.”

Theodore by a strong and sudden exertion assumed a composed and firm countenance, and endeavoured by every gentle argument to soothe and comfort his weeping friends. La Luc at length seemed to conquer his sufferings; drying his eyes, he said, My son, I ought to have set you a better example, and have practised the precepts of fortitude I have so often given you. But it is over; I know and will perform my duty. Adeline breathed a heavy sigh, and continued to weep. Be comforted, my love, we part but for a time, said Theodore as he kissed the tears from her cheek; and uniting her hand with that of his father's, he earnestly recommended her to his protection. Receive her, added he, as the most precious legacy I can bequeath; consider her as your child: she will console you when I am gone, she will more than supply the loss of your son.

Theodore made a strong effort to appear calm and composed, and he tried every gentle way to comfort his crying friends. Finally, La Luc seemed to overcome his pain; wiping his eyes, he said, "My son, I should have set a better example for you and followed the principles of courage that I’ve often taught you. But it’s over now; I know what I need to do and I will do it." Adeline let out a heavy sigh and kept crying. "Be comforted, my love; we are parting only for a while," Theodore said as he kissed the tears off her cheek, and joining her hand with his father's, he earnestly urged him to look after her. "Take her, as the most precious gift I can leave you; treat her as your own child. She will bring you comfort when I’m gone, and she will more than make up for the loss of your son."

La Luc assured him that he did now, and should continue to regard Adeline as his daughter. During those afflicting hours he endeavoured to dissipate the terrors of approaching death by inspiring his son with religious confidence. His conversation was pious, rational, and consolatory; he spoke not from the cold dictates of the head, but from the feelings of a heart which had long loved and practised the pure precepts of Christianity, and which now drew from them a comfort such as nothing earthly could bestow.

La Luc assured him that he did now, and would continue to see Adeline as his daughter. During those painful hours, he tried to ease the fears of impending death by instilling his son with faith. His conversation was spiritual, thoughtful, and comforting; he spoke not from the detached reasoning of the mind, but from the emotions of a heart that had long loved and followed the true teachings of Christianity, and which now found solace in them that nothing earthly could provide.

You are young, my son, said he, and are yet innocent of any great crime; you may therefore look on death without terror, for to the guilty only is his approach dreadful. I feel that I shall not long survive you, and I trust in a merciful God that we shall meet in a state where sorrow never comes; where the Sun of Righteousness shall arise with healing on his wings! As he spoke he looked up; the tears still trembled in his eyes, which beamed with meek yet fervent devotion, and his countenance glowed with the dignity of a superior being.

"You’re still young, my son," he said, "and you haven’t committed any major sins yet; so you can face death without fear. It’s only the guilty who find his approach terrifying. I sense that I won’t be around much longer, and I trust in a merciful God that we will reunite in a place where sorrow doesn’t exist; where the Sun of Righteousness shall arise with healing on his wings! As he spoke, he looked up; tears still hovered in his eyes, which shone with gentle yet passionate devotion, and his face radiated the dignity of a higher being."

Let us not neglect the awful moments, said La Luc rising, let our united prayers ascend to Him who alone can comfort and support us! They all knelt down, and he prayed with that simple and sublime eloquence which true piety inspires. When he arose he embraced his children separately, and when he came to Theodore he paused, gazed upon him with an earnest, mournful expression, and was for some time unable to speak. Theodore could not bear this; he drew his hand before his eyes, and vainly endeavoured to stifle the deep sobs which convulsed his frame. At length recovering his voice, he entreated his father would leave him. This misery is too much for us all, said he, let us not prolong it. The time is now drawing on—leave me to compose myself; the sharpness of death consists in parting with those who are dear to us; when that is passed death is disarmed.

“Let’s not ignore the terrible moments,” La Luc said as he stood up. “Let our combined prayers rise to Him who alone can comfort and support us!” They all knelt down, and he prayed with that simple and profound eloquence that true faith brings. When he stood up, he hugged each of his children individually, and when he got to Theodore, he stopped and looked at him with a serious, sad expression, unable to speak for a while. Theodore couldn’t handle this; he covered his face with his hand and tried in vain to hold back the deep sobs shaking his body. Finally finding his voice, he begged his father to leave him alone. “This suffering is too much for all of us,” he said. “Let’s not drag it out. The time is drawing near—just let me gather myself; the pain of death partly comes from saying goodbye to those we love; once that's over, death loses its sting.”

I will not leave you, my son, replied La Luc; my poor girls shall go, but for me, I will be with you in your last moments. Theodore felt that this would be too much for them both, and urged every argument which reason could suggest to prevail with his father to relinquish his design: but he remained firm in his determination. I will not suffer a selfish consideration of the pain I may endure, said La Luc, to tempt me to desert my child when he will most require my support. It is my duty to attend you, and nothing shall withhold me.

"I won’t leave you, my son," La Luc replied. "My poor girls can go, but I’ll be by your side in your final moments." Theodore realized this would be overwhelming for both of them, and he tried to reason with his father, urging him to give up his decision. But La Luc stayed resolute. "I won’t let my own pain persuade me to abandon my child when he needs my support the most. It’s my duty to be here for you, and nothing will stop me."

Theodore seized on the words of La Luc—As you would that I should be supported in my last hour, said he, I entreat that you will not be witness of it. Your presence, my dear father, would subdue all my fortitude—would destroy what little composure I may otherwise be able to attain. Add not to my sufferings the view of your distress, but leave me to forget, if possible, the dear parent I must quit for ever. His tears flowed anew. La Luc continued to gaze on him in silent agony. At length he said, Well, be it so. If indeed my presence would distress you, I will not go. His voice was broken and interrupted. After a pause of some moments he again embraced Theodore—We must part, said he, we must part, but it is only for a time—we shall soon be reunited in a higher world!—O God! thou seest my heart—thou seest all its feelings in this bitter hour!—Grief again overcame him. He pressed Theodore in his arms: and at length seeming to summon all his fortitude, he again said, Wemust part—Oh! my son, farewell for ever in this world!—The mercy of Almighty God support and bless you!

Theodore clung to La Luc's words—"As you would wish me to be supported in my final moments," he said, "I beg you not to witness it. Your presence, dear father, would break my strength—would shatter any composure I might manage to find. Don’t add to my pain by showing your distress; let me forget, if I can, the beloved parent I must leave behind forever." Tears streamed down his face again. La Luc continued to watch him in silent anguish. Finally, he said, "Alright, if my presence would upset you, I won’t stay." His voice was shaky and halting. After a moment's pause, he embraced Theodore once more—"We must part," he said, "we must part, but it's only for a little while—we will be together again in a better place!—O God! you see my heart—you see all its feelings in this painful moment!" Grief overcame him again. He held Theodore tightly in his arms, and finally summoning all his strength, he said again, "We must part—Oh! my son, farewell forever in this life!—May the mercy of Almighty God support and bless you!"

He turned away to leave the prison, but quite worn out with grief, sunk into a chair near the door he would have opened. Theodore gazed, with a distracted countenance, alternately on his father, on Clara, and on Adeline, whom he pressed to his throbbing heart, and their tears flowed together. And do I then, cried he, for the last time look upon that countenance!—Shall I never—never more behold it?—O! exquisite misery! Yet once again—once more, continued he, pressing her cheek; but it was insensible and cold as marble.

He turned away to leave the prison, but completely worn out with grief, he sank into a chair near the door he had intended to open. Theodore gazed with a distracted expression, looking back and forth between his father, Clara, and Adeline, whom he pressed to his pounding heart, and their tears mingled. And do I then, he cried, for the last time look upon that face! —Will I never — never again see it? —Oh! exquisite misery! Yet once more — once again, he said, pressing her cheek; but it was unfeeling and cold as marble.

Louis, who had left the room soon after La Luc arrived, that his presence might not interrupt their farewell grief, now returned. Adeline raised her head, and perceiving who entered, it again sunk on the bosom of Theodore.

Louis, who had left the room shortly after La Luc arrived to avoid interrupting their farewell sorrow, came back. Adeline lifted her head, and seeing who had entered, it fell back onto Theodore's chest.

Louis appeared much agitated. La Luc arose. We must go, said he; Adeline, my love, exert yourself—Clara—my children, let us depart.—Yet one last—last embrace, and then!——Louis advanced and took his hand; My dear Sir, I have something to say; yet I fear to tell it.—What do you mean? said La Luc with quickness: no new misfortune can have power to afflict me at this moment; do not fear to speak.—I rejoice that I cannot put you to the proof, replied Louis; I have seen you sustain the most trying affliction with fortitude. Can you support the transports of hope?—La Luc gazed eagerly on Louis—Speak! said he, in a faint voice. Adeline raised her head, and, trembling between hope and fear, looked as if she would have searched his soul. He smiled cheerfully upon her. Is it—O! is it possible! she exclaimed, suddenly reanimated—He lives! He lives!—She said no more, but ran to La Luc, who sunk fainting in his chair, while Theodore and Clara with one voice called on Louis to relieve them from the tortures of suspense.

Louis looked very anxious. La Luc stood up. “We have to go,” he said; “Adeline, my love, pull yourself together—Clara—my children, let’s leave. But one last—last embrace, and then!” Louis stepped forward and took his hand. “My dear Sir, I have something to say; but I’m afraid to tell you.” “What do you mean?” La Luc asked quickly. “No new misfortune can hurt me at this moment; don’t hesitate to speak.” “I’m glad I can’t put you to the test,” Louis replied; “I’ve seen you endure the toughest suffering with strength. Can you handle the rush of hope?” La Luc stared intently at Louis. “Speak!” he urged in a weak voice. Adeline lifted her head, trembling between hope and fear, as if she were trying to read his mind. He smiled warmly at her. “Is it—oh! is it possible?” she exclaimed, suddenly revitalized. “He lives! He lives!” She said nothing more but ran to La Luc, who fainted in his chair, while Theodore and Clara together called on Louis to free them from the torture of uncertainty.

He proceeded to inform them that he had obtained from the commanding officer a respite for Theodore till the king's further pleasure could be known, and this in consequence of a letter received that morning from his mother, Madame de La Motte, in which she mentioned some very extraordinary circumstances that had appeared in the course of a trial lately conducted at Paris, and which so materially affected the character of the Marquis de Montalt as to render it possible a pardon might be obtained for Theodore.

He told them that he had gotten a temporary stay for Theodore from the commanding officer until the king decided what to do next. This was due to a letter he received that morning from Theodore's mother, Madame de La Motte, in which she mentioned some very unusual circumstances that came up during a trial recently held in Paris, which significantly impacted the reputation of the Marquis de Montalt and made it possible for Theodore to potentially receive a pardon.

These words darted with the rapidity of lightning upon the hearts of his hearers. La Luc revived, and that prison so lately the scene of despair now echoed only to the voices of gratitude and gladness. La Luc, raising his clasped hands to heaven, said, Great God! support me in this moment as thou hast already supported me!—If my son lives, I die in peace.

These words struck the hearts of his listeners like a bolt of lightning. La Luc came back to life, and the prison that had recently been a place of despair now resonated with voices of gratitude and joy. La Luc, raising his hands in prayer to the heavens, said, "Great God! Support me in this moment as you have already done! If my son is alive, I can die in peace."

He embraced Theodore, and remembering the anguish of his last embrace, tears of thankfulness and joy flowed to the contrast. So powerful indeed was the effect of this temporary reprieve, and of the hope it introduced, that if an absolute pardon had been obtained, it could scarcely for the moment have diffused a more lively joy. But when the first emotions were subsided, the uncertainty of Theodore's fate once more appeared. Adeline forbore to express this; but Clara without scruple lamented the possibility that her brother might yet be taken from them, and all their joy be turned to sorrow. A look from Adeline checked her. Joy was, however, so much the predominant feeling of the present moment, that the shade which reflection threw upon their hopes passed away like the cloud that is dispelled by the strength of the sunbeam; and Louis alone was pensive and abstracted.

He hugged Theodore, and remembering the pain of their last hug, tears of gratitude and joy flowed in contrast. The impact of this brief relief and the hope it brought was so strong that even if they had received a full pardon, it wouldn't have sparked a more intense joy at that moment. But when the initial excitement faded, the uncertainty of Theodore's fate resurfaced. Adeline held back from saying anything; however, Clara openly mourned the possibility that her brother might still be taken from them, turning all their joy into sorrow. A glance from Adeline stopped her. Still, joy was the dominant feeling in that moment, so the shadow that reflection cast over their hopes faded away like a cloud dissipating in a strong beam of sunlight; only Louis remained thoughtful and lost in his own world.

When they were sufficiently composed, he informed them that the contents of Madame de La Motte's letter obliged him to set out for Paris immediately; and that the intelligence he had to communicate intimately concerned Adeline, who would undoubtedly judge it necessary to go thither also as soon as her health would permit. He then read to his impatient auditors such passages in the letter as were necessary to explain his meaning; but as Madame de La Motte had omitted to mention some circumstances of importance to be understood, the following is a relation of the occurrences that had lately happened at Paris.

When they were calm enough, he told them that the contents of Madame de La Motte's letter required him to leave for Paris right away; and that the information he had to share was closely related to Adeline, who would certainly find it necessary to go there as soon as her health allowed. He then read to his eager listeners the parts of the letter needed to clarify his point; but since Madame de La Motte had left out some important details, here’s a summary of the events that had recently taken place in Paris.

It may be remembered that on the first day of his trial, La Motte, in passing from the courts to his prison, saw a person whose features, though imperfectly seen through the dusk, he thought he recollected; and that this same person, after inquiring the name of La Motte, desired to be admitted to him. On the following day the warder complied with his request, and the surprise of La Motte may be imagined when in the stronger light of his apartment, he distinguished the countenance of the man, from whose hands he had formerly received Adeline.

It might be recalled that on the first day of his trial, La Motte, while walking from the courthouse to his cell, noticed someone whose features he thought he recognized, even though it was hard to see in the dim light. This same person, after asking La Motte's name, wanted to be let in to see him. The next day, the guard granted this request, and La Motte's shock can be imagined when, in the brighter light of his room, he recognized the face of the man who had once handed Adeline to him.

On observing Madame de La Motte in the room, he said he had something of consequence to impart, and desired to be left alone with the prisoner. When she was gone, he told De La Motte that he understood he was confined at the suit of the Marquis de Montalt. La Motte assented.—I know him for a villain, said the stranger boldly. Your case is desperate. Do you wish for life?

On seeing Madame de La Motte in the room, he said he had something important to share and wanted to be alone with the prisoner. Once she left, he told De La Motte that he knew he was locked up at the request of the Marquis de Montalt. La Motte agreed. "I know him to be a scoundrel," said the stranger confidently. "Your situation is hopeless. Do you want to live?"

Need the question be asked?

Does the question need to be asked?

Your trial, I understand proceeds to-morrow. I am now under confinement in this place for debt; but if you can obtain leave for me to go with you into the courts, and a condition from the judge that what I reveal shall not criminate myself, I will make discoveries that shall confound that same Marquis; I will prove him a villain; and it shall then be judged how far his word ought to be taken against you.

Your trial, I understand, is tomorrow. I'm currently locked up here for debt; but if you can get permission for me to go with you to the courts, and a condition from the judge that anything I say won't be used against me, I'll make revelations that will completely shock that same Marquis; I'll prove him to be a villain; and then it will be determined how much credibility his word should have against you.

La Motte, whose interest was now strongly excited, desired he would explain himself; and the man proceeded to relate a long history of the misfortunes and consequent poverty which had tempted him to become subservient to the schemes of the Marquis, till he suddenly checked himself, and said. When I obtain from the court the promise I require, I will explain myself fully; till then, I cannot say more on the subject.

La Motte, whose interest was now piqued, asked him to explain himself. The man began to share a lengthy story about the misfortunes and resulting poverty that had led him to follow the Marquis's plans, but then he suddenly paused and said, "Once I get the promise I need from the court, I will explain everything. Until then, I can't say more on the subject."

La Motte could not forbear expressing a doubt of his sincerity, and a curiosity concerning the motive that had induced him to become the Marquis's accuser.—As to my motive, it is a very natural one, replied the man: it is no easy matter to receive ill usage without resenting it, particularly from a villain whom you have served.—La Motte, for his own sake, endeavoured to check the vehemence with which this was uttered. I care not who hears me continued the stranger, but at the same time he lowered his voice; I repeat it—the Marquis has used me ill—I have kept his secret long enough: he does not think it worth while to secure my silence, or he would relieve my necessities. I am in prison for debt, and have applied to him for relief; since he does not choose to give it, let him take the consequence. I warrant he shall soon repent that he has provoked me, and 'tis fit he should.

La Motte couldn't help but express doubt about the man's honesty and felt curious about why he had chosen to accuse the Marquis. "As for my reason, it's pretty straightforward," the man replied. "It's not easy to put up with mistreatment without responding, especially from a scoundrel you've helped." La Motte, thinking of his own interests, tried to calm the intensity in the man’s voice. "I don’t care who hears me," the stranger continued, but he lowered his voice, "I’ll say it again—the Marquis has treated me poorly. I've kept his secret long enough; he doesn’t think it’s worth it to ensure my silence, or he’d help me out. I’m in prison for debt and have asked him for assistance; since he doesn’t want to offer it, he can deal with the fallout. I guarantee he'll soon regret provoking me, and he deserves to."

The doubts of La Motte were now dissipated; the prospect of life again opened upon him, and he assured Du Bosse (which was the stranger's name) with much warmth, that he would commission his advocate to do all in his power to obtain leave for his appearance on the trial, and to procure the necessary condition. After some further conversation they parted.

The doubts of La Motte were now gone; the possibility of life had opened up for him again, and he confidently assured Du Bosse (which was the stranger's name) with great enthusiasm that he would ask his lawyer to do everything possible to secure permission for him to appear at the trial and to get the necessary conditions. After a little more conversation, they said their goodbyes.







CHAPTER XXII

Bring the legal monster into the open,
Snatch the iron rod of oppression from his hand,
And make the cruel experience the pain they cause.

Leave was at length granted for the appearance of Du Bosse, with a promise that his words should not criminate him, and he accompanied La Motte into court.

Leave was finally granted for Du Bosse to appear, with the assurance that his words wouldn't be used against him, and he went into court with La Motte.

The confusion of the Marquis de Montalt on perceiving this man was observed by many persons present, and particularly by La Motte, who drew from this circumstance a favourable presage for himself.

The confusion of the Marquis de Montalt upon seeing this man was noticed by several people there, especially by La Motte, who took this as a good sign for himself.

When Du Bosse was called upon, he informed the court, that on the night of the twenty-first of April, in the preceding year, one Jean D'Aunoy, a man he had known many years, came to his lodging. After they had discoursed for some time on their circumstances, D'Aunoy said he knew a way by which Du Bosse might change all his poverty to riches, but that he would not say more till he was certain he would be willing to follow it. The distressed state in which Du Bosse then was, made him anxious to learn the means which would bring him relief; he eagerly inquired what his friend meant, and after some time D'Aunoy explained himself. He said he was employed by a nobleman (who he afterwards told Du Bosse was the Marquis de Montalt) to carry off a young girl from a convent, and that she was to be taken to a house a few leagues distant from Paris. I knew the house he described well, said Du Bosse, for I had been there many times with D'Aunoy, who lived there to avoid his creditors, though he often passed his nights at Paris. He would not tell me more of the scheme, but said he should want assistants, and if I and my brother, who is since dead, would join him, his employer would grudge no money, and we should be well rewarded. I desired him again to tell me more of the plan, but he was obstinate; and after I had told him I would consider of what he said, and speak to my brother, he went away.

When Du Bosse was called to the stand, he told the court that on the night of April 21st of the previous year, a man named Jean D'Aunoy, whom he had known for many years, came to his place. After chatting for a while about their situations, D'Aunoy mentioned that he knew a way for Du Bosse to turn all his poverty into wealth, but he wouldn’t share the details until he was sure Du Bosse would be willing to pursue it. Given Du Bosse's desperate situation at the time, he was eager to find out how he could get relief and asked his friend what he meant. After some back and forth, D'Aunoy finally explained. He said he was hired by a nobleman (who he later revealed to be the Marquis de Montalt) to snatch a young girl from a convent, and she was to be taken to a house just a few miles from Paris. “I know that house well,” Du Bosse said, “because I had been there many times with D'Aunoy, who lived there to escape his creditors, although he often spent his nights in Paris.” D'Aunoy wouldn't reveal more about the plan but said he would need help, and if my brother (who has since passed away) and I joined him, his employer would be generous with money and we would be well rewarded. I asked him again to share more about the plan, but he was stubborn; after telling him that I would think about what he said and talk to my brother, he left.

When he called the next night for his answer, my brother and I agreed to engage, and accordingly we went home with him. He then told us that the young lady he was to bring thither was a natural daughter of the Marquis de Montalt and of a nun belonging to a convent of Ursulines; that his wife had received the child immediately on its birth, and had been allowed a handsome annuity to bring it up as her own, which she had done till her death. The child was then placed in a convent and designed for the veil; but when she was of an age to receive the vows, she had steadily persisted in refusing them. This circumstance had so much exasperated the Marquis, that in his rage he ordered that if she persisted in her obstinacy she should be removed from the convent, and got rid of any way; since if she lived in the world her birth might be discovered, and in consequence of this, her mother, for whom he had yet a regard, would be condemned to expiate her crime by a terrible death.

When he called the next night for his answer, my brother and I agreed to go along, so we went home with him. He then told us that the young lady he was bringing was the illegitimate daughter of the Marquis de Montalt and a nun from a convent of Ursulines; that his wife had taken the child in right after her birth and had received a generous allowance to raise her as her own, which she did until she died. After that, the child was placed in a convent and was meant to take her vows, but when she was of age, she consistently refused to do so. This made the Marquis so furious that in his rage, he ordered that if she continued to be stubborn, she should be taken out of the convent and disposed of by any means necessary; because if she lived in the outside world, her true parentage could be revealed, which would lead to her mother, whom he still cared about, facing a horrific punishment for her crime.

Du Bosse was interrupted in his narrative by the counsel of the Marquis, who contended that the circumstances alleged tending to criminate his client, the proceeding was both irrelevant and illegal. He was answered that it was not irrelevant, and therefore not illegal; for that the circumstances which threw light upon the character of the Marquis, affected his evidence against La Motte. Du Bosse was suffered to proceed.

Du Bosse was interrupted in his story by the Marquis's lawyer, who argued that the evidence being presented to accuse his client was both irrelevant and unlawful. He was told that it was neither irrelevant nor illegal; instead, the details that shed light on the character of the Marquis had an impact on his testimony against La Motte. Du Bosse was allowed to continue.

D'Aunoy then said that the Marquis had ordered him to dispatch her, but that, as he had been used to see her from her infancy, he could not find in his heart to do it, and wrote to tell him so. The Marquis then commanded him to find those who would, and this was the business for which he wanted us. My brother and I were not so wicked as this came to, and so we told D'Aunoy; and I could not help asking why the Marquis resolved to murder his own child rather than expose her mother to the risque of suffering death. He said the Marquis had never seen his child and that, therefore, it could not be supposed he felt much kindness towards it, and still less that he could love it better than he loved its mother.

D'Aunoy then said that the Marquis had ordered him to get rid of her, but since he had known her since she was a baby, he couldn't bring himself to do it and wrote to tell the Marquis so. The Marquis then ordered him to find someone who would, and that's why he needed us. My brother and I weren't as heartless as that, so we told D'Aunoy. I couldn't help but ask why the Marquis chose to kill his own child instead of risking his mother's life. He said the Marquis had never met his child, so it was unlikely he felt any affection for her, and even less likely that he could love her more than he loved her mother.

Du Bosse proceeded to relate how much he and his brother had endeavoured to soften the heart of D'Aunoy towards the Marquis's daughter, and that they prevailed with him to write again and plead for her. D'Aunoy went to Paris to await the answer, leaving them and the young girl at the house on the heath, where the former had consented to remain, seemingly for the purpose of executing the orders they might receive, but really with a design to save the unhappy victim from the sacrifice.

Du Bosse went on to explain how much he and his brother had tried to win D'Aunoy's sympathy for the Marquis's daughter, and that they managed to convince him to write again and appeal on her behalf. D'Aunoy went to Paris to wait for a reply, leaving them and the young girl at the house on the heath, where he had agreed to stay, apparently to carry out whatever orders they might get, but really with the intention of saving the unfortunate girl from her fate.

It is probable that Du Bosse, in this instance, gave a false account of his motive; since, if he was really guilty of an intention so atrocious as that of murder, he would naturally endeavour to conceal it. However this might be, he affirmed, that on the night of the twenty-sixth of April, he received an order from D'Aunoy for the destruction of the girl, whom he had afterwards delivered into the hands of La Motte.

It’s likely that Du Bosse was not honest about his reasons; if he truly had the awful intention of murder, he would try to hide it. Regardless, he claimed that on the night of April 26th, he got an order from D'Aunoy to kill the girl, whom he later handed over to La Motte.

La Motte listened to this relation in astonishment; when he knew that Adeline was the daughter of the Marquis, and remembered the crime to which he had once devoted her, his frame thrilled with horror. He now took up the story, and added an account of what had passed at the abbey between the Marquis and himself, concerning a design of the former upon the life of Adeline, and urged, as a proof of the present prosecution originating in malice, that it had commenced immediately after he had effected her escape from the Marquis. He concluded, however, with saying, that as the Marquis had immediately sent his people in pursuit of her, it was possible she might yet have fallen a victim to his vengeance.

La Motte listened to this account in shock; when he realized that Adeline was the daughter of the Marquis, and remembered the crime he had once committed against her, he was filled with horror. He then continued the story, sharing what had happened at the abbey between the Marquis and him regarding the Marquis's plan to harm Adeline, and argued that the current lawsuit was driven by spite, as it had started right after he had helped her escape from the Marquis. He ended by saying that since the Marquis had immediately sent his men after her, it was possible she might still have fallen victim to his revenge.

Here the Marquis's counsel again interfered, and their objections were again overruled by the court. The uncommon degree of emotion which his countenance betrayed during the narrations of Du Bosse and De La Motte was generally observed. The court suspended the sentence of the latter, ordered that the Marquis should be put under immediate arrest, and that Adeline (the name given by her fostermother) and Jean D'Aunoy should be sought for.

Here, the Marquis's lawyer stepped in again, and their objections were once more dismissed by the court. People generally noticed the unusual level of emotion on his face during Du Bosse and De La Motte's accounts. The court postponed the sentencing of the latter, ordered the immediate arrest of the Marquis, and instructed that Adeline (the name given to her by her foster mother) and Jean D'Aunoy should be located.

The Marquis was accordingly seized at the suit of the crown, and put under confinement till Adeline should appear, or proof could be obtained that she died by his order; and till D'Aunoy should confirm or destroy the evidence of De La Motte.

The Marquis was accordingly taken into custody at the request of the crown and kept in confinement until Adeline appeared, or until proof could be found that she died on his orders; and until D'Aunoy could confirm or disprove the evidence provided by De La Motte.

Madame, who at length obtained intelligence of her son's residence from the town where he was formerly stationed, had acquainted him with his father's situation, and the proceedings of the trial; and as she believed that Adeline, if she had been so fortunate as to escape the Marquis's pursuit, was still in Savoy, she desired Louis would obtain leave of absence, and bring her to Paris, where her immediate presence was requisite to substantiate the evidence, and probably to save the life of La Motte.

Madame, who finally learned about her son's whereabouts from the town where he used to be stationed, informed him of his father's situation and the trial's developments. She believed that Adeline, if she had managed to escape the Marquis's pursuit, was still in Savoy. She asked Louis to get permission for leave and bring her to Paris, where her presence was essential to support the evidence and likely to save La Motte's life.

On the receipt of her letter, which happened on the morning appointed for the execution of Theodore, Louis went immediately to the commanding officer to petition for a respite till the king's further pleasure should be known. He founded his plea on the arrest of the Marquis, and showed the letter he had just received. The commanding officer readily granted a reprieve; and Louis, who, on the arrival of this letter had forborne to communicate its contents to Theodore, lest it should torture him with false hope, now hastened to him with this comfortable news.

Upon receiving her letter, which arrived on the morning scheduled for Theodore's execution, Louis immediately went to the commanding officer to request a delay until the king's decision was known. He based his request on the arrest of the Marquis and showed the letter he had just received. The commanding officer quickly granted a reprieve; and Louis, who had chosen not to share the letter's contents with Theodore to avoid giving him false hope, now rushed to him with this reassuring news.







CHAPTER XXIII

He lies low on his funeral couch!
No sympathetic heart, no eye, offers
A tear for his funeral.
GRAY.

On learning the purport of Madame de La Motte's letter, Adeline saw the necessity of her immediate departure for Paris. The life of La Motte, who had more than saved hers, the life perhaps of her beloved Theodore, depended on the testimony she should give. And she who had so lately been sinking under the influence of illness and despair, who could scarcely raise her languid head, or speak but in the faintest accents, now reanimated with hope, and invigorated by a sense of the importance of the business before her, prepared to perform a rapid journey of some hundred miles.

On hearing what Madame de La Motte's letter meant, Adeline realized she had to leave for Paris right away. The life of La Motte, who had more than saved her own, and possibly the life of her beloved Theodore, depended on the testimony she needed to give. Just recently, she had been struggling under the weight of illness and despair, barely able to lift her tired head or speak above a whisper. Now, filled with hope and motivated by the urgency of what lay ahead, she got ready to make a quick trip of about a hundred miles.

Theodore tenderly entreated that she would so far consider her health as to delay this journey for a few days: but with a smile of enchanting tenderness she assured him, that she was now too happy to be ill, and that the same cause which would confirm her happiness would confirm her health. So strong was the effect of hope upon her mind, now that it succeeded to the misery of despair, that it overcame the shock she suffered on believing herself a daughter of the Marquis, and every other painful reflection. She did not even foresee the obstacle that circumstance might produce to her union with Theodore, should he at last be permitted to live.

Theodore gently asked her to think about her health and postpone the trip for a few days, but with a smile that radiated warmth, she reassured him that she felt too happy to be unwell, and that the same reason for her happiness would also ensure her health. The power of hope had such a strong effect on her mind, replacing the sorrow of despair, that it made her overlook the shock of believing she was the daughter of the Marquis, along with any other painful thoughts. She didn’t even consider the obstacles that situation might create for her relationship with Theodore, if he were eventually allowed to live.

It was settled that she should set off for Paris in a few hours with Louis, and attended by Peter. These hours were passed by La Luc and his family in the prison.

It was decided that she would leave for Paris in a few hours with Louis, accompanied by Peter. La Luc and his family spent these hours in the prison.

When the time of her departure arrived, the spirits of Adeline again forsook her, and the illusions of joy disappeared. She no longer beheld Theodore as one respited from death, but took leave of him with a mournful presentiment that she should see him no more. So strongly was this presage impressed upon her mind, that it was long before she could summon resolution to bid him farewell; and when she had done so, and even left the apartment, she returned to take of him a last look. As she was once more quitting the room, her melancholy imagination represented Theodore at the place of execution, pale, and convulsed in death; she again turned her lingering eyes upon him; but fancy affected her sense, for she thought as she now gazed that his countenance changed, and assumed a ghastly hue. All her resolution vanished; and such was the anguish of her heart, that she resolved to defer her journey till the morrow, though she must by this means lose the protection of Louis, whose impatience to meet his father would not suffer the delay. The triumph of passion, however, was transient; soothed by the indulgence she promised herself, her grief subsided; reason resumed its influence; she again saw the necessity of her immediate departure, and recollected sufficient resolution to submit. La Luc would have accompanied her for the purpose of again soliciting the king in behalf of his son, had not the extreme weakness and lassitude to which he was reduced made travelling impracticable.

When it was time for her to leave, Adeline felt her spirits drop again, and the joy she'd felt vanished. She didn't see Theodore as someone who had been spared from death anymore; instead, she said goodbye with a heavy feeling that she wouldn't see him again. This feeling was so strong that it took her a long time to gather the courage to bid him farewell, and even after she'd left the room, she came back to get one last look at him. As she was leaving again, her sad imagination pictured Theodore at the execution site, pale and lifeless; she turned her eyes back to him, but her mind played tricks on her, making her think his face was changing and turning ghostly. All her determination disappeared, and her heart ached so much that she decided to postpone her journey until the next day, even though that meant she'd lose Louis's protection, as he couldn't wait to see his father. However, the victory of her emotions was short-lived; reassured by the comfort she promised herself, her sadness eased; reason took over again; she recognized that she needed to leave right away and found enough strength to accept it. La Luc would have gone with her to plead with the king for his son again, but his extreme weakness and exhaustion made travel impossible.

At length, Adeline with a heavy heart quitted Theodore, notwithstanding his entreaties that she would not undertake the journey in her present weak state, and was accompanied by Clara and La Luc to the inn. The former parted from her friend with many tears, and much anxiety for her welfare, but under a hope of soon meeting again. Should a pardon be granted to Theodore, La Luc designed to fetch Adeline from Paris; but should this be refused, she was to return with Peter. He bade her adieu with a father's kindness, which she repaid with a filial affection, and in her last words conjured him to attend to the recovery of his health: the languid smile he assumed seemed to express that her solicitude was vain, and that he thought his health past recovery.

At last, Adeline sadly left Theodore, despite his pleas for her not to make the trip in her current weak state, and she was joined by Clara and La Luc on the way to the inn. Clara said goodbye to her friend with many tears and a lot of worry for her well-being, but she held onto the hope of seeing her again soon. If Theodore were granted a pardon, La Luc planned to bring Adeline back from Paris; however, if that didn’t happen, she was to return with Peter. He said goodbye to her with a fatherly kindness, which she returned with deep affection, and in her parting words, she urged him to take care of his health. The weak smile he gave seemed to show that he thought her concern was pointless and believed his health was beyond recovery.

Thus Adeline quitted the friends so justly dear to her, and so lately found, for Paris, where she was a stranger, almost without protection, and compelled to meet a father, who had pursued her with the utmost cruelty, in a public court of justice. The carriage in leaving Vaceau passed by the prison; she threw an eager look towards it as she passed; its heavy black walls, and narrow-grated windows, seemed to frown upon her hopes—but Theodore was there, and leaning from the window: she continued to gaze upon it till an abrupt turning in the street concealed it from her view. She then sunk back in the carriage, and yielding to the melancholy of her heart, wept in silence. Louis was not disposed to interrupt it; his thoughts were anxiously employed on his father's situation, and the travellers proceeded many miles without exchanging a word.

Thus, Adeline left her dear friends, whom she had only just found, for Paris, where she was a stranger, almost entirely alone, and forced to face a father who had treated her with extreme cruelty, in a public court of law. As the carriage left Vaceau, it passed by the prison; she took a quick look at it as they went by; its dark, looming walls and narrow, barred windows seemed to threaten her hopes—but Theodore was there, leaning out of the window: she kept staring at it until a sudden turn in the street blocked her view. She then sank back in the carriage, and, overwhelmed with sadness, cried silently. Louis didn’t want to interrupt her; his mind was consumed with concern for his father’s situation, and the travelers went for many miles without saying a word.

At Paris, whither we shall now return, the search after Jean D'Aunoy was prosecuted without success. The house on the heath, described by Du Bosse, was found uninhabited, and to the places of his usual resort in the city, where the officers of the police awaited him, he no longer came. It even appeared doubtful whether he was living, for he had absented himself from the houses of his customary rendezvous sometime before the trial of La Motte; it was therefore certain that his absence was not occasioned by any thing which had passed in the courts.

At Paris, to which we shall now return, the search for Jean D'Aunoy was conducted without any luck. The house on the heath, as described by Du Bosse, was found empty, and at the places he usually frequented in the city, where the police were waiting for him, he no longer showed up. It even seemed uncertain whether he was alive, as he had been missing from the usual meeting spots for some time before La Motte's trial; therefore, it was clear that his absence was not due to anything that had happened in the courts.

In the solitude of his confinement the Marquis de Montalt had leisure to reflect on the past, and to repent of his crimes; but reflection and repentance formed as yet no part of his disposition. He turned with impatience from recollections which produced only pain, and looked forward to the future with an endeavour to avert the disgrace and punishment which he saw impending. The elegance of his manners had so effectually veiled the depravity of his heart, that he was a favourite with his sovereign; and on this circumstance he rested his hope of security. He, however, severely repented that he had indulged the hasty spirit of revenge which had urged him to the prosecution of La Motte, and had thus unexpectedly involved him in a situation dangerous—if not fatal—since if Adeline could not be found he would be concluded guilty of her death. But the appearance of D'Aunoy was the circumstance he most dreaded; and to oppose the possibility of this, he employed secret emissaries to discover his retreat, and to bribe him to his interest. These were, however as unsuccessful in their research as the officers of police, and the Marquis at length began to hope that the man was really dead.

In the solitude of his confinement, the Marquis de Montalt had time to reflect on the past and regret his crimes; however, reflection and remorse were not part of his nature. He turned away from memories that only brought him pain and focused on the future, trying to avoid the disgrace and punishment he felt looming over him. The charm of his manners had so effectively hidden the corruption of his heart that he was favored by his king, and he relied on this for his hope of safety. Nevertheless, he deeply regretted giving in to the impulsive urge for revenge that led him to pursue La Motte, which unexpectedly placed him in a dangerous—if not deadly—situation; if Adeline couldn’t be found, he would be assumed guilty of her death. But the arrival of D'Aunoy was what he feared the most; to prevent this possibility, he used secret agents to track him down and try to persuade him to switch sides. However, they were just as unsuccessful as the police officers, and the Marquis eventually began to hope that D'Aunoy was truly dead.

La Motte meanwhile awaited with trembling impatience the arrival of his son, when he should be relieved in some degree from his uncertainty concerning Adeline. On this appearance he rested his only hope of life, since the evidence against him would lose much of its validity from the confirmation she would give of the bad character of his prosecutor; and if the Parliament even condemned La Motte, the clemency of the king might yet operate in his favour.

La Motte, in the meantime, waited with anxious impatience for his son to arrive, hoping it would ease his uncertainty about Adeline. He placed all his hopes for survival on this moment, as her confirmation of his prosecutor's bad character would significantly weaken the evidence against him. Even if the Parliament decided to condemn La Motte, the king's mercy might still work in his favor.

Adeline arrived at Paris after a journey of several days, during which she was chiefly supported by the delicate attentions of Louis, whom she pitied and esteemed, though she could not love. She was immediately visited at the hotel by Madame La Motte: the meeting was affecting on both sides. A sense of her past conduct excited in the latter an embarrassment which the delicacy and goodness of Adeline would willingly have spared her; but the pardon solicited was given with so much sincerity, that Madame gradually became composed and reassured. This forgiveness, however, could not have been thus easily granted, had Adeline believed her former conduct was voluntary; a conviction of the restraint and terror under which Madame had acted, alone induced her to excuse the past. In this first meeting they forbore dwelling on particular subjects; Madame La Motte proposed that Adeline should remove from the hotel to her lodgings near the Chatelet; and Adeline, for whom a residence at a public hotel was very improper, gladly accepted the offer.

Adeline arrived in Paris after a few days of travel, during which she was mostly supported by Louis’s thoughtful attention. She felt pity and respect for him, but couldn’t bring herself to love him. Shortly after arriving, she was visited at the hotel by Madame La Motte. The meeting was emotional for both of them. Madame felt awkward because of her past actions, and Adeline, being kind and understanding, wished she didn’t have to feel that way. However, the apology was so genuine that Madame slowly became calmer and more at ease. Still, Adeline might not have been so forgiving if she believed Madame’s actions were entirely voluntary; it was her understanding of the fear and pressure Madame had been under that made her willing to overlook the past. During this first meeting, they chose not to focus on specific issues. Madame La Motte suggested that Adeline move from the hotel to her place near the Chatelet, and Adeline, who thought staying at a public hotel was quite inappropriate, happily accepted the invitation.

Madame there gave her a circumstantial account of La Motte's situation, and concluded with saying, that as the sentence of her husband had been suspended till some certainty could be obtained concerning the late criminal designs of the Marquis, and as Adeline could confirm the chief part of La Motte's testimony, it was probable that now she was arrived the court would proceed immediately. She now learnt the full extent of her obligation to La Motte; for she was till now ignorant that when he sent her from the forest he saved her from death. Her horror of the Marquis, whom she could not bear to consider as her father, and her gratitude to her deliverer, redoubled, and she became impatient to give the testimony so necessary to the hopes of her preserver. Madame then said, she believed it was not too late to gain admittance that night to the Chatelet; and as she knew how anxiously her husband wished to see Adeline, she entreated her consent to go thither. Adeline, though much harassed and fatigued, complied. When Louis returned from M. Nemours, his father's advocate, whom he had hastened to inform of her arrival, they all set out for the Chatelet. The view of the prison into which they were now admitted, so forcibly recalled to Adeline's mind the situation of Theodore, that she with difficulty supported herself to the apartment of La Motte. When he saw her, a gleam of joy passed over his countenance; but again relapsing into despondency, he looked mournfully at her, and then at Louis, and groaned deeply. Adeline, in whom all remembrance of his former cruelty was lost in his subsequent kindness, expressed her thankfulness for the life he had preserved, and her anxiety to serve him, in warm and repeated terms. But her gratitude evidently distressed him; instead of reconciling him to himself, it seemed to awaken a remembrance of the guilty designs he had once assisted, and to strike the pangs of conscience deeper in his heart. Endeavouring to conceal his emotions, he entered on the subject of his present danger, and informed Adeline what testimony would be required of her on the trial. After above an hour's conversation with La Motte, she returned to the lodgings of Madame, where, languid and ill, she withdrew to her chamber, and tried to obliviate her anxieties in sleep.

Madame gave her a detailed account of La Motte's situation and ended by saying that since her husband’s sentence had been put on hold until there was more clarity about the recent criminal activities of the Marquis, and since Adeline could confirm the main parts of La Motte's testimony, it was likely that the court would move forward now that she had arrived. She realized just how much she owed La Motte; until now, she hadn't known that when he sent her away from the forest, he had saved her life. Her horror of the Marquis, whom she couldn't bear to think of as her father, and her gratitude for her rescuer intensified, and she grew eager to provide the testimony that was crucial for her savior's hopes. Madame then said she thought it wasn't too late to gain entry that night to the Chatelet, and knowing how eagerly her husband wanted to see Adeline, she urged her to agree to go there. Adeline, though extremely exhausted and worn out, agreed. When Louis came back from M. Nemours, his father’s lawyer, whom he had rushed to inform of her arrival, they all set out for the Chatelet. The sight of the prison they were now entering so strongly reminded Adeline of Theodore's situation that she struggled to keep herself together as she made her way to La Motte's room. When he saw her, a flash of joy lit up his face, but then, falling back into despair, he looked sadly at her, then at Louis, and sighed deeply. Adeline, who had completely forgotten his past cruelty in light of his later kindness, expressed her gratitude for the life he had saved, stating her eagerness to help him in warm and repeated ways. But her gratitude visibly troubled him; instead of bringing him peace, it seemed to bring back memories of the guilty acts he had once aided and deepened his feelings of guilt. Trying to hide his emotions, he started discussing his current danger and informed Adeline about the testimony she would need to provide at the trial. After more than an hour of conversation with La Motte, she returned to Madame’s lodgings, where, feeling weak and unwell, she withdrew to her room and tried to escape her worries through sleep.

The Parliament which conducted the trial re-assembled in a few days after the arrival of Adeline, and the two remaining witnesses of the Marquis, on whom he now rested his cause against La Motte, appeared. She was led trembling into the court, where almost the first object that met her eyes was the Marquis de Montalt, whom she now beheld with an emotion entirely new to her, and which was strongly tinctured with horror. When Du Bosse saw her he immediately swore to her identity; his testimony was confirmed by her manner; for, on perceiving him she grew pale, and an universal tremor seized her. Jean D'Aunoy could no where be found, and La Motte was thus deprived of an evidence which essentially affected his interest. Adeline, when called upon, gave her little narrative with clearness and precision; and Peter, who had conveyed her from the abbey, supported the testimony she offered. The evidence produced was sufficient to criminate the Marquis of the intention of murder, in the minds of most people present; but it was not sufficient to affect the testimony of his two last witnesses, who positively swore to the commission of the robbery, and to the person of La Motte, on whom sentence of death was accordingly pronounced. On receiving the sentence the unhappy criminal fainted, and the compassion of the assembly, whose feelings had been unusually interested in the decision, was expressed in a general groan.

The Parliament that held the trial gathered again a few days after Adeline's arrival, and the last two witnesses for the Marquis, on whom he relied for his case against La Motte, took the stand. She was brought in trembling, and almost the first thing she saw was the Marquis de Montalt, who she now viewed with a completely new feeling that was heavily laced with horror. When Du Bosse spotted her, he instantly swore to her identity; his testimony was backed up by her reaction—upon seeing him, she turned pale and was overcome by a deep tremor. Jean D'Aunoy was nowhere to be found, leaving La Motte without key evidence that significantly impacted his case. When Adeline was called to speak, she delivered her brief account with clarity and precision, and Peter, who had brought her from the abbey, supported her testimony. The evidence presented was enough to implicate the Marquis in the intent to commit murder in the minds of most people there; however, it wasn’t enough to counter the statements of his last two witnesses, who firmly swore that the robbery occurred and identified La Motte, who was consequently sentenced to death. Upon receiving the sentence, the unfortunate criminal fainted, prompting a general groan from the assembly, whose emotions had been deeply engaged in the verdict.

Their attention was quickly called to a new object—it was Jean D'Aunoy, who now entered the court. But his evidence, if it could ever, indeed, have been the means of saving La Motte, came too late. He was reconducted to prison; but Adeline, who, extremely shocked by his sentence, was much indisposed, received orders to remain in the court during the examination of D'Aunoy. This man had been at length found in the prison of a provincial town, where some of his creditors had thrown him, and from which even the money which the Marquis had remitted to him for the purpose of satisfying the craving importunities of Du Bosse, had been insufficient to release him. Meanwhile the revenge of the latter had been roused against the Marquis by an imaginary neglect, and the money which was designed to relieve his necessities, was spent by D'Aunoy in riotous luxury.

Their attention was soon drawn to a new figure—it was Jean D'Aunoy, who just walked into the courtroom. But his testimony, if it could have saved La Motte, was given too late. He was taken back to prison; however, Adeline, who was deeply affected by his sentence and felt very unwell, was ordered to stay in the courtroom during D'Aunoy's questioning. This man had finally been found in the prison of a small town, where some of his creditors had locked him up, and even the money that the Marquis had sent to help him pay off the pressing debts to Du Bosse wasn't enough to get him released. Meanwhile, Du Bosse’s desire for revenge against the Marquis was stoked by a perceived neglect, and the funds meant to alleviate his hardships were squandered by D'Aunoy on excessive indulgence.

He was confronted with Adeline and with Du Bosse, and ordered to confess all he knew concerning this mysterious affair, or to undergo the torture. D'Aunoy, who was ignorant how far the suspicions concerning the Marquis extended, and who was conscious that his own words might condemn him, remained for some time obstinately silent; but when the question was administered, his resolution gave way, and he confessed a crime of which he had not even been suspected.

He was faced with Adeline and Du Bosse and told to admit everything he knew about this mysterious situation or face torture. D'Aunoy, unaware of how deep the suspicions about the Marquis ran and knowing that his own words could damningly implicate him, stayed silent for a while. But when he was pressed with the question, his resolve crumbled, and he confessed to a crime he hadn’t even been suspected of.

It appeared, that, in the year 1642, D'Aunoy, together with one Jaques Martigny, and Francis Balliere, had way-laid and seized Henri, Marquis de Montalt, half-brother to Philippe; and after having robbed him, and bound his servant to a tree, according to the orders they had received, they conveyed him to the abbey of St. Clair, in the distant forest of Fontanville. Here he was confined for some time, till further directions were received from Philippe de Montalt, the present Marquis, who was then on his estates in a northern province of France. These orders were for death, and the unfortunate Henri was assassinated in his chamber in the third week of his confinement at the abbey.

It seemed that in 1642, D'Aunoy, along with Jaques Martigny and Francis Balliere, ambushed and captured Henri, Marquis de Montalt, who was Philippe's half-brother. After robbing him and tying up his servant to a tree, as per their instructions, they took him to the abbey of St. Clair in the remote forest of Fontanville. He was kept there for a while until further instructions were received from Philippe de Montalt, the current Marquis, who was then managing his estates in a northern province of France. These instructions called for his death, and the unfortunate Henri was murdered in his room during the third week of his confinement at the abbey.

On hearing this, Adeline grew faint: she remembered the MS. she had found, together with the extraordinary circumstances that had attended the discovery; every nerve thrilled with horror, and, raising her eyes, she saw the countenance of the Marquis overspread with the livid paleness of guilt. She endeavoured, however, to arrest her fleeting spirits while the man proceeded in his confession.

On hearing this, Adeline started to feel weak: she recalled the manuscript she had found, along with the bizarre circumstances surrounding its discovery; every nerve in her body tingled with fear, and, lifting her gaze, she noticed the Marquis's face was covered with the sickly pale color of guilt. She tried to steady her nerves while he continued with his confession.

When the murder was perpetrated, D'Aunoy had returned to his employer, who gave him the reward agreed upon, and in a few months after delivered into his hands the infant daughter of the late Marquis, whom he conveyed to a distant part of the kingdom, where, assuming the name of St. Pierre, he brought her up as his own child, receiving from the present Marquis a considerable annuity for his secrecy.

When the murder was committed, D'Aunoy went back to his employer, who gave him the agreed-upon reward. A few months later, he was handed the infant daughter of the late Marquis, which he took to a remote area of the kingdom. There, under the name St. Pierre, he raised her as his own child, receiving a substantial annual payment from the current Marquis for keeping it a secret.

Adeline, no longer able to struggle with the tumult of emotions that now rushed upon her heart, uttered a deep sigh and fainted away. She was carried from the court; and when the confusion occasioned by this circumstance subsided, Jean D'Aunoy went on. He related, that on the death of his wife, Adeline was placed in a convent, from whence she was afterwards removed to another, where the Marquis had destined her to receive the vows. That her determined rejection of them had occasioned him to resolve upon her death, and that she had accordingly been removed to the house on the heath. D'Aunoy added, that by the Marquis's order he had misled Du Bosse with a false story of her birth. Having, after some time, discovered that his comrades had deceived him concerning her death, D'Aunoy separated from them in enmity; but they unanimously determined to conceal her escape from the Marquis, that they might enjoy the recompense of their supposed crime. Some months subsequent to this period, however, D'Aunoy received a letter from the Marquis, charging him with the truth, and promising him a large reward if he would confess where he had placed Adeline. In consequence of this letter, he acknowledged that she had been given into the hands of a stranger; but, who he was, or where he lived, was not known.

Adeline, unable to cope with the flood of emotions overwhelming her heart, let out a deep sigh and fainted. She was taken away from the court; and once the chaos from this incident calmed down, Jean D'Aunoy continued. He explained that after his wife died, Adeline was placed in a convent, from which she was later moved to another one where the Marquis intended for her to take her vows. Her firm refusal of this led him to plan her death, and she was subsequently taken to the house on the heath. D'Aunoy also mentioned that, by the Marquis's orders, he had misled Du Bosse with a false tale about her background. After some time, realizing that his associates had lied to him about her death, D'Aunoy parted ways with them in anger. However, they all agreed to hide her escape from the Marquis so they could benefit from their supposed crime. Months later, D'Aunoy received a letter from the Marquis, confronting him with the truth and offering a substantial reward if he revealed where Adeline was. In response to this letter, he admitted that she had been handed over to a stranger; however, who that stranger was or where he lived remained unknown.

Upon these depositions Philippe de Montalt was committed to take his trial for the murder of Henri, his brother; D'Aunoy was thrown into a dungeon of the Chatelet, and Du Bosse was bound to appear as evidence.

Upon these statements, Philippe de Montalt was charged to stand trial for the murder of his brother, Henri; D'Aunoy was locked away in a dungeon at the Chatelet, and Du Bosse was required to testify as evidence.

The feelings of the Marquis, who, in a prosecution stimulated by revenge, had thus unexpectedly exposed his crimes to the public eye, and betrayed himself to justice, can only be imagined. The passions which had tempted him to the commission of a crime so horrid as that of murder,—and what, if possible, heightened its atrocity, the murder of one connected with him by the ties of blood, and by habits of even infantine association—the passions which had stimulated him to so monstrous a deed, were ambition and the love of pleasure. The first was more immediately gratified by the title of his brother; the latter, by the riches which would enable him to indulge his voluptuous inclinations.

The emotions of the Marquis, who had unexpectedly revealed his crimes to the public in a revenge-driven prosecution and betrayed himself to justice, can only be imagined. The feelings that drove him to commit such a terrible crime as murder—and what made it even more outrageous, the murder of someone related to him by blood and childhood connections—were ambition and a desire for pleasure. His ambition was directly satisfied by the title of his brother, while his love for pleasure was fueled by the wealth that would allow him to indulge in his luxurious desires.

The late Marquis de Montalt, the father of Adeline, received from his ancestors a patrimony very inadequate to support the splendour of his rank; but he had married the heiress of an illustrious family, whose fortune amply supplied the deficiency of his own. He had the misfortune to lose her, for she was amiable and beautiful, soon after the birth of a daughter, and it was then that the present Marquis formed the diabolical design of destroying his brother. The contrast of their characters prevented that cordial regard between them which their near relationship seemed to demand. Henri was benevolent, mild, and contemplative. In his heart reigned the love of virtue; in his manners the strictness of justice was tempered, not weakened, by mercy; his mind was enlarged by science, and adorned by elegant literature. The character of Philippe has been already delineated in his actions; its nicer shades were blended with some shining tints; but these served only to render more striking by contrast the general darkness of the portrait.

The late Marquis de Montalt, Adeline's father, inherited a legacy that was too small to support the grandeur of his rank. However, he married the heiress of an esteemed family, whose wealth made up for his shortfall. Tragically, he lost her—she was kind and beautiful—shortly after their daughter was born, which is when the current Marquis concocted the sinister plan to eliminate his brother. Their differing personalities created a rift that prevented the close bond expected from family members. Henri was kind, gentle, and reflective. He held a deep love for virtue; his sense of justice was strict yet softened by compassion. His mind was broad, enriched by knowledge and enhanced by fine literature. Philippe's character has already been portrayed through his actions; its finer details mingled with some bright highlights, but those only served to accentuate the overall darkness of the depiction.

He had married a lady, who, by the death of her brother, inherited considerable estates, of which the abbey of St. Clair, and the villa on the borders of the forest of Fontanville, were the chief. His passion for magnificence and dissipation, however, soon involved him in difficulties, and pointed out to him the conveniency of possessing his brother's wealth. His brother and his infant daughter only stood between him and his wishes; how he removed the father has been already related; why he did not employ the same means to secure the child, seems somewhat surprising, unless we admit that a destiny hung over him on this occasion, and that she was suffered to live as an instrument to punish the murderer of her parent. When a retrospect is taken of the vicissitudes and dangers to which she had been exposed from her earliest infancy, it appears as if her preservation was the effect of something more than human policy, and affords a striking instance, that justice, however long delayed, will overtake the guilty.

He married a woman who, after her brother passed away, inherited a significant amount of property, with the abbey of St. Clair and the villa near the Fontanville forest being the main ones. However, his love for luxury and excess quickly got him into trouble and made him see the advantage of having his brother's wealth. His brother and his young daughter were the only things standing between him and what he wanted; how he got rid of the father has already been discussed. It’s puzzling why he didn’t use the same methods to get rid of the child, unless we consider that fate was at play here and allowed her to survive as a way to punish her father’s killer. Looking back at the hardships and dangers she faced from the moment she was born, it seems like her survival was the result of something beyond human schemes, showing that justice, no matter how long it takes, will catch up with those who do wrong.

While the late unhappy Marquis was suffering at the abbey, his brother, who, to avoid suspicion, remained in the north of France, delayed the execution of his horrid purpose from a timidity natural to a mind not yet inured to enormous guilt. Before he dared to deliver his final orders, he waited to know whether the story he contrived to propagate of his brother's death would veil his crime from suspicion. It succeeded but too well; for the servant, whose life had been spared that he might relate the tale, naturally enough concluded that his lord had been murdered by banditti; and the peasant, who, a few hours after, found the servant wounded, bleeding, and bound to a tree, and knew also that this spot was infested by robbers, as naturally believed him, and spread the report accordingly.

While the late unhappy Marquis was suffering at the abbey, his brother, who stayed in the north of France to avoid suspicion, hesitated to carry out his terrible plan due to a natural fear that came from a mind not yet used to carrying massive guilt. Before he felt ready to give his final orders, he waited to see if the story he created about his brother's death would cover his crime from scrutiny. It worked all too well because the servant, whose life was spared so he could tell the story, naturally assumed that his lord had been murdered by bandits. The peasant who found the servant, wounded, bleeding, and tied to a tree a few hours later—and who knew that this area was known for robberies—naturally believed him and spread the news accordingly.

From this period the Marquis, to whom the abbey of St. Clair belonged in right of his wife, visited it only twice, and that at distant times, till, after an interval of several years, he accidentally found La Motte its inhabitant. He resided at Paris and on his estate in the north, except that once a year he usually passed a month at his delightful villa on the borders of the forest. In the busy scenes of the court, and in the dissipations of pleasure, he tried to lose the remembrance of his guilt; but there were times when the voice of conscience would be heard, though it was soon again lost in the tumult of the world.

From this time on, the Marquis, who owned the abbey of St. Clair through his wife, only visited it twice, and those visits were years apart, until he unexpectedly discovered that La Motte was living there. He spent most of his time in Paris and at his estate in the north, except for one month each year when he usually stayed at his lovely villa by the edge of the forest. Amid the busy life at court and the indulgences of pleasure, he tried to escape the memory of his guilt; however, there were moments when his conscience would make itself heard, only to be drowned out again by the chaos of the world.

It is probable, that on the night of his abrupt departure from the abbey, the solitary silence and gloom of the hour, in a place which had been the scene of his former crime, called up the remembrance of his brother with a force too powerful for fancy, and awakened horrors which compelled him to quit the polluted spot. If it was so, it is however certain that the spectres of conscience vanished with the darkness; for on the following day he returned to the abbey, though, it may be observed, he never attempted to pass another night there. But though terror was roused for a transient moment, neither pity nor repentance succeeded; since, when the discovery of Adeline's birth excited apprehension for his own life, he did not hesitate to repeat the crime, and would again have stained his soul with human blood. This discovery was effected by means of a seal bearing the arms of her mother's family, which was impressed on the note his servant had found, and had delivered to him at Caux. It may be remembered, that having read this note, he was throwing it from him in the fury of jealousy; but, that after examining it again, it was carefully deposited in his pocket-book. The violent agitation which a suspicion of this terrible truth occasioned, deprived him for awhile of all power to act. When he was well enough to write, he dispatched a letter to D'Aunoy, the purport of which has been already mentioned. From D'Aunoy he received the confirmation of his fears. Knowing that his life must pay the forfeiture of his crime, should Adeline ever obtain a knowledge of her birth, and not daring again to confide in the secrecy of a man who had once deceived him, he resolved, after some deliberation, on her death. He immediately set out for the abbey, and gave those directions concerning her which terror for his own safety, still more than a desire of retaining her estates, suggested.

It’s likely that on the night he suddenly left the abbey, the deep silence and darkness of the time, in a place where he once committed a crime, brought back memories of his brother so intensely that it was more than just imagination, awakening fears that made him leave that tainted place. If that was the case, it’s certain that the ghosts of his conscience faded away with the night; because the next day he went back to the abbey, though it should be noted that he never tried to spend another night there. Although fear stirred him momentarily, neither compassion nor remorse followed; for when the news of Adeline's birth raised concerns for his own life, he didn't hesitate to commit the crime again and would have further stained his soul with blood. This revelation came from a seal with her mother's family crest, which was stamped on the note his servant found and gave to him in Caux. It might be recalled that after reading this note, he was about to toss it aside in a fit of jealousy; but after looking at it again, he carefully put it in his wallet. The intense agitation caused by a suspicion of this awful truth left him unable to act for a while. Once he regained enough strength to write, he sent a letter to D'Aunoy, which has already been mentioned. From D'Aunoy, he received confirmation of his fears. Knowing that his life would be forfeit if Adeline ever learned the truth about her birth, and not trusting a man who had already deceived him, he ultimately decided on her death after some thought. He immediately set off for the abbey and gave orders regarding her that were driven more by fear for his own safety than by any desire to keep her estate.

As the history of the seal which revealed the birth of Adeline is rather remarkable, it may not be amiss to mention, that it was stolen from the Marquis, together with a gold watch, by Jean D'Aunoy: the watch was soon disposed of, but the seal had been kept as a pretty trinket by his wife, and at her death went with Adeline among her clothes to the convent. Adeline had carefully preserved it, because it had once belonged to the woman whom she believed to have been her mother.

As the story of the seal that revealed Adeline's birth is quite remarkable, it's worth noting that it was stolen from the Marquis, along with a gold watch, by Jean D'Aunoy. The watch was quickly sold off, but the seal was kept as a lovely keepsake by his wife. When she died, it went with Adeline among her belongings to the convent. Adeline had taken great care of it because it had once belonged to the woman she believed was her mother.







CHAPTER XXIV

While anxious uncertainty distracts the troubled heart.

We now return to the course of the narrative, and to Adeline, who was carried from the court to the lodging of Madame de La Motte. Madame was, however, at the Chatelet with her husband, suffering all the distress which the sentence pronounced against him might be supposed to inflict. The feeble frame of Adeline, so long harassed by grief and fatigue, almost sunk under the agitation which the discovery of her birth excited. Her feelings on this occasion were too complex to be analysed. From an orphan, subsisting on the bounty of others, without family, with few friends, and pursued by a cruel and powerful enemy, she saw herself suddenly transformed to the daughter of an illustrious house, and the heiress of immense wealth. But she learned also that her father had been murdered—murdered in the prime of his days—murdered by means of his brother, against whom she must now appear, and in punishing the destroyer of her parent, doom her uncle to death.

We now return to the story, and to Adeline, who was taken from the court to Madame de La Motte's place. However, Madame was at Chatelet with her husband, dealing with all the distress that the verdict against him would bring. Adeline's frail body, having been worn down by grief and exhaustion, nearly collapsed from the turmoil caused by the revelation of her origins. Her emotions in this moment were too intricate to dissect. From being an orphan relying on the kindness of others, with no family, few friends, and pursued by a ruthless and powerful enemy, she suddenly found herself transformed into the daughter of a prestigious family and the heir to vast wealth. But she also learned that her father had been murdered—killed in the prime of his life—murdered by his own brother, whom she must now confront, knowing that in seeking justice for her father, she would doom her uncle to death.

When she remembered the manuscript so singularly found, and considered that when she wept to the sufferings it described, her tears had flowed for those of her father, her emotion cannot easily be imagined. The circumstances attending the discovery of these papers no longer appeared to be a work of chance, but of a Power whose designs are great and just. O, my father! she would exclaim, your last wish is fulfilled—the pitying heart you wished might trace your sufferings shall avenge them.

When she thought about the manuscript that had been found in such a unique way and realized that her tears for the pain it described were actually for her father's suffering, her emotions were overwhelming. The circumstances surrounding the discovery of these papers no longer felt like just luck, but rather the work of a higher Power with meaningful and just intentions. "Oh, my father!" she would cry out, "your final wish has been granted—the compassionate heart you wanted to understand your suffering will make sure it is avenged."

On the return of Madame La Motte, Adeline endeavoured, as usual, to suppress her own emotions, that she might soothe the affliction of her friend. She related what had passed in the courts after the departure of La Motte, and thus excited, even in the sorrowful heart of Madame, a momentary gleam of satisfaction. Adeline determined to recover, if possible, the manuscript. On inquiry she learned that La Motte, in the confusion of his departure, had left it among other things at the abbey. This circumstance much distressed her, the more so because she believed its appearance might be of importance on the approaching trial; she determined, however, if she could recover her rights, to have the manuscript sought for.

On Madame La Motte's return, Adeline tried, as always, to hide her own feelings so she could comfort her friend. She shared what had happened in court after La Motte left, which briefly brought a glimmer of satisfaction to Madame's sad heart. Adeline was determined to get the manuscript back, if possible. When she asked around, she found out that La Motte had accidentally left it at the abbey during his hurried departure. This news upset her greatly, especially since she thought it could be important for the upcoming trial; however, she resolved that if she could reclaim her rights, she would make sure the manuscript was retrieved.

In the evening Louis joined this mournful party: he came immediately from his father, whom he left more tranquil than he had been since the fatal sentence was pronounced. After a silent and melancholy supper they separated for the night; and Adeline, in the solitude of her chamber, had leisure to meditate on the discoveries of this eventful day. The sufferings of her dead father, such as she had read them recorded by his own hand, pressed most forcibly to her thoughts. The narrative had formerly so much affected her heart, and interested her imagination, that her memory now faithfully reflected each particular circumstance there disclosed. But when she considered that she had been in the very chamber where her parent had suffered, where even his life had been sacrificed, and that she had probably seen the very dagger, seen it stained with rust, the rust of blood! by which he had fallen, the anguish and horror of her mind defied all control.

In the evening, Louis joined this sad group: he had just come from his father, whom he left feeling more at peace than he had since the tragic sentence was given. After a quiet and sorrowful dinner, they went their separate ways for the night; and Adeline, alone in her room, had time to reflect on the revelations of this significant day. The suffering of her deceased father, as she had read in his own writing, weighed heavily on her mind. The story had once deeply touched her heart and sparked her imagination, so her memory now accurately recalled every detail he had shared. But when she realized that she had been in the very room where her father had endured pain, where his life had even been taken, and that she had likely seen the very dagger—rusty, stained with blood—that had caused his death, the anguish and horror in her mind became overwhelming.

On the following day Adeline received orders to prepare for the prosecution of the Marquis de Montalt, which was to commence as soon as the requisite witnesses could be collected. Among these were the abbess of the convent, who had received her from the hands of D'Aunoy; Madame La Motte, who was present when Du Bosse compelled her husband to receive Adeline; and Peter, who had not only been witness to this circumstance, but who had conveyed her from the abbey that she might escape the designs of the Marquis. La Motte and Theodore La Luc were incapacitated by the sentence of the law from appearing on the trial.

The next day, Adeline was instructed to get ready for the trial against the Marquis de Montalt, which would start as soon as the necessary witnesses could be gathered. Among them were the abbess of the convent, who had taken her in from D'Aunoy; Madame La Motte, who was there when Du Bosse forced her husband to accept Adeline; and Peter, who had not only seen this happen but had also helped her leave the abbey to escape the Marquis's plans. La Motte and Theodore La Luc were unable to appear in court due to a legal sentence.

When La Motte was informed of the discovery of Adeline's birth, and that her father had been murdered at the abbey of St. Clair, he instantly remembered, and mentioned to his wife, the skeleton he found in the stone room leading to the subterranean cells. Neither of them doubted, from the situation in which it lay, hid in a chest in an obscure room strongly guarded, that La Motte had seen the remains of the late Marquis. Madame, however, determined not to shock Adeline with the mention of this circumstance till it should be necessary to declare it on the trial.

When La Motte learned about Adeline's birth and that her father had been murdered at the St. Clair abbey, he immediately recalled and told his wife about the skeleton he found in the stone room leading to the underground cells. Neither of them doubted that, given the position in which it was found—hidden in a chest in a heavily guarded obscure room—La Motte had discovered the remains of the late Marquis. However, Madame decided not to upset Adeline by mentioning this until it needed to be revealed during the trial.

As the time of this trial drew near, the distress and agitation of Adeline increased. Though justice demanded the life of the murderer, and though the tenderness and pity which the idea of her father called forth, urged her to revenge his death, she could not without horror consider herself as the instrument of dispensing that justice which would deprive a fellow-being of existence; and there were times when she wished the secret of her birth had never been revealed. If this sensibility was, in her peculiar circumstances, a weakness, it was at least an amiable one, and as such deserves to be reverenced.

As the trial approached, Adeline's distress and anxiety grew. Although justice required the murderer to face consequences and the love and compassion she felt for her father pushed her toward avenging his death, she couldn't bear the thought of being the one to carry out that justice, which would take someone else's life. There were moments when she wished she had never learned the truth about her origins. Even if this sensitivity was a weakness in her unique situation, it was still a kind one, and it deserves to be respected.

The accounts she received from Vaceau of the health of M. La Luc did not contribute to tranquillize her mind. The symptoms described by Clara seemed to say that he was in the last stage of a consumption, and the grief of Theodore and herself on this occasion was expressed in her letters with the lively eloquence so natural to her. Adeline loved and revered La Luc for his own worth, and for the parental tenderness he had shown her; but he was still dearer to her as the father of Theodore and her concern for his declining state was not inferior to that of his children. It was increased by the reflection that she had probably been the means of shortening his life; for she too well knew that the distress occasioned him by the situation in which it had been her misfortune to involve Theodore, had shattered his frame to its present infirmity. The same cause also withheld him from seeking in the climate of Montpellier the relief he had formerly been taught to expect there. When she looked around on the condition of her friends, her heart was almost overwhelmed with the prospect; it seemed as if she was destined to involve all those most dear to her in calamity. With respect to La Motte, whatever were his vices, and whatever the designs in which he had formerly engaged against her, she forgot them all in the service he had finally rendered her; and considered it to be as much her duty, as she felt it to be her inclination, to intercede in his behalf. This, however, in her present situation, she could not do with any hope of success; but if the suit, upon which depended the establishment of her rank, her fortune, and consequently her influence, should be decided in her favour, she determined to throw herself at the king's feet, and when she pleaded the cause of Theodore, ask the life of La Motte.

The updates she got from Vaceau about M. La Luc's health did nothing to calm her mind. The symptoms Clara described suggested he was in the final stages of a serious illness, and both Theodore and she expressed their grief in letters with the passionate eloquence that came naturally to her. Adeline loved and respected La Luc for his own qualities and the fatherly kindness he had shown her; but she cherished him even more as Theodore's father, and her concern for his declining health was just as strong as that of his children. This concern was intensified by the thought that she might have contributed to shortening his life; she knew too well that the distress caused by the situation in which it had been her misfortune to involve Theodore had weakened him to his current frailty. This same situation also kept him from seeking relief in the climate of Montpellier, where he had previously found hope. When she looked around at her friends' situations, her heart felt nearly overwhelmed with the possibility; it seemed as if she was destined to bring misfortune to all those she cared about most. As for La Motte, no matter his faults and the schemes he had previously engaged in against her, she put them all aside in light of the help he had ultimately provided her; she felt it was both her duty and her desire to advocate for him. However, given her current circumstances, she couldn't do so with any expectation of success; but if the case that determined her social standing, her fortune, and thus her influence was decided in her favor, she resolved to throw herself at the king's feet and, while pleading for Theodore, to also ask for La Motte's life.

A few days preceding that of the trial, Adeline was informed a stranger desired to speak with her; and on going to the room where he was, she found M. Verneuil. Her countenance expressed both surprise and satisfaction at this unexpected meeting, and she inquired, though with little expectation of an affirmative, if he had heard of M. La Luc. I have seen him, said M. Verneuil; I am just come from Vaceau: but, I am sorry I cannot give you a better account of his health; he is greatly altered since I saw him before.

A few days before the trial, Adeline was told that a stranger wanted to talk to her; when she went to the room where he was, she found M. Verneuil. Her face showed both surprise and happiness at this unexpected encounter, and she asked, although not really expecting a yes, if he had heard about M. La Luc. “I have seen him,” said M. Verneuil; “I just came from Vaceau. However, I'm sorry to say that I can't give you better news about his health; he has changed a lot since I last saw him.”

Adeline could scarcely refrain from tears at the recollection these words revived of the calamities which had occasioned this lamented change. M. Verneuil delivered her a packet from Clara. As he presented it, he said, besides this introduction to your notice, I have a claim of a different kind, which I am proud to assert, and which will perhaps justify the permission I ask of speaking upon your affairs.—Adeline bowed; and M. Verneuil, with a countenance expressive of the most tender solicitude, added, that he had heard of the late proceedings of the Parliament of Paris, and of the discoveries that so intimately concerned her. I know not, continued he, whether I ought to congratulate or condole with you on this trying occasion. That I sincerely sympathize in all that concerns you I hope you will believe, and I cannot deny myself the pleasure of telling you that I am related, though distantly, to the late Marchioness your mother—for that she was your mother I cannot doubt.

Adeline could hardly hold back her tears at the memories those words brought back of the tragedies that led to this sad change. Mr. Verneuil handed her a package from Clara. As he gave it to her, he said, "In addition to this introduction, I have a different matter to discuss, which I’m proud to mention, and which may justify my request to speak about your situation." Adeline nodded, and Mr. Verneuil, with a look of deep concern, added that he had heard about the recent actions of the Paris Parliament and the discoveries that closely affected her. "I don’t know," he continued, "if I should congratulate or express sympathy for you during this difficult time. I hope you believe that I genuinely care about everything that concerns you, and I can’t resist sharing that I am related, though distantly, to the late Marchioness, your mother—because I have no doubt that she was your mother."

Adeline rose hastily and advanced towards M. Verneuil; surprise and satisfaction reanimated her features. Do I indeed see a relation? said she in a sweet and tremulous voice; and one whom I can welcome as a friend? Tears trembled in her eyes; and she received M. Verneuil's embrace in silence. It was some time before her emotion would permit her to speak.

Adeline quickly got up and moved toward M. Verneuil; surprise and happiness lit up her face. "Am I really seeing a relative?" she said in a soft, shaky voice. "And someone I can welcome as a friend?" Tears welled up in her eyes, and she silently accepted M. Verneuil's embrace. It took her a while to regain her composure enough to speak.

To Adeline, who from her earliest infancy had been abandoned to strangers, a forlorn and helpless orphan; who had never till lately known a relation, and who then found one in the person of an inveterate enemy; to her this discovery was as delightful as unexpected. But, after struggling for some time with the various emotions that pressed upon her heart, she begged of M. Verneuil permission to withdraw till she could recover composure. He would have taken leave, but she entreated him not to go.

To Adeline, who since her earliest childhood had been left in the care of strangers, a lonely and helpless orphan; who had only recently discovered a family member, and that person turned out to be a bitter enemy; for her, this revelation was both surprising and joyful. However, after battling her mixed emotions for a while, she asked M. Verneuil if she could be alone until she regained her composure. He was about to leave, but she urged him not to go.

The interest which M. Verneuil took in the concerns of La Luc, which was strengthened by his increasing regard for Clara, had drawn him to Vaceau, where he was informed of the family and peculiar circumstances of Adeline. On receiving this intelligence he immediately set out for Paris, to offer his protection and assistance to his newly-discovered relation, and to aid, if possible, the cause of Theodore.

The interest that Mr. Verneuil had in La Luc, which grew stronger because of his deepening feelings for Clara, led him to Vaceau, where he learned about the family and unique situation of Adeline. Upon getting this information, he quickly headed to Paris to offer his support and help to his newly-found relative and to assist, if he could, Theodore's cause.

Adeline in a short time returned, and could then bear to converse on the subject of her family. M. Verneuil offered her his support and assistance, if they should be found necessary. But I trust, added he, to the justice of your cause, and hope it will not require any adventitious aid. To those who remember the late Marchioness, your features bring sufficient evidence of your birth. As a proof that my judgment in this instance is not biassed by prejudice, the resemblance struck me when I was in Savoy, though I knew the Marchioness only by her portrait; and I believe I mentioned to M. La Luc that you often reminded me of a deceased relation. You may form some judgment of this yourself, added M. Verneuil, taking a miniature from his pocket. This was your amiable mother.

Adeline quickly returned and was then able to talk about her family. M. Verneuil offered her his support and help, if needed. But I trust, he added, in the fairness of your cause and hope it won’t need any extra help. For those who remember the late Marchioness, your features provide enough proof of your lineage. To show that my judgment here isn’t influenced by bias, I noticed the resemblance when I was in Savoy, even though I knew the Marchioness only from her portrait; and I think I mentioned to M. La Luc that you often reminded me of a deceased relative. You can judge for yourself, M. Verneuil said, pulling a miniature from his pocket. This is your lovely mother.

Adeline's countenance changed; she received the picture eagerly, gazed on it for a long time in silence, and her eyes filled with tears. It was not the resemblance she studied; but the countenance—the mild and beautiful countenance of her parent, whose blue eyes, full of tender sweetness, seemed bent upon hers, while a soft smile played on her lips; Adeline pressed the picture to hers, and again gazed in silent reverie. At length, with a deep sigh, she said. This surely was my mother. Had she but lived—O, my poor father! you had been spared. This reflection quite overcame her, and she burst into tears. M. Verneuil did not interrupt her grief, but took her hand and sat by her without speaking, till she became more composed. Again kissing the picture, she held it out to him with a hesitating look. No, said he, it is already with its true owner. She thanked him with a smile of ineffable sweetness; and after some conversation on the subject of the approaching trial, on which occasion she requested M. Verneuil would support her by his presence, he withdrew, having begged leave to repeat his visit on the following day.

Adeline's expression changed; she eagerly took the picture, stared at it for a long time in silence, and her eyes filled with tears. She wasn't just looking at the resemblance; she was focused on the expression—the gentle and beautiful face of her parent, whose blue eyes, filled with tender sweetness, seemed to gaze back at her, while a soft smile lingered on her lips. Adeline pressed the picture to her own face and fell into a quiet reverie again. Finally, with a deep sigh, she said, "This really was my mother. If only she had lived—oh, my poor father! You would have been spared this." This thought overwhelmed her, and she broke down in tears. M. Verneuil didn't interrupt her sorrow; he took her hand and sat beside her in silence until she became more calm. After kissing the picture again, she offered it to him with a hesitant look. "No," he said, "it already belongs to its true owner." She thanked him with a smile full of sweetness, and after some discussion about the upcoming trial, during which she asked M. Verneuil to support her with his presence, he left, having asked permission to visit again the next day.

Adeline now opened her packet, and saw once more the well known characters of Theodore: for a moment She felt as if in his presence, and the conscious blush overspread her cheek. With a trembling hand she broke the seal, and read the tenderest assurances and solicitudes of his love. She often paused that she might prolong the sweet emotions which these assurances awakened; but while tears of tenderness stood trembling on her eyelids, the bitter recollection of his situation would return, and they fell in anguish on her bosom.

Adeline now opened her packet and saw once again the familiar handwriting of Theodore. For a moment, she felt like he was right there with her, and a blush crept across her cheeks. With a shaking hand, she broke the seal and read the most tender reassurances and expressions of his love. She often paused to prolong the sweet feelings these messages brought her, but as tears of tenderness threatened to spill from her eyes, the painful memory of his situation would hit her again, and they fell in anguish onto her chest.

He congratulated her, and with peculiar delicacy, on the prospects of life which were opening to her; said, every thing that might tend to animate and support her, but avoided dwelling on his own circumstances, except by expressing his sense of the zeal and kindness of his commanding officer, and adding that he did not despair of finally obtaining a pardon.

He congratulated her, and with unique sensitivity, on the opportunities in life that were unfolding for her; he said everything that could encourage and uplift her, but he steered clear of discussing his own situation, except to acknowledge the dedication and kindness of his commanding officer, and to add that he still held out hope for eventually getting a pardon.

This hope, though but faintly expressed, and written evidently for the purpose of consoling Adeline, did not entirely fail of the desired effect. She yielded to its enchanting influence, and forgot for awhile the many subjects of care and anxiety which surrounded her. Theodore said little of his father's health; what he did say was by no means so discouraging as the accounts of Clara, who, less anxious to conceal a truth that must give pain to Adeline, expressed without reserve all her apprehension and concern.

This hope, though only a little expressed and clearly meant to comfort Adeline, did manage to have the desired effect. She gave in to its captivating influence and momentarily forgot the many worries and anxieties around her. Theodore didn’t say much about his father's health; what he did say was definitely less discouraging than Clara's reports, who, less concerned about hiding a truth that would hurt Adeline, openly shared all her worries and fears.







CHAPTER XXV

Heaven is just!
And when the extent of his crimes is complete,
Will expose its red right arm and unleash its lightning.
Mason.

The day of the trial so anxiously awaited, and on which the fate of so many persons depended, at length arrived. Adeline, accompanied by M. Verneuil and Madame La Motte, appeared as the prosecutor of the Marquis de Montalt; and D'Aunoy, Du Bosse, Louis de La Motte, and several other persons, as witnesses in her cause. The judges were some of the most distinguished in France, and the advocates on both sides men of eminent abilities. On a trial of such importance the court, as may be imagined, was crowded with persons of distinction, and the spectacle it presented was strikingly solemn, yet magnificent.

The day of the trial that everyone had been waiting for, which would decide the fate of so many people, finally arrived. Adeline, accompanied by M. Verneuil and Madame La Motte, acted as the prosecutor against the Marquis de Montalt. D'Aunoy, Du Bosse, Louis de La Motte, and several others served as witnesses for her case. The judges were some of the most respected in France, and the lawyers on both sides were highly skilled. Naturally, a trial of this significance drew a crowd of distinguished individuals, and the scene was both dramatically serious and impressive.

When she appeared before the tribunal, Adeline's emotion surpassed all the arts of disguise; but, adding to the natural dignity of her air an expression of soft timidity, and to her downcast eyes a sweet confusion, it rendered her an object still more interesting; and she attracted the universal pity and admiration of the assembly. When she ventured to raise her eyes, she perceived that the Marquis was not yet in the court; and while she awaited his appearance in trembling expectation, a confused murmuring rose in a distant part of the hall. Her spirits now almost forsook her; the certainty of seeing immediately, and consciously, the murderer of her father, chilled her with horror, and she was with difficulty preserved from fainting. A low sound now ran through the court, and an air of confusion appeared, which was soon communicated to the tribunal itself. Several of the members arose, some left the hall, the whole place exhibited a scene of disorder, and a report at length reached Adeline that the Marquis de Montalt was dying. A considerable time elapsed in uncertainty: but the confusion continued; the Marquis did not appear, and at Adeline's request M. Verneuil went in quest of more positive information.

When she stood before the tribunal, Adeline's emotions overwhelmed any attempts to hide them; yet, by adding a gentle shyness to her naturally dignified presence and a sweet confusion to her downcast eyes, she became even more captivating, eliciting the sympathy and admiration of everyone in the room. When she dared to lift her gaze, she noticed that the Marquis had not yet entered the court; while she waited for him with anxious anticipation, a murmur began to rise from a distant part of the hall. Her spirits nearly deserted her; the imminent and conscious sight of her father's murderer filled her with dread, and she struggled to avoid fainting. A low murmur spread through the court, and a sense of disarray soon reached the tribunal. Several members stood up, some left the hall, and the entire place descended into chaos, until finally, Adeline heard word that the Marquis de Montalt was dying. A significant amount of time passed in uncertainty, but the disorder persisted; the Marquis did not show up, and at Adeline's request, M. Verneuil went to seek more concrete information.

He followed a crowd which was hurrying towards the Chatelet, and with some difficulty gained admittance into the prison; but the porter at the gate, whom he had bribed for a passport, could give him no certain information on the subject of his inquiry, and not being at liberty to quit his post, furnished M. Verneuil with only a vague direction to the Marquis's apartment. The courts were silent and deserted; but as he advanced, a distant hum of voices led him on, till, perceiving several persons running towards a staircase which appeared beyond the archway of a long passage, he followed thither, and learned that the Marquis was certainly dying. The staircase was filled with people; he endeavoured to press through the crowd, and after much struggle and difficulty he reached the door of an ante-room which communicated with the apartment where the Marquis lay, and whence several persons now issued. Here he learned that the object of his inquiry was already dead. M. Verneuil, however, pressed through the ante-room to the chamber where lay the Marquis on a bed surrounded by officers of the law, and two notaries, who appeared to have been taking down depositions. His countenance was suffused with a black and deadly hue, and impressed with the horrors of death. M. Verneuil turned away, shocked by the spectacle; and on inquiry heard that the Marquis had died by poison.

He followed a crowd rushing towards the Chatelet and, after some effort, managed to get into the prison. However, the gatekeeper, whom he had bribed for access, couldn't provide him with any clear information regarding his inquiry. Stuck at his post, he only gave M. Verneuil a vague direction to the Marquis's room. The courtyards were quiet and empty, but as he moved forward, he heard a distant murmur of voices guiding him. Spotting several people running toward a staircase visible beyond the archway of a long hallway, he followed them and learned that the Marquis was definitely dying. The staircase was packed with people; he tried to push through the crowd, and after a lot of struggle, he reached the door of an antechamber that connected to the room where the Marquis lay, from which several people were now coming out. Here, he found out that his inquiry’s subject was already dead. However, M. Verneuil pressed into the antechamber and into the room where the Marquis lay on a bed, surrounded by law officers and two notaries who seemed to be taking statements. His face was pale and deathly, marked by the horror of his passing. M. Verneuil turned away, disturbed by the sight; when he inquired further, he learned that the Marquis had died from poison.

It appeared that, convinced he had nothing to hope from his trial, he had taken this method of avoiding an ignominious death. In the last hours of life, while tortured with the remembrance of his crime, he resolved to make all the atonement that remained for him; and having swallowed the potion, he immediately sent for a confessor to take a full confession of his guilt, and two notaries, and thus establish Adeline beyond dispute in the rights of her birth: and also bequeathed her a considerable legacy.

It seemed that, believing he had no hope from his trial, he chose this way to escape a shameful death. In his final hours, while tormented by the memory of his crime, he decided to make amends for what he could. After drinking the potion, he quickly called for a priest to confess his sins and two notaries to ensure Adeline’s rights to her inheritance were indisputable. He also left her a significant legacy.

In consequence of these depositions she was soon after formally acknowledged as the daughter and heiress of Henri, Marquis de Montalt, and the rich estates of her father were restored to her. She immediately threw herself at the feet of the king in behalf of Theodore and of La Motte. The character of the former, the cause in which he had risked his life, the occasion of the late Marquis's enmity towards him, were circumstances so notorious and so forcible, that it is more than probable the monarch would have granted his pardon to a pleader less irresistible than was Adeline de Montalt. Theodore La Luc not only received an ample pardon, but, in consideration of his gallant conduct towards Adeline, he was soon after raised to a post of considerable rank in the army.

Because of these statements, she was soon officially recognized as the daughter and heiress of Henri, Marquis de Montalt, and her father's vast estates were returned to her. She immediately pleaded with the king on behalf of Theodore and La Motte. The reputation of the former, the cause for which he had risked his life, and the reason for the late Marquis's hostility towards him were circumstances so well-known and compelling that it’s likely the king would have granted his pardon to someone less persuasive than Adeline de Montalt. Theodore La Luc not only received a full pardon but, due to his brave actions towards Adeline, was shortly afterward promoted to a significant position in the army.

For La Motte, who had been condemned for the robbery on full evidence, and who had been also charged with the crime which had formerly compelled him to quit Paris, a pardon could not be obtained; but, at the earnest supplication of Adeline, and in consideration of the service he had finally rendered her, his sentence was softened from death to banishment. This indulgence, however, would have availed him little, had not the noble generosity of Adeline silenced other prosecutions that were preparing against him, and bestowed on him a sum more than sufficient to support his family in a foreign country. This kindness operated so powerfully upon his heart, which had been betrayed through weakness rather than natural depravity, and awakened so keen a remorse for the injuries he had once meditated against a benefactress so noble, that his former habits became odious to him, and his character gradually recovered the hue which it would probably always have worn had he never been exposed to the tempting dissipations of Paris.

For La Motte, who had been convicted of robbery with solid evidence and was also charged with the crime that had previously forced him to leave Paris, a pardon was off the table. However, at Adeline's heartfelt request, and considering the help he eventually provided her, his punishment was reduced from death to exile. This leniency would have meant little to him if not for Adeline's generous act of stopping other charges being prepared against him and providing him with enough money to care for his family in another country. Her kindness touched his heart, which had faltered more out of weakness than true malice, and it stirred up a deep remorse for the harm he had once thought to inflict on such a noble benefactor. His old ways became repugnant to him, and his character slowly returned to the kind of person he might have always been if he hadn't succumbed to the temptations of Paris.

The passion which Louis had so long owned for Adeline was raised almost to adoration by her late conduct; but he now relinquished even the faint hope which he had hitherto almost unconsciously cherished; and since the life which was granted to Theodore rendered this sacrifice necessary, he could not repine. He resolved, however, to seek in absence the tranquillity he had lost, and to place his future happiness on that of two persons so deservedly dear to him.

The intense feelings Louis had for Adeline, which he had nurtured for so long, turned into near adoration because of her recent behavior; however, he now let go of even the slight hope he had almost unconsciously held onto. Since Theodore's life made this sacrifice necessary, he couldn't complain. He decided to find the peace he had lost through absence and to base his future happiness on the well-being of two people who meant so much to him.

On the eve of his departure, La Motte and his family took a very affecting leave of Adeline; he left Paris for England, where it was his design to settle; and Louis, who was eager to fly from her enchantments, set out on the same day for his regiment.

On the night before he left, La Motte and his family said an emotional goodbye to Adeline; he was leaving Paris for England, where he planned to settle down. Louis, who was keen to escape her charms, also departed that same day for his regiment.

Adeline remained some time at Paris to settle her affairs, where she was introduced by M. Verneuil to the few and distant relations that remained of her family. Among these were the Count and Countess D——, and the Monsieur Amand who had so much engaged her pity and esteem at Nice. The lady whose death he lamented was of the family of De Montalt; and the resemblance which he had traced between her features and those of Adeline, her cousin, was something more than the effect of fancy. The death of his elder brother had abruptly recalled him from Italy; but Adeline had the satisfaction to observe, that the heavy melancholy which formerly oppressed him, had yielded to a sort of placid resignation, and that his countenance was often enlivened by a transient gleam of cheerfulness.

Adeline spent some time in Paris to take care of her affairs, where M. Verneuil introduced her to the few distant relatives left from her family. Among them were Count and Countess D—— and Monsieur Amand, who had so deeply inspired her compassion and admiration in Nice. The woman whose death he mourned was part of the De Montalt family, and the resemblance he noticed between her features and Adeline's, her cousin, was more than just a figment of his imagination. The death of his older brother had pulled him back from Italy unexpectedly; however, Adeline was pleased to see that the heavy sadness that once weighed him down had given way to a kind of calm acceptance, and his face would often light up with brief moments of happiness.

The Count and Countess D——, who were much interested by her goodness and beauty, invited her to make their hotel her residence while she remained at Paris.

The Count and Countess D——, who were very taken by her kindness and beauty, invited her to stay at their hotel while she was in Paris.

Her first care was to have the remains of her parent removed from the abbey of St. Clair, and deposited in the vault of his ancestors. D'Aunoy was tried, condemned, and hanged, for the murder. At the place of execution he had described the spot where the remains of the Marquis were concealed, which was in the stone room already mentioned belonging to the abbey. M. Verneuil accompanied the officers appointed for the search, and attended the ashes of the Marquis to St. Maur, an estate in one of the northern provinces. There they were deposited with the solemn funeral pomp becoming his rank; Adeline attended as chief mourner; and this last duty paid to the memory of her parent, she became more tranquil and resigned. The MS. that recorded his sufferings had been found at the abbey, and delivered to her by M. Verneuil, and she preserved it with the pious enthusiasm so sacred a relique deserved.

Her first priority was to have her parent's remains moved from the abbey of St. Clair and laid to rest in the family vault. D'Aunoy was tried, found guilty, and hanged for the murder. At his execution, he pointed out where the remains of the Marquis were hidden, which was in the stone room mentioned earlier that belonged to the abbey. M. Verneuil joined the officers assigned to the search and escorted the Marquis's ashes to St. Maur, an estate in one of the northern provinces. There, they were laid to rest with the formal funeral honors fitting his rank; Adeline participated as the chief mourner, and after fulfilling this last duty to honor her parent, she felt more at peace and resigned. The manuscript detailing his sufferings had been found at the abbey and handed to her by M. Verneuil, and she kept it with the reverent enthusiasm such a sacred relic deserved.

On her return to Paris, Theodore La Luc, who was come from Montpellier, awaited her arrival. The happiness of this meeting was clouded by the account he brought of his father, whose extreme danger had alone withheld him from hastening the moment he obtained his liberty to thank Adeline for the life she had preserved. She now received him as the friend to whom she was indebted for her preservation, and as the lover who deserved and possessed her tenderest affection. The remembrance of the circumstances under which they had last met, and of their mutual anguish, rendered more exquisite the happiness of the present moments, when, no longer oppressed by the horrid prospect of ignominious death and final separation, they looked forward only to the smiling days that awaited them, when hand in hand they should tread the flowery scenes of life. The contrast which memory drew of the past with the present, frequently drew tears of tenderness and gratitude to their eyes; and the sweet smile which seemed struggling to dispel from the countenance of Adeline those gems of sorrow, penetrated the heart of Theodore, and brought to his recollection a little song which in other circumstances he had formerly sung to her. He took up a lute that lay on the table, and touching the dulcet chords, accompanied it with the following words:—

On her return to Paris, Theodore La Luc, who had come from Montpellier, was waiting for her. The joy of their reunion was overshadowed by the news he brought about his father, whose serious condition had kept him from rushing to thank Adeline for saving his life as soon as he got his freedom. She welcomed him as the friend through whom she owed her survival, and as the lover who deserved and held her deepest affection. The memory of how they last met and their shared pain made the happiness of the moment feel even more intense, as they no longer faced the terrible possibility of disgraceful death and final separation. Instead, they looked forward to the bright days ahead when, hand in hand, they would walk through the beautiful scenes of life. The contrast between the past and the present often brought tears of tenderness and gratitude to their eyes; and the gentle smile that seemed to struggle against the tears on Adeline’s face touched Theodore’s heart and reminded him of a little song he had once sung to her in different circumstances. He picked up a lute that was lying on the table, and strumming the sweet chords, sang the following words:—

TUNE
The rose that cries with morning dew,
And sparkles in the sunshine,
In tears and smiles, I see you.
When love clears away the clouds of sadness.
The dew that weighs down the blooming flower
Enhance the scent—refresh the glow;
So Love's sweet tears enhance his strength,
So happiness shines more brightly because of sorrow!

Her affection for Theodore had induced Adeline to reject several suitors whom her goodness, beauty, and wealth, had already attracted, and who, though infinitely his superiors in point of fortune, were many of them inferior to him in family, and all of them in merit.

Her love for Theodore had led Adeline to turn down several suitors who were drawn to her kindness, beauty, and wealth. Although many of them were far wealthier than he was, they were mostly of lesser family and all of them lacking in character.

The various and tumultuous emotions which the late events had called forth in the bosom of Adeline were now subsided; but the memory of her father still tinctured her mind with a melancholy that time only could subdue; and she refused to listen to the supplications of Theodore, till the period she had prescribed for her mourning should be expired. The necessity of rejoining his regiment obliged him to leave Paris within the fortnight after his arrival; but he carried with him assurance of receiving her hand soon after she should lay aside her sable habit, and departed therefore with tolerable composure.

The different and intense emotions stirred up by recent events in Adeline's life had calmed down; however, the memory of her father still cast a shadow over her thoughts with a sadness that only time could heal. She turned down Theodore's pleas until the mourning period she had set for herself was over. He had to return to his regiment and leave Paris within two weeks of his arrival, but he left with the promise of marrying her soon after she put away her mourning clothes, feeling reasonably at peace as he did so.

M. La Luc's very precarious state was a source of incessant disquietude to Adeline, and she determined to accompany M. Verneuil, who was now the declared lover of Clara, to Montpellier, whither La Luc had immediately gone on the liberation of his son. For this journey she was preparing, when she received from her friend a flattering account of his amendment; and as some further settlement of her affairs required her presence at Paris, she deferred her design, and M. Verneuil departed alone.

M. La Luc's very uncertain condition was a constant source of worry for Adeline, and she decided to go with M. Verneuil, who was now openly in love with Clara, to Montpellier, where La Luc had gone right after his son's release. She was getting ready for this trip when she received a positive update from her friend about his recovery; and since she needed to take care of some other matters in Paris, she put her plans on hold, and M. Verneuil left on his own.

When Theodore's affairs assumed a more favourable aspect, M. Verneuil had written to La Luc, and communicated to him the secret of his heart respecting Clara. La Luc, who admired and esteemed M. Verneuil, and who was not ignorant of his family connexions, was pleased with the proposed alliance. Clara thought she had never seen any person whom she was so much inclined to love; and M. Verneuil received an answer favourable to his wishes, and which encouraged him to undertake the present journey to Montpellier.

When Theodore's situation improved, M. Verneuil wrote to La Luc and shared his true feelings about Clara. La Luc, who respected and valued M. Verneuil and was aware of his family connections, was happy about the proposed match. Clara felt a strong attraction toward him like she had never experienced before, and M. Verneuil received a positive response that motivated him to make the journey to Montpellier.

The restoration of his happiness and the climate of Montpellier did all for the health of La Luc that his most anxious friends could wish, and he was at length so far recovered as to visit Adeline at her estate of St. Maur. Clara and M. Verneuil accompanied him, and a cessation of hostilities between France and Spain soon after permitted Theodore to join this happy party. When La Luc, thus restored to those most dear to him, looked back on the miseries he had escaped, and forward to the blessings that awaited him, his heart dilated with emotions of exquisite joy and gratitude; and his venerable countenance, softened by an expression of complacent delight, exhibited a perfect picture of happy age.

The restoration of his happiness and the climate of Montpellier did everything for La Luc’s health that his most worried friends could have hoped for, and he was finally well enough to visit Adeline at her estate in St. Maur. Clara and M. Verneuil went with him, and a truce between France and Spain soon allowed Theodore to join this joyful group. When La Luc, now reunited with those he cherished most, reflected on the hardships he had overcome and the blessings that lay ahead, his heart swelled with feelings of pure joy and gratitude; his aged face, softened by a look of content delight, truly represented the image of a happy old age.







CHAPTER XXVI

Last came Joy's thrilling trial:—
They would have thought that anyone who heard the tune,
They saw in Tempe's valley her local maidens.
In the festive atmosphere,
To some tireless musician dancing,
As his quick fingers touched the strings,
Love, surrounded by laughter, created a joyful celebration.
Ode to the Emotions.

Adeline, in the society of friends so beloved, lost the impression of that melancholy which the fate of her parent had occasioned: she recovered all her natural vivacity; and when she threw off the mourning habit which filial piety had required her to assume, she gave her hand to Theodore. The nuptials, which were celebrated at St. Maur, were graced by the presence of the Count and Countess D——; and La Luc had the supreme felicity of confirming on the same day the flattering destinies of both his children. When the ceremony was over, he blessed and embraced them all with tears of fatherly affection. I thank thee, O God! that I have been permitted to see this hour, said he; whenever it shall please thee to call me hence, I shall depart in peace.

Adeline, surrounded by her beloved friends, lost the sense of sadness caused by her parent's fate. She regained her natural lively spirit; and when she removed the mourning attire that her respect for her family had required her to wear, she took Theodore's hand. The wedding, held at St. Maur, was honored by the presence of Count and Countess D——; and La Luc experienced the utmost joy of celebrating both his children's bright futures on the same day. After the ceremony, he blessed and embraced them all, tears of fatherly love in his eyes. "Thank you, God! for allowing me to witness this moment," he said; "whenever it pleases you to call me away, I will leave in peace."

Long, very long, may you be spared to bless your children! replied Adeline. Clara kissed her father's hand and wept: Long, very long! she repeated in a voice scarcely audible. La Luc smiled cheerfully, and turned the conversation to a subject less affecting.

"May you be blessed to be with your children for a long, long time!" replied Adeline. Clara kissed her father's hand and cried: "Long, very long!" she echoed in a barely audible voice. La Luc smiled warmly and shifted the conversation to a less emotional topic.

But the time now drew nigh when La Luc thought it necessary to return to the duties of his parish, from which he had so long been absent. Madame La Luc too, who had attended him during the period of his danger at Montpellier, and hence returned to Savoy, complained much of the solitude of her life; and this was with her brother an additional motive for his speedy departure. Theodore and Adeline, who could not support the thought of a separation, endeavoured to persuade him to give up his chateau, and to reside with them in France; but he was held by many ties to Leloncourt. For many years he had constituted the comfort and happiness of his parishioners; they revered and loved him as a father—he regarded them with an affection little short of parental. The attachment they discovered towards him on his departure was not forgotten either; it had made a deep impression on his mind, and he could not bear the thought of forsaking them now that Heaven had showered on him its abundance. It is sweet to live for them, said he, and I will also die amongst them. A sentiment also of a more tender nature,—(and let not the stoic profane it with the name of weakness, or the man of the world scorn it as unnatural)—a sentiment still more tender attached him to Leloncourt,—the remains of his wife reposed there.

But the time was approaching when La Luc felt it was necessary to return to the responsibilities of his parish, from which he had been absent for so long. Madame La Luc, who had taken care of him during his illness in Montpellier and then returned to Savoy, complained a lot about the loneliness of her life; this was an additional reason for her brother to leave quickly. Theodore and Adeline, who couldn't bear the thought of being apart, tried to convince him to give up his chateau and live with them in France; however, he was tied to Leloncourt by many bonds. For many years, he had been a source of comfort and happiness to his parishioners; they revered and loved him like a father, and he felt a deep affection for them in return. The attachment they showed him upon his departure left a lasting impression on his heart, and he couldn't stand the idea of abandoning them now that Heaven had blessed him with abundance. "It is sweet to live for them," he said, "and I will also die among them." He was also connected to Leloncourt by a more tender sentiment—(and let's not let the stoic label it as weakness or the worldly man dismiss it as unnatural)—an even deeper feeling anchored him there: the remains of his wife rested there.

Since La Luc would not reside in France, Theodore and Adeline, to whom the splendid gaieties that courted them at Paris, were very inferior temptations to the sweet domestic pleasures and refined society which Leloncourt would afford, determined to accompany La Luc and Monsieur and Madame Verneuil abroad. Adeline arranged her affairs so as to render her residence in France unnecessary; and having bid an affectionate adieu to the Count and Countess D——, and to M. Amand, who had recovered a tolerable degree of cheerfulness, she departed with her friends for Savoy.

Since La Luc wouldn’t be living in France, Theodore and Adeline found the dazzling attractions of Paris far less appealing than the cozy home life and refined company they would enjoy at Leloncourt. They decided to go abroad with La Luc and Monsieur and Madame Verneuil. Adeline took care of her affairs to make her stay in France unnecessary, and after saying a heartfelt goodbye to Count and Countess D—— and to M. Amand, who had regained a decent level of cheerfulness, she left with her friends for Savoy.

They travelled leisurely, and frequently turned out of their way to view whatever was worthy of observation. After a long and pleasant journey they came once more within view of the Swiss mountains, the sight of which revived a thousand interesting recollections in the mind of Adeline. She remembered the circumstances and the sensations under which she had first seen them—when an orphan, flying from persecution to seek shelter among strangers, and lost to the only person on earth whom she loved—she remembered this, and the contrast of the present moment struck with all its force upon her heart.

They traveled at a relaxed pace and often took detours to see whatever caught their interest. After a long and enjoyable journey, they once again caught sight of the Swiss mountains, which brought back a flood of memories for Adeline. She recalled the circumstances and feelings of when she first saw them—an orphan escaping from persecution to find refuge among strangers, having lost the only person she loved on earth. She remembered this, and the contrast to her present situation hit her heart with full force.

The countenance of Clara brightened into smiles of the most animated delight as she drew near the beloved scenes of her infant pleasures; and Theodore, often looking from the windows, caught with patriotic enthusiasm the magnificent and changing scenery which the receding mountains successively disclosed.

Clara's face lit up with joyful smiles as she approached the cherished places of her childhood; and Theodore, frequently glancing out the windows, felt a wave of patriotic excitement from the stunning and ever-changing views revealed by the distant mountains.

It was evening when they approached within a few miles of Leloncourt, and the road winding round the foot of a stupendous crag, presented them a full view of the lake, and of the peaceful dwelling of La Luc. An exclamation of joy from the whole party announced the discovery, and the glance of pleasure was reflected from every eye. The sun's last light gleamed upon the waters that reposed in "crystal purity" below, mellowed every feature of the landscape, and touched with purple splendour the clouds that rolled along the mountain tops.

It was evening when they got within a few miles of Leloncourt, and the road winding around the base of a massive cliff gave them a full view of the lake and the peaceful home of La Luc. A shout of joy from the entire group signaled their discovery, and every eye reflected the happiness. The last rays of the sun glimmered on the water, which lay in "crystal purity" below, softening every detail of the landscape, and bathed the clouds rolling along the mountain tops in a purple glow.

La Luc welcomed his family to his happy home, and sent up a silent thanksgiving that he was permitted thus to return to it. Adeline continued to gaze upon each well known object; and again reflecting on the vicissitudes of grief and joy, and the surprising change of fortune which she had experienced since last she saw them, her heart dilated with gratitude and complacent delight. She looked at Theodore, whom in these very scenes she had lamented as lost to her for ever; who, when found again, was about to be torn from her by an ignominious death; but, who now sat by her side her secure and happy husband, the pride of his family and herself; and while the sensibility of her heart flowed in tears from her eyes, a smile of ineffable tenderness told him all she felt. He gently pressed her hand, and answered her with a look of love.

La Luc welcomed his family to his happy home and silently thanked his luck for being able to return to it. Adeline continued to gaze at each familiar object, reflecting on the ups and downs of grief and joy, and the surprising twists of fate she had experienced since the last time she saw them. Her heart swelled with gratitude and pure delight. She looked at Theodore, whom she had mourned as lost to her forever in these very places; he had been found but was about to be taken from her by a humiliating death. Now, he sat beside her as her secure and happy husband, the pride of both his family and hers. As tears of emotion filled her eyes, a smile of indescribable tenderness conveyed everything she felt. He gently squeezed her hand and responded with a look of love.

Peter, who now rode up to the carriage with a face fall of joy and of importance, interrupted a course of sentiment which was become almost too interesting. Ah! my dear master! cried he, welcome home again. Here is the village, God bless it! It is worth a million such places as Paris. Thank St. Jaques, we are all come safe back again.

Peter, who rode up to the carriage with a beaming face full of joy and significance, interrupted a moment of sentiment that had become almost too engaging. Ah! my dear master! he exclaimed, welcome back home. Here is the village, God bless it! It's worth a million places like Paris. Thank St. Jacques, we’re all safely back!

This effusion of honest Peter's joy was received and answered with the kindness it deserved. As they drew near the lake, music sounded over the water, and they presently saw a large party of the villagers assembled on a green spot that sloped to the very margin of the waves, and dancing in all their holiday finery. It was the evening of a festival. The elder peasants sat under the shade of the trees that crowned this little eminence, eating milk and fruits, and watching their sons and daughters frisk it away to the sprightly notes of the tabor and pipe, which was joined by the softer tones of a mandolin.

This outpouring of honest Peter's joy was met with the kindness it deserved. As they got closer to the lake, music floated over the water, and they soon spotted a large group of villagers gathered on a green patch that sloped down to the water's edge, dancing in their festive outfits. It was the evening of a festival. The older peasants sat in the shade of the trees at the top of this little hill, enjoying milk and fruits while watching their sons and daughters dance to the lively tunes of the drum and flute, accompanied by the gentle sounds of a mandolin.

The scene was highly interesting; and what added to its picturesque beauty was a group of cattle that stood, some on the brink, some half in the water, and others reposing on the green bank, while several peasant girls, dressed in the neat simplicity of their country, were dispensing the milky feast. Peter now rode on first, and a crowd soon collected round him, who, learning that their beloved master was at hand, went forth to meet and welcome him. Their warm and honest expressions of joy diffused an exquisite satisfaction over the heart of the good La Luc, who met them with the kindness of a father, and could scarcely forbear shedding tears to this testimony of their attachment. When the younger part of the peasants heard the news of his arrival, the general joy was such, that, led by the tabor and pipe, they danced before his carriage to the chateau, where they again welcomed him and his family with the enlivening strains of music. At the gate of the chateau they were received by Madame La Luc,—and a happier party never met.

The scene was really captivating; what made it even more beautiful was a group of cattle that stood some near the edge, some partially in the water, and others resting on the green bank, while several peasant girls, dressed in the simple yet neat style of their village, were serving the milky feast. Peter rode ahead, and soon a crowd gathered around him, eager to meet and greet their beloved master. Their warm and genuine expressions of joy filled La Luc's heart with a deep satisfaction; he welcomed them with the kindness of a father and could hardly hold back tears at their display of affection. When the younger peasants heard the news of his arrival, their excitement was so great that, led by the drum and flute, they danced in front of his carriage all the way to the chateau, where they welcomed him and his family again with lively music. At the gate of the chateau, Madame La Luc greeted them—and never has a happier group met.

As the evening was uncommonly mild and beautiful, supper was spread in the garden. When the repast was over, Clara, whose heart was all glee, proposed a dance by moonlight. It will be delicious, said she; the moonbeams are already dancing on the waters. See what a stream of radiance they throw across the lake, and how they sparkle round that little promontory on the left. The freshness of the hour too invites to dancing.

As the evening was unusually warm and lovely, dinner was set up in the garden. After the meal, Clara, who was full of joy, suggested a dance under the moonlight. "It will be wonderful," she said; "the moonlight is already dancing on the water. Look at the way it creates a stream of light across the lake, and how it sparkles around that small point on the left. The coolness of the hour also makes it perfect for dancing."

They all agreed to the proposal.—And let the good people who have so heartily welcomed us home be called in too, said La Luc: they shall all partake our happiness: there is devotion in making others happy, and gratitude ought to make us devout. Peter, bring more wine, and set some tables under the trees. Peter flew; and while chairs and tables were placing, Clara ran for her favourite lute, the lute which had formerly afforded her such delight, and which Adeline had often touched with a melancholy expression. Clara's light hand now ran over the chords, and drew forth tones of tender sweetness, her voice accompanying the following:

They all agreed to the proposal. "And let the good people who have welcomed us home be called in too," said La Luc. "They should all share in our happiness; there's something special about making others happy, and gratitude should inspire us to do just that. Peter, bring more wine and set up some tables under the trees." Peter hurried off, and while chairs and tables were being arranged, Clara went to get her favorite lute, the one that had once brought her so much joy and that Adeline had often played with a sad expression. Clara's light fingers danced over the strings, producing notes of gentle sweetness, her voice joining in with the following:

Air
Now at Moonlight's fairy glow,
When each dewy slope faintly glimmers,
And valley and mountain, lake and grove,
In solitary beauty, rest;
When the evening breeze slowly settles,
That soothes the mind in thoughtful concern,
And Fancy sees greater visions,
Let music break the silence of the air:
Let the cheerful tabor ring out,
And with the Fairies of the meadow or clearing
In a stumbling circle, they hit the ground.
In the shaking shade of the tall trees.
"Now at Moonlight's magical hour"
Let music share her sweet voice,
And over the waves, with magical power,
Call on Echo to celebrate!

Peter, who could not move in a sober step, had already spread refreshments under the trees, and in a short time the lawn was encircled with peasantry. The rural pipe and tabor were placed, at Clara's request, under the shade of her beloved acacias on the margin of the lake; the merry notes of music sounded, Adeline led off the dance, and the mountains answered only to the strains of mirth and melody.

Peter, who could barely walk straight, had already set up snacks under the trees, and soon the lawn was surrounded by villagers. At Clara's request, the rustic flute and drum were placed in the shade of her favorite acacia trees by the lake; the cheerful music started playing, Adeline kicked off the dance, and the mountains echoed with the sounds of joy and melody.

The venerable La Luc, as he sat among the elder peasants, surveyed the scene—his children and people thus assembled round him in one grand compact of harmony and joy—the frequent tear bedewed his cheek, and he seemed to taste the fulness of an exalted delight.

The respected La Luc, sitting among the older farmers, looked around at the scene—his children and community gathered around him in a beautiful moment of unity and happiness. Tears often filled his eyes, and he appeared to savor the fullness of profound joy.

So much was every heart roused to gladness, that the morning dawn began to peep upon the scene of their festivity, when every cottager returned to his home, blessing the benevolence of La Luc.

So much joy filled every heart that the morning light started to break over their celebration as each villager went back home, thankful for La Luc's kindness.

After passing some weeks with La Luc, M. Verneuil bought a chateau in the village of Leloncourt; and as it was the only one not already occupied, Theodore looked out for a residence in the neighbourhood. At the distance of a few leagues, on the beautiful banks of the lake of Geneva, where the waters retire into a small bay, he purchased a villa. The chateau was characterized by an air of simplicity and taste rather than of magnificence, which, however, was the chief trait in the surrounding scene. The chateau was almost encircled with woods, which formed a grand amphitheatre, swept down to the water's edge, and abounded with wild and romantic walks. Here nature was suffered to sport in all her beautiful luxuriance, except where, here and there, the hand of art formed the foliage to admit a view of the blue waters of the lake, with the white sail that glided by, or of the distant mountains. In front of the chateau the woods opened to a lawn, and the eye was suffered to wander over the lake, whose bosom presented an ever-moving picture, while its varied margin sprinkled with villas, woods, and towns, and crowned beyond with the snowy and sublime Alps, rising point behind point in awful confusion, exhibited a scenery of almost unequalled magnificence.

After spending a few weeks with La Luc, M. Verneuil bought a chateau in the village of Leloncourt, and since it was the only one not already occupied, Theodore looked for a place to live nearby. A few miles away, on the beautiful shores of Lake Geneva, where the water retreats into a small bay, he bought a villa. The chateau was marked by a sense of simplicity and taste rather than grandeur, which was the main characteristic of the surrounding landscape. It was almost surrounded by woods that formed a grand amphitheater, sweeping down to the water's edge and filled with wild, romantic paths. Here, nature was allowed to flourish in all her beautiful abundance, except in certain places where art shaped the foliage to create views of the blue waters of the lake, with white sails gliding by, or of the distant mountains. In front of the chateau, the woods opened up to a lawn, allowing the eye to wander over the lake, whose surface presented a constantly changing scene, while its varied shoreline dotted with villas, woods, and towns, and crowned beyond by the snowy, majestic Alps—rising point after point in striking disarray—showcased a landscape of almost unparalleled beauty.

Here, contemning the splendour of false happiness, and possessing the pure and rational delights of love refined into the most tender friendship, surrounded by the friends so dear to them, and visited by a select and enlightened society—here, in the very bosom of felicity, lived Theodore and Adeline La Luc.

Here, rejecting the glamour of fake happiness and enjoying the pure and thoughtful pleasures of love turned into the most tender friendship, surrounded by their beloved friends and visited by a select and enlightened community—here, in the heart of happiness, lived Theodore and Adeline La Luc.

The passion of Louis de La Motte yielded at length to the powers of absence and necessity. He still loved Adeline, but it was with the placid tenderness of friendship; and when, at the earnest invitation of Theodore, he visited the villa, he beheld their happiness with a satisfaction unalloyed by any emotions of envy. He afterwards married a lady of some fortune at Geneva; and resigning his commission in the French service, settled on the borders of the lake, and increased the social delights of Theodore and Adeline.

The passion of Louis de La Motte eventually gave way to the effects of absence and necessity. He still loved Adeline, but it was with the calm tenderness of friendship; and when, at Theodore's heartfelt invitation, he visited the villa, he saw their happiness with a satisfaction free from any feelings of jealousy. He later married a wealthy woman in Geneva; and after resigning his commission in the French military, he settled by the lake, adding to the social joys of Theodore and Adeline.

Their former lives afforded an example of trials well endured—and their present, of virtues greatly rewarded; and this reward they continued to deserve—for, not to themselves was their happiness contracted, but diffused to all who came within the sphere of their influence. The indigent and unhappy rejoiced in their benevolence, the virtuous and enlightened in their friendship, and their children in parents whose example impressed upon their hearts, the precepts offered to their understandings.

Their previous lives showed how well they handled challenges—and now, their current lives reflect the great rewards of their virtues; and they kept earning those rewards—because their happiness wasn't just for themselves, but spread to everyone around them. The needy and the unhappy thrived because of their kindness, the virtuous and knowledgeable enjoyed their friendship, and their children benefited from having parents whose example taught them valuable lessons they could understand.








Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!